summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--10972-0.txt8
-rw-r--r--10972-h/10972-h.htm174
-rw-r--r--10972-h/images/cover.jpgbin0 -> 255026 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-8.txt7793
-rw-r--r--old/10972-8.zipbin167824 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h.zipbin1136427 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/10972-h.htm10686
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img01.jpgbin91460 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img02a.jpgbin85182 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img02b.jpgbin82310 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img03.jpgbin200075 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img03t.jpgbin86219 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img04.jpgbin129660 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img04t.jpgbin81056 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img05a.jpgbin76001 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img05b.jpgbin50081 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972-h/images/img06.jpgbin85016 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/10972.txt7793
-rw-r--r--old/10972.zipbin167776 -> 0 bytes
19 files changed, 84 insertions, 26370 deletions
diff --git a/10972-0.txt b/10972-0.txt
index ee7599e..6c0079e 100644
--- a/10972-0.txt
+++ b/10972-0.txt
@@ -1,13 +1,5 @@
*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 10972 ***
-Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this
- file which includes the original illustrations.
- See 10972-h.htm or 10972-h.zip:
- (http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/1/0/9/7/10972/10972-h/10972-h.htm)
- or
- (http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/1/0/9/7/10972/10972-h.zip)
-
-
diff --git a/10972-h/10972-h.htm b/10972-h/10972-h.htm
index 0046ec5..cab4a49 100644
--- a/10972-h/10972-h.htm
+++ b/10972-h/10972-h.htm
@@ -1,10 +1,10 @@
-<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN">
-<html>
+<!DOCTYPE html>
+<html lang="en">
<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=UTF-8">
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia, by John Ward</title>
-<style type="text/css">
- <!--
+<meta charset="utf-8">
+<title>With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia | Project Gutenberg</title>
+<link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover">
+<style>
* { font-family: Times;}
P { margin-top: .75em;
font-size: 12pt;
@@ -28,55 +28,49 @@
a:visited {color:blue;
text-decoration:none}
a:hover {color:red}
- // -->
+ .center {text-align:center;}
</style>
</head>
<body>
-<div>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 10972 ***</div>
-<h1>The Project Gutenberg eBook, With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia, by John Ward</h1>
-<br>
-<center><b>E-text prepared by Jonathan Ingram, Steven desJardins,<br>
- and Project Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders</b></center>
-<br>
-<br>
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 10972 ***</div>
+
<hr class="full">
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<h1>With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia</h1>
<h2>By Col. John Ward </h2>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
<b>C.B., C.M.G., M.P.</b>
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img01.jpg">
-<img width="30%" src="images/img01.jpg"
-alt="Colonel Ward, C.B., C.M.G., M.P." /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img01.jpg" alt="Colonel Ward, C.B., C.M.G., M.P." style="width: 30%"></a><br >
<b>Colonel Ward, C.B., C.M.G., M.P.</b></p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
<i>With Eight Plates</i>
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
1920
-</center>
+</div>
<h3>
TO MY COMRADES
</h3>
-<center>
-OFFICERS, N.C.O.s AND MEN OF THE<br/>
-18th, 19th, 25th AND 26th BATTALIONS OF<br/>
+<div class="center">
+OFFICERS, N.C.O.s AND MEN OF THE<br>
+18th, 19th, 25th AND 26th BATTALIONS OF<br>
THE MIDDLESEX REGIMENT
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
-who, on sea and land, in sunshine and snow, so<br/>
-worthily upheld the traditional gallantry and<br/>
+<div class="center">
+who, on sea and land, in sunshine and snow, so<br>
+worthily upheld the traditional gallantry and<br>
honour of their people and country
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="RULE4_1"><!-- RULE4 1 --></a>
+<a id="RULE4_1"><!-- RULE4 1 --></a>
<h2>
FORWARD
</h2>
@@ -175,9 +169,9 @@ neighbours to keep watch and guard. This madness can only be temporary.
This great people are bound to recover, and become all the stronger for
their present trials.
</p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
JOHN WARD.
-</center>
+</div>
<p>
<i>February, 1920</i>.
</p>
@@ -186,7 +180,7 @@ JOHN WARD.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<hr>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="TOC"><!-- TOC --></a>
+<a id="TOC"><!-- TOC --></a>
<h2>
CONTENTS
</h2>
@@ -221,69 +215,62 @@ JOHN WARD.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="ILL"><!-- ILL --></a>
+<a id="ILL"><!-- ILL --></a>
<h2>
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
</h2>
<p>Transcriber's Note: Copies of some illustrations from the original text
were not available.</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
COL. JOHN WARD, C.B., C.M.G., M.P. <i>Frontispiece</i>
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
<b>LANDING OF THE 25TH MIDDLESEX AT VLADIVOSTOK (No picture)</b>
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
<b>ALLIED COMMANDERS IN FRONT OF HEADQUARTERS AT VLADIVOSTOK (No picture)</b>
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img02a.jpg">
-<img width="50%" src="images/img02a.jpg"
-alt="Gen. Detriks (Czech) and Col. Ward After the Allied Council at Vladivostok" /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img02a.jpg" alt="Gen. Detriks (Czech) and Col. Ward After the Allied Council at Vladivostok" style="width: 50%"></a><br >
<b>Gen. Detriks (Czech) and Col. Ward After the Allied Council at Vladivostok</b></p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img02b.jpg">
-<img width="50%" src="images/img02b.jpg"
-alt="A Conference Outside Col. Ward's Headquarters Wagon" /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img02b.jpg" alt="A Conference Outside Col. Ward's Headquarters Wagon" style="width: 50%"></a><br >
<b>A Conference Outside Col. Ward's Headquarters Wagon</b></p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img03.jpg">
-<img width="70%" src="images/img03t.jpg"
-alt="Col. Ward and the Czech Leader (Col. Stephan) Examining the Ussurie Front, After Taking Over the Command." /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img03t.jpg" alt="Col. Ward and the Czech Leader (Col. Stephan) Examining the Ussurie Front, After Taking Over the Command." style="width: 70%"></a><br >
<b>Col. Ward and the Czech Leader (Col. Stephan) Examining the Ussurie Front, After Taking Over the Command.</b></p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img04.jpg">
-<img width="80%" src="images/img04t.jpg"
-alt="British Parade At Omsk" /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img04t.jpg" alt="British Parade At Omsk" style="width: 80%"></a><br >
<b>British Parade at Omsk</b></p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img05a.jpg">
-<img width="90%" src="images/img05a.jpg"
-alt="Russian Headquarters 'Staffka' At Omsk" /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img05a.jpg" alt="Russian Headquarters 'Staffka' At Omsk" style="width: 90%"></a><br >
<b>Russian Headquarters "Staffka" At Omsk</b></p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img05b.jpg">
-<img width="75%" src="images/img05b.jpg"
-alt="British Staff and C.O.'s Wagon" /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img05b.jpg" alt="British Staff and C.O.'s Wagon" style="width: 75%"></a><br >
<b>British Staff and C.O.'s Wagon</b></p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
<b>ARRIVAL OF THE BRITISH AT IRKUTSK (No picture)</b>
-</center>
+</div>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p class="figure">
<a href="images/img06.jpg">
-<img width="50%" src="images/img06.jpg"
-alt="Admiral Koltchak" /></a><br />
+<img src="images/img06.jpg" alt="Admiral Koltchak" style="width: 50%"></a><br >
<b>Admiral Koltchak</b></p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
@@ -291,7 +278,7 @@ alt="Admiral Koltchak" /></a><br />
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="RULE4_2"><!-- RULE4 2 --></a>
+<a id="RULE4_2"><!-- RULE4 2 --></a>
<h2>
WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA
</h2>
@@ -301,7 +288,7 @@ alt="Admiral Koltchak" /></a><br />
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH1"><!-- CH1 --></a>
+<a id="CH1"><!-- CH1 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER I
</h2>
@@ -864,7 +851,7 @@ ready for all emergencies.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH2"><!-- CH2 --></a>
+<a id="CH2"><!-- CH2 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER II
</h2>
@@ -1274,7 +1261,7 @@ began.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH3"><!-- CH3 --></a>
+<a id="CH3"><!-- CH3 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER III
</h2>
@@ -1600,7 +1587,7 @@ Inagaki will arrive at the north-western side of Dukoveskoie at
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH4"><!-- CH4 --></a>
+<a id="CH4"><!-- CH4 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER IV
</h2>
@@ -2107,7 +2094,7 @@ east of Lake Baikal.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH5"><!-- CH5 --></a>
+<a id="CH5"><!-- CH5 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER V
</h2>
@@ -2331,7 +2318,7 @@ not the reason for the presence of Japan.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH6"><!-- CH6 --></a>
+<a id="CH6"><!-- CH6 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER VI
</h2>
@@ -2974,7 +2961,7 @@ of the station.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH7"><!-- CH7 --></a>
+<a id="CH7"><!-- CH7 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER VII
</h2>
@@ -3352,7 +3339,7 @@ to their grievances. That is something at any rate.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH8"><!-- CH8 --></a>
+<a id="CH8"><!-- CH8 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER VIII
</h2>
@@ -3917,7 +3904,7 @@ Europe again&mdash;so near and yet so far!
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH9"><!-- CH9 --></a>
+<a id="CH9"><!-- CH9 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER IX
</h2>
@@ -4233,7 +4220,7 @@ duties.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH10"><!-- CH10 --></a>
+<a id="CH10"><!-- CH10 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER X
</h2>
@@ -4693,7 +4680,7 @@ course of execution.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH11"><!-- CH11 --></a>
+<a id="CH11"><!-- CH11 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XI
</h2>
@@ -4961,7 +4948,7 @@ Admiral Koltchak, the Supreme Governor:
OMSK, 19.11.18. 3 P.M.
</p>
<p>
-From Colonel Ward.<br/>
+From Colonel Ward.<br>
To Admiral Koltchak.
</p>
<p>
@@ -5029,9 +5016,9 @@ for this purpose.
<p>
Omsk, Siberia, <i>November</i>, 21, 1918.
</p></blockquote>
-<blockquote><center>
+<blockquote><div class="center">
[COPY.]
-</center>
+</div>
<p>
From Second-Lieutenant P.C. Cornish-Bowden,
25th Battalion Middlesex Regiment.
@@ -5396,7 +5383,7 @@ them, as they must in revolutions.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH12"><!-- CH12 --></a>
+<a id="CH12"><!-- CH12 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XII
</h2>
@@ -5515,7 +5502,7 @@ over the Urals once more.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH13"><!-- CH13 --></a>
+<a id="CH13"><!-- CH13 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XIII
</h2>
@@ -5729,7 +5716,7 @@ to embitter the struggle.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH14"><!-- CH14 --></a>
+<a id="CH14"><!-- CH14 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XIV
</h2>
@@ -5995,7 +5982,7 @@ have been a thousand pities to spoil."
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH15"><!-- CH15 --></a>
+<a id="CH15"><!-- CH15 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XV
</h2>
@@ -6203,7 +6190,7 @@ the movement of troops and supplies impossible.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH16"><!-- CH16 --></a>
+<a id="CH16"><!-- CH16 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XVI
</h2>
@@ -6333,9 +6320,9 @@ much to help in the work for the pacification of the
labouring classes of Russia, and greatly strengthen Your
Excellency's hold upon the hearts of the Russian people.
</p>
-<center>
+<div class="center">
(Signed) JOHN WARD.
-</center>
+</div>
<p>
(<i>Lt.-Colonel, M.P., C.M.G., Commanding 25th Bn.
Middlesex Regiment</i>.)
@@ -6687,7 +6674,7 @@ all the same.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH17"><!-- CH17 --></a>
+<a id="CH17"><!-- CH17 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XVII
</h2>
@@ -7296,7 +7283,7 @@ pioneer is always limited to the material at hand.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH18"><!-- CH18 --></a>
+<a id="CH18"><!-- CH18 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XVIII
</h2>
@@ -7458,7 +7445,7 @@ began from the head, its re-birth is from the ground.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH19"><!-- CH19 --></a>
+<a id="CH19"><!-- CH19 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XIX
</h2>
@@ -8298,7 +8285,7 @@ on the spot of one of the great world problems.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH20"><!-- CH20 --></a>
+<a id="CH20"><!-- CH20 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XX
</h2>
@@ -8379,7 +8366,7 @@ rights.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH21"><!-- CH21 --></a>
+<a id="CH21"><!-- CH21 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XXI
</h2>
@@ -8825,7 +8812,7 @@ they secured only under the pressure of circumstances."
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH22"><!-- CH22 --></a>
+<a id="CH22"><!-- CH22 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XXII
</h2>
@@ -9072,7 +9059,14 @@ bridge&mdash;they usually exchanged a few shots with the
American troops, and if pressed, marched back to the
zone under the protection of a section of the very
forces they had been raiding. The American command
-naturally became more vigilant on the distant
+naturally became more vigilant on the distant sections of the line, and this
+forced the Bolsheviks to operate nearer and nearer the protected zone;
+but in the meantime they managed to kill several Russian soldiers, wound
+a few Americans, and destroy five different sections of the railway.
+Then they operated too near the zone, and the American troops pressed
+them straight into their own zone, where, to add insult to injury, they
+claimed that in accordance with the American proclamation they could not
+be molested as military operations were prohibited within the zone!
</p>
<p>
Instead of proceeding to root out this nest of
@@ -9162,7 +9156,7 @@ barbarism of the Bolshevik.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH23"><!-- CH23 --></a>
+<a id="CH23"><!-- CH23 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XXIII
</h2>
@@ -9470,7 +9464,7 @@ Czech co-operation had arrived a year previously.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH24"><!-- CH24 --></a>
+<a id="CH24"><!-- CH24 --></a>
<h2>
CHAPTER XXIV
</h2>
@@ -9683,7 +9677,7 @@ than balanced the account.
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="IDX"><!-- IDX --></a>
+<a id="IDX"><!-- IDX --></a>
<h2>
Index
</h2>
@@ -10280,6 +10274,6 @@ Zochinko, General
</pre>
-<div>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 10972 ***</div>
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 10972 ***</div>
</body>
</html>
diff --git a/10972-h/images/cover.jpg b/10972-h/images/cover.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d18c7d4
--- /dev/null
+++ b/10972-h/images/cover.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-8.txt b/old/10972-8.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index c57e48d..0000000
--- a/old/10972-8.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7793 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook, With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia, by John Ward
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-
-
-Title: With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia
-
-Author: John Ward
-
-Release Date: February 6, 2004 [eBook #10972]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: iso-8859-1
-
-
-***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA***
-
-
-E-text prepared by Jonathan Ingram, Steven desJardins, and Project
-Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
-
-
-
-Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this
- file which includes the original illustrations.
- See 10972-h.htm or 10972-h.zip:
- (http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/1/0/9/7/10972/10972-h/10972-h.htm)
- or
- (http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/1/0/9/7/10972/10972-h.zip)
-
-
-
-
-
-With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia
-
-By Col. John Ward
-C.B., C.M.G., M.P.
-
-With Eight Plates
-
-1920
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-To MY COMRADES
-
-OFFICERS, N.C.O.s AND MEN OF THE
-18th, 19th, 25th AND 26th BATTALIONS OF
-THE MIDDLESEX REGIMENT
-
-who, on sea and land, in sunshine and snow, so
-worthily upheld the traditional gallantry and
-honour of their people and country
-
-
-
-
-FORWARD
-
-Originally written for the private use of my sons in case I did not
-return, this narrative of events connected with the expedition to
-Siberia must of necessity lack many of the necessary elements which go
-to make a history. I wrote of things as they occurred, and recorded the
-reasons and motives which prompted the participants. Many things have
-happened since which seem to show that we were not always right in our
-estimate of the forces at work around us. Things are not always what
-they seem, and this is probably more evident in the domain of Russian
-affairs than in any other. It would have been comparatively easy to
-alter the text and square it with the results, but that would have
-destroyed the main value of the story.
-
-The statesman and the soldier rarely write history; it is their
-misfortune to make it. It is quite easy to be a prophet when you know
-the result. You can, as a rule, judge what a certain set of people will
-do in a certain set of circumstances, but where you deal with State
-policy which may be influenced by events and circumstances which have
-not the remotest connection with the question involved, it is impossible
-to give any forecast of their conduct on even the most elementary
-subject.
-
-The recent tragic events played out in the vast domain of Siberia are a
-case in point. It is certain that Admiral Koltchak would never have gone
-to Siberia, nor have become the head of the constitutional movement and
-government of Russia, if he had not been advised and even urged to do so
-by the Allies. He received the most categorical promises of
-whole-hearted support and early Allied recognition before he agreed to
-take up the dangerous duty of head of the Omsk Government. Had these
-urgings and promises been ungrudgingly performed a Constituent Assembly
-would be now sitting at Moscow hammering out the details of a Federal
-Constitution for a mighty Russian Republic or a parliamentary system
-similar to our own.
-
-On the declaration of the Koltchak Government, General Denikin, General
-Dutoff, General Hovart, and the North Russian Governments made over
-their authority to Omsk. There was at once a clear issue--the Terrorist
-at Moscow, the Constitutionalist at Omsk. Had the Allies at this
-juncture translated their promises into acts, from what untold suffering
-Russia and Europe might have been saved!
-
-The mere act of recognition would have created a wonderful impression on
-the Russian mind, in addition to giving the Allies a lever by which they
-could have guided the course of events and stabilised the Baltic. It
-would have given security to Russian finance, and enabled trade
-relations to have commenced with the wealthiest part of the Russian
-dominions.
-
-The reconstruction of Russia, about which the Allies talk so glibly,
-would have gone forward with a bound by natural means, which not even
-Allied bungling could have prevented. The Omsk Government could have got
-money on better terms than any of the Allies, because, accepted within
-the comity of nations, it could have given better security than any of
-them, even including America. Europe would have been fed, Russia would
-have been clothed, and the world would have been saved from its greatest
-tragedies. All this and more would have naturally followed from the
-barest performance of our promises.
-
-We did worse than this. Breach of promise is only a negative crime. The
-Allies went to the other extreme; their help took the form of positive
-wilful obstruction. The Japanese, by bolstering up Semianoff and
-Kalmakoff, and the Americans, by protecting and organising enemies, made
-it practically impossible for the Omsk Government to maintain its
-authority or existence. The most that could be expected was that both
-would see the danger of their policy in time to avert disaster. One did;
-the other left when the evils created had got beyond control. Koltchak
-has not been destroyed so much by the acts of his enemies as by the
-stupidity and neglect of his Allied friends.
-
-As the Bolshevik rabble again sweeps over Siberia in a septic flood we
-hear again the question: "How can they do so unless they have a majority
-of the people behind them?" I answer that by asking: "How did a one-man
-government exist in Russia from 'Ivan the Terrible' to Nicholas II?"
-Both systems are autocratic; both exist by the same means--"Terror."
-There is, however, this difference. The autocracy of the Tsars was a
-natural product from an early form of human society. The Bolshevik
-autocracy is an unnatural product, and therefore carries within itself
-the seed of its own destruction. It is an abortion, and unless it
-rapidly changes its character cannot hope to exist as a permanent form
-of organised society. It is a disease which, if we cannot attack, we can
-isolate until convalescence sets in. There is, however, the possibility
-that the patient during the progress of the malady may become delirious
-and run amok; for these more dangerous symptoms it would be well for his
-neighbours to keep watch and guard. This madness can only be temporary.
-This great people are bound to recover, and become all the stronger for
-their present trials.
-
-JOHN WARD.
-
-February, 1920.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-CHAPTER
-
- 1. FROM HONG-KONG TO SIBERIA
- 2. BOLSHEVIK SUCCESSES
- 3. JAPAN INTERVENES
- 4. THE BATTLE OF DUKOVESKOIE AND KRAEVESK
- 5. JAPANESE METHODS AND ALLIED FAR-EASTERN POLICY
- 6. ADMINISTRATION
- 7. FURTHER INCIDENTS OF OUR JOURNEY
- 8. BEYOND THE BAIKAL
- 9. OMSK
-10. ALONG THE URALS
-11. WHAT HAPPENED AT OMSK
-12. THE CAPTURE OF PERM: THE CZECHS RETIRE FROM THE FIGHTING
-13. THE DECEMBER ROYALIST AND BOLSHEVIST CONSPIRACY
-14. A BOMBSHELL FROM PARIS AND THE EFFECT
-15. MORE INTRIGUES
-16. RUSSIAN LABOUR
-17. MY CAMPAIGN
-18. OMSK RE-VISITED
-19. IN EUROPEAN RUSSIA
-20. MAKING AN ATAMAN
-21. HOMEWARD BOUND
-22. AMERICAN POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-23. JAPANESE POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-24. GENERAL CONCLUSIONS
-
-
-
-
-LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
-
-COL. JOHN WARD, C.B., C.M.G., M.P. _Frontispiece_
-
-LANDING OF THE 25TH MIDDLESEX AT VLADIVOSTOK
-
-ALLIED COMMANDERS IN FRONT OF HEADQUARTERS AT VLADIVOSTOK
-
-GEN. DETRIKS (CZECH) AND COL. WARD AFTER THE ALLIED COUNCIL at
-VLADIVOSTOK
-
-A CONFERENCE OUTSIDE HEADQUARTERS WAGON.
-
-COL. WARD AND THE CZECH LEADER (COL. STEPHAN) EXAMINING THE USSURIE
-FRONT
-
-BRITISH PARADE AT OMSK
-
-RUSSIAN HEADQUARTERS "STAFFKA," OMSK
-
-BRITISH STAFF AND C.O.'s WAGON
-
-ARRIVAL OF THE BRITISH AT IRKUTSK
-
-ADMIRAL KOLTCHAK
-
-
-
-
-WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA
-
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-FROM HONG-KONG TO SIBERIA
-
-
-The 25th Battalion of the Middlesex Regiment had already such a record
-of travel and remarkable experiences to its credit that it was in quite
-a matter-of-fact way I answered a summons from Headquarters at
-Hong-Kong, one morning in November, 1917, and received the instruction
-to hold myself and my battalion in readiness to proceed to a destination
-unknown. Further conferences between the heads of departments under the
-presidency of the G.O.C., Major-General F. Ventris, revealed that the
-operations of the battalion were to be conducted in a very cold climate,
-and a private resident at tiffin that day at the Hong-Kong Club simply
-asked me "at what date I expected to leave for Vladivostok?"
-
-The preparations were practically completed when orders to cease them
-were received from the War Office at home, followed by a cable (some
-time in January, 1918) to cancel all orders relating to the proposed
-expedition. So we again settled down in Far Eastern home quietly to
-await the end of the war, when we hoped to return to the Great Old
-Country and resume the normal life of its citizens.
-
-Things remained in this condition until June, 1918, when we were
-suddenly startled by an order to call upon the half of my battalion
-stationed at Singapore to embark on the first ship available and join me
-at Hong-Kong. This seemed to suggest that the truly wonderful thing
-called "Allied Diplomacy" had at last made up its mind to do something.
-After a great deal of bustle and quite unnecessary fuss the whole
-battalion embarked on the _Ping Suie_ on a Saturday in July, 1918.
-
-It should be remembered that my men were what were called "B one-ers,"
-and were equipped for the duty of that grade; but, after our arrival at
-Hong-Kong, Headquarters had called in most of our war material to
-replenish the dwindling supplies of this most distant outpost of the
-British Empire. Very little information could be gathered as to the kind
-of duty we might expect to be called upon to perform, and the ignorance
-of the Staff as to the nature of the country through which we were to
-operate was simply sublime. Added to this, most of the new material with
-which we were fitted was quite useless for our purpose. Those things
-which had been collected on the first notice of movement in 1917 had
-been dispersed, and the difficulty of securing others at short notice
-was quite insurmountable.
-
-The voyage was not remarkable except that one typhoon crossed our track
-not ten miles astern, and for eighteen miles we travelled alongside
-another, the heavy seas striking the ship nearly abeam, and causing her
-to roll in a very alarming manner. The troops had a very uncomfortable
-time, and were glad to sight the coast of Korea and the calm waters of
-the Sea of Japan.
-
-At Hong-Kong many of the men, including myself, had suffered much from
-prickly heat, which had developed in many cases into huge heat boils. It
-was very strange how rapidly these irruptions cured themselves directly
-we reached the cool, clear atmosphere of the coast of Japan.
-
-Elaborate preparations had been made for our reception, insomuch that we
-were the first contingent of Allied troops to arrive at Vladivostok. Two
-Japanese destroyers were to have acted as our escort from the lighthouse
-outside, but they were so busy charting the whole coastline for future
-possibilities that they forgot all about us until we had arrived near
-the inner harbour, when they calmly asked for our name and business.
-Early next morning, August 3, they remembered their orders and escorted
-us to our station at the wharf, past the warships of the Allied nations
-gaily decorated for the occasion.
-
-At 10 A.M. a battalion of Czech troops, with band and a guard of honour
-from H.M.S. _Suffolk_, with Commodore Payne, R.N., Mr. Hodgson, the
-British Consul, the President of the Zemstrov Prava, and Russian and
-Allied officials, were assembled on the quay to receive me. As I
-descended the gangway ladder the Czech band struck up the National
-Anthem, and a petty officer of the _Suffolk_ unfurled the Union Jack,
-while some of the armed forces came to the present and others saluted.
-It made quite a pretty, interesting and immensely impressive scene. The
-battalion at once disembarked, and led by the Czech band and our
-splendid sailors from the _Suffolk_, and accompanied by a tremendous
-crowd of people, marched through the town to a saluting point opposite
-the Czech Headquarters, where parties of Czech, Cossack and Russian
-troops, Japanese, American and Russian sailors were drawn up, all of
-whom (except the Japanese) came to the present as we passed, while
-Commodore Payne took the salute for the Allied commanders, who were all
-present.
-
-Our barracks were outside the town at Niloy-ugol; they were very dirty,
-with sanitary arrangements of the most primitive character, though I
-believe the local British authorities had spent both time and money in
-trying to make them habitable. The officers' accommodation was no
-better, I and my Staff having to sleep on very dirty and smelly floors.
-A little later, however, even this would have been a treat to a weary
-old soldier.
-
-On August 5 I attended the Allied commanders' council. There were many
-matters of high policy discussed at this meeting, but one subject was of
-intense interest. General Detriks, the G.O.C. of the Czech troops, gave
-in reports as to the military situation on the Manchurian and Ussurie
-fronts. The conditions on the Manchurian front were none too good, but
-those on the Ussurie front could only be described as critical, and
-unless immediate help could be given a further retirement would be
-forced upon the commander, who had great difficulty with his small
-forces in holding any position. The Ussurie force had recently
-consisted of some 3,000 indifferently armed Czechs and Cossacks. The day
-I landed a battle had been fought, which had proved disastrous, and
-resulted in a hurried retirement to twelve versts to the rear of
-Kraevesk. The Allied force, now reduced to about 2,000 men, could not
-hope to hold up for long a combined Bolshevik, German and Magyar force
-of from 18,000 to 20,000 men. The Bolshevik method of military
-organisation,--namely, of "Battle Committees," which decided what
-superior commands should be carried out or rejected--had been swept away
-and replaced by the disciplined methods of the German and Austrian
-officers, who had now assumed command. Should another retirement be
-forced upon the Ussurie forces, it could be carried out only with great
-loss, both of men and material. The next position would be behind
-Spascoe, with Lake Hanka as a protection on the left flank and the
-forest on the right. If this could not be held, then the railway
-junction at Nikolsk would be endangered, with the possibility of the
-communications being cut with other forces operating along the
-Transbaikal Railway and at Irkutsk. Under these circumstances the
-council decided that there was nothing left but to ask for authority
-from the War Office to send my battalion forward at once to the Ussurie
-front to render what assistance was possible. I naturally pointed out
-that my battalion was composed of B1 men, most of whom had already done
-their "bit" on other fronts, and that a few weeks before I had had about
-250 General Service men in my ranks, but on a blundering suggestion of
-the G.O.C. at Singapore they had been taken from my unit and transferred
-to others doing garrison duty in India. I had protested against this at
-the time, but had been over-ruled by London, so that my command was
-reduced to men of the lowest category. However, after making this
-statement I informed the council that in view of the desperate
-circumstances in which the Ussurie force was placed I would render every
-assistance in my power.
-
-About 2 P.M. Commodore Payne, R.N., came to my quarters and showed me a
-paraphrased cable he had received from the War Office. The cable
-authorised the immediate dispatch of half my battalion to the front,
-subject to the approval of the commanding officer. It seems to me they
-might have plucked up courage enough to decide the matter for
-themselves, instead of putting the responsibility upon the local
-commander. As it was left to me, however, I gave the necessary orders at
-once. That very night, August 5, I marched through Vladivostok to
-entrain my detachment. It consisted of 500 fully equipped infantry and a
-machine-gun section of forty-three men with four heavy-type maxims.
-Leaving my second in command, Major F.J. Browne, in charge of the Base,
-I marched with the men with full pack. The four miles, over heavy, dirty
-roads, were covered in fair time, though many of the men became very
-exhausted, and at the end of the march I found myself carrying four
-rifles, while other officers carried packs in addition to their own kit.
-
-The train was composed of the usual hopeless-looking Russian
-cattle-trucks for the men, with tiers of planks for resting and sleeping
-on. A dirty second-class car was provided for the Commanding Officer and
-his Staff, and a well-lighted first-class bogey car of eight
-compartments for the British Military Representative, who was merely
-travelling up to see the sights. When I got to the front I found a
-first-class car retained by every little officer who commanded a dozen
-Cossacks, but I proudly raised the Union Jack, to denote the British
-Headquarters, on the dirtiest and most dilapidated second-class
-contraption that could be found on the line. But of course we meant
-business; we were not out for pleasure.
-
-I was advised before I started from Vladivostok that Nikolsk, the
-junction of the Manchurian and Central Siberian Railways, was the most
-important strategical point on the South Siberian end of the line, and
-that though the position on the Ussurie was pretty hopeless and
-retirement might take place at any moment, we were not in any
-circumstances to retire below Nikolsk. The place to which we were to
-retire and take up a new position had been already decided--a line just
-below Spascoe, with Lake Hanka on the left and a line of forest-covered
-mountains on the right.
-
-We arrived at Nikolsk in the early morning, but the platform was crowded
-with inhabitants and two guards of honour, Czech and Cossack, with band,
-which mistook "Rule Britannia" for the National Anthem. I was introduced
-to all the officers, the British Vice-Consul, Mr. Ledwards, and his
-energetic wife. Breakfast was served to the men by the other corps, and
-my officers received the hospitality of the good Consul and Mrs.
-Ledwards. Then a march through the town, to show the inhabitants that
-the long-sought-for Allied assistance had really arrived at last.
-
-It appears that a very sanguine French officer had travelled over the
-line some months previously and had made lavish promises of Allied
-support, which accounts, perhaps, for my previous orders received at
-Hong-Kong towards the end of 1917. The Allies had decided to make a much
-earlier effort to reconstruct the Russian line against their German
-enemies, but, like all Allied efforts, their effective action had been
-frustrated by divided counsels and stupid national jealousy.
-
-It was the prospect of Falkenhayn, with the huge army of half a million
-men, flushed with its recent easy victory over Rumania, being freed for
-employment on the French front, that caused our hurried over-late
-expedition to Siberia. If the effort had been made at the right time the
-Russian people and soldiery would not have become so demoralised and
-hopeless as they had when I arrived, and millions of lives would have
-been saved from untold tortures. A famous statesman once sternly
-admonished his colleagues for their fatal policy of doing nothing until
-it was too late; in this case he himself is open to the same censure.
-
-At Nikolsk had recently been fought an important battle between the
-Czechs and the Terrorists, and we were shown a series of photographs of
-horribly mutilated Czech soldiers who had fallen into the hands of the
-Bolshevik army as prisoners of war. By a section of people at home the
-Bolsheviks are thought to be a party of political and democratic
-idealists, but when one is brought face to face with their work they are
-then proved to be a disgusting gang of cut-throats, whose sole business
-in life appears to be to terrorise and rob the peasant and worker and
-make orderly government impossible.
-
-We received equally warm welcomes at many other stations, and at length
-we arrived at Svagena, which is the last fairly large town before
-Kraevesk, the station without a town, and very near the range of hostile
-artillery. Here quite a full-dress programme was gone through by the
-Czech band and the Czech and Cossack soldiers, ending with a short march
-past, and speeches by the English and Russian commanders. My speech was
-made along the lines of my instructions, which were mostly to this
-effect: We Britishers had entered the territory of Holy Russia not as
-conquerors, but as friends. The Bolshevik power had made a corrupt and
-dishonourable compact with their German masters, by which the
-territories of their Motherland, Russia, had been torn from her side,
-and a huge indemnity wrung from her people. Under German pressure the
-Bolshevik Soviet power had armed the released German and Austrian
-prisoners of war, and by means of this alien force was terrorising the
-Russian people and destroying the country. The Allies looked upon the
-Bolshevik power as a mere hireling branch of the autocratic German
-menace, and as such the enemies of British and Russian democracy alike.
-We came to help, resurrect and reconstruct the orderly elements of
-Russian life, and promised that if they would join us in this crusade,
-we would never cease our efforts till both our enemies were utterly
-defeated. And here the soldiers of the two nations made their pact, and
-though it was not an official utterance it had official sanction. My
-troops retired to quarters at Spascoe, which I had made my forward base.
-
-Next morning, August 7, with my interpreter, Lieutenant Bolsaar, I
-visited Kraevesk, and had a long consultation with the commander at the
-front, Captain Pomerensiv. I personally examined the line right up to
-the outposts, and eventually it was decided that I would send forward
-243 men with four maxims to take up a position towards what I considered
-to be the threatened part of our right flank. As I was senior officer,
-Captain Pomerensiv handed the command of this front over to me,
-promising all help.
-
-Once in the saddle I asked for intelligence reports from all directions,
-and found it impossible for the enemy to make a frontal attack down the
-narrow space of the railway, flanked as it was on both sides by
-impassable marshes. The enemy centre was at Shmakovka, the place from
-which the Czechs had been forced to retire: that day, however, he had
-been observed moving a company of about 180 men with three machine guns
-along the road towards Uspenkie, a small town situated on our extreme
-right front. After consultation with Captain Stephan, Czech commander,
-and Ataman Kalmakoff, commanding the Cossacks, I decided to take the
-necessary steps to destroy this recently formed outpost. Ataman
-Kalmakoff had that morning announced to me his intention to leave my
-front and make a wide detour on the right behind the hills, and join his
-Cossack friends at Iman. I discovered that he was dissatisfied with the
-lack of enterprise hitherto shown on this front, and had decided to make
-a raid "on his own" on the rear of the enemy. But the moment I stated my
-intention to mop up Uspenkie he fell into line, and forgot all about his
-previous ill-humour. He took up an advanced position at Olhanka,
-reconnoitred the Uspenkie position the next day, and unmasked the
-Bolshevik formation, with a loss of two horses and a Cossack badly
-wounded. I formed my plans on his observations.
-
-My scheme was to advance one company of Czech troops from Khamerovka to
-Olhanka, the Ataman's most forward post on my right front, where they
-were to prepare a small entrenched camp. I would also advance 200
-infantry with two machine guns the first night from Kraevesk to
-Khamerovka.
-
-The next day I ordered 200 men to entrain from Spascoe to Kraevesk to
-act as a reserve. They were to night march to Khamerovka, and occupy the
-place of my forward party, who would advance by night and join the
-Cossacks and Czech troops at Olhanka. I would be with the advanced group
-and make a daylight examination of the post to be attacked, and be
-joined at night by my second detachment from Khamerovka. By this means I
-should have had 400 British rifles, a machine-gun section of forty-three
-men with four maxims, a company of Czech infantry of about 200 men, and
-last, but by no means least, Ataman Kalmakoff with about 400 Cossack
-cavalry--a total of about 1,000 men. I ordered the two roads along which
-any reinforcements for the enemy post must pass to be patrolled at night
-and also closely observed during the day.
-
-I had drawn up my plan of attack and the first stage of the operation
-had actually been executed, when I was brought to a sudden standstill by
-a piece of fussy interference.
-
-There was no linguist in my battalion capable of speaking Russian
-sufficiently well for my purpose, hence I had to seek the services of an
-agent of the British Military Representative at "Vlady." This agent
-returned to "Vlady" directly the necessary arrangements for the attack
-had been completed. I ought to have compelled him to remain with me, but
-as he appeared to favour the proposed forward movement I did not scent
-any danger to my purely defensive policy. He did not wait until he had
-reported to the Military Representative, but when only half way
-telegraphed from Nikolsk warning me that in his opinion this forward
-movement should not take place, as he had already received important
-information which altered the entire situation. I ignored this
-interference of an understraper, but a few hours later received definite
-instructions from the Political Representative, that I was to stand
-purely on the defensive, and not move an inch beyond my position. I was
-compelled to accept the instruction, but was disgusted with the
-decision. It proved to me in a forcible way what I had never realised
-before, how impossible it is for a man at a distance, however clever he
-may be, to decide a military problem, limited in locality and isolated,
-as was this case, from questions of public policy. When the one purpose
-of a force is the protection or maintenance of a limited front, only the
-man on the spot can be the judge of what is necessary to accomplish that
-purpose.
-
-My actual plan of operations was very simple. Having assembled my force
-at Olhanka, I should at dusk have occupied the roads leading from
-Shmakovka to Uspenkie, and from Uspenkie to the monastery by cavalry,
-thus making it impossible for enemy reinforcements to reach the post to
-be attacked under the cover of night. My own troops, together with the
-Czech company, would have approached the position from the south, and
-during the hours of darkness have taken up a line within rifle- and
-machine-gun range. At daybreak fire would have been opened from such
-cover as could be obtained, and while our eight machine-gunners barraged
-the post, the infantry would have advanced rapidly on the south front at
-the same time as the Cossacks charged in from the rear. The result would
-have been as certain as anything in war could be, and, as since then I
-have met the Bolsheviks in open fight, I am convinced that this small
-effort might have had decisive political and military influence in
-Eastern Siberia. But the "politicals" in uniform are not always noted
-for daring, and in this case were very timid indeed, and our position
-grew worse from day to day.
-
-I made the best dispositions possible in view of my cautious
-instructions, and soon every man, British, Czech and Cossack, was imbued
-with a determination to baulk the enemy's eastward ambitions at all
-costs. The numbers I had brought to their assistance were nothing
-compared to the influence of the sight of the poor, frayed and dirty
-Union Jack that floated from my Headquarters, and the songs of the
-Tommies round the mosquito fires in the bivouac at night. These two
-factors together changed the whole atmosphere surrounding the valiant,
-ill-fed and ill-equipped Czech soldiers.
-
-The day following the night I had fixed for the destruction of the enemy
-outpost two companies of enemy infantry and three guns marched out of
-Shmakovka as a reinforcement to the debatable position. I watched
-through my binoculars their slow movement along the dusty road. I judged
-what the enemy's intentions were, and knew also that I was powerless to
-prevent them. He quickly placed his guns in position, and the following
-day sent a few trial shots at Kalmakoff's position at Olhanka; after
-getting the range he ceased fire. About 11 P.M. the flash of guns was
-observed on our right, which continued until midnight. At 12.30 the
-field telephone informed me that the Czech company I had pushed forward,
-together with Kalmakoff's Cossacks, had been shelled out of their
-positions at Olhanka and were retreating along the Khamerovka and
-Runovka roads. I disregarded the imperative instructions I had received
-from "Vlady" not to move, and advanced my detachment by a midnight march
-to occupy a position where I could protect the bridges and cover the
-retreat of our friends. Had I failed to perform this simple soldierly
-duty we should have placed ourselves in a ridiculous position in the
-eyes of our Russian and Czech comrades. But though I acted against
-orders, I think in the circumstances I was fully justified in doing so.
-
-The Czech company retired safely behind the river at Khamerovka, and
-Kalmakoff's Cossacks took up a new position at Runovka, where he could
-still hang on to the skirts of the enemy and keep constant observation
-upon his movements. I retired to a bivouac of branches and marsh grass
-behind "Lookout Hill," where for a fortnight I carried on constant
-warfare against infected waters and millions of mosquitoes, without
-transport, tents, nets, or any of the ordinary equipment required by
-such an expedition. I admit that my ignorance of the conditions which
-might be expected to prevail in Siberia was colossal, but so also was
-that of those whose duty it was to have made themselves acquainted with
-the situation.
-
-At Hong-Kong I had suggested that we might find tents useful, but the
-proposal was turned down, either because there was none or because they
-were considered quite unnecessary. I asked timidly whether I should
-require mosquito nets, and well remember the scorn with which the Chief
-of Staff greeted my question. "Who ever heard of mosquitoes in Siberia?"
-Well, the fact is that while there are a few in the tropics, there are
-swarms of these pests all over Siberia. In the tropics their size
-prevents them from doing much damage, except as malaria carriers. In
-Siberia they take the shape of big, ugly winged spiders, which will suck
-your blood through a thick blanket as easily as if you had nothing on.
-They have a knack of fixing themselves in one's hair below the cap and
-raising swollen ridges round one's head until it is painful to wear any
-headgear at all. In my case my wrists were puffed out level with my
-hands. After sleeping, one woke unable to open one's eyes. The absence
-of any protection wore out the patience and nerves of the men, and the
-searching Bolshevik shells were accepted as a welcome diversion.
-
-No blame was attached to my chiefs; I was fully equipped as a B1
-Garrison battalion, and as such I was dispatched to Vladivostok. I was
-sent there to perform a certain duty, but on arrival was at once called
-upon to perform another of quite a different character. I had to carry
-out the duties of a first-line service battalion with the personnel and
-equipment of second grade garrison troops. Whether those with whom the
-order originated in London were aware of the nature of the duty I was
-expected to perform I do not know; but it is obviously dangerous to send
-British troops of any category to an actual scene of operations and
-expect them to stand idle, uninterested spectators of the struggles of
-their friends. They should either be kept away or sent ready for all
-emergencies.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-BOLSHEVIK SUCCESSES
-
-
-The outflanking movement by the enemy which I had anticipated from the
-day I first took over the command, and which I had made my plans to
-counteract, was now in full swing, but so far no damage to our main
-position had been effected.
-
-General Detriks visited the front and informed me that the Allied
-Council had chosen Major Pichon, of the French detachment which was
-timed to arrive next day, to take over the command of this front. After
-a personal inspection he expressed himself as satisfied with my
-dispositions and suggested that I should still retain the command, and
-that he would see that the decision relating to Major Pichon's
-appointment was reconsidered in view of the changed conditions he now
-found. But I could see that a revision of the Allied Council's
-resolution might affect French _amour propre_, and place both Council
-and commander in an anomalous position. I therefore requested General
-Detriks to take no steps to alter the resolution of the Allied Council,
-and stated that I would gladly serve under Major Pichon or any other
-commander elected by the Council. British prestige, I added, was too
-well established for such trifles to be considered when the only reason
-for our presence was to help our Czech and Russian friends. He,
-however, pointed out that it was impossible to allow a British colonel
-to serve under a French major, and that my command must be considered
-quite an independent one.
-
-Major Pichon arrived on August 18, 1918, and I formally handed over the
-command. He asked me to consider myself as jointly responsible for the
-operations on that front, and said that we would from time to time
-consult together as to any action that might be necessary. I found him
-both polite and considerate and most anxious to meet the wishes of the
-several parts of his command; in fact, he was a gentleman whom it was a
-pleasure to meet and work with. His battalion-commander, Major Malley,
-was equally urbane, and together I think we made a very happy
-combination.
-
-The great outstanding personality of this front was Captain Stephan, the
-commander of the 8th Czech Battalion. Originally a brewer of Prague, he
-had been compelled on the outbreak of war to join the Austrian Army. He
-had done his duty as a soldier of that effete Monarchy, been captured by
-the Russians, and while a prisoner of war had been liberated by the
-Revolution; he was one of the men who had organised their fellow exiles
-and offered their services to France and the Allied cause, believing
-that in the success of England's arms was to be found the liberation of
-their beloved Bohemia. I asked him why he had offered his services to
-France, and his answer and his compatriots' answer was always the same:
-"It is to great England we always look to as our saviour, but the German
-armies are in France, and to meet our enemies on the field of battle
-was, and always will be, the first ambition of every Czech soldier, for
-if England says we are a nation, we know we shall be."
-
-I must say I felt flattered by the almost childlike confidence which
-Pole, Czech and Russian had in the name and honour of England. We were
-undoubtedly the only nation represented on this front and in Siberia
-generally against whom not one word of suspicion was directed. I
-naturally expected that the prestige of France, in view of her pre-war
-alliance with Russia, would be very great, but from the closest
-observation of all ranks of Russian society I think it would be
-impossible to say which was most suspected in the Russian mind, France,
-America or Japan. The presence, however, of French soldiers, and the
-politeness of the French officers, may do much to generate a warmer
-feeling in Russia towards France. The presence of the soldiers of the
-Rising Sun, and the manners and general attitude of her officers towards
-the Siberian population, will, if persisted in, certainly result in
-changing fear to universal hate.
-
-On the afternoon of his arrival an important movement of enemy forces on
-our right front caused Major Pichon to ride through my bivouac, when he
-was formally introduced to the officers and men under my command. Later
-he informed me that he did not consider the movement sufficiently
-important to make any change in our dispositions necessary. Towards dusk
-Captain Stephan, accompanied by his adjutant, rode up and reported an
-important movement of enemy forces towards Runovka, our solitary
-remaining position on the opposite side of the river, which formed the
-natural defence and limit of our right flank. Again I was asked to move
-forward to render such assistance as might be necessary in case our
-right were forced to retire across the river. We marched forward in the
-darkness with the flash of the Bolshevik guns lighting up the way, but
-as their attention was entirely directed to our outpost at Runovka, we
-were as safe as if we had been in Hyde Park. The Czechs have a fatal
-preference for woods as a site for defensive works, and they selected a
-wood on the left flank of the road for my position. I rejected their
-plan, and chose a position about two hundred yards in front of the wood
-at a point where the roads cross, and a fold in the ground, aided by the
-tall marsh grass, almost entirely hid us from the observation-post of
-the enemy. Millions of mosquitoes, against which we had no protection
-whatever, attacked us as we began to entrench, but officers and men all
-worked with a will, and by dawn we had almost completed what was
-probably the best system of field-works so far constructed on this
-front. How we wished we might see the enemy advance over the river and
-attempt to deploy within range of our rifles! He had by vigorous
-artillery fire driven our remaining Czech company across the river, and
-so had become complete master of the other side.
-
-It was here that a second chance came to deal effectively with this
-attempt to outflank our entire position. A sudden dash across the bend
-of the river in the north-eastern corner at Khamerovka on to the
-unprotected line of enemy communications would have resulted in a
-complete frustration of the enemy plans, with a fair prospect of his
-decisive defeat. I even suggested this, but had to confess that I had
-moved forward twice, contrary to my imperative orders, and that unless I
-chose to run the risk of court-martial, if not dismissal, I could not
-join in the attack, though I would come to the rescue. This was too
-ambiguous for the other leaders, and the opportunity was allowed to
-pass.
-
-Shortly after, I met an old tramp with his pack, and handed him over to
-my liaison officer. We could not very well detain him as he had already
-in his possession a Czech and a French passport, but afterwards I much
-regretted that I had not perforated his papers with a bullet as they
-rested in his breast pocket. He tramped along the road, and my sentries
-deflected his course away from the trenches, but he saw my men scattered
-about in the wood behind, and at daybreak the enemy artillery began to
-spatter the wood with a plentiful supply of shrapnel and shells. One
-dropped within twenty yards of myself and officers whilst at breakfast;
-pitching just under a tree, it lifted it into the air in a truly
-surprising manner. The number of shells--some of which were German
-make--the enemy wasted on that wood proclaimed an abundant supply of
-ammunition. To this persistent shelling we had nothing to reply, and at
-last from sheer exhaustion the enemy fire died down. With darkness he
-began again, and the feeble reply of three small mountain guns, which
-we knew were with the Runovka Cossack outpost, indicated that an attack
-was developing in that direction.
-
-The unequal duel continued intermittently until 2 A.M., when a field
-telephone message informed me that Runovka had been abandoned, that the
-Czech company was retiring across our front, and that Kalmakoff's
-Cossacks were retiring over the river lower down and taking up a
-position at Antonovka on our extreme right rear. This meant that our
-whole defensive positions were completely turned, and the next enemy
-move would place him near our lines of communication.
-
-This, however, was not our only difficulty. Until two days previous we
-had been able to give an occasional shot in return for the many sent
-towards us; then the Bolshevik gunners found the mark on the two guns
-whose duty it was to prevent an advance along the railway, and our two
-and only field guns were called in to fill the gap, leaving the infantry
-without any artillery protection. I cabled to Commodore Payne, R.N., who
-commanded H.M.S. _Suffolk_, at Vladivostok, informing him of our
-critical position and asked him to send such artillery assistance as was
-possible. The commodore was as prompt as is expected of the Navy. In an
-incredibly short space of time he fitted up an armoured train with two
-12-pounder Naval guns and two machine guns, and dispatched it at express
-speed to my assistance, with a second similar train following behind,
-the whole being under the command of Captain Bath, R.M.L.I. It is
-scarcely possible to describe the feeling of relief with which our
-exhausted and attenuated forces welcomed this timely aid from our
-ever-ready Navy. It enabled us to bring the two Czech guns into position
-to keep down the fire of the enemy, and gave us a sense of security in
-that our rear was safe in case retirement should be forced upon us. It
-put new heart into the men, though they never showed the slightest sign
-of depression in spite of their many discomforts. The British soldier
-certainly offers the most stolid indifference to the most unfavourable
-situations.
-
-The Bolshevik leaders were not long in showing their hand. They remained
-silent during the following day, but at night they began to shell us
-from their new position in Runovka itself, selecting as the site for
-their two batteries the hill on which the Orthodox church stood, and
-using the Greek tower as their post of observation.
-
-About 9.30 A.M. an enemy armoured train moved slowly forward from
-Shmakovka, followed by four others, which directed a flank fire at my
-position. The shells all plunked into the marsh about four hundred yards
-short, affording much amusement and causing many caustic Cockney
-comments. Next came a troop train which gave us great hopes of a real
-attack developing on our front, but our Naval 12-pounders on the
-_Suffolk's_ armoured train began to do good practice, and a shot
-registered on the front enemy engine caused volumes of steam to burst
-from her sides, and great consternation suddenly appeared amongst the
-trains' personnel. The Naval gunners did not seem inclined to lose the
-mark, and so the whole attempt fizzled out, and the trains steamed back
-to shelter.
-
-The two old Czech field guns, which had been repaired by H.M.S.
-_Suffolk's_ artificers at "Vlady," wheeled into position behind a fold
-in the ground on our right rear and began a duel with the two enemy
-batteries at Runovka. This duel was most entertaining. The enemy
-artillery searched our wood and works, and the line of trees occupied by
-the French was plentifully sprayed with shrapnel, but they failed to
-locate our guns, or get anywhere near them, or indeed to cause a single
-casualty either to man or horse. During the night a peasant gave the
-guns' position away, and in the early morning exchanges one gun came to
-grief. The remaining gun changed position, and the duel became still
-more interesting. By skilful manoeuvring the gun was got much nearer,
-and at once the range was obtained to a nicety. Every shot was placed so
-near the mark as to rouse the infantry's obvious excitement to fever
-heat, and finally a shell was planted right into the enemy observation
-tower, setting it on fire and burning it to the ground. By placing four
-shells near to hand, and working like Trojans, the Czech gunners fired
-four shots so rapidly as to deceive the enemy into the belief that four
-guns were now opposing them, and after about two hours of this relay
-work the enemy batteries were beaten to a frazzle, and retired from the
-unequal contest with two guns out of action. It was simply magnificent
-as a display of real efficient gunnery. There is no doubt the enemy had
-intended to make an effort to cross the river at Runovka and that his
-artillery had been placed with a view to protecting the passage of his
-troops. The young Czech gunnery lieutenant by his stratagem with one
-solitary field-piece had made this plan appear impossible to the enemy
-commander. Never was deception more complete.
-
-Having felt our right flank and found it too strong, the enemy continued
-his movement towards our right rear. He could only do this with safety
-by correctly anticipating our strategy. He took our measure to a
-military fraction. He saw that, though he offered the most tempting
-bait, we made no effort to move forward to snap it up, and doubtless
-came to the conclusion that we were chained to our positions by either
-dearth of numbers or military incapacity. In the last stage of his
-movement his communications stretched for twenty-three miles along our
-flank, with three posts of just over one hundred men to protect his
-supply trains. If the commander of that force is still alive he probably
-has a poor opinion of the ability of his opponents. We were ready to
-deal him a death-blow at any moment from the day he occupied Uspenkie
-until he crossed the river before Antonovka. He and his column were only
-saved by orders from Vladivostok.
-
-For two days no movement was observable in the enemy lines, and it began
-to look as though he would or could not take full advantage of his
-extremely favourable position.
-
-I had waged an unequal contest with millions of mosquitoes while trying
-to sleep in a field telephone hut made of rough branches and marsh
-grass. The Czech soldier who acted as operator had helped me as much as
-possible, but at last in desperation I got up and walked about until the
-wonderful colouring in the East heralded another glorious Siberian
-summer day. The bluey-purple pall had given place to a beautiful
-orange-tinted yellow such as I had never seen before. The sentry prodded
-a sleeping Tommy who had a huge black frog sitting on the highest point
-of his damp, dewy blanket, and a bugle glistening by his side. The
-sleeper awoke, and after washing his lips at the tank, sounded the
-soldiers' clarion call, the "Réveillé." Instantly the whole bivouac was
-alive, but scarcely had the bugle notes died away when the telephone
-buzzer began to give forth a series of sharp, staccato sounds. The Czech
-operator gave a sharp ejaculation, like "Dar! Dar! Dar!" looking more
-serious as the sounds proceeded. He then calmly hung up the
-speaking-tube on the tree that supported our home and began to explain
-to my interpreter, Lieutenant Bolsaar, the message just received. It was
-that Major Pichon wished to see me at his headquarters at once in
-reference to the serious position of Antonovka. I mounted my horse,
-"Nero," which was a beautiful present from Captain Pomerensiv on handing
-over his command, and soon arrived at Kraevesk and heard the full story
-of the surprise at Antonovka.
-
-From Major Pichon I gathered that Ataman Kalmakoff with his Cossacks had
-taken up a position on the high ground in the village of Antonovka,
-keeping touch with the French on his left, and a company of the 5th
-Battalion of Czechs on his right, who guarded the road to Svagena, and
-that though he posted sentries in the usual way during the night, the
-enemy in large numbers crept between them, and when the alarm was given
-and Kalmakoff mounted his horse he found some thirty of his men already
-wounded or dead and his machine guns in enemy hands. Most of his troops
-were in a cul-de-sac, and had to charge a high fence and by the sheer
-weight of their horses break a way out. Kalmakoff with a few Cossacks
-tried to retake the guns with a superb charge, but though he got through
-himself he lost more men, amongst whom was a splendid fellow, his second
-in command, named Berwkoff, who was greatly loved by us all. A Magyar
-soldier seeing Kalmakoff with his Ataman banner borne by his side, took
-a point-blank shot at his head, but he forgot the high trajectory of the
-old Russian rifle, and the bullet merely grazed the top of the Cossack
-leader's head and sent his _papaha_ into the mud. His banner-bearer
-could not see his leader's cap so left, and jumped off his horse to
-rescue it. Raising the cap from the ground, he found himself challenged
-with the bayonet by the same Magyar soldier. He had no time to draw, but
-with a mighty sweep, sword in scabbard, he felled the Magyar to the
-ground; he had no time to dispatch him, and was barely able to get away.
-
-The Czech company was retiring slowly towards Svagena, and the Cossacks,
-while keeping in touch with the enemy, were retiring towards the railway
-on our rear. This was a very startling situation, and required immediate
-action if we were not to be caught in a trap.
-
-We both decided that a retirement was the only alternative to being
-completely surrounded.
-
-We there and then drew up the orders necessary to secure that the
-retreat should be both methodical and orderly. The Czechs were to retire
-first, past my lines, and entrain at Kraevesk, followed by the English
-and the French, who were to bring up the rear, which was to be covered
-by the English armoured train, assisted by the machine-gun section of
-the Middlesex Regiment under Lieutenant King. So the evacuation of our
-splendid position regretfully began.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-JAPAN INTERVENES
-
-
-It should be remembered that directly it was decided by the Paris
-Council that a diversion through Russia was the surest way of relieving
-pressure on the French front, the English apparently decided to be first
-in. Though Japan was unquestionably in the most favourable position to
-send help quickly, she was known to have German commitments of such a
-character as precluded her from taking the lead in what was, at that
-time, more an anti-Teutonic than pro-Russian expedition. Her Press was,
-and had been all through the war, violently pro-German, and however much
-the Tokio Cabinet might wish to remain true to the Anglo-Japanese
-Treaty, it was forced to make a seeming obeisance to popular feeling in
-Japan. If it had been only an English expedition, Japan's hand would not
-have been forced; but the American cables began to describe the rapid
-organisation by the U.S.A. of a powerful Siberian expedition, which gave
-the Japanese Government ample justification--even in the eyes of her
-pro-German propagandists--to prepare a still larger force to enable her
-to shadow the Americans, and do a bit of business on her own. Several
-months earlier Japanese suspicions had been aroused by the dispatch to
-Siberia of an alleged civilian railway engineering force to help Russia
-reorganise her railways, and the immense benefit that this force had
-admittedly conferred on the Far Eastern populations was acknowledged on
-all sides. But the very success of American enterprise in this
-beneficent direction had created in the minds of the Japanese a doubt as
-to the wisdom of allowing free play to American penetration.
-
-Japan consequently hurried forward her preparations, and a few days
-after I had taken over the Ussurie command her 12th Division, under the
-command of General Oie, landed at Vladivostok. He at once established
-his headquarters at Nikolsk, and his Chief of Staff, General Kanaka,
-took up his position behind our lines at Svagena, using us as a screen
-for the deployment of his command, which had already begun.
-
-Major Pichon informed me that he had telephoned the Japanese general at
-Nikolsk describing the new situation on our front, and asking him to
-move up sufficient forces from Svagena to protect our right. I went to
-my wagon to get breakfast. A little later Major Pichon informed me that
-the Japanese commander had asked us to suspend our retirement as he was
-moving up from Svagena a battery of artillery and one battalion of
-infantry, who would re-establish the position at Antonovka on our right
-rear, from which we need not fear any further danger. In consequence of
-this message I ordered my men to re-occupy their old positions, and by
-9.30 we had carried out the orders of the Japanese commander.
-
-Having got back into our old position, we inquired the direction of the
-Japanese advance that we might, if necessary, co-operate with their
-movement, and to our utter consternation were informed that the Japanese
-had not started, had no intention of doing so, and that we must take
-what steps were necessary for our own safety, but if we retired at all
-we were to fall back behind their lines and, we suppose, take no further
-part in the operations.
-
-The first promise of help and its countermanding had placed us in an
-extremely dangerous situation. We had left our positions once, and
-nothing but the lack of vigilance on the part of the enemy had enabled
-us to reoccupy them without fighting. Our movements must have been seen,
-and though he had not understood them till too late to take full
-advantage the first time, that he would allow us to get away so easily
-again seemed to us to be very unlikely. In fact, it appeared as though
-we had been sacrificed to give a clear field for some manoeuvre or
-purpose which we could not understand.
-
-Our conference was a very urgent one, and for a time Major Pichon
-thought it best to hang on to our positions and trust to someone making
-an effort for our relief. Had British or American troops been collecting
-in our rear, we would not have hesitated a moment to remain, for we
-should have been certain of immediate help.
-
-We knew that a battalion of Czech infantry had been moved up from
-Svagena towards Antonovka to threaten the enemy's outflanking columns,
-and that this battalion had made it a dangerous proceeding for the enemy
-to close in on our rear. Hence we decided to withdraw certain units to
-Svagena, and for the remainder to retire to a position at Dukoveskoie
-and make a new line from the railway through that village, thus linking
-up with the Czech troops who had marched to our assistance; they would
-thus become the extreme right of our new line.
-
-This movement would enable the Japanese 12th Division at Svagena to
-continue their deployment behind our screen, and if the enemy continued
-his outflanking tactics would involve the Japanese in the fighting
-whether they willed it or not.
-
-The retirement was carried out as arranged in perfect order, with the
-loss of very little material and not more than a dozen men taken
-prisoners. The French were the last to entrain. The whole movement was
-covered by the two armoured trains under the command of Captain Bath,
-R.M.L.I. Before retiring the bluejackets blew up the bridge on our front
-and otherwise destroyed the line in a very workmanlike manner. If we had
-been supported, the retirement would have been quite unnecessary; it was
-the result of lack of confidence in our Allies after the first let-down.
-
-The new line was held as follows: On the left of the railway one company
-of Czech infantry; the two British armoured trains occupied the railway,
-and a Middlesex machine-gun battery of four maxims occupied the right,
-while the wooded slope leading to Dukoveskoie was held by the French,
-and a battalion of Japanese infantry extended beyond the village. The
-right of the village was very sparsely held by a reduced battalion of
-the 5th Czech Regiment and Kalmakoff's Cossacks. The whole force was
-under the personal command of Major Pichon.
-
-The enemy quickly repaired the bridges and the line, and within
-forty-eight hours his armoured trains were observed moving cautiously
-into Kraevesk, my old headquarters. Simultaneously his patrols advanced
-from Antonovka and came into touch with Kalmakoff's scouts on the right,
-and three days from our retirement his advanced elements were testing
-our line from end to end.
-
-On the morning of August 22 the Japanese 12th Division began to move up
-from Svagena to Dukoveskoie and deploy immediately behind the new line.
-As is usual in all Japanese tactics, they pushed their right out far
-beyond the enemy positions, and early in the evening began to envelop
-his left with their usual wide turning movement. Their right was
-supported by two heavy batteries, and from the centre, near Dukoveskoie
-church, their units, now acting as a reserve, were in position before
-sunset. Large bodies of Japanese troops were in bivouac immediately
-behind the centre of the village near their headquarters ready to deploy
-in either direction.
-
-On the evening of August 22 orders were received to push forward the
-observation post of our armoured trains to a spot indicated, which
-proved to be six hundred yards ahead of our positions and near enough to
-be easily raided from the enemy lines. Lieutenant T.E. King, my
-machine-gun officer, was at the same time ordered to move forward two
-maxims, with a reduced company of Czech infantry in support to protect
-this advanced post. The night was enlivened by constant skirmishes
-between British and Terrorist patrols until about 8.30 A.M., when it was
-observed that the Japanese patrols on the right had quietly retired
-without giving any notice of their intention, and that the enemy were in
-position on the plain for an attack and had already advanced along a
-ridge to within a hundred yards of the outpost. The movements of the
-enemy were observable only from the main look-out, from which orders
-were already on the way gradually to withdraw the party to a position
-nearer the lines. Before the order could be delivered the enemy
-attacked. Lieutenant King proceeded to withdraw the guns alternately,
-working the foremost gun himself, but defective ammunition frustrated
-his effort. He gallantly tried to restart the gun, but the enemy were
-now upon him, and he had no alternative but to retire without the gun.
-The small Naval party in the advanced look-out were practically
-surrounded, but under Petty Officer Moffat, who was in charge, they
-managed to get out, with the enemy on their heels. This party was saved
-by a marine named Mitchel, who, seeing Petty Officer Moffat in
-difficulties, turned on his knee and faced his pursuers. Their fire was
-erratic, but his was cool and accurate, and after three or four rounds
-the Magyars kept their heads well down in the long marsh grass, which
-permitted the party to escape. The result of this skirmish, however,
-allowed the enemy armoured train to advance to a point dangerously near
-our defensive works, which, with a little more enterprise and
-determination, he might easily have enfiladed. But though the enemy
-train had mounted a 6-inch gun our 12-pounder Navals were too smartly
-handled to allow any liberties to be taken. This was the situation on
-the morning that the Japanese 12th Division began to deploy behind the
-new Allied line at Dukoveskoie.
-
-About 3 P.M. on August 23 I asked my liaison officer, Colonel R.
-Antonivitch Frank, of the Russian Army, to accompany me towards the
-front line, as I had heard rumours of large concentrations of the enemy,
-who, elated with this small initial success, seemed determined to
-dispute our possession of the village of Dukoveskoie. I arrived in time
-to witness a duel between one of our armoured trains and a rather
-spirited fellow of the same sort on the other side. The Bolshevik shells
-would persist in dropping to the right of our train on a road on which
-Colonel Frank and I were sitting our horses, so we decided to dismount
-and send the animals out of range, while we boarded the train and
-enjoyed the contest. One of our 12-pounders went groggy and obliged us
-to retire slightly, but we dared not go back far, as the Terrorist train
-had all the appearance of following, and would soon have made short work
-of our infantry, which were occupying very indifferent trenches near the
-railway, Captain Bath saw the danger and steamed forward, firing
-rapidly; shells burst all round his target, and so bewildered his
-opponent that he soon turned tail and retired to safety. I applied to
-the Japanese commander, General Oie, through Major Pichon that our
-trains, directly it was dark, might be allowed to return to Svagena to
-shunt the injured gun to the rear train. About 7 P.M., while preparing
-to return for this purpose, a few sharp rifle-cracks were heard near the
-centre of the line. These reports grew rapidly in volume, and now became
-mixed up with the bass "pop-pop" of machine guns. The rolling sound of
-conflict spread from the centre along the whole right front. Till now it
-had been exclusively a small-arm fight. At this point the Bolshevik
-artillery began to chime in, followed by the Japanese and Czech
-batteries. The lovely Siberian summer night became one huge booming,
-flashing inferno, terrible but intensely attractive. The silent
-tree-clad mountains to right and left vibrated with the music of battle,
-while shell and shrapnel screeched like frightened ghouls over the
-valley below, where white and yellow men were proving that there is no
-colour bar to bravery. This din lasted about two hours, and then died
-away almost as rapidly as it began.
-
-Our trains which had remained to take a hand in the business if
-necessary steamed slowly back to Svagena, and I turned into my wagon for
-the night. After the usual battle with the mosquitoes, I fell asleep,
-but it seemed as though I had only slept a few minutes, when a banging
-at the door announced a visitor, who turned out to be a Staff captain
-from the Japanese Headquarters with an urgent message for the Commander
-of the Reserves at Svagena, who with great ceremony handed me the
-following order of the day:
-
-"To COLONEL WARD,
- Officer Commanding Reserves.
- Operation Order by
-LIEUT.-GENERAL S. OIE,
- Commanding 12th Division,
- Svagena.
-
-"_August 23, 1918._
-
-"1. All enemy attacks were driven back to-day. We gained two
- machine guns and five captives.
-
-"2. The Allied troops will attack the enemy, inflicting upon
-them an annihilating disaster, to-morrow, August 24.
-
-"3. The Japanese troops will attack the enemy, starting the
-present line, at 3 o'clock, the 24th, morning.
-
-"4. The reserve British, French, Kalmakoff's forces, and a few
-Japanese companies will be under the command of Japanese. Colonel
-Inagaki will arrive at the north-western side of Dukoveskoie at
-2 o'clock to-morrow morning.
-
-"(Signed) S. OIE,
- Lieut.-General,
- Commanding 12th Division."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-THE BATTLE OF DUKOVESKOIE AND KRAEVESK
-
-
-I Looked at my watch, and called the Japanese officer's attention to the
-fact that the time was 1.45 A.M., and that Dukoveskoie was four miles
-distant. Although he could speak perfect English, he held out his hand
-and with a profound bow pretended not to understand the point of my
-observation. It was in point of time simply impossible to arouse the
-British, Czech, Cossack and Japanese detachments and march four miles in
-the middle of the night in fifteen minutes; but I had lived long enough
-in the East to know that the Oriental never sets a European impossible
-tasks without a good reason from his own point of view. I dispatched
-orderlies to each detachment with definite instructions to be ready to
-move at once. The Japanese refused to move or even get out of their
-tents. The Czechs were enjoying a much-needed rest, and refused to
-budge, while Kalmakoff's Cossacks remained asleep beside their horses.
-Ataman Kalmakoff was at Vladivostok, and his second in command was
-dismissed on his return for refusing to obey my orders, as the Ataman
-was most anxious that his men should be always in the fighting line
-wherever it might be. Captain Clark, M.C., reported the 25th Middlesex
-as ready to march, transport and all complete, twenty-five minutes
-after receiving the order.
-
-To make doubly sure there was no mistake, I called personally upon the
-Japanese officer, who point-blank refused either to arouse or move his
-men in accordance with his own Headquarters' order. I am bound to admit
-that from that moment I had a suspicion that the order of General Oie
-was so much Japanese camouflage, and that it was not intended that we
-should take any part in the immediate operations. I also determined to
-frustrate this attempt to exclude the Allies from participation, and
-gave the order to my own men to move.
-
-Our road for about two miles lay alongside the railway, after which the
-soddened nature of the ground and the danger of losing direction in the
-darkness forced me to take to the railway. About a mile and a half along
-the track brought us to our armoured trains, where we were to pick up
-our Machine-Gun Section, which was to act with us if necessary, or
-remain as a reserve or rallying-point in case of need. Except for the
-sentries, the train crews were asleep, and almost within rifle range of
-our place of assembly. I halted my men and roused Captain Bath to
-inquire if he had received instructions as to his part in the coming
-battle. He informed me that he had received a telephone message from
-General Oie (through Major Pichon) which he could not understand and had
-asked for it to be repeated. He thereupon produced the message, which
-was to the effect that a battle would commence at 3 A.M., but that the
-British armoured trains and the British troops were not to be allowed
-to take any part in the impending engagement. On the production of the
-actual message I began to understand why the order of battle had been
-given to me too late for me to be at the rendezvous with Colonel
-Inagaki, and the refusal of the units of my command to march with me.
-These instructions to Captain Bath from the Japanese Headquarters
-explained the riddle. I gave Captain Bath instructions to move forward
-in my support in case of need and to watch the proceedings generally, to
-render aid to any Allied detachment which might be in difficulties, and
-otherwise to obey General Oie's orders. This duty he performed with
-complete satisfaction to the commanders of the French and Czech
-detachments.
-
-Having arranged my rear, the men of the 25th were ordered to move
-forward in file on each side of the railway track to the point selected
-for our rendezvous. The time was now 3.25 A.M., the dull light of
-dawning day enabling us to distinguish moving objects four hundred yards
-away. A scout came back to report the presence of cavalry on the left,
-but in the early morning haze we could not make out whether it was
-friendly or enemy. I moved my troops to the opposite side of the railway
-embankment and prepared to receive their charge. I then dispatched my
-liaison officer, Colonel Frank, forward to discover their strength and
-character. He quickly returned with the information that the cavalry was
-Japanese, moving into position on our extreme left. I re-formed my men
-and advanced towards my position as ordered, ninety minutes behind
-time. I halted and examined the ground, but saw nothing of Colonel
-Inagaki or any of the detachments on the spot selected for our assembly.
-Standing on the line, I saw the foremost enemy armoured train about four
-hundred yards ahead, and their outpost giving the alarm. No shot had so
-far been fired, but I gave the order to load. At this stage an incident
-happened which put an end to the hitherto silent advance of the
-attacking army. In the act of loading a rifle went off accidentally. The
-soldier to whom it belonged was standing just behind me, and I ordered
-Captain Browne to examine and report. In doing so the rifle again went
-off; it saved the man from punishment, but it began the battle. There
-was a puff of white smoke, and an instant later a 5-inch shell burst
-over our heads. The men opened out into the corn and scrub, and I
-dismounted while the advance continued. Taking my servant's rifle, I led
-the way.
-
-The enemy must have anticipated our rendezvous, for the place was
-ploughed with shells from end to end. The first pitched just under the
-centre of a peasant's cottage, and in a moment cottage and peasant were
-no more. The heavy purple pall hung on the ground, and had we been on
-the spot selected, this description would have been written by other
-hands than mine. By the increasing light and the aid of my glasses I was
-able to make out the entire scheme of the advance, which was a
-continuous line from one mile on the left of the railway, extending to
-about ten miles on our right. A space of about one hundred yards on each
-side of the line was unoccupied--for the reason, as I afterwards
-learnt, that it was considered too exposed and dangerous for the purpose
-of an advance. Unable to find anyone to direct my movements, on my own
-initiative I decided to fill this vacant space, so making the line
-continuous, and move forward with the Japanese to the attack. Disposing
-my men in the shelter of the scrub on either side of the railway, I
-directed their movements from the centre of the track. There was an ugly
-moment when a maxim situated in a cornfield began to fire point-blank at
-a range of one hundred yards, but a Czech outpost entrenched quite near
-made it so hot for the gunner that after firing about 150 rounds he
-scooted, leaving a well-placed gun and 5,000 rounds, all belted, behind.
-We now advanced over the Czech and French trenches, for these forces,
-like our armoured trains, had been ordered to take no part in the
-advance. It was while near these trenches that a grey-coated Magyar,
-four hundred yards away, took deliberate standing aim at myself. It was
-a most difficult shot, and I felt quite safe, but though the Magyar
-missed me, he killed a Czech soldier five yards to the left, the bullet
-entering the centre of his forehead just over the nose. About sixty
-shots answered his, and he sank across the rails. When we reached him he
-lay, with many others, quite dead. Captain Clark picked up his rifle and
-bandolier, and used it with good effect upon the retreating enemy.
-
-There is no doubt that if we had failed to get into position under the
-cover of darkness we should have had the greatest difficulty in making
-any headway along the railway except with very heavy casualties. As I
-have stated previously, the end car of the enemy armoured train had a
-6-inch gun, but it was mounted so high that the whole platform could be
-swept with rifle-fire. The reason for the high mounting was to enable
-two machine guns to be worked along the track from the bed of the car
-under the heavy gun. If our advance had been observed the enemy would
-easily have smashed it, but we got within 400 yards before they knew we
-were there. By concentrating all our fire on the end of the car we swept
-the platform clear, perforated the body underneath with a hail of
-bullets so that nothing could live, and put every gun which could be
-brought to bear along the track out of action. By this means the
-apparently most dangerous point of our advancing line became the safest,
-and we accomplished our purpose without a single casualty. Five enemy
-armoured trains were on the line disputing every inch of the way, but
-their shrapnel was either too high or exploded so far behind the front
-line that, though it made havoc amongst the laggards, it had but little
-effect upon those who kept well to the front. The battle was now joined
-at all points and reaching the decisive moment.
-
-In the centre by skilful manoeuvring, a Japanese 5-inch battery had
-taken up a position actually in front of the general infantry advance.
-Such daring deserved to succeed, and in this case it did so beyond all
-expectations. The point selected was a thin group of trees, which gave a
-view of the railway from the left, across the plain to Kraevesk, and
-enabled the leading enemy trains to be shelled almost from the flank.
-The infantry, while still going methodically forward, were receiving far
-too much attention to feel comfortable, and Japanese soldiers were
-putting tufts of grass and leaves in front of their caps to hide the red
-band, which made an excellent target for riflemen and machine-gunners.
-Occasionally one would rub a handful of mud around the tell-tale band;
-experience soon taught the Japanese soldiers the dangers of a little
-colour. It was just ding-dong open fighting, wonderfully spectacular in
-character. Then a shell burst plunk under the line behind the two
-foremost enemy trains, which made retreat for them impossible. Desperate
-efforts were made to repair the line, but well-directed rifle and light
-machine-gun fire made this impracticable. Another well-placed shell
-dropped just under the gunners' quarters on the front train, and
-instantly the car was enveloped in flames. In turn the fire spread to
-the gun-carriage, which had become untenable from rifle-fire. This
-proved a complete catastrophe for the enemy, who from positions on our
-extreme left and centre had a full view of the slaughter around the
-doomed trains. Their nerves were completely shattered, their fire became
-spasmodic and erratic, and then among the trees on a hill to the left
-appeared a white flag.
-
-That flag was too late. The Japanese cavalry shot out in file as a
-straight extension of our left. Having come parallel with the farthest
-group of resistance, they right turned, and instantly swept up the slope
-in a beautiful line and forward over all resistance, white flag and
-all. They took no prisoners.
-
-My men were only "B one-ers," and the pace was beginning to tell; still
-they were leading, owing to the fact that our advance was along the
-railway and the usual tracks at the side, while the Japanese had to
-contend with the marshes and woods farther away. I therefore ordered a
-rally, and advanced only with such troops as could be reasonably
-expected to keep the line. This party numbered about sixty, and included
-Captain Clark, the Padre (Captain Roberts), Lieutenant Buckley, my Czech
-interpreter (Vladimir), Regimental Sergt.-Major Gordon, Sergeant Webb
-(who, I am sorry to say, died a few days later at Spascoe), Colonel
-Frank (my liaison officer), and rank and file. With this party we
-advanced within fifty yards of part of the burning train, amid a shower
-of debris from the exploding shells stored in its magazine. The second
-train looked quite deserted, and therefore, beyond examining the
-ammunition cart of a 5-inch gun left derelict on the road and counting
-ten rounds of unfired ammunition, we passed without molestation up the
-railway embankment on the way to Kraevesk.
-
-We had passed the trains and left them about two hundred yards in our
-rear when we were startled by rapid rifle-fire behind us. On looking
-round, we were astonished to see spiteful jets of rifle-fire issuing
-from both sides of the uninjured train directed against thick bunches of
-Japanese troops who were passing along the track over which we had just
-advanced. Even the Eastern temperament has limits to its serenity. For
-a moment the Japs were completely off their guard, but they soon
-recovered, and dropping flat in the grass, they opened a brisk
-fusillade. The Magyars were protected by the plated sides of their
-wagons, and were making sad havoc amongst the soldiers of the Rising
-Sun. Taking in the situation at a glance, a Japanese officer gave the
-order to charge. Every man instantly bounded forward, and, like a
-disturbed nest of ants, they swarmed all over the train, stabbing,
-clubbing and bayoneting every Bolshevik they could get at, tossing their
-dead enemies out of the carriages off their bayonets with the same
-motion as if they were shovelling coal. Then they posted a sentry on the
-highest part of each train, and the gun in the road, and called them
-their "trophies of war." My great regret was that no Bolshevik was left
-alive to tell us the reason why they allowed about sixty English
-officers and soldiers to pass unmolested at point-blank range of about
-forty yards, and only began to fire when the Japanese soldiers came
-under their rifles. Many explanations were given at the time, none of
-which seemed to be quite satisfactory, so the mystery remains.
-
-It was here that a polite request was made that the British detachment
-should not keep so far ahead of the other troops, but I was anxious to
-keep well ahead for an important reason. The Bolsheviks had ravaged and
-tortured both young and old, rich and poor, male and female throughout
-the country till their very name stank in the nostrils of the common
-people. Their blood lust had been so great that when they had no
-Russian peasant to torture they fell back on the poor unfortunate Czech
-soldiers who had fallen into their hands as prisoners of war. Many
-authentic cases of this kind are so revolting in character that it is
-better to keep them in the dark rather than advertise how fiendishly
-cruel men can be to one another. I knew that the Czechs had threatened
-to retaliate. The incident of the white flag previously recorded may
-have had something to do with the same sentiment, though I can scarcely
-think it had. I decided, however, that the more humane rules of war
-should apply so far as I was concerned, and I soon had a chance of
-making a demonstration of my views before the whole army. A fugitive
-Bolshevik soldier had escaped from the Japanese cavalry, and started to
-make his way across our left front in an attempt to join the retreating
-Bolshevik trains. Exhausted by the heavy going of the marsh, he had
-dropped for cover and rest. The Japanese line was fast approaching the
-spot where he had taken shelter, so he raised himself from the grass and
-began to run. I levelled my servant's rifle, but misjudged the distance,
-and he took no notice. I took aim at a point over his head, and he
-dropped in the grass so suddenly that Colonel Frank thought I had killed
-him. As we approached the spot his black hair showed up above the green,
-and I took aim again, but did not fire. I informed Colonel Frank I
-wanted the man, if he would surrender, to be an example of how a
-prisoner of war should be treated. Colonel Frank shouted to the man to
-surrender. The man shouted back that the Japanese killed all prisoners.
-He was then informed that I was an English officer, and if he would
-surrender I guaranteed his life unless he had committed some greater
-crime than merely fighting as a Bolshevik soldier. He made no further
-parley, but almost ran to me as for protection. I was standing on the
-embankment, in full view for miles, and it was easy for the whole
-incident to be seen. I took his rifle, with fixed bayonet, and bandolier
-and fifty rounds from him. His papers showed him to be a demobilised
-Russian soldier. I placed him under a guard of two men with orders to
-see him safely to the rear. Time after time demands were made to his
-guards to allow the murder of the prisoner. But those two British
-bayonets made his life as safe as though he had been in Trafalgar
-Square. I could tell by the atmosphere which the incident created that
-our Allies thought this regular conduct wholly out of place on a
-battlefield, but it fulfilled its purpose, and surrenders were accepted
-during the further operations.
-
-Our progress was now very rapid, and except for a few bursts of shrapnel
-which continued to fly harmlessly over the front ranks and injure such
-as were far behind, we approached our old station, Kraevesk, easily. As
-to the method from the military point of view of approaching this place,
-the less said about it the better. A single company of British troops
-would have held up the whole show and inflicted losses on the attackers
-out of all proportion to the object gained. The stuffing, however, was
-completely knocked out of the Bolshevik army, and the advance took more
-the form of beaters driving big game. Having previously reconnoitred the
-whole ground, I again chose the railway for my party. The Japanese
-swarmed up through the wooded slope on the right. I chose the railway
-because I knew the shallow cutting had a slight curve which would give a
-safe line of approach to the station, situated about three hundred yards
-behind this low-lying hill. The Japs advanced through the wood in
-masses, huge bunches of men without regular formation. On rounding the
-curve, I saw an enemy armoured train about four hundred yards distant. A
-Bolshevik officer walked leisurely out of our old headquarters and put
-one foot on the step of the engine, looking straight at myself standing
-on the line. I drew a bead on him with Lance-Corporal's Moorman's rifle.
-I do not believe I hit him, but I was near enough to make him skip
-quickly into the engine shelter. A flash from the leading gun, and a
-2-inch shell passed so close to my head that I fell into the four-foot
-way, and felt the top of my skull to find out if it was still there.
-This shell exploded about one hundred yards behind me and mortally
-wounded two Japanese and injured several others. The machine guns on the
-train now swept the wood, where the Japs were advancing, with such
-effect that for a few moments there was a regular stampede back over the
-brow of the hill. My party had taken cover in the scrub on the left, and
-I crawled on hands and knees in their direction. I found a deep dyke at
-the foot of the cutting covered with high weeds, and into this I rolled.
-Gradually raising my head over the thistles, I potted rapidly at the
-gunner, and my party did the same.
-
-The Japs by this time had recovered from their first shock, and began to
-open fire on the train, which steamed slowly back to the far end of the
-station, when it came to a standstill and pumped shrapnel along our
-front. We had got far ahead of our artillery, so it became a contest of
-rifle versus armoured train. On the left of the station was a thick log
-store, and keeping that between ourselves and the armoured train, we
-crept into the station and began to fire at close range at the gunners,
-whose heads appeared above the sides of the armoured carriages. The
-Japanese used a red brick cottage for a similar purpose on the other
-side, while others tried to outflank the train and cut off its retreat.
-The officer in charge detected this manoeuvre, and, using all his guns,
-he retired behind the hill, and later was reported as steaming towards
-Shmakovka. We took possession of the station, and near our old
-headquarters found a hut in which was the Bolshevik officers' breakfast,
-with potatoes cooked to a nicety on the fire. These were looted by
-Colonel Frank and Sergeant-Major Gordon. The sun was very hot--the time
-was about 8.30 A.M.--we had fought over very difficult country for
-twelve miles, and as we sat on the crossing of the railway the potatoes
-were very good. By some hopeless blunder the Japanese cavalry had been
-ordered to close in from the flank on this station instead of the next,
-so we lost the huge bag of prisoners which was waiting to be captured.
-The Jap cavalry commander sat down and sampled my potatoes, but he lost
-the culminating stroke of the whole movement. This small minor action
-proved to be one of the most decisive of the war, as it destroyed the
-whole Terrorist army east of the Urals.
-
-I was ordered by General Otani to remain in reserve, and returned to my
-base at Svagena to find the proverbial luck of my battalion had been
-maintained. The Japs had over six hundred casualties, some of which
-occurred close to my men, but not a man of the 25th was hit. We had many
-cases of complete prostration, but, in view of the category of my unit,
-not more than was to be expected considering the strenuous month's work
-they had undergone. One and all behaved like Englishmen--the highest
-eulogy that can be passed upon the conduct of men.
-
-General Oie sent a letter of special thanks to the Commanding Officer of
-the British unit for their great services in the engagement. At 4.25
-P.M., August 28, I received the following communication from the General
-Headquarters:
-
-"1. On August 26 the Division had occupied the heights situated at the
-north of Shmakovka. The inhabitants reported the enemy had left there
-between nine and twelve on the night of August 24 by eleven trains,
-strength of which was about 5,000 men; 2,000 men retired by road from
-Uspenkie. The Division bivouacked at Shmakovka.
-
-"2. On the 27th the enemy continued their retreat to the north of the
-River Ussurie, and no enemy could be seen to the south of it, though
-nine railway bridges out of ten between Shmakovka and Ussurie had been
-destroyed. Damage done is some ten metres each, and a few days would be
-required to repair them. The Ussurie railway bridge is not damaged, and
-on the night of the 26th, after a small detachment had occupied it, one
-company of infantry reinforced. Against the enemy on Lake Hanka, which
-was known to have gone down the river with gunboats, one company of
-infantry has been dispatched to the right bank of Ussurie east of
-Shmakovka.
-
-"3. The Division remains at the present position, and prepares to move
-forward on the 28th."
-
-This completed the Ussurie operations, for the battle was absolutely
-decisive. The enemy were entirely demoralised, and never made another
-stand east of Lake Baikal.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-JAPANESE METHODS AND ALLIED FAR-EASTERN POLICY
-
-
-The Japanese, for their own peculiar reasons, as will have already
-appeared, had decided in the early stages of the operations that the
-maritime provinces were their special preserve. They looked with the
-greatest suspicion upon the forces and efforts of the other Allies,
-especially British and American, and by their orders tried deliberately
-to exclude them from their counsels and as far as possible from the
-administration of the territory recovered from the Terrorists. The 27th
-Battalion of American Infantry had landed at Vladivostok a few days
-before the battle of Dukoveskoie, and promises were made that they
-should be hurried forward to take a share in the fighting; but the
-Japanese, who controlled the railway, saw to it that they arrived a day
-late. Instead of pushing them ahead, they were detrained at Svagena, and
-then entrained again from day to day, always about fifty versts behind
-the Japanese front. In addition the Japanese never trusted their Allies.
-No order to the Japanese Army was ever given to the Allied commanders
-until the operation had been carried out or had got to such a stage as
-to make it impossible for them to take part or offer suggestions.
-
-Captain Stephan (now Major), of the Czech Army, and myself knew every
-road and track from Shmakovka to Svagena, and were certain that with
-proper care the whole enemy force on the Ussurie front could have been
-destroyed or captured. The Japanese would neither consult nor inform any
-of their Allies about any movement until it had taken place. They
-treated the Czech commanders with the most scant courtesy; the English
-officers' carriages were invaded by their private soldiers, who would
-insolently ask what business we had in Siberia and when did we propose
-to go home; but they reserved their most supreme contempt for the
-Russian people. These poor wretches they drove off the railway
-platforms, using the butts of their rifles upon the women as well as the
-men, just as though they were dealing with a tribe of conquered
-Hottentots. I did not understand this behaviour on the part of our
-Eastern Ally, and felt it could only be the irresponsible bullying of a
-few individual men and officers. Later on I found it to be the general
-policy of the Japanese Army to treat everybody as inferior to
-themselves; they had learnt this Hun lesson to a nicety.
-
-I give two instances which are neither glaring nor isolated, but of
-which no doubt official record remains. I was standing on Nikolsk
-platform waiting for a train; there was a crowd of Russian people, and a
-Japanese sentry was standing near. This man quite suddenly darted
-forward and jammed the butt of his rifle in the centre of a Russian
-officer's back; the force of the blow knocked him flat on the floor in
-such pain that he rolled about for a few minutes, while the Jap,
-grinning, held his bayonet at the "On guard!" Though there were many
-standing near, not one Russian had the pluck to shoot him, and not
-wishing to mix myself up in the affair, I took no action, but watched
-further developments. Ten minutes later another Jap sentry repeated the
-performance, but this time the victim was a well-dressed Russian lady.
-So cowed were the Russian people that even her friends were afraid to
-help her. I stepped forward to offer assistance, with the Jap standing
-over me; when, however, he saw my revolver he put up his bayonet, but
-continued to laugh as though it was a huge joke. A few Tommies were
-attracted to the spot, and the Jap saw that things were beginning to
-take a serious turn. I proceeded to the Japanese Headquarters, situated
-in a carriage near by, and reported the occurrence. The officer seemed
-astonished that I should interfere on behalf of mere Russians, who he
-said may have been Bolsheviks for all he knew, and inquired whether the
-sentry had ever treated me so. I answered that "the first Japanese that
-touches an English officer or soldier in my presence will be a dead
-man." This seemed to surprise the Japanese officer, who pointed out that
-the Japanese were in occupation of Siberia, and were entitled to do what
-they liked. I had to inform him that the Japanese were acting in
-alliance with the other Powers, including Russia; that we were here as
-the friends of the Russian people, and not as their conquerors. This he
-would or could not understand. I ended the interview by warning him that
-if his sentries were not instructed to behave a little less like
-savages, there would be an end to those sentries' careers. I later
-heard that the interview did good, but could not in the case of Japanese
-troops do more than slightly mitigate their behaviour to the defenceless
-Russian inhabitants.
-
-That is merely a type of their conduct towards ordinary people. There
-is, however, one excuse for them: given the right circumstances, they
-treat all alike. A battalion commander was not quite the sort of
-material to operate upon, for the simple reason that he was usually
-surrounded with sufficient force to secure proper respect, but a general
-without a powerful escort was always fair sport for their gentle
-attentions. Not even the chief of the British Military Mission could
-hope to escape from the most insulting behaviour. An incident placed my
-unit in charge of a part of the telegraph system, which enabled me to
-handle personally the sort of message which entered the Japanese
-Headquarters relative to a special train that was approaching their
-station. I handled the message myself. It ran as follows:
-
-"A special train, No. ........., will enter your section at .........
-time; it conveys the chief of the British Military Mission, General
-........., and Staff from Vladivostok to Ufa for important conference
-with General Surovey, the Commander-in-Chief of the Czech and Russian
-Armies. You will please give 'line clear' throughout the journey." Did
-the Japanese give "line clear" throughout? That will never be the way
-that this highly efficient and interesting little people will do
-anything, if their army is a sample of the whole. They stopped the
-train, and boarded it with a squad of men with fixed bayonets. They
-insulted the chief of the British Mission by placing him and his Staff
-under arrest, and then proceeded to make elaborate inquiries to find out
-whether they were not German emissaries in disguise. The impudence of
-the whole proceeding was so remarkable and yet characteristic that when
-the Staff of the General reported the occurrence to me I did not for a
-moment know whether I should die with rage or laughter.
-
-I went to Siberia entirely biassed in favour of this admittedly
-wonderful people. I took care to instruct my soldiers to salute every
-Japanese officer and to be most polite to every Japanese soldier, and
-they carried out my instructions to the letter; but my attention was
-called to the fact that only on rare occasions did a Japanese officer
-take the trouble to return the salute of my men, and still more rarely
-did a Japanese soldier salute an English officer. He was much more
-likely to give an insulting grimace. I say quite frankly that I admire
-the workmanlike way the Japanese go about their soldierly duties, but it
-is impossible to ignore their stupidly studied arrogance towards those
-who are anxious to be on terms of peace and amity with them. It is
-unfortunately true that they were misled into believing that Germany was
-ordained to dominate the world, and, believing this, they shaped their
-conduct upon this awful example. They quite openly boast that they are
-the Germans of the East. Let us hope that they will read aright the
-recent lesson of history.
-
-During my stay in the maritime provinces I never saw or heard of a
-single act or order from the Japanese Headquarters which would help in
-the slightest degree in the administrative reorganisation of the
-country. On the contrary I saw many things which convinced me that the
-Land of the Rising Sun was at that time more concerned in maintaining
-disorder as the surest way of fostering her own ambitious designs.
-
-At this stage the other Allies were without a Far-Eastern policy. Their
-sole object was to push back as far as possible the German-Magyar
-forces, which were carrying out the sinister policy of Teutonic
-penetration under the guise of Bolshevism. Bolshevism in the Far East at
-this date was an attempt to reduce to a system the operations of the
-Chinese robber bands of the Mongolian border. Mixed with and led by
-released German and Magyar prisoners of war, they became a formidable
-force for destroying all attempts at order in Russia and resisting the
-possible reconstruction of the Russian front against the Central Powers.
-Previous to the Bolshevist régime these Chinese bands had lived by
-murder and loot; it was their trade, though hitherto considered illegal,
-and sometimes severely punished. No wonder they joined the Soviet
-crusade when it declared robbery and murder to be the basis upon which
-the new Russian democracy must rest. This German-Magyar-Chinese
-combination was bound to meet with remarkable initial success. The
-Chinese got his blood and loot in a legal way without much danger, and
-the German prisoner played an important part in the defence of the
-Fatherland and the destruction of its enemies.
-
-If Germany lost on the Western Front, and by means of this unnatural
-combination still retained her hold upon the potential wealth of the
-late Tsar's dominions, she had indeed won the war. This was the reason
-for our presence in Siberia, but it was not the reason for the presence
-of Japan.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-ADMINISTRATION
-
-
-Shortly after the incidents referred to in Chapter IV, I received
-General Otani's orders to take over the command of the railway and the
-districts for fifty versts on either side, from Spascoe to Ussurie
-inclusive. My duty was to guard the railway and administer the district,
-taking all measures necessary to keep open this section of the line of
-communications. I was instructed to fix my headquarters at Spascoe, and
-make all arrangements to winter there. In accordance therewith I
-proceeded to get into touch with what remained of the old Russian
-authorities, civil and military, and the new ones wherever such had been
-created. So far as the men's comfort was concerned, new roads were
-constructed and old ones repaired, broken windows and dilapidated walls
-and woodwork were either replaced or renovated. Electrical appliances
-were discovered and fixed, and what had previously been a dull, dark
-block of brickwork suddenly blossomed out into a brilliantly lighted
-building and became at night a landmark for miles around.
-
-We also began painfully to piece together the broken structure of human
-society. For over a year no law but force had been known in these
-regions, and many old wrongs and private wounds demanded liquidation. I
-made many journeys to outlandish villages and settlements, with a small
-personal escort, fixed a table in the centre of the street, and with the
-aid of the parish priest and the president of the local council, heard
-and decided disputes, public and private, from threats and injury to the
-person to the possession and occupation of a farm. There was no
-appeal--the stolid Tommies who stood behind me with fixed bayonets put
-my judgments beyond question. I remitted one or two points of property
-law to legal decision, but all parties in each case protested that they
-would have preferred my instant judgment. Three murderers I remitted to
-a court which I called together with an old Russian officer to preside,
-but he was so terrified at the prospect of having to order their
-execution for fear they might be Bolsheviks--whose name was a terror to
-everybody--that I had to send them to another district to enable the law
-to be carried out. The report of these proceedings spread with such
-rapidity that it became quite embarrassing, if not impossible, to deal
-effectively and thoroughly with the daily increasing number of
-litigants. I began to understand the reason why in more civilised
-communities legal proceedings are made so expensive. Either the Russian
-peasant is a most litigious person, or else he mistook a free system of
-justice as a healthy English pastime which he thoroughly enjoyed.
-
-It was extremely flattering to be told that these people preferred that
-the "Anglisky Polkovnika Boorpg" should decide their disputes than that
-they should be reserved for a Russian tribunal. It was the most
-interesting work I had so far done in the country. The trial of even the
-simplest case gave me many insights to Russian institutions and
-character that only years of book study could otherwise have
-accomplished. I learnt the difference between the right of the peasant
-holder as compared with that of the Cossack circle. The law of the
-forest afforded an education in itself. The intimate relationship of
-Russian family life, from the highest to the lowest, was constantly laid
-bare before me with all its romance and mediaeval trappings and its
-sordid substratum of violence and superstition. In fact, I became so
-interested in this work that it was with the greatest regret that I
-relinquished it for a more urgent and important call.
-
-The Allied forces in the Transbaikal had now accomplished their task of
-dispersing the forces of lawlessness, and had made some progress in the
-work of administration, but if this work was to be consolidated and made
-of permanent value it must be given a centre, other than the Allied
-command, around which it could rally and to which it might reasonably
-look for guidance and support. The Siberian Government had been
-established by the alive elements of the old régime and the more showy
-members of the Social Revolutionary party, but their authority was
-ignored and their orders were not often conspicuous for their wisdom.
-This great people can do almost anything, but even they cannot live
-without a head, and the question was, how was some sort of head to be
-provided? The Allies had taken control of the far-eastern provinces,
-but, if their object was to be carried through and German designs
-frustrated, it was necessary to push at once their control to the Urals
-and, if possible, beyond. The brilliant feats of the Czechs had
-temporarily thrown the Terrorist forces into confusion, but with
-wealthy, helpless Russia as their prize cupidity alone would be
-sufficient to excite them to renewed effort. To be effective, Allied
-help and activity must be transferred nearer to the scene of actual
-conflict, and Ekaterinburg or Omsk appeared to be the only possible
-centres which could provide the proper accommodation and surroundings
-for this next step in the Allied programme. This much as a general
-proposition was conceded by all, but everybody held differing views as
-to the way in which it should be carried out.
-
-Japan, having firmly planted her feet in the much-coveted maritime
-provinces, did not look with enthusiasm upon the suggestion that she
-should leave what she most wanted in order to lessen the pressure upon a
-front in which she had no interest. That Paris should fall under German
-blows was of no importance compared with American control of the Chinese
-Eastern Railway or the presence of the _Brooklyn_ at Vladivostok.
-
-America had not exactly made up her mind what particular part of the Far
-East was most precious in her eyes, but wished to be friendly with
-everybody and get as much as possible out of all. Her armies were on the
-Western front, but her eyes were on the Eastern Pacific, and was it not
-better after all to remain where you could keep an eye on the other
-fellow?
-
-Who would think of taking a military force over six thousand miles from
-its base through a partially hostile country? Would it get through the
-many dangers and difficulties it was certain to encounter on the way?
-And if it did, who could guarantee a friendly reception? and if not, how
-could a ghastly disaster be avoided? These were some of the problems
-which called for decision, and once decided could never be recalled.
-
-The Americans and the Japanese were otherwise occupied and therefore not
-available, and though it may seem mere national egotism to make such a
-statement, there was only one force in which moderate Russians of all
-parties had absolute confidence--without which anything might happen.
-All eyes turned to the old "Die-Hard" Battalion which had now proved its
-mettle on land and sea.
-
-Russian society had been ripped up by the roots, and the whole country
-reduced to a huge human jungle. Human life was at a discount, in fact
-was the cheapest thing in the country. If a centre of order was to be
-created anywhere, force must be provided for its initial protection.
-Statecraft cannot work with violence ever threatening its very life. The
-risks were great, a big force would create suspicion, a small force must
-rely upon something more than mere bayonets for its safety. It was with
-due regard to its dangers, but with a certainty that it was worth it,
-that I accepted the task which the fates had forced upon me.
-
-We had settled down for a winter in Spascoe, when I received the
-necessary orders to proceed to Omsk, with the suggestion that before
-executing them I had better visit Headquarters at Vladivostok for a
-conference with General Knox. I tried to get a carriage suitable for the
-journey for my Staff from the railway authorities, but failed, and ended
-by purloining a cattle-truck. In this contraption we got as far as
-Nikolsk, where our truck was to have been hung on to the Harbin Express;
-but the station-master, the best type of Russian public official,
-thought it a disgrace that the Commander and Staff of their most trusted
-Ally should travel so. He placed his private car at my disposal on my
-promise to return the same if and when I could find another. We arrived
-at "Vlady," and in four days had completed the arrangements for the move
-and secured verbal and documentary instructions as to the general policy
-to be pursued. The means to be employed to worm my way towards the Urals
-were left entirely to myself.
-
-I had already formed a very high opinion of the Russian character. Much
-can be done by sympathy and persuasion, but if they fail, then the "big
-stick" of Peter the Great, used sparingly, is the only method which is
-certain to secure obedience to orders.
-
-On the return journey I was hung up at Nikolsk for several days. Heavy
-rains had caused the valleys and marshes to become flooded, and a
-haystack which had been carried off its bed by the water had lodged
-against the temporary sleeper buttress and swept the bridge away. The
-hay had held the torrent back till it became so high that it rushed
-over about two miles of the railway, destroying that also. The Japs
-would not repair the damage, nor for some time would they give a chance
-for the Russians to do so. I managed to get orders through to Major
-Browne so that no time was actually lost. It was estimated that it would
-take seven days to get on the move, but by a general hustle all round in
-three days we began our 5,000 miles journey. Starting from Spascoe we
-travelled to Nikolsk, and then turned back up the Manchurian-Chinese
-Eastern Railway. On arriving at Nikolsk we were informed that the French
-Tonquin Battalion had also received orders to move west some seven days
-prior to us, but were not yet ready, nor were they likely to be for two
-or three days. We had arrived at "Vlady," and gone thence to the Ussurie
-front before the French; so now again we led the way towards the sinking
-sun.
-
-This French unit was under the command of Major Malley, who from his
-appearance ought never to have dropped the "O" before his surname. He
-and his officers were some of the best; but the atmosphere of South
-China had robbed them of some of their native energy. He informed me
-that his destination was a point on the railway near the borders of
-North-West Manchuria, and by consulting my own instructions I guessed
-the object of his move. In case of need I should at least have the
-border open. In addition to which the move was an indication that so far
-as this venture was concerned English and French policy ran parallel.
-
-The first part of the journey was through hundreds of miles of uncarted
-corn. As far as the eye could see, to right or left, one vast sea of
-derelict corn, left uncared for on the land to rot in the Siberian
-winter. The entire absence of labour, and the complete breakdown of
-internal administration and communication had produced stark want in the
-presence of plenty. It made one feel quite sad to look day after day
-upon this waste of human food and remember the food rations and
-regulations at home. All along the line there was a continuous stream of
-refugees of all nations and races--poor, hunted creatures who had
-horrible stories to tell of the ravages of the Bulgar and the atrocities
-of the Bolsheviki. At one place the Serbian women and children got the
-breakfast of my men, the Tommies refusing to eat until the kiddies had
-been satisfied. And the pathetic homage they paid to our flag when they
-discovered it was the flag of England! I shall never forget some of the
-scenes which showed us also the wonderful trust the struggling
-nationalities of the world have in the power, humanity and honour of our
-country. It is a priceless possession for the world which Englishmen
-must for ever jealously guard.
-
-Through apparently never-ending uplands we entered the great range which
-forms the natural boundary between China and Siberia. On and on, through
-mountain gorge and fertile valley, we broke at length out on to the wide
-open plains of Manchuria. Perhaps it could be best described as a
-combination of all the most wonderful scenery in the world. It is
-somewhat difficult to keep three huge trains of over forty trucks each
-together on a single line. This, however, had to be done, first for
-purposes of safety, and secondly for defence in the then lawless state
-of the country. The next difficulty was transport. Horses had to be
-watered, and if they were to be ready for use the train must stop and
-the animals be exercised every fourth day. Hence much scheming and
-management had to be exercised for the journey to be successfully
-carried through.
-
-I saw much about the "hidden hand" in the newspapers we received from
-home, but our experiences of the same character were sometimes amusing
-and sometimes serious. The railway was under a sort of joint control,
-Russian, American and Japanese, and it soon became clear that one or the
-other of these groups was unfriendly to our western advance. It may have
-been all, but of that I have no proof. The first incident was a stop of
-four hours. After the first two hours a train passed us that had been
-following behind; after another two hours, when slightly more vigorous
-inquiries were being made as to the cause of delay, we were quite
-naively informed that the station-master did not think we ought to risk
-going farther. We soon informed him to the contrary, and again started
-forward. The next stop of this character was at a fairly big station
-about twenty hours from Harbin. This station-master held us up for seven
-hours. This I thought the limit. At last he showed my interpreter a
-telegram asking him to prevent us going any farther. It was not signed,
-and when I demanded that we should be allowed to proceed, he said that
-there were no engines. I had seen two standing idle outside. I rushed
-on to the platform just in time to prevent the engines disappearing.
-While the station-master had been parleying with me he had ordered the
-engines to put on steam. I gave orders for my guard to form up across
-the line at each end of the station and either bayonet or shoot anyone
-who tried to take the engines away. I then forced the operator to tell
-me if the line ahead was clear, and threatened to take the
-station-master under military arrest for trial at Harbin unless he
-announced my intention to start in that direction and cleared the way
-ahead. I put a soldier with fixed bayonet on the footplate to see that
-the driver held to his post and did not play tricks with the train, and
-started on our journey. We made every inquiry possible, but no one could
-give us the slightest reason for our stoppage, but seemed to think that
-there was something wrong with the works which had allowed us to get so
-far. From then on I took no risks.
-
-There are no special features about Harbin. It is just a conglomeration
-of houses of a more or less Chinese character thrown together in three
-heaps, the first two attempts of the thrower not getting quite near
-enough to the target, which was the junction of the Chinese Eastern
-Railway. Elaborate preparations had been made by an Allied Committee for
-our reception, and when we drew into the station about 4 P.M. it was
-crowded with about as cosmopolitan a crowd of Far Eastern races as we
-had so far met with--the Mayor, the Chinese Governor and all the
-notabilities, foremost amongst them being the British Consul, Mr. Sly;
-but most important of all was General Plisshkoff, the commander of the
-local forces known as "Hovart's Army." Speeches were delivered, and a
-reply given which elicited from a Cossack band the most astounding
-rendering of the British National Anthem that was ever heard around the
-seven seas. The gem of the proceedings was a presentation of two lovely
-bouquets by the English ladies of Harbin. I never felt so much the
-necessity for adopting the Eastern custom of kissing all the ladies you
-are introduced to as at this one supreme moment of the journey; it was a
-real test of the power of restraint. But the ladies' husbands were
-there, and everything passed off quietly, even though some wretched
-fellows took snapshots of the presentation for home production. I
-inspected the several guards of honour, and General Plisshkoff returned
-the compliment, while the famous "25th" band discoursed what was
-declared to be the sweetest music that had been heard in Harbin since
-its history began. Tea was served in a specially decorated marquee on
-the platform and all the men were given presents of one sort or another,
-and the town gave itself over to tumultuous enjoyment, happy in the
-thought that at last one of the Allies had appeared on the scene, a
-faint indication that a desperate effort was about to be made by the
-oldest and most trusted nation in Europe to conjure order out of chaos.
-The officers were entertained by the British Consul, and preparations
-were made for a ceremonial march through the town next day. This turned
-out a great success and greatly impressed the inhabitants.
-
-The day following we were entertained by the Chinese Governor, a very
-courtly old gentleman, and the local Chinese general at the headquarters
-of the Chinese administration. The band was in attendance, and during
-the meal dealt with some of the British military choruses which have
-spread themselves round the world. Of course we all joined in, as only
-Englishmen can, and this became so infectious that even the staid
-mandarins unbent and added their quota to the noise. It is surprising to
-note the resemblance between the solemn Chinese and the self-centred
-Englishmen. The solemnity of the one reacts upon the other, and both
-become what neither is in reality nor can be separately. After our hard
-work and harder fare on the Ussurie this gorgeous banquet was equal to a
-month's leave, and we let go with a vengeance. What the Chinamen thought
-about it next morning I do not know; for myself, I only remembered the
-kindness of this act of friendship and the _camaraderie_ of the whole
-affair. How strange that we should feel more at home with these pukka
-Chinamen than with others we have met who are supposed to have much
-closer affinity.
-
-Immediately after leaving Harbin we crossed the finest bridge of the
-whole journey to Omsk. It carries the railway over the River Sungary,
-which meanders about over the enormous yet fairly well cultivated plains
-of Northern Manchuria. It is not my intention to describe either the
-peoples or the countries through which we passed, but no study of the
-blending and dovetailing of totally different races into the different
-types that we particularise under the names of Chinese, Mongol, Tartar
-and Russian, would be complete without a journey along the Siberian and
-Eastern Chinese Railway. The same remark applies to their dress,
-habitations and customs. It is an education in itself, especially if,
-like us, one had to stop occasionally to drive bargains, negotiate help,
-and have the closest and most intimate intercourse with the common
-people. None of them had even seen the British flag, few of them had the
-slightest idea where the "Anglisky" lived, and one old Kirghis explained
-to his wondering tribemen that we were a strange tribe that had broken
-away from "Americanski" and gone to live on a great island in the middle
-of the lakes, where no one could touch us unless they risked their lives
-on great wooden rafts. I thought the amount of inverted truth in this
-charming description very pleasing if not very flattering to our
-national vanity.
-
-After climbing the great Hinghan Range the plains of Mongolia came as a
-wonder to me. Imagine if you can a perfectly flat land through which
-your train glides hour after hour, day after day. The whole is covered
-with rough grass and a growth somewhat like a huge horse daisy or
-marguerite. At the time we passed these plants had dried, and a terrific
-wind sweeping over the plains had broken countless numbers of the dry
-herb off near the ground. They fell on their round sides. Directly the
-plants had lost their anchorage away they bounded like catherine wheels
-over the plains. It does not require much imagination to picture
-hundreds of thousands of these rounded tufts of dried grass bounding
-along over immense distances. It is quite a fascinating pastime to
-select a few of the larger and better formed ones coming over the
-horizon and calculate how long they take to arrive opposite your
-position. Calculations made in this way convinced me that a small
-coloured message properly fastened to these moving objects might have
-been carried five hundred miles in twenty-four hours. If, instead of
-looking at one, you look at the whole, the impression is of the solid
-earth passing rapidly from west to east. There are occasional
-obstructions in the shape of a huge flock of sheep which would cover
-half of Rutlandshire. These are herded by quaintly dressed Mongolian
-Tartars, on wonderful shaggy-haired horses, who ride at a furious pace
-around their flocks and guard them from attack by the wolves which
-infest this part of the world. It is worth recording how they do so. The
-wolf is a very cunning animal who has numerous methods of attack, and,
-like a hare, is very difficult to locate if in his form and practically
-level with the ground. But his very cunning is often his undoing. On no
-account will the wolf allow a string on which there are little coloured
-rags fluttering to pass over him, nor will he willingly get near it. The
-Tartar herdsmen go forward in line over the plain in the direction their
-flocks are feeding with a small strong string with little coloured flags
-fluttering along it, fastened from horse to horse. This effectively
-sweeps the whole space as the trawler sweeps the sea. No wolf can hope
-to escape the trained eye of the Tartar near the horse where the strain
-of the line lifts it high off the ground, and no wolf will allow the
-line to pass near him, hence the herdsman gets both sport and profit
-out of his occupation. Having fed off the grass and herbs in one place,
-the whole Tartar tribe moves forward at regular periods on what appears
-to be an endless crawl across the world, but what is really an appointed
-round, settled and definite, within the territorial lands of the race to
-which it belongs. Their women and children journey with them and hunt
-and ride with the men, free as the plains over which they travel. In
-spite of this community of interests the men seem to place but very
-little value upon their women except as a sort of communist coolie
-attachment for carrying the camp from one place to another, for
-preparing the rude meals, and for the care of the boys, of whom the
-tribe is very proud.
-
-Over this featureless wilderness we progressed day after day, each
-stopping-place marked by a few aspen trees mixed up with a few others
-that look very much like mountain ash but are not. The winter houses of
-the people are single-roomed, square, wooden structures, very strangely
-built, with flat roofs consisting of about two feet of earth. Against
-and over these structures in winter the frozen snow piles itself until
-they have the appearance of mere mounds, impossible to locate except for
-the smoke which escapes from a few long crevices left open under the
-eaves of what is intended to be the front of the house. These
-smoke-escapes perform the double duty of chimneys and also keep clear
-the way by which the inhabitants go in and out. Their herds are either
-disposed of before the winter begins or are housed in grass-covered
-dug-outs, which in winter, when the snow is piled over them, take the
-form of immense underground caverns, and are quite warm and habitable by
-both man and beast. The one I entered had over two hundred beautiful
-little foals housed in it, and others similar in character had cows and
-sheep and poultry all as snug as you please. The entrance was lighted
-with a quaint old shepherd's lantern, not unlike those I had seen used
-by shepherds in Hampshire when I was a boy. The entrance was guarded all
-night by a number of dogs, and curled up in a special nook was the
-herdsman, with a gun of a kind long since discarded in Europe. Such are
-the conditions under which these people live half the year, but they
-make up for this underground life when in April they start their cattle
-on the move by first allowing them to eat their shelters.
-
-Near the edge of this plain we began to encounter a few sand dunes with
-outcrops, very similar to those on the coast line of our own country.
-Over these we gently ran day after day until we could see vast fields of
-sand and scrub that it must have taken thousands of years of gale and
-hurricane to deposit in the quaint pyramidal fashion in which they stand
-to-day. Even yet they are not fixed; occasionally a tree falls exposing
-the naked sand to the action of the wind, which swirls around the hole
-and moves the sand into a spiral whirlpool, lifting and carrying it away
-to be deposited again on the lea side of a distant valley, choking the
-pines and silver birch and sometimes destroying large woods and forests.
-It is surprising that though we travelled for hundreds of miles along
-the edge of this huge sand plateau we did not see a single rivulet or
-stream coming from its direction, though there were the traces of a
-river far out on the plain. Sunset on these sand-hills was quite
-entrancing. The occasional break in these conical formations, when the
-sun was low down, gave one the impression of a vast collection of human
-habitations, with gable ends to the highest of the buildings. The fact
-is, however, that, so far as we saw or could make out, no human
-habitation exists over the whole face of this sea of sand, though men
-live quite calmly around the craters of volcanoes and other equally
-dangerous and impossible places. The fear created by legends of human
-disaster attaching to the local history of these sands is of such a
-character that even the daring of the Tartar is for once mastered. The
-sands themselves when on the move are dangerous enough, but their
-cup-like formation would hide armies until the traveller was in their
-midst, when retreat would be impossible. The same applies with greater
-force to the banditti or beasts of the desert; hence the gloomy history
-and legends of the Mongolian sands.
-
-We arrived at Hazelar on a Saturday evening, and collected our echelons
-during the night. On Sunday morning I made application to the priest for
-permission to hold our parade service in the grounds of the Greek
-church. This was granted, and the parade was a huge success. The
-spectacle of the padre (Captain Roberts) in his surplice conducting the
-English service under the shadow of the church our help had rescued
-from the violence of the Terrorists was very impressive. The service was
-watched with intense interest by hundreds of Russian men and women and
-by crowds of Chinese, Korean and Tartar plainsmen. Some of the Russian
-ladies joined in the responses, and many women's voices joined in the
-old English hymns. These were the first religious services that had been
-held for a year, and seemed to give assurance to the people that their
-troubles were nearly over, that peace had come again. The huge padlock
-and chain upon the church door had been removed, and general
-thankfulness seemed to be the predominant feeling. The scene was
-doubtless very strange to those unaccustomed to united worship by both
-priest and people. In these small matters I was extremely punctilious,
-as I saw what an impressionable people I had to deal with. I further
-calculated that once we had joined in public service together the edge
-of hostility would lose its sharpness. I did not leave it at this, but
-entered the markets without a guard and held conferences with both
-peasant and workman, stating our reasons for coming and the friendly
-service we wished to perform. It was clear from the beginning that my
-safety depended upon our securing the confidence of the majority of the
-people. A mere military parade would have failed, but with a thorough
-understanding of our object in entering so far into their country we
-gained their confidence and enlisted their help. On the other hand,
-there is a small proportion of disgruntled and abnormal people in all
-communities who cannot be controlled by reason, and for whom force is
-the only argument, and for these we also made ample provision.
-
-There was not much interest in the remainder of the Manchurian and
-Mongolian part of the journey until we arrived at Manchulli. This was
-occupied by the Japanese Division under the command of General Fugi.
-Here it was necessary to get a supply of fresh bread and exercise the
-transport. I paid my respects to the Chinese general, who had just lost
-part of his barracks, forcibly taken from him for the occupation of
-Japanese troops. I also paid an official visit to General Fugi and Staff
-and the Russian commandant of the station.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-FURTHER INCIDENTS OF OUR JOURNEY
-
-
-It was at Manchulli that an incident happened which was much talked
-about at the time and was given many strange versions. It is quite
-easily explained when all the facts are known. It was impossible to
-secure proper travelling accommodation for my officers, either at
-Spascoe or Nikolsk, but I was informed that such would be provided at
-Harbin. In company with the British Consul (Mr. Sly) I called upon the
-manager of the railway at Harbin to secure such accommodation. He was
-very polite and promised to do all he could to help, but next morning
-informed me that no carriage was available, but if I could find one
-empty I could take it. I failed, and reported the fact to him. He could
-do nothing, but said there were plenty at Manchulli held up by Colonel
-Semianoff and the Japanese, who laid hold of every carriage that tried
-to get through this station, and that Colonel Semianoff collected a
-great revenue by refusing to part with these carriages unless the user
-was prepared to pay very high prices for the same. If I was prepared to
-take the risk, and would use force if necessary to secure carriages, I
-should be able to get them there, and so far as the railway authorities
-at Harbin were concerned, I could take any two empty carriages I might
-find.
-
-The weather was beginning to get very cold, and each mile added to our
-discomfort, and the only accommodation for officers on two of the three
-trains were cattle trucks. After my official visit I made request for
-two carriages. The station commandant pretended to consult the Russian
-and Japanese officials, and then informed me that there was not one
-available. I told him it was untrue. He agreed that if I could point out
-any carriages unoccupied I could have them. He went with his register to
-the carriages I indicated, and he admitted they were idle and empty and
-I would be allowed to take them. I put a guard on the carriages and
-thought the incident settled, but nothing is settled for long in the Far
-East. I made request for these carriages to be shunted on to my trains,
-and after a two hours' wait went to the station about the shunting and
-was calmly informed that they knew nothing about the carriages. The
-commandant, with whom I arranged the matter, had gone home (an old
-dodge!), and would not be on duty till to-morrow, and that nothing else
-could be done.
-
-It was reported to me that the reason the carriages could not be secured
-was that the railway officials of a certain Power had given instructions
-that no "class" carriages were to be provided for British officers, as
-it was necessary that the population along the route should understand
-that we were not considered representatives of a first-class Power.
-Englishmen who have not travelled much in the Far East will scarcely
-understand the working of the Oriental mind in these matters. An officer
-of any Power who travels in a cattle truck will not only lose the
-respect of the Oriental for his own person, but will lower the standard
-of the country he represents, irrespective of its position in the comity
-of nations. The representative of the Isle of Man, if he travelled in
-the best style, would stand before the representative of His Majesty the
-King if his means of transit were that of a coolie. It is doubtless very
-stupid, but it is true. Your means of locomotion fixes your place in the
-estimation of the East, because it is visible to them, while your
-credentials are not.
-
-I there and then made up my mind to act, and if necessary go "the whole
-hog." I informed the authorities that nothing should be shunted in that
-station until those two carriages were joined to my trains, and
-proceeded to occupy the whole station. Up to this point I had neither
-seen nor heard anything of the Japanese in relation to this matter, but
-they now came on the scene, and I soon discovered that it was they who
-had engineered the whole opposition to the British officers getting
-suitable accommodation, and had spirited away the old commandant who had
-registered the carriages to me. At first they did not know the correct
-line to adopt, but made a request that the guard should be taken off the
-station. My answer was, "Yes, instantly, if it is understood that these
-carriages are to be shunted to my trains." They agreed to this, and my
-guards were taken off, having held the station for twenty-three minutes.
-I had my evening meal, and was expecting to start when I was informed
-that the Japanese had now placed guards upon my carriages and refused
-to allow them to be shunted on to my train. I thought this was just
-about the limit, and before taking action decided I had better discover
-the reason, if any, for what seemed a definite breach of faith. I
-visited the Japanese station officer, and he said that they had just
-discovered that these two carriages were set aside to convey General
-Fugi to Harbin a few days hence. I refused to believe that such a
-discovery could have only just been made, and I would take the carriages
-by force if necessary.
-
-It looked very awkward, and a Japanese Staff officer was sent for. I
-sent my liaison officer (Colonel Frank) to find the absent station
-commandant who had allocated the cars to me. The Japanese Staff officer
-was expressing his sorrow for my not being able to get any carriages for
-my officers and pointing out how impossible it would be for the train of
-General Fugi to be broken up by the loss of the two carriages I had
-claimed, when in stalked the old Russian commandant and blew these
-apologies sky high by declaring that these carriages had nothing to do
-with General Fugi's train; that they were unemployed, and they were
-mine. I decided to strengthen the guard to eighteen men on each
-carriage, and offered protection to the railwaymen who shunted them to
-my train. The Japanese soldiers followed the carriages on to my train,
-so that we had the strange sight of a row of Tommies with fixed bayonets
-on the cars, and a row of Japanese soldiers on the ground guarding the
-same carriages. No officer came to give them open instructions, but the
-Jap soldiers disappeared one at a time until the Tommies were left in
-undisputed possession.
-
-We returned to my car to find it guarded by Chinese soldiers. I asked
-the reason, and was informed that at an earlier stage of this incident a
-Chinese officer had been to my car with a note to inform me that the
-great friendship which the Chinese always bore to the great English
-nation made it impossible for them to stand by and allow their friends
-to be attacked while passing through Chinese territory. I thanked them
-for their friendship, and suggested that Englishmen were always capable
-of protecting themselves in any part of the world, wherever their duty
-took them; but they would listen to nothing, and remained on guard until
-my train moved out of the station.
-
-I do not suppose there was at any time real danger of a collision
-between the different forces at Manchulli, but it had the appearance of
-a very ugly episode that might have developed into one of international
-importance. I took my stand for the sole purpose of maintaining the
-dignity of the British Army. Other incidents connected with this small
-dispute about officer accommodation, yet having nothing to do with it,
-made me determined to carry my point.
-
-During these proceedings I noticed my liaison officer in angry dispute
-with two Japanese officers against a truck carrying the Union Jack as an
-indication of the nationality of the train. They were pointing to the
-flag in such a manner that I saw at once the dispute was about this
-offending emblem. When the Japanese officers had moved away I called
-Colonel Frank to me and inquired the cause of dispute. He said: "I can
-understand the contempt of the Japanese for our Russia; she is down and
-is sick, but why they should wish to insult their Ally, England, I
-cannot understand. The Japanese officers who have just left me inquired
-where the English commander got his authority to carry an English flag
-on his train. I answered it was an English train carrying an English
-battalion to Omsk, and no authority was necessary. The Japanese officers
-replied that they considered the flying of any other flag than theirs in
-Manchuria or Siberia an insult to Japan. I told them they were fools,
-that if the English commander had heard their conversation (they both
-spoke in Russian) he would demand an apology. At which they grinned and
-departed." We tried every means to find the two officers, but were
-unable to do so. This was the atmosphere in which we discussed the
-smaller subject, and may explain the obstinacy of both sides; at any
-rate, it had something to do with my determination.
-
-We arrived at Chita without further incident of importance. Bread and
-horse exercise delayed us one whole day, and inability to secure engines
-part of another, until in desperation I went with a squad of men to the
-sheds and forced an engine-driver to take out his engine, I myself
-riding on the tender, where I nearly lost my sight with hot debris from
-the funnel, while Major Browne, who stood sentinel beside the driver,
-had holes scorched in his uniform. This act of violence secured not only
-an engine for my train, but for the others also.
-
-I had broken my glasses, and it was necessary to secure others. I walked
-to the town and called at the shop of a jeweller and optician, with whom
-we conversed. Other customers joined in the talk, and we were here
-informed of the murder of the present owner's mother during the
-Bolshevik occupation of the town. The Soviet Commisar, with Red
-soldiers, visited the shop one day to loot the stock. The mother, an old
-lady over sixty years of age who was then looking after the business,
-protested against the robbery of her property. The commisar ordered one
-of the Red Guard to bayonet her, which he did. They then proceeded to
-remove everything of value, locked up the premises with the dead woman
-still lying on the shop floor, and for several days refused permission
-to her neighbours to give her decent burial on the plea that she was a
-counter-revolutionist. It was evident from the appearance of the place
-that the Red soldiers were pretty expert at this sort of business; but
-stories like this are so numerous that it is nauseating to repeat them.
-
-The next point of interest was Lake Baikal, or as it is more correctly
-described by the Russians, the "Baikal Sea." We approached this famous
-lake on a very cold Sunday evening, and long before we reached its
-shores the clear cold depths of the water gave evidence of its presence
-in the changed atmosphere. A furious gale was blowing across the lake
-from the west, which lashed huge waves into fury and foam as they beat
-in endless confusion on the rockbound shore. Blinding snow mixed with
-the spray gave the inky blackness of the night a weird and sombre
-appearance. Our Cossack attendant, Marca, droned a folk-song about the
-wonders of the Baikal, which, when interpreted by my liaison officer,
-fitted the scene to a fraction. We put up the double windows, listed the
-doors and turned in for the night. I was fearful that we should leave
-the lake before morning and so fail to get a daylight view of this most
-interesting part of our journey. We all awoke early to find the scene so
-changed as to appear almost miraculous.
-
-The strange light of these northern zones was gently stealing over an
-immense sea of clear, perfectly calm, glassy water, which enabled us to
-locate the whiter coloured rocks at enormous depths. A fleecy line of
-cloud hung lazily over the snow-capped mountains. The Great Bear nearly
-stood on his head, and the Pole Star seemed to be almost over us. The
-other stars shone with icy cold brilliance and refused to vanish, though
-the sun had begun to rise. And such a rising! We could not see that
-welcome giver of warmth and life, but the beautiful orange and purple
-halo embraced half the world. From its centre shot upwards huge, long
-yellow streamers which penetrated the darkness surrounding the stars and
-passed beyond into never-ending space. Gradually these streamers took a
-more slanting angle until they touched the highest peaks and drove the
-cloud lower and lower down the side of the mountains. I have been on
-the Rigi under similar conditions, but there is nothing in the world
-like an autumn sunrise on Lake Baikal. I stopped the train ostensibly to
-allow water to be obtained for breakfast, but really to allow the men to
-enjoy what was in my opinion the greatest sight in the world. Some of
-the men were as entranced as myself, while others (including officers)
-saw nothing but plenty of clean fresh water for the morning ablutions.
-We all have our several tastes even in His Majesty's Army.
-
-Rumour says there are exactly the same fish to be found in Lake Baikal
-as in the sea, with other varieties which represent ordinary fresh-water
-types. I do not believe there is any authority for these statements. Sea
-gulls of every known category are certainly to be found there, and wild
-duck in variety and numbers to satisfy the most exacting sportsman.
-
-Passing along this wonderful panorama for some hours we arrived at
-Baikal. The maps supplied to me show the railway as making a bee line
-from the south of the lake to Irkutsk. This is not so; the line does not
-deviate an inch from the western shores of the lake until it touches the
-station. Baikal is reached nearly opposite the point at which the
-railway strikes the lake on the eastern side. The lake is fed by the
-River Selengha, which drains the northern mountains and plains of
-Mongolia. No river of importance enters it on the north except the
-short, high Anghara; in fact, the rivers Armur and Lenha start from
-quite near its northern and eastern extremities. It is drained on the
-west by the famous River Anghara, which rises near Baikal, and enters
-the Polar Sea at a spot so far north as to be uninhabitable, except for
-the white bears who fight for the possession of icebergs.
-
-Baikal had been the scene of a titanic struggle between the
-Czecho-Slovak forces and the Bolsheviks, who had in case of defeat
-planned the complete and effective destruction of the line by blowing up
-the numerous tunnels alongside the lake, which it must have taken at
-least two years to repair. The Czechs moved so rapidly, however, that
-the enemy were obliged to concentrate at Baikal for the defence of their
-own line of communication. Before they had made up their minds that they
-were already defeated a lucky Czech shot struck their store of dynamite
-and blew the station, their trains, and about three hundred of their men
-to smithereens. The remainder retreated off the line in a southerly
-direction, and after many days' pursuit were lost in the forests which
-form the chief barrier between Siberia and Mongolia, to emerge later on
-an important point on the railway near Omsk.
-
-We stopped at Baikal for water and fuel, and examined the damage done by
-the explosion. The great iron steamer which used to be employed to
-convey the train from one side of the lake to the other was almost
-destroyed, its funnels and upper works being wrenched and twisted beyond
-repair. But out from every crevice of her hull and from every broken
-carriage came German and Austrian prisoners of war dressed in every
-conceivable style of uniform. There was no guard of any description, but
-they all appeared to be under the direction of a young German officer,
-who saluted very stiffly as we passed. No doubt existed amongst these
-Germans (so I heard from our men later) that we were tramping towards
-Germany and certain death. Not one would believe but that Germany would
-win the war, and destroy not only England, but also America. They had no
-feelings about France, nor would they consider her as other than an
-already half-digested morsel. Quartermaster-Captain Boulton put it to
-one prisoner: "But suppose Germany were defeated?" "Then," said the
-prisoner, "I would never return to Germany again." We fell in with
-thousands of German prisoners who all held a most perplexing view of
-ourselves. They described us as the only real and bitter enemy of their
-country. But the same men would volunteer to work for us rather than for
-any other Ally, because they said we treated them fairly and behaved to
-them like men, and listened to their grievances. That is something at
-any rate.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-BEYOND THE BAIKAL
-
-
-From Baikal to Irkutsk is a short run down the left bank of the Anghara.
-We arrived at Irkutsk about the same time as a small detachment of
-Japanese troops, who were acting as a guard to their traders and their
-stores, who usually travel with the army. The Japs have very pretty
-bugle calls for different military purposes, mostly in the same key,
-with a sort of Morse code for the different orders, but a Japanese bugle
-band is the most terrible thing in the world of sound. It makes one
-either swear or laugh, according to one's taste. They gave us an
-exhibition in moving off from the station, which everyone who heard will
-never forget. I was rather surprised to find that the Jap traders had
-established themselves at Irkutsk, as their headquarters were at Chita,
-which was also the centre of their agent, Semianoff. Why they came to
-Irkutsk at all is a problem. It was generally understood that some of
-the Allies were prepared to concede them only the fairest part of
-Siberia up to Lake Baikal. Perhaps they had heard whispers of the
-mineral wealth of the Urals.
-
-Irkutsk, situated on the right bank of the Anghara, is a rather fine old
-town for Siberia. Its Greek cathedral has a commanding position, and
-contests successfully with the Cadet School for supremacy as the
-outstanding architectural feature first to catch the eye. The town is
-approached by a quaint, low wooden bridge which spans the swiftly
-running river. When we saw it the battered remnants of human society
-were grimly collecting themselves together after some months of
-Bolshevik anarchy and murder. Whole streets were merely blackened ruins,
-and trade, which had been at a complete standstill, was just beginning
-to show a return to life. Putting out its feelers, it had taken upon
-itself a precarious life not yet free from danger. The 25th Battalion
-Middlesex Regiment was the only British unit in the country; it had
-spread itself out in a remarkable manner, and shown the flag on a front
-of 5,000 miles. In spite of its category it had brought confidence and
-hope to a helpless people out of all proportion to its strength or
-ability.
-
-A public banquet (the first since the Revolution) was held ostensibly to
-welcome Volagodsky, the Social Revolutionary President of the Siberian
-Council, but really to welcome the first British regiment that had ever
-entered and fought in Siberia. It was a great occasion, and the first
-real evidence I had seen of possible national regeneration. Even here it
-was decidedly Separatist, and therefore Japanese in character; a
-glorification of Siberia and Siberian efforts, completely ignoring the
-efforts of other Russians in the different parts of their Empire.
-Evanoff Renoff, the Cossack Ataman, led the panegyric of Siberia, and
-the President and the Secretary for Foreign Affairs, a long, watery-eyed
-young man, joined in the chorus. They were doubtless all well pleased
-with themselves, and thoroughly enjoying a partial return to the old
-conditions. Colonel Frank translated in a whisper all that was said, so
-that I got a good hang to the mental atmosphere of this unique
-gathering. The toast of their Ally, Great Britain, was the occasion
-which brought me to my feet. The band played "Rule Britannia" as a
-substitute for "God Save the King," for the simple reason that though
-mostly Social Revolutionaries they dared not play a Royalist hymn until
-they had tested the feelings of their audience. This gave me my cue. I
-laughed at their fears, and informed them that whatever happened, our
-anthem, which for the time represented the unity of our race, would be
-played by my band at the ceremonial to-morrow, and all the Bolsheviks in
-Russia would not be powerful enough to prevent it. From this I led to
-the flag, another great emblem of racial unity. I called attention to
-the entire absence of a Russian flag from Vladivostok to Irkutsk, and
-asked, "Is this the country of the once great and mighty Russia that a
-stranger travels over without knowing what country it is?" I suggested
-that though we had twenty revolutions I could never imagine Englishmen
-being ashamed of the English flag or afraid to call themselves
-Englishmen. The translation of my remarks ended in a wonderful ovation,
-and I thought the band would never play anything else but the National
-Anthem, which it repeated again and again.
-
-My list of telegrams and messages of every kind and character from every
-part of Russia and the outside world, together with constant repetition
-of the speech in the Press, indicates plainly that from this day began
-the resurrection of the Russian soul. Another sign of renewed vigour and
-life was the fact that from that day the Russian flag (minus the Crown)
-flew from the flagpost over every big station we passed, and on all
-public buildings. The Russians are extremely emotional, and I had
-managed to strike the right chord the first time.
-
-The day following we marched to the square space surrounding the
-cathedral, and I inspected the newly-formed units of the army. Splendid
-men with good physique, but slow and stilted in movement. The remnant of
-the cadets who had escaped the general massacre was there, a wonderfully
-smart set of beautiful boys, who at a distance, looking at their faces
-only, I took for girls, much to the disgust of the colonel in charge. It
-was altogether a fine and impressive sight, with big crowds and the fine
-cathedral as a background. With the "Present" and "The King" at the end,
-every man present uncovered, and an old Russian lady knelt and kissed my
-adjutant's hand and blessed us as "saviours," while the commandant asked
-for cheers for "the only country which came to our help without
-conditions." I wonder how that will pan out?
-
-We were entertained at the British Consul's, followed by a concert at
-night. It was terribly cold, and no droshkies were to be had. We had to
-walk to the theatre in a blinding snowstorm. At 2 A.M. we started on our
-last lap.
-
-The sentiments of the people changed completely every few hundred
-miles. After leaving Irkutsk we soon discovered that we were in enemy
-territory, and the few weeks, and in some cases days, that had elapsed
-since the retirement of the Bolshevik Commissars had left the country
-the prey of the desperado. Let there be no mistake, Bolshevism lived by
-the grace of the old régime. The peasant had his land, but the Russian
-workman had nothing. Not one in a thousand could tell one letter of the
-alphabet from another. He was entirely neglected by the State; there was
-not a single effective State law dealing with the labour conditions or
-the life of the worker in the whole Russian code. His condition was, and
-will remain, in spite of the Revolution, utterly neglected and hopeless.
-He has not the power to think or act for himself, and is consequently
-the prey of every faddist scamp who can string a dozen words together
-intelligently. There are no trade unions, because there is no one
-amongst them sufficiently intelligent either to organise or manage them.
-All the alleged representatives of Labour who have from time to time
-visited England pretending to represent the Russian workmen are so many
-deputational frauds. There cannot be such a delegate from the very
-nature of things, as will be seen if the facts are studied on the spot.
-The lower middle classes, especially the professional teacher class,
-have invented the figment of organised Russian labour for their own
-purpose.
-
-The condition of the Russian workman is such that he can only formulate
-his grievances by employing others to do it for him. Hence there has
-come into existence numerous professional councils, who for a
-consideration visit the workers in their homes and wherever they
-congregate, and compile their complaints and grievances. But these
-professionals always point out that the rectification of small points
-like rates of wages and working hours are a waste of time and energy;
-that the real work is to leave the conditions so bad that, in sheer
-despair, the worker will rise and destroy capitalism in a night, and
-have a perfect millennium made ready for the next morning.
-
-The poor, ignorant, uneducated, neglected Russian workman is perfect and
-well-prepared soil for such propaganda. He found himself bound hand and
-foot in the meshes of this professional element, who did not belong to
-his class and, except in theory, knew nothing of his difficulties. When
-this professional element had misled, bamboozled and deserted him, in a
-frenzy of despair he determined to destroy this thing called education,
-and made the ability to read and write one of the proofs of enmity to
-his class on the same principle that our uneducated workmen of the first
-half of the nineteenth century destroyed machinery and other progressive
-innovations, whose purpose they did not understand. There would be less
-chatter about revolution if our people could only understand what it
-means to go through the horrors that have destroyed Russia and her
-people more effectively than the most ruthless invasion.
-
-We stopped at a station near a mining village largely peopled with
-emigrant Chinese workmen. We removed the Bolshevik flag from the
-flag-post, and insisted upon the Russian flag being run up in its stead.
-A Russian woman told us to go back, and when we asked her why, she said,
-"Well, it does not matter; our men will soon find enough earth to bury
-you." But another Russian woman thanked us for coming, and hoped we were
-not too late to save a country that was sick unto death.
-
-That night we ran into Zema station, where we came to a sudden stop. I
-sent my liaison officer to find the cause, and he informed me that a
-body of men were beside the engine and threatening to shoot the driver
-if he moved another foot. I ordered the "Alarm" to be sounded, and
-instantly 400 British soldiers tumbled out of the trucks. Taking their
-prearranged positions, they fixed bayonets and awaited orders. My
-carriage was the last vehicle of the train. I walked forward to find the
-cause of our enforced stoppage, and was just in time to see in the
-darkness a squad of armed men leaving the station. I took possession of
-the station and telegraphs, and then heard from the officials that
-Bolshevik agents had come to the town and had persuaded the workmen to
-leave work, to take arms and cut the line to prevent the Allies moving
-forward, and await the arrival of the Bolshevik force which had retired
-from Baikal. This force had worked its way along the Mongolian frontier,
-and was now feeling its way towards the line to destroy the bridge which
-carries the railway over the River Ocka at a point about three versts
-from Zema. I placed guards around and in the railway works, engine
-sheds, and approaches, and discovering telegrams still passing between
-the Bolsheviks and the inhabitants, I occupied by force the post and
-telegraph office in the town. Orders were issued that all men must
-pledge themselves not to interfere with the trains, and return to work
-by 6 A.M., or they would be dealt with under martial law. Two hours
-elapsed, during which time my other trains arrived, with machine-gun
-section complete, and the whole force were disposed to receive attack.
-
-The troops surrounded the house of the leader of the movement, but the
-bird had flown. I found some Bolshevik literature advocating the
-wholesale destruction of the _bourgeoisie_ and _intelligenzia_ (I forget
-which they put first), also 3,600 roubles, which I gave back to the
-wife, saying, "That is a gift from me to you." This act disgusted the
-local chief of the gendarmerie, who assured me that it was German money
-and ought to be confiscated. I had no doubt it was, but then I was
-English, and a Hampshire man at that. Then the usual teacher arrived and
-asked if he would be allowed to speak to the "Anglisky Polkovnika."
-Receiving an affirmative, he entered and began the conversation. He
-naïvely confessed that if he had known it was an "Anglisky" train he
-would have allowed it to pass. They had read my order as to their pledge
-to return to work, and wanted to know what I proposed to do if they did
-not do so. I answered that after having taken up arms against us they
-could expect no mercy, and that if they did not obey my orders every
-leader I could find I would shoot. The teacher inquired if I would
-allow the men to be called together for consultation by their
-prearranged signal at the works. I agreed, if they came without arms.
-Soon after, the most awful sound came from a huge buzzer. It was now
-midnight, and the air was rent by a wailing sound that grew in volume,
-to die away into a world sob. Every Britisher there was affected in some
-peculiar fashion; to myself it was like nothing so much as a mighty
-groan from a nation in distress. Colonel Frank, my Russian guide,
-philosopher and friend, ran from the table when the sound began, and
-paced the car in evident anguish, and as it died away exclaimed, "Poor
-Russia!" and I had felt the same thought running through my mind. All my
-men expressed themselves in similar sentiments and as never wanting to
-hear it again.
-
-My business was to get out of the place as quickly as possible, but to
-leave the line safe. The small militia force was quite inadequate to
-deal with a population fully armed. Hence I ordered the surrender of all
-arms by the inhabitants, and allowed twelve hours in which this was to
-be done.
-
-Six A.M. arrived, and my officers reported all men at work except eight,
-and these reported later and asked forgiveness, which was readily
-granted. I then informed the management that I intended to call a
-meeting of the men and hear their grievances. The management tried to
-dissuade me from my purpose, but I at once ordered their attendance in
-the headquarters of the works at 10 A.M., when I would hear the men's
-complaints. Promptly to time the work finished, and the men crowded to
-the spot selected. A British sentry with fixed bayonet and loaded rifle
-stood on either side as I sat at the table, while others were placed in
-selected positions about the building. I called the managers and heads
-of all the departments first, and warned them that I had been forced to
-take this trouble into my own hands, that I intended to settle it, and
-that if they interfered with the men in any way, either by harsh
-measures or victimisation, I would place them under court-martial just
-the same as I would any workman who prevented the smooth working of the
-railway; in fact, they being presumably more intelligent, would find no
-mercy. This information caused quite a commotion amongst all concerned.
-I asked the men to state their grievances. The first workman said he had
-no economic grievance; his was political. He had been told the Allies
-were counter-revolutionists, and as such should be destroyed. Two or
-three protested against this, and said they came out on economic
-grounds. They said their objection was to piece-work. I tried to get a
-statement from them that their wages were low, but they would not
-consent to this, admitting that their pay for the same work was five
-times what it was in 1917.
-
-I came to the conclusion that it was more of a military movement on the
-part of the Bolshevik leaders than a strike such as we understand it in
-England. I gave my decision that the men's leaders were to be tried by
-General Field Court-Martial. The men's committee then said that they had
-never had the chance to meet anyone in authority before, that they were
-anxious not to appear as enemies to the great English people, that if I
-would carry out no further repressive action against them, they would
-continue to work until the end of the war. They heard that Bolsheviks
-were approaching their town, and knew the tortures in store for them if
-they were found continuing to help the Allies in their advance to the
-Urals. If I would secure protection for them they would sign an
-agreement never to strike until the war in Russia had ended. I believed
-them, and the agreement was signed, but I insisted upon disarmament.
-
-That evening the time limit in which the arms were to be handed in
-expired. We were informed by the local militia that some arms were
-handed in voluntarily, but many more remained.
-
-The following morning a train with General Knox and his Staff pulled
-into the station. I reported the whole occurrence to the general, and
-how I had received and sent forward notice of his coming and the object
-of his journey. It was here that he informed me of the outrage which the
-Japanese officers had perpetrated upon him, in spite of the fact that a
-big Union Jack was painted on the side of each carriage of his train.
-
-The inhabitants of Zema were just congratulating themselves on having
-got rid of the "Anglisky" when they suddenly found machine guns in
-position ready to spray all their main thoroughfares with lead should
-the occasion arise. Sections of the town were searched, house by house,
-until the piles of arms necessitated transport to remove them. Real
-sporting guns which could be used for no other purpose, and the owner
-of which was guaranteed by the local police, were returned. In some
-houses dumps of looted fabrics from other towns were taken possession
-of, and altogether work for the courts was found for the next two
-months.
-
-The echo of Zema travelled far and wide, and gave the authorities an
-object-lesson how to tackle a cancer as deadly as it was devilish. When
-Kerensky destroyed the old Russian army sixteen million ignorant and
-uneducated soldiers took their rifles and ammunition home. This was the
-insoluble problem of every attempt to re-establish order in the Russian
-dominions. The Middlesex Regiment made the first plunge at Zema, and
-others soon followed along the path indicated. We re-armed the local
-militia, and we took the remainder of the confiscated arms to Omsk,
-where they were taken over by the Russian authorities for the new
-Russian army. I wired to Irkutsk for reinforcements for the local
-militia, as I did not think them strong enough to deal with the
-possibilities of the situation. The commandant at Irkutsk wired that he
-had information which proved there was no truth in the rumoured approach
-of Bolshevik forces, which reply I knew from the experience I had gained
-in Russian ways merely indicated his determination not to weaken his own
-guard.
-
-At midnight I started on my further journey. About a fortnight later I
-received a despairing message from the local militia chief at Zema for
-help; he said he was nearly surrounded by the Baikal Bolshevik
-contingent, which had suddenly appeared. I took the message to Russian
-Headquarters at Omsk, and called attention to my wire to Irkutsk and the
-refusal to protect this part of the line. Later I received a report from
-the commander of the Russian force sent to deal with the situation. He
-said that the Bolshevik leader had come into Zema expecting to receive
-material and military help from the people. He found them disarmed and
-unfriendly, and determined to take no part in further outrages against
-established order. He wreaked vengeance upon some of his false friends,
-and was then surprised by Government troops, who dispersed his forces,
-killing 180 and capturing 800, together with ten machine guns and 150
-horses.
-
-As a rule, Bolshevik contingents were easily disposed of in a town. They
-usually looted everything and everybody. Officers were elected from day
-to day, with the result that such a thing as discipline did not exist.
-Still, had that party arrived when I was in Zema we should have had a
-pitched battle worth a lifetime, for as it turned out they had many
-machine guns, while we had only four; but there would never have been
-any doubt about the result, for though we were only a "garrison
-battalion," the steadiness of my men under fire had hitherto been
-excellent.
-
-We had been passing through hundreds of miles of wonderful virgin
-forests for the last two weeks, with only an occasional opening for
-village cultivation and an occasional log town of more or less
-importance. The hills and valleys as we approached Krasnoyarsk, covered
-with pine trees and frozen rivers, looked like a huge never-ending
-Christmas card. At last we arrived at Krasnoyarsk, a large, straggling
-town of great importance on the River Yenisei. As we approached we
-passed miles of derelict war material--tractors, wagons, guns of every
-kind and calibre all cast aside as useless, there being no place where
-minor defects could be repaired. Some had no apparent defects, but there
-they lay, useful and useless, a monument to the entire absence of
-organisation in everything Russian.
-
-I had suffered a slight indisposition, so Major Browne deputised for me,
-and inspected the Russian and Czech guards of honour drawn up to welcome
-the troops on their arrival. I found the town in a very disturbed
-condition, and as it was necessary to guard the great bridge, I accepted
-the suggestion to quarter a company under the command of Captain
-Eastman, O.B.E., in the excellent barracks which had been prepared for
-my unit. This place had been originally fixed upon as the station for
-the whole battalion, but important events were happening in Omsk. Our
-High Commissioner, Sir Charles Eliot, and the Chief of the British
-Military Mission, General Knox, had already arrived there, and required
-a guard, hence I was ordered to proceed with the remainder of my
-battalion. We remained in Krasnoyarsk for two days, and marched through
-the town and saluted the British Consulate. On the last evening the
-usual banquet was held in our honour, and is worth a few words because
-of an incident which created great interest at the time. The guests were
-made up of many officers and others in uniform, and also civilian
-representatives of the Town Council, the district Zemstvo, and other
-public organisations. The usual fraternal speeches and toasts were
-given, and not more than the usual six speakers attempted to deliver an
-address at one time. A number of dark-featured, glowering civilians sat
-at a table almost opposite to myself, men who by their attire and sombre
-looks appeared to be unsuited to the banquet atmosphere, and out of
-place amongst the gorgeous uniforms of Cossack Atamans and Russian
-generals. They seemed to take not the slightest interest in the
-proceedings except for a few moments when certain of my words were being
-translated. All seemed bent on the business of the evening and a good
-dinner, indicating a return to normal conditions. A Social Revolutionary
-representative of the town delivered a furious tirade, which I could get
-my officer to translate only in part, but even that part showed me the
-world-wide division of opinion amongst my Russian hosts.
-
-The orchestra, composed of German and Austrian prisoners, discoursed
-sweet music during the evening, alternately listening to the fiery
-eloquence of Cossack and Tartar. A Cossack officer, who had drunk a
-little vodka, rose and gave an order to the band, but the prisoners only
-got out about three notes. What was in those notes, Heaven only knows!
-Instantly the whole banqueting hall was a scene of indescribable
-confusion. Tartar and Cossack shouted with glee; older Russian officers
-ordered the band to stop, and vainly tried to silence the disorder. The
-dark-visaged and apparently unemotional civilians threw off their
-armour of unconcern, and hurled epithets and shook clenched fists and
-defiance at their military fellow-countrymen. Then they all rushed out
-of the building in a body, hissing and spluttering like a badly
-constructed fuse in a powder trail. It was like the explosion of a small
-magazine. I had no idea what had happened, but took in the full
-significance of the scene I had witnessed when told that the notes which
-had acted like a bomb formed the first bar of "God Save the Tsar." A few
-miles farther on the Autocrat of All the Russias had already met an
-ignominious death by being thrown down a disused pit near the line
-dividing Asia and Europe. In death, as in life, he remained the divider
-of his people.
-
-The trains started off during the night, and on the evening of the next
-day we arrived at Hachinsk, where a Russian guard did the usual military
-honours, and a sad-faced, deep-eyed priest presented me with bread and
-salt, as becomes a Tartar who welcomes a friend. It was lucky for me
-that I had some little training in public speaking, and that "Polkovnika
-Franka" could make such excellent translations, or we might not have
-made such a good impression as I flatter myself we did on some
-occasions.
-
-At last we arrived at Omsk, the end of our journey, having passed in a
-zigzag direction almost round the world. A few miles to the Urals and
-Europe again--so near and yet so far!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-OMSK
-
-
-As Omsk, unlike so many other towns of Siberia, did not care to pay the
-usual toll demanded by the railway prospectors, it is situated several
-versts from the main trunk line. To overcome this inconvenience a branch
-line was afterwards run up to the town itself. The date of our arrival
-was October 18, and a right royal welcome awaited us. The station was
-decorated with the flags of all nations, the Russian for the first time
-predominating. We were met by General Matkofsky, the commander of the
-district, and his Staff, who welcomed us on behalf of the new Russian
-army, by M. Golovaehoff, Assistant Minister for Foreign Affairs, and the
-representatives of the municipal authorities and the co-operative
-societies. The women of Russia presented us with bread and salt, and,
-generally speaking, the people of Omsk gave us a real Russian welcome.
-The ceremonial over, the men were taken to the Cadet School for tea and
-entertainment, while the Russian officers regaled the Middlesex officers
-at a feast in the Officers' Club. We were introduced to all and sundry,
-and began to mix wonderfully well. If we had laid ourselves out for it,
-we might have visited every decent Russian home in Omsk. As it was, we
-soon became so much in demand that most of us had in a short time
-formed lasting friendships with a very charming set of people. Their
-welcome was doubtless tinged with relief at the security afforded by the
-presence of well-disciplined troops. The wife of a Russian general told
-me that she felt as though for the first time she could sleep peacefully
-in her bed. The little cadet son of another officer gave permission for
-his loaded rifle to be taken from the side of his bed, where it had
-rested every night since the Bolshevik Revolution and the cadet
-massacres had commenced. If I understand the Russian character denials
-of this may be expected, but it is a fact that the presence of those 800
-English soldiers gave a sense of confidence and security to the people
-of Omsk that was pathetic in its simplicity and warmth. However
-suspicious of each other as a rule the Russians may be, there is no
-question that when their confidence is given, it is given generously and
-without reservation. As to its lasting qualities, that has to be proved,
-but at the time it is something real and tangible, and no amount of
-trouble taken for one's comfort is too great.
-
-On the date of arrival I had only a few moments for conversation with
-Sir Charles Eliot, our High Commissioner, on the political situation. I
-gathered from him and his Staff that a desperate effort was being made
-to join the forces of the Directorate of Five, which stood as the
-All-Russian Government and received its authority from the Constituent
-Assembly at Ufa--largely Social Revolutionary in character--and the
-Siberian Government, the outcome of the Siberian Districts Duma, which
-met at Tomsk and was largely reactionary, with a small mixture of
-Socialist opinion. The English and French representatives were genuinely
-anxious that a workable compromise should be made between these two
-groups and a Cabinet formed that would give confidence to moderate
-Russian opinion, and so command Allied recognition with reasonable
-prospects of success. This very desirable ambition of the Allied
-"politicals" had the sympathy of every friend of Russia, but advice is
-one thing, accomplishment another. It was impossible to expect that the
-effects of hundreds of years of tyranny and bad government could be
-swept away by the waving of a diplomatic wand. The Siberian Government
-was largely composed of the "old gang," Revolutionary and Royalist, and
-derived its support almost exclusively from the desire of the people to
-escape further bloodshed; it was guarded by the Royalist Cossack clans,
-as lawless as they are brave. The Ufa Directorate derived its authority
-from the moderate Social Revolutionary party composed of the
-"Intelligenzia"--republican, visionary, and impractical. Kerensky was,
-from all accounts, a perfect representative of this class, verbose and
-useless so far as practical reconstructive work was concerned. This
-class blamed the unswerving loyalty of the Cossacks and the old army
-officers for all the crimes of which the Tsars were guilty, and had
-hunted them like rats in cellars and streets during the worst days of
-the Second Revolution. The officer and Cossack class cursed Kerensky and
-the Social Revolutionaries for destroying the old army and letting free
-the forces of anarchy and Bolshevism, which had destroyed the State and
-had massacred the manhood of Russia in an orgy of violence and hate.
-
-There should be no mistake made as to the apportionment of blame.
-Kerensky is considered by all classes of Russian society as the cause of
-all their calamities. They think, rightly or wrongly, that at the
-supreme moment when the destiny of his race and country was placed in
-his hands he proved traitor to the trust; that had he possessed
-one-tenth of the courage of either Lenin or Trotsky millions of Russians
-would have been saved from worse than death.
-
-To combine these hostile and divergent elements into a united party for
-the resurrection of Russia seemed impossible to me, as it did to one
-other Britisher, Mr. David Frazer, the _Times_ Pekin correspondent; but
-the "politicals" thought otherwise. That they were guided by the highest
-motives and that they gave of their very best in the interest of the
-Russian people no one who has the slightest knowledge of the high
-personal character of our representatives could doubt for a moment, but
-they tried to accomplish the unattainable. The most that could be said
-of their policy is that it was worth attempting. Try they did, and under
-the influence of the Bolshevik guns booming along the Urals and of
-Royalist conspiracies at Chita a piece of paper was produced with a
-number of names upon it which seemed to bear the resemblance of a
-working arrangement between these two opposites.
-
-I am writing this within three weeks of the occurrence, and may modify
-my views later, but for the life of me I cannot understand the
-satisfaction of our "politicals" with their work. They "downed tools" at
-once and disappeared from the scene of their triumph as though the few
-names on a piece of paper had solved the whole problem of the future of
-Russia. It would be mighty interesting to know the nature of their
-communications to their respective Governments. One thing, however, had
-been done which was fated to have important after-effects. Vice-Admiral
-Koltchak had been brought into the new Council of Ministers with the
-title of Minister for War. I had never met the officer, and knew nothing
-about him or his reputation, and merely lumped him in with the rest as
-an additional unit in an overcrowded menagerie. Frazer and I had many
-talks about these events, but we could fasten on to nothing real in the
-situation except danger.
-
-On November 6, 1918, we were all invited to a banquet in honour of this
-new All-Russian Government. It was to be the climax of all our efforts
-and a tangible evidence of the successful accomplishment of a great
-diplomatic task. I was rather late, and the ante-rooms were already
-filled with soldiers and diplomats in grand uniforms with glittering
-swords and decorations.
-
-I watched this peculiar and intensely highly-strung crowd with the
-greatest interest, and except for one figure--a sort of cross between a
-Methodist parson and a Plymouth Brother--was struck by the complete
-absence of personality amongst the people present. The parsonified
-person referred to turned out to be the Social Revolutionary,
-Volagodsky, President of the Siberian Council, who had now transferred
-his love from Siberia to the whole of Russia. But as my liaison officer
-was repeating the names of those present a smart little energetic figure
-entered the room. With eagle eyes he took in the whole scene at a
-glance. The other officers had bowed gracefully to all their friends and
-gallantly kissed the ladies' hands, while around them buzzed the
-conversation. For an instant the buzz ceased, during which the brown
-figure with the dark, clear-cut face shook hands with an officer friend
-and departed. The impression on my mind was that I had seen a small,
-vagrant, lonely, troubled soul without a friend enter unbidden to a
-feast.
-
-The new President of the Council of Ministers, Avkzentieff, presided at
-the banquet, and as we sat down I found myself at the end of the head
-table, which gave me a good view of the stranger I had seen in the
-vestibule sitting second round the corner. The dinner was good, the
-vodka gave warmth to the blood and made a very pleasant contrast to the
-"60 below" outside. Avkzentieff led the speeches. Immediately my mind
-flew to Hyde Park Corner, and then to the Lyceum stage with Irving in
-"The Bells." He spoke with assumed sincerity, cutting the air with his
-hands in the manner that a Cossack sweeps off a head with his blade. He
-sank his voice and hissed his words in a hoarse stage whisper, while
-pointing to the ceiling with a dramatic forefinger. In other words, he
-was the best actor it had been my pleasure to see for a long time--a
-second edition of his more famous colleague, the futile Kerensky.
-Little did I dream that within a few days I would beg for this man's
-life and that the Middlesex Regiment would shield him from eternity.
-
-Then followed a speech by General Knox (Chief of the British Military
-Mission), who implored all classes of Russian thought to pull together
-to establish an Army and a Government capable of supporting law and
-public order, a speech full of patriotism and very much to the point.
-Then came General Bolderoff, Commander-in-Chief of the new Russian army
-and military member of the Ufa Directorate. He had the appearance of a
-big, brave, blundering Russian officer. Not too much brain, cunning, but
-not clever. I should, however, give him credit for more than ordinary
-honesty. Later Admiral Koltchak spoke--just a few short definite
-sentences. Very few cheers or shouts greeted this orator. He seemed more
-lonely than ever, but presented a personality that dominated the whole
-gathering. There was the usual passing round and signing of menus. I
-sent mine direct to the admiral for his signature, and when he
-automatically passed it to General Bolderoff I said "Neat," and it was
-returned with the solitary name of this solitary man. I was now
-absolutely satisfied that the new Government was a combination that
-refused to mix, and took the most stringent precautions to see that my
-unit did not become involved in its impending overthrow. I, however,
-made an important discovery at this congratulatory banquet, namely, that
-Russia still had one man who was able to rescue her from anarchy.
-
-The business of Omsk went on much as usual, but Omsk society became
-more subdued in its whisperings. Clique countered clique, and
-conspirators undermined conspirators, while a peculiar tension hung over
-all.
-
-During the negotiations connected with the formation of this Government
-a very serious hitch occurred which at one time threatened the whole
-project with disaster. General Bolderoff was known as a Social
-Revolutionary in politics. Through him the Social Revolutionaries had
-practically supreme control of the new army. Avkzentieff and Co., aiming
-at Social Revolutionary control of all the forces of the new Government,
-demanded that a Social Revolutionary should also control the
-newly-organised militia, which were to act as a sort of military police
-under the new régime. This was resented by the more moderate members of
-both groups, as it would have practically placed all power in the hands
-of one group, and that not distinguished for administrative ability or
-caution. In addition to which, the very claim made the moderates
-suspicious as to the use for which such power was to be employed. The
-presence of the Allies and the determination to form some sort of
-administration overcame these suspicions, and the moderates gave way and
-left both forces under the command of the Social Revolutionary group.
-
-The Allies were pushing forward supplies intended for the new armies
-facing the Terrorists along the Ural front, but it was soon discovered
-that such arms were being deflected from their proper destination. The
-front line was kept denuded of arms and equipment of which it was in
-greatest need, while the militia in the rear, and under the Social
-Revolutionary control, were being regimented and fitted out with
-everything they required. The appeals of the front-line generals to
-Bolderoff, the Social Revolutionary Commander-in-Chief, fell on deaf
-ears, and things were getting into a serious condition. Admiral
-Koltchak, as Minister for War, presented the appeals to General
-Bolderoff, and backed them in a very determined manner. Bolderoff was
-equally outspoken, declaring that the appeals from the front were
-fictitious, and concluded one of these wrangles by informing the admiral
-that it was not his business; that the Social Revolutionary group had
-been forced by one of the Allies to accept the admiral as a member of
-the Government; that they had done so merely to secure Allied support
-and recognition, but he would remain a member of the Government only so
-long as he did not interfere in business from which, by a resolution of
-the Directorate, he was expressly excluded. Admiral Koltchak thereupon
-tendered his resignation, but was later prevailed upon to withdraw it so
-as to keep up a resemblance of harmony before the Allied Powers. He,
-however, insisted upon making a personal inspection of the front, for
-which permission was granted, as much to get him out of Omsk as for the
-proper performance of his ministerial duties.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-ALONG THE URALS
-
-
-On November 4 I received a telegram from Mr. Preston, British Consul at
-Ekaterinburg, asking that a detachment might be sent to attend on
-November 9 at the inauguration of Czech national life and the ceremonial
-presentation of colours to four Czech battalions of the Czech National
-Army. I consulted General Knox, and he having received a similar request
-from General Gaida, commanding at Ekaterinburg, that a detachment should
-visit the several fronts over the Urals for the purpose of giving moral
-support to the war-weary veterans of our Allies, it was decided that I
-should take the regimental band and a guard of one hundred picked men
-for this purpose. Both Czech and Russian were sad at the long weary wait
-between the promised help of England and the appearance of the first
-khaki-clad soldier on the scene.
-
-All preparations had been made for my journey, and I was timed to start
-from Omsk at 3 P.M. on Friday. Early on Friday I was informed that
-Admiral Koltchak, the Minister for War, was also travelling to the Czech
-ceremony, and, as engines were very scarce, would I allow his carriage
-to be attached to my train? I readily consented. About midday a further
-note informed me that the admiral's own car was found to be full of the
-wives and children of his old naval officers, that there were no other
-cars, but they hoped to be able to get another by 7 P.M. The result was
-that we did not turn out of the town station till that hour. We had only
-got to the lower station, less than a mile on our journey, when the
-officials informed me that something had broken on the admiral's
-carriage which would take two hours to repair. I felt there was a
-deliberate attempt being made by someone to prevent either the admiral
-or myself from performing our journey. At 11 P.M. I walked out to the
-workshops where the repairs were being effected, and sat on an anvil
-until 4 A.M., through a horrible Siberian night, while a good-tempered
-"Russky" blacksmith accomplished his part of the task.
-
-No Russian official would dream of doing a straight thing if a crooked
-one would accomplish his purpose. So "Polkovnika" Frank telegraphed in
-my name to all the railway section commandants ordering them under pain
-of summary execution to clear their part of the line and prepare express
-engines at each stopping-place ready to haul on to the admiral's train
-the moment it came in. We bribed an old Russian _provodnik_ to get us a
-Russian flag to fasten on the admiral's carriage, which he did, and we
-became the first Russian train that had dared to carry a Russian flag
-for nearly a year. We also had two Union Jacks, and altogether the
-Russian officials became suspicious that here at any rate was a
-combination of colour to which the greatest respect must be paid.
-
-The result was that we finally started on our journey at 7 A.M. instead
-of 7 P.M., just twelve hours late, and arrived at our destination one
-hour in front of time. Guards of honour awaited us, and breakfast of a
-more or less scanty character. A presentation of bread and salt, on a
-fine wooden dish on which the ladies had painted a picture of the old
-monastery under whose walls the great Czech national ceremony was to
-take place. We marched past the building in which the Tsar Nicholas II
-and his family had been imprisoned and from which they were taken to
-die. I am anxious not to believe the untold horrors alleged to have been
-inflicted on the female members of his family, but they are told
-categorically. It is best to believe nothing one hears in Russia, and
-what one actually sees is not always what it seems.
-
-We saluted the flag at the Consulate, where our great good comrade and
-fellow-countryman, Consul Preston, gave warmth and good cheer to man and
-beast. Suddenly we turned to the right and entered a huge square,
-already surrounded by Czech troops, infantry, artillery and cavalry. It
-was indeed a great sight. On the highest corner of the square a platform
-was erected, on the right of which we were given the post of honour, and
-for some strange reason which I could not understand were asked to play
-the British National Anthem, when the whole Czech Army came to the
-"Present!" as General Gaida and his Staff, with the colours, entered the
-square. I felt that we were celebrating the birth of a nation. The scene
-had that peculiar solemnity about it that makes the moment feel
-pregnant with world events. One of the units was my old Ussurie
-battalion, and our old chum, Captain (now Colonel) Stephan, was the
-proudest man there, as he bore from the hands of the priest the
-newly-consecrated colours of his country. What quantities of beer we
-shall drink together if I ever see him in his dear Prague, thinking of
-our thirsty days in Eastern Siberia!
-
-It was my first introduction to the dashing young Czech officer, General
-Gaida, who by sheer pluck had played such an important part in cutting a
-way for his army from west to east. We had the usual banquet, at which
-Admiral Koltchak delivered the first important speech since his
-appointment as Minister for War. I gave expression to the delight of my
-own country at the birth of new nations and the resurrection of freedom
-amongst the subject people of the world. I also gave expression to my
-pleasure that the first act of the new Russian Minister for War was to
-visit his army at the front and make himself personally acquainted with
-the conditions of the Russian soldiers who were so gallantly fighting to
-protect the people and the State from violence and anarchy.
-
-The ceremony over, we started at once for the Kunghure front, and the
-early morning found us sliding rapidly down the European side of the
-Urals. Huge forests, all loaded with snow, covered the mountain sides,
-and there was a temperature quite impossible for British military
-operations. We arrived about 11 A.M. at the headquarters of the army
-under the command of General Count Galitzin. We held long conferences
-and then lunched in his mess, which was quartered in an eight-wheeled
-American truck. An occasional shell exploded first to right and then to
-left, but none came very near, and by 2 P.M. the firing died away
-altogether. It was decided to march to the advanced outpost and take the
-band to give both friend and foe an opportunity to judge a sample of
-British music. We got to the extreme point near which a cutting in the
-railway gave excellent protection for the band, while the admiral's
-Staff and my Middlesex guard went forward to have a look at the enemy.
-The band started "Colonel Bogey," then went on to something which I do
-not remember, but while we were groping about through machine-gun pits,
-etc., the band behind began "Tipperary." That just put the finishing
-touch to Bolshevik patience! This famous war tune got on their gunners'
-nerves and they began to shell the tune for all they were worth.
-Needless to say not a single shell went anywhere near the mark. All
-shrieked over our heads and exploded harmlessly among the forest trees;
-one, however, dropped near the railway bridge and went off like a
-Hampstead squib on a wet bonfire night. It shows an utter lack of
-culture among the Bolshevik officers that they could not appreciate good
-music after we had taken so much trouble to bring it within their reach.
-The band finished and the shelling ended. I expect they fancied they had
-frightened my bandsmen, but the fact was they enjoyed the unique
-experience immensely.
-
-General Count Galitzin is a very fine type of the officer of the old
-régime; an aristocrat to his finger tips, but a fine leader of men, born
-to command. I should think there is a big strain of Tartar blood in his
-make-up, but he is altogether the sort of man one would prefer to meet
-as friend rather than foe. We discussed the possibility of an offensive
-in the direction of Perm, from where I humorously suggested we might be
-able to rescue the forces of General Poole, which had gone into winter
-quarters somewhere in the direction of Archangel. We returned to
-Ekaterinburg, and without stopping, proceeded towards the Lisvin front
-to meet General Pepelaieff.
-
-We arrived on the Lisvin front about 10 A.M. next day, but did not see
-the enemy or hear his guns. This army had been compelled to retire some
-60 versts the very day we were discussing an advance on Perm, and its
-present position was none too secure. Pepelaieff is a young general, not
-more than thirty, but looked a real hard-working soldier. His uniform
-was as dirty and worn, though not quite so dilapidated, as the majority
-of his soldiers. He had absolute confidence that he could beat the enemy
-if his men had rifles and ammunition, which many had not. Half his men
-were waiting for the rifles of comrades who might be killed or frozen in
-the snow. The conferences were quite businesslike, and Admiral
-Koltchak's presence seemed to galvanise the whole army into life and
-energy. The "Russky soldat," whose boots had long since disappeared and
-whose feet were bound up in bags to protect them from the snow, felt
-almost certain that proper boots and clothes would follow from the War
-Minister's visit. Pepelaieff came back in my carriage to meet General
-Gaida, and the admiral also relished a British soldier's ration as we
-discussed things generally, including the proposed advance and the
-necessary measures to make it into a victory.
-
-We were to have gone next to the extreme right, where General Verzbitsky
-operated on the flank, but the admiral said the condition of the
-soldiers was very sad, and his immediate business was to organise the
-rear and so secure the means by which the soldier at the front could do
-his duty. We saw the ceremonial of the presentation of colours to the
-11th Siberian Rifles, a fine proceeding greatly enhanced by the fact
-that three officers of the regiment had rescued the colours (originally
-presented by Peter the Great) from the Bolshevik Revolutionaries, and as
-pedlars and peasants had tramped for months through the Bolshevik lines
-and brought them safely to the new regiment.
-
-It was necessary for the admiral to see General Surovey and General
-Detriks and their Staffs at Chilliyabinsk, and also to have a look at
-the Ufa front. Travelling all night, we arrived at Chilliyabinsk next
-morning, and after quite a formal inspection of guards, we adjourned for
-lunch. The date I do not remember, but my old friend Colonel Pichon
-burst through all etiquette to inform me of the terms of armistice
-between Germany and the Entente, and brought out a bottle of champagne
-he had preserved for the occasion; we swore by all the powers above and
-below that we were the greatest people the world had ever seen in all
-its ages and intended to remain so.
-
-Lunch over, I left the admiral to his generals and walked a little
-through this straggling, snow-swept town, firmly believing that we were
-about to start for Ufa. At 5 P.M. I was informed that the conferences
-were over and there were urgent reasons for an immediate return to Omsk.
-I did not object as I was not anxious to see more of this army of
-ill-fed, half-clad soldiers struggling to save the State under
-intolerable conditions. We started on our return journey and travelled
-till 11 A.M. next day, by which time we had arrived at Petropalovsk.
-Here the station commandant informed us that General Bolderoff wished
-our train to wait for his, as it was most essential that he should have
-a conference with the Minister for War. This was the first intimation I
-had received that General Bolderoff had left Omsk and was on his way to
-visit the Ufa front. The admiral invited me to his carriage and
-explained the critical situation at Omsk, but could give no reason for
-the sudden decision of the Commander-in-Chief to leave Omsk and meet him
-on the way. I had my suspicions that the two groups of the Government
-had come to grips, and that each had decided to destroy the other; that
-Admiral Koltchak was to be sounded as to which of these groups had his
-favour, and that his life, and perhaps that of his British escort, would
-depend upon his answer. Bolderoff and the people at Omsk were unaware of
-the presence of the British escort or its numbers, and while they may
-have discovered our joint appearance at the Ekaterinburg function, there
-had been no original decision to accompany the admiral to Chilliyabinsk.
-That was only arranged the previous day. In revolutions you can never be
-too careful, hence I gave orders to my men to load and be ready for
-instant action if necessary. Orders were also issued to patrol the
-platform and allow no people, uniformed or otherwise, to collect near
-the trains, and in no circumstances were the two soldiers who were to
-accompany the admiral to lose sight of him for one instant without
-reporting it to me. Two others stood guard at the entrance to General
-Bolderoff's carriage. When I saw the look on the face of the
-Commander-in-Chief's attendants I was satisfied that my precautions were
-no more than necessary.
-
-The general's train drew into the station and Admiral Koltchak entered
-Bolderoff's carriage at exactly 12 noon on November 6, 1918. I asked my
-servant, Moorman, to take a "snap" of the two trains, as I felt that
-this conference was full of big events for Russia. While taking the snap
-a returned emigrant workman spoke to Moorman in good English. He asked
-who all these officers were and what they were all talking about, and
-when my servant informed him he did not know, the emigrant said: "It is
-all right so long as they do not want to bring back the old régime, but
-if that is their object I can tell them that Russia will never submit to
-live under the old régime again." I thought, and think now, that in that
-workman's words I heard the voice of Russia. The conference between the
-admiral and the general broke up at five o'clock; it had lasted five
-hours.
-
-The admiral was hungry and came into my carriage for something to eat;
-his servants had nothing ready as it is the Russian custom never to
-begin to prepare a meal till you are ready to eat it. After the meal we
-talked, and from the conversation I gathered the nature of the questions
-discussed at his conference with the Commander-in-Chief. He asked me
-whether in England our Minister for War had any responsibilities placed
-upon him for the supply of clothing, equipment and general condition of
-the British Army? I replied that in England the Minister for War was
-responsible to the Cabinet and, through Parliament, to the country for
-the general efficiency of the British Army in every detail. He answered:
-"What would you think in England if the Commander-in-Chief told the
-Minister for War that these matters had nothing to do with him, that he
-would be allowed to keep a small office with two clerks but no staff, as
-it was the Minister for War's name only that was of any use to the
-Directorate (or in your case Cabinet), and the less he interfered with
-the affairs of his department the better for all concerned?" I answered:
-"If I were the Minister I should claim to have absolute control of my
-department, or resign." He thought a minute and said: "That is what I
-have done," or "what I intend to do," I forget which. From what followed
-I think it must have been the former, because I asked him what General
-Bolderoff said in answer to his claim, to which he replied: "General
-Bolderoff is a very good man, and though he does not see everything as
-I wish, I think he understands the situation, and will himself ask that
-greater power should be given to enable me to save the new Russian army,
-that it may be able to resurrect the Russian State." I well remember
-that word "resurrect"; it was so pregnant with truth. The State _was_
-dead, Russia was no more; resurrection was necessary.
-
-We arrived at Omsk town station at 5.30 on the evening of November 17,
-1918. The admiral thanked me for my help and my guard and for the
-kindness and protection I had afforded him. I promised him my continued
-help and sympathy in his patriotic attempt to revive the spirit of his
-people. He went straight to his lodgings and remained there.
-
-The _Times_ correspondent in a message to his newspaper has suggested
-that the admiral had prior knowledge of what was to happen that night in
-Omsk. I do not think that was the case. He may have guessed that
-something very unpleasant was in the wind--the least sensitive amongst
-those behind the scenes knew that--but what it was, from which direction
-it would come or on whom it would fall was a secret known to but very
-few, and I am convinced that the admiral, except in a second degree, was
-not one of them. Colonel (soon to be General) Lebediff could tell the
-whole story, though his name was not even mentioned during the _coup
-d'état_. A young and able Cossack officer, he was on the Staff of
-Korniloff when Kerensky invited the great Cossack general to march his
-army to Petrograd to save the newly-elected National Assembly. It is
-well known how, when Korniloff obeyed Kerensky's order, he
-treacherously turned and rent to pieces the only force which was moving
-at his own request and could have saved Russia. He, in turn, became the
-victim of the ghouls who urged him to this act of destruction. Lebediff
-escaped, but one can be certain that he retained a lasting hate towards
-the Social Revolutionaries who had betrayed his great leader.
-
-The comrades of Kerensky, and in some cases the actual betrayers, had
-found refuge in the Directorate of Five and the Council of Ministers,
-and were continuing to play the same double game which had brought ruin
-on the first National Assembly and disaster upon the Russian people.
-They were members of the same futile crowd of useless charlatans who by
-their pusillanimity had made their country a byword and the Treaty of
-Brest-Litovsk possible. I was in a position to judge. I was certain that
-this young man was the wrong sort to allow the execution of his chief to
-pass without attempting punishment.
-
-He had drifted down to Southern Russia and joined General Denikin in his
-first efforts against the Bolsheviks. Sent from Denikin with dispatches
-to Omsk, he became the centre of a group of desperadoes who were in want
-of a cool brain to make them formidable. The state of Omsk at this time
-was simply indescribable. Every night as soon as darkness set in rifle
-and revolver shots and shouts could be heard in all directions. The
-morning sanitary carts picked up from five to twenty dead officers.
-There were no police, no courts, no law, no anything. In desperation
-the officers grouped themselves together and hit back indiscriminately
-at the people they thought responsible for the murder of their comrades.
-So a fair proportion of civilian bodies became mixed up with those
-wearing uniforms. That the officers got home at last on the right people
-is proved by the fact that these nightly murders became fewer and then
-practically ceased altogether.
-
-It was into this scene of blood that we were hurled, and this was the
-condition which had become quite normal in the capital under the rule of
-the five-pointed Directorate. Its members were the most unmitigated
-failures that even poor distracted Russia had so far produced, and the
-people waited, hoping and longing, for their speedy removal. I was not
-at all surprised when, next morning, my liaison officer, Colonel Frank,
-returned from the Russian Headquarters in great perturbation and with
-great excitement informed me that Russia was doomed never to rise out of
-her troubles. I asked why. He answered that during the night some
-villains had arrested the Social Revolutionary members of the
-Directorate and Government, that no one at Headquarters knew the persons
-who had again upset the whole government of the country, and he had no
-doubt that the members of the late Government were already murdered. I
-took the necessary precautions for the safety of my command and awaited
-developments. I knew that the telegraph to the east was cut and that a
-_coup d'état_ was in course of execution.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-WHAT HAPPENED AT OMSK
-
-
-At 11 A.M. on November 18 I was officially informed that the Council of
-Ministers had met at 9 A.M., and were now in session, having met to
-consider the situation produced by the arrest of the Directorate. They
-had already asked Admiral Koltchak to accept supreme authority, that he
-had refused, but the Ministers had great hope that for the sake of
-Russia the admiral could be prevailed upon to take the burden of
-Government upon himself, as it appeared to be the only means of getting
-the country out of her desperate situation. The wildest rumours were in
-circulation: that my carriage would be attacked by bombs, that the
-British would at any time be obliged to fight for their lives. I told my
-informants that they need not worry about us; we were well able to take
-care of ourselves. They could not understand our indifference. The fact
-was that not a man or officer in my battalion had the slightest inkling
-of the position. Then the tune changed. Would I defend the Ministers who
-were still in session if they were attacked? My answer was that any
-political refugee who sought asylum in my lines would be protected, but
-he must give up every idea of again taking any part in Russian affairs.
-"But what would you do if the Russian troops revolted and sought to
-murder those who had come into your lines. Would you give them up?"
-"Never!" "What if the Czech commanders made the demand?" "Still never;
-besides which the Czechs are too honourable ever to make a demand such
-as no soldier could accept." The last question was the most important of
-all, and was doubtless the kernel of the whole series, the others being
-mere camouflage.
-
-The Czechs had just inaugurated their National Republican Government,
-and were naturally obsessed with the usual "Liberty, Equality, and
-Fraternity" business, and could not be expected to view the
-establishment of a Dictatorship within their sphere of operations with
-entire unconcern or without serious misgivings. The hostile attitude of
-the Russian branch of their National Council at Ekaterinburg and
-Chilliyabinsk, directly they heard of Koltchak's acceptance of the
-supreme authority, is proof of the danger which might evolve from that
-quarter.
-
-The Council of Ministers, and perhaps Koltchak himself, were unable to
-take the final plunge until they had a thorough understanding of the
-British attitude. The position of the Czech forces at Omsk made it
-impossible for them to approach the place where the Ministers were in
-session without passing the British, and my machine guns commanded every
-avenue leading to or from the Russian Headquarters.
-
-Things were now in such a state of tension that for the safety of my
-command I informed both the Russian and Czech authorities that I should
-not allow bodies of troops or citizens either to approach or collect
-near my cantonment; that such approach or collection would be treated as
-hostile, and dealt with accordingly. That these arrangements gave the
-Ministers greater confidence to proceed with their policy I have no
-doubt. That was one of the inevitable consequences of the preparations
-for our own defence, but not the inspiration of their policy, which was
-entirely their own; but it did steady the situation.
-
-I place these facts on record that those who are interested may be able
-to give them their proper order of value and importance. I afterwards
-learnt that more than one highly-placed official's wife had all
-preparations made for a rapid descent upon the Middlesex quarters.
-
-About 2.30 P.M., November 18, I was informed that Admiral Koltchak had
-assumed absolute power under the title of "Supreme Governor," with a
-Council of Ministers who would be responsible to him for the proper
-performance of their duties; that he proposed to call on the French
-representative, Monsieur Renault, to present himself in the evening;
-that he would then call on me, as the senior British officer in Omsk,
-and in my case he would answer any questions I chose to put to him. He
-called, and it is as well to place here the report I made upon the
-subject at the time:
-
- From Lieutenant-Colonel John Ward, M.P., C.M.G., Omsk, Siberia.
-
-To G.O.C. China Command. Through B.M.M. H.Q.
-
-Headquarters B.M.M., Vladivostok.
-
-SIR,--For State reasons I deem it necessary to give the following
-information that it may be forwarded home to the proper authorities.
-
-About 2.30 P.M. on November 18, 1918, my liaison officer (Colonel Frank,
-of the Russian Army) informed me that at a meeting of the Council of
-Ministers, just held, the Council had offered to place supreme sovereign
-power in the hands of Admiral Alexander Koltchak. The admiral had first
-refused to accept, but that such pressure had been applied to force him
-to accept that he had at last reluctantly consented.
-
-Further, that Admiral Koltchak had assumed the title of "Supreme
-Governor of all Russia," and was calling upon the French Ambassador in
-the evening, after which he would call on me as the Senior British
-Officer holding official position in Omsk.
-
-About 9 P.M. Admiral Koltchak called at my headquarters. The following
-gentlemen were present to receive him: Lieutenant-Colonel J.F. Neilson,
-Captain Stephani, Colonel R. Frank (Russian Army), and Mr. Frazer
-(_Times_ correspondent). He wore the full dress of a Russian admiral.
-
-The admiral, who speaks fair English, informed me of the circumstances
-and reasons for his assumption of supreme authority in all Russia.
-
-An attempt had been made to combine all parties in the Government of
-the country to reduce it to a state of order, so that the people might
-be able to decide the future Government of Russia. The Council chosen by
-the Ufa Assembly had tried to work together for this purpose, but had
-failed. The final dissolution had been brought about by a proclamation
-issued by the Central Committee of the Social Revolutionary party, which
-was intended to produce in the new army the same conditions that had
-destroyed the old army. The proclamation had been signed by the Social
-Revolutionary President, Chernoff, and when it was proposed to take
-action against those who were destroying the discipline of the army, two
-Social Revolutionary members of the Council, Avkzentieff and Zenzinoff,
-could see nothing wrong in Chernoff's subversive propaganda. It later
-transpired that both were members of the Social Revolutionary Committee
-which had issued the literature in question, and refused to either leave
-the Social Revolutionary Committee or repudiate the anti-discipline
-propaganda of their friends.
-
-This brought the new Government to a complete standstill, and, faced
-with absolute anarchy, the Council of Ministers had no alternative but
-to dissolve the old Directorate of Five and centre the supreme power in
-one person, to whom the Council of Ministers would be responsible for
-the administration of their several departments.
-
-I answered that the reasons, coupled with my own knowledge, appeared to
-justify the action, but I had heard that the Social Revolutionary
-members of the Directorate and others had been arrested, and that if
-this action supposed their execution it would make the whole proceeding
-look like an attempt on the part of the old army officers to destroy the
-present arrangements in favour of a return to the old régime. Further,
-if the people of England thought this was the policy of the admiral and
-his friends, they would not only lose the friendly sympathy of the
-English people but also of America and France.
-
-Admiral Koltchak replied that at the moment he did not know the
-whereabouts of the prisoners, but he would make inquiries and inform me
-later. That his sole object in burdening himself with the overwhelming
-responsibilities of Supreme Governor of Russia in this sad hour of her
-history was to prevent the extremists on either side continuing the
-anarchy which made the establishment of a free constitution impossible.
-That if his action at any future time was not in harmony with the
-establishment of free political institutions as understood by the
-Democracy of England, he would be convinced that he had failed.
-
-I thanked him for his good opinion of my country, and called his
-attention to the letter of His Majesty the King to President Wilson,
-received at Omsk on November 14, 1918, in which the principles of
-democracy and freedom were exalted, and warned him that the free peoples
-of the world would resist any attempt to force the Russian people back
-under a system of tyranny and despair.
-
-Admiral Koltchak replied that he had read the letter of His Majesty the
-King of England, and his one hope was that soon Russia might enjoy the
-blessing of equally free institutions.
-
-Omsk, Siberia, _November_, 20, 1918.
-
-
-From Lieutenant-Colonel John Ward, M.P., C.M.G., Omsk, Siberia.
-
-To G.O.C. China Command. Through B.M.M.
-
-Headquarters B.M.M., Vladivostok.
-
-_Further Report on Political Crisis in Russia_.
-
-Following my report of the assumption by Admiral Koltchak of the supreme
-Governorship of Russia, I wish to add:
-
-As I was unable to secure any official information relative to the
-whereabouts of the members of the Directorate who had been made
-prisoners during the night of November 17, I wrote to the Russian
-authorities (through Lieutenant-Colonel J. F. Neilson) on the night of
-the 18th requesting information upon the subject. On November 19, in the
-absence of information, I sent the following letter direct to Admiral
-Koltchak, the Supreme Governor:
-
-
-OMSK, 19.11.18. 3 P.M.
-
-From Colonel Ward.
-To Admiral Koltchak.
-
-After our interview last evening I sent you a note (through
-Lieutenant-Colonel J. F. Neilson) asking for information and some
-guarantee for the imprisoned members of the Council.
-
-So far I have received no information upon the subject.
-
-I have already told you that I am sure my country would look with grave
-concern upon any injury inflicted without proper trial upon these
-prisoners of State, and I should esteem it as a favour if you can supply
-me with information upon this subject.--Yours sincerely,
-
-(Signed) JOHN WARD (Lt.-Col.).
-
-
-Colonel Frank, my liaison officer, took the letter to Russian
-Headquarters, and on his return informed me that the admiral thanked me
-for my letter and that he was pleased to be able to allay my fears.
-
-Three officers, named Lieutenant-Colonel Krasilnikoff, Colonel Volkov,
-and Lieutenant-Colonel Katanaev, had presented themselves at
-Headquarters and reported that they took upon themselves the entire
-responsibility for the arrest of the members of the old Russian
-Government, that they had not injured them in any way, that they were
-prepared to hand their prisoners over to the authorities, together with
-several millions of roubles, believed to be loot, and papers which they
-had found in their possession. That the admiral had placed the prisoners
-under a strong guard of his own, and had placed the three officers under
-arrest to be tried by court-martial.
-
-He further promised that no harm should come to them, and that he
-proposed to convey them out of the country at the earliest opportunity.
-
- _November 20_. 1 P.M.
-
-Admiral Koltchak, hearing that a supply guard of my battalion was
-returning to Vladivostok, has made request that I would allow the
-railway cars conveying the State prisoners to some unknown point on the
-Chinese frontier to be attached to my train for purposes of secrecy and
-additional safety. I have consented, and have strengthened the guard for
-this purpose.
-
-Omsk, Siberia, _November_, 21, 1918.
-
-
-[COPY.]
-
-From Second-Lieutenant P.C. Cornish-Bowden, 25th Battalion Middlesex
-Regiment.
-
-To The Adjutant, 25th Battalion Middlesex Regiment.
-
-Sir,--I have the honour to report for the information of the Commanding
-Officer:
-
-1. The train conveying the four Russian political exiles (Messrs.
-Avkzentieff, Argunoff, Rogovsky, and Zenzinoff) and the Russian guard,
-together with a detachment of British troops under my command, left Omsk
-about 2 A.M. on November 21, and arrived at Harbin on November 27. The
-journey was quiet. Most of the larger towns, where trouble was
-anticipated, were passed at night.
-
-2. I have since been informed by the officer commanding the Russian
-guard that all traffic between Irkutsk and Chita was stopped by order of
-General Semianoff, and that the trains were searched for the exiles
-after we had passed, but I have no evidence in support of this.
-
-3. The exiles expressed the greatest possible gratitude for the presence
-of British troops, and said that they mistrusted their own Russian
-guard, though I saw nothing whatever at any time to lead me to believe
-their suspicions were well founded.
-
-4. On arrival at Harbin the exiles strongly petitioned me to accompany
-the train to Chang-Chun, and the officers in charge of the Russian guard
-being quite willing, I decided to accompany the train to the
-Chinese-Manchurian frontier. We reached Chang-Chun about 2 A.M. on
-November 28, and the exiles left that place by themselves by train on
-the evening of the same day.
-
-5. We reached Harbin again on the 29th inst., where I parted company
-with the Russian guard. We reached Vladivostok on the morning of
-December 2. I immediately reported to the O.C. Detachment, and I
-reported the before-mentioned facts verbally to General Knox.
-
-6. The conduct of the N.C.O. and men of my detachment on the journey was
-very good, and no increase of sickness took place amongst them.--I have
-the honour to be, sir, your obedient servant,
-
-(Signed) P.C. CORNISH-BOWDEN
-(Second-Lieutenant).
-
-Vladivostok, Siberia, _December_ 2, 1918.
-
-
-I had already gained enough experience of revolutions to know that if I
-did not press my point vigorously Avkzentieff and Co. were as dead as
-mutton. I also knew that my countrymen have a rooted dread of
-dictatorships, and that if Admiral Koltchak's assumption of power was
-either connected with or promoted by the execution of his opponents
-without trial, assistance or eventual recognition by the British
-Government would be made almost impossible. My own agents had discovered
-the place where the prisoners were detained, also that they were to be
-quietly bayoneted in the night, as shooting would attract attention. I
-was also certain that Koltchak knew nothing about this. The whole
-business was in the hands of an Officers' Revenge Society, a body who
-had sworn an oath to kill just the number of Bolshevik Revolutionaries
-as there had been officers murdered by Trotsky's and Avkzentieff's
-people. Both parties had similar combinations which left the marks of
-their foul deeds on the streets every night.
-
-The state of affairs was such that only by a dictatorship could the most
-rudimentary order be maintained. I, a democrat, believing in government
-of the people by the people, thought I saw in the dictator the one hope
-of saving the remnants of Russian civilisation and culture. Words and
-names have never frightened me. If circumstances force on me a problem
-for solution, I never allow preconceived notions and ideas formed in the
-abstract, without the experience of the actual then existing facts, to
-warp my judgment in deciding the issue; and I am vain enough to believe
-that, had the same situation presented itself to Englishmen generally,
-nine out of ten would act as I did. I merely "carried on." The
-traditions of our race and country did the rest.
-
-Having, in my talk with the admiral and the report I made, accepted his
-position of Supreme Governor, I did not mean that he should be left to
-fight his way unaided against the enemies who surrounded him. In other
-words, while outwardly remaining neutral, I constantly made
-representations and gave advice, when asked, about everything, both
-internal and external; and here it may be interesting to our own people
-to know some of the problems which confronted the Supreme Governor. The
-Japanese question was the first. General Rosanoff was Bolderoff's Chief
-of Staff, and it was important to the Supreme Governor that he should
-get the hang of outstanding matters and also make himself fairly
-acquainted with the policy of the deposed Directorate. He interviewed
-General Rosanoff and the Staff generally, and discovered that after the
-fall of Samara the Bolshevik army moved rapidly towards Ufa, and the
-Directorate became so alarmed that they demanded some definite policy
-from the Commander-in-Chief as to how he proposed to deal with this
-menace. Bolderoff never thought of effectively organising the new
-Russian army, but suggested that things were so critical, and that
-England, France, and America were so slow, that the only alternative was
-to invite the Japanese to push their army forward to the Urals. This was
-exactly what Japan wanted, but the Japanese Staff demanded as a _quid
-pro quo_ to their advance to Ekaterinburg and Chilliyabinsk that they
-should be placed in absolute possession of the railway and telegraph
-lines to those points. Bolderoff and the Directorate boggled at this for
-a time, but as the Bolsheviks began to get close to Ufa, and also
-concentrated an army of about one hundred thousand men for an offensive
-towards Ekaterinburg, the situation became so pressing that the
-Directorate gave way, and a few days before the _coup d'état_ Bolderoff
-had sent word to the Japanese that their terms were accepted.
-
-The Japanese had made all preparations to move when Koltchak took the
-reins in his own hands. He asked my advice. I advised him to say to the
-Japanese that the change of Government had also involved a change of
-policy, and that it would be inadvisable for the Japanese to advance
-beyond their position at Chita until the subject had been further
-discussed. They made him many tempting offers of help, both arms and
-money, but he refused them all, and they were unable to move him from
-the position he had taken up.
-
-A subject that led to unfortunate bickerings between Admiral Koltchak
-and the French was the appointment by the Allied Council of Paris of
-General Ganin as the Commander of the Allied and Russian Forces in
-Siberia.
-
-It is too important an item in the general failure of Allied policy to
-pass over without mention. From the very nature of the case the main
-Allied effort was the formation and organisation of a new Russian army.
-Our policy was not to prop Russia on her feet, but to enable her to
-stand by herself. Major-General Knox had been sent out by the War
-Office to accomplish this purpose, and no more able or competent officer
-could have been appointed for the task.
-
-General Knox had hardly begun to perform this duty when the French
-agents in Siberia became alarmed for their own position. Cables were
-dispatched to Europe pointing out the danger to French prestige which
-General Knox's mission entailed. If the English were to be made
-responsible for the reorganisation of the Russian Army, and were
-successful, this would tend to make New Russia rely more upon the
-English than the French, as had been the case hitherto; that it would be
-better to leave Russia without an army than have it organised under such
-influence. These senseless fears of our French friends found willing
-listeners in Paris. General Knox had already made some selections of
-officers and the business was well under way when a message from the
-Allied Council in Paris put an extinguisher on all his work. His orders
-were cancelled, and he was told to do nothing until a French commander
-had been appointed, whose name would be forwarded later.
-
-By this uninformed Allied interference a well-thought-out scheme of army
-reorganisation was hung up for four of the most precious months to
-Russia. By the time General Ganin arrived the time for the project had
-passed and the whole business had been taken out of Allied hands.
-
-The Russian situation at that time was such that four days' delay would
-have been fatal, and if nothing had been done for four months we should
-have been hunted out of the country.
-
-Finding Allied jealousy so great as to render all their efforts
-impotent, first General Bolderoff and then his successor, the Supreme
-Governor, began to organise armies on their own for the protection of
-the people and their property. These armies were ill-equipped and badly
-disciplined--not the kind of armies which would have been raised had
-General Knox's plans been allowed to develop--but they performed their
-duty, they captured Perm, and had increased to over 200,000 before
-General Ganin appeared on the scene.
-
-When General Ganin reported himself to the Supreme Governor with the
-Allied Council's orders to take over the command of the Allied and
-Russian forces in Siberia, he was met with a blank refusal from the Omsk
-Government.
-
-I was consulted upon the question, and I am therefore able to give the
-reasons for their objection. The Omsk Government's position was a very
-simple one: "Had General Knox or any other Allied commander organised,
-paid, and equipped the new Russian army he would have naturally
-controlled it until such time as a Russian Government could have been
-established strong enough to have taken over the responsibility. The
-French would not allow this to be done, and we ourselves therefore
-undertook the duty. Having formed our own army in our own country, it is
-an unheard of proposal that we should be forced to place it under the
-command of a non-Russian officer. It would be derogatory to the
-influence and dignity of the Russian Government and lower the Government
-in the estimation of the people."
-
-From this position they never retreated, but Allied bungling had landed
-General Ganin, who is himself an able and excellent officer, in a not
-very dignified position.
-
-Bolderoff, as I have stated, was at the Ufa front when Koltchak assumed
-supreme power. He remained there in consultation with the Czech National
-Council and the members of the old Constituent Assembly for five or six
-days without a word as to his intentions. It was a critical position for
-Koltchak, who did not know what he was doing or intended to do.
-Hot-heads advised immediate action, but I suggested caution. The
-subject-matter of Bolderoff's conferences or whether he had any we do
-not know, but we do know this: General Dutoff, who commanded the Russian
-armies south of Ufa, had some proposals from Ufa put before him, and
-replied advising caution, as he had it on unimpeachable authority that
-the English were behind Admiral Koltchak. This statement, I was told,
-fell like a bombshell among the conspirators at Ufa, and soon after
-General Bolderoff returned to Omsk. There he interviewed Koltchak as
-Supreme Governor, and made satisfactory statement relative to his
-absence. He was offered a post, which he refused, stating that he wished
-to leave the country, as he did not believe that a dictatorship could
-help Russia out of her difficulties. His request was granted, and so
-ended a very different interview between these two men from that at
-Petropalovsk a few days before.
-
-Some time after this the Japanese representative at Omsk made a request
-to be informed whether General Bolderoff had been forced to leave the
-country, or had left voluntarily. This was answered in a definite way in
-accordance with the facts. In the same note the Japanese also demanded
-to be informed whether the British Army had supplied the train and guard
-which had taken the exiled Social Revolutionary Members of the
-Directorate to Chang-Chun, on the Chinese frontier. This question was
-not answered quite so definitely, but the interest of the Japanese in
-these men shows how far the _coup d'état_ had upset their plans relative
-to the occupation of the Urals.
-
-The Supreme Governor issued definite orders to the different isolated
-sections of the Russian forces. All commanders obeyed these orders more
-or less except one, General Semianoff, whose headquarters were alongside
-that of the Japanese at Chita, from which he sent insolent refusals to
-recognise Koltchak's authority. Koltchak prepared to deal with this
-mutinous and buccaneering officer. The Japanese at once plainly informed
-the Omsk Government that General Semianoff was under their protection,
-and they would not allow the Russian Government to interfere with him.
-
-Under Japanese protection this fellow continued to carry out
-indiscriminate executions and flogging of workmen until the whole
-district became depopulated, and the Allies were forced to demand an
-explanation from Japan for their extraordinary conduct. So fearful were
-they that their tool was about to be dealt with, that when the 1/9th
-Battalion of the Hampshire Territorial Regiment started from
-Vladivostok, the Japanese asked the Omsk Government whether these
-British troops were coming forward to attack General Semianoff. The
-answer we gave was that all movements of British troops were conducted
-by the British Military Mission, to whom they must apply for
-information. I never heard any more of their inquiries.
-
-About this time a party of Cossacks, with a high officer at their head,
-called at the prison one night and produced to the governor an alleged
-order for the release of nine political prisoners. The [perhaps]
-unsuspecting governor handed his prisoners over; they were taken away,
-and next morning their friends found them shot. Someone ought to have
-been hanged, but Koltchak could find no one to hang. His Chief of Staff
-must have discovered some facts about the crime, but he refused to act.
-In fact, he did not acquaint the admiral about the crime until four days
-later when it had become public property. Koltchak was quite overcome,
-first with rage at the crime itself, and secondly at his impotence in
-being unable to prevent it. But Omsk went on the even tenor of its way:
-it is remarkable what horrors people can face without a tremor when they
-get used to them, as they must in revolutions.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-THE CAPTURE OF PERM: THE CZECHS RETIRE FROM THE FIGHTING
-
-
-The _coup d'état_ had thrown the proposed Perm offensive completely into
-the background. The Czechs, under the influence of their Political
-Council, who had joined the Social Revolutionary Committee, and their
-leader Chernoff, retired to the rear. Each unit elected a committee and
-established a Soldiers' Council on the strictest Bolshevik plan, and
-ceased to be of further use either to the Russians or their own cause.
-The officers of the new Russian army became greatly concerned for the
-integrity of their own young troops with such a shocking example of lack
-of discipline before their eyes, and begged Admiral Koltchak to order
-these hostile political bodies out of Ekaterinburg. The admiral offered
-them a town in the rear where they might discuss politics to their
-hearts' content, without danger to his army. This, however, did not suit
-their plans, for their obvious object was to destroy the integrity of
-the new Russian army. Admiral Koltchak in desperation ordered the
-leaders to be arrested and the conspiracy to be broken up. General
-Gaida, though a Czech officer, put the admiral's order into effect, and
-handed the prisoners over to the Commander-in-Chief, General Surovey, at
-Chilliyabinsk. General Surovey, under pressure of the Czech Council and
-Chernoff's Committee, released the prisoners, and began to hunt the
-famous young General Gaida out of their hitherto equally famous army. To
-save himself from disgrace at the hands of his political enemies, the
-general resigned his commission in the Czech Army, and by joining the
-Russian Army was instantly re-established in his position as Commander
-of the Russian armies on the right. Thus fell the glorious Czech legions
-from their high pinnacle of fame, killed as all armies must be the
-moment they join in party strife.
-
-From the point of view of purely Russian tactics, it was necessary to
-strike south from Ufa, with the object of effecting a junction with the
-Orenburg Cossacks under General Dutoff, and if possible linking up with
-the forces of General Denikin in South Russia. But no exact or reliable
-information could be secured as to the strength and equipment of Dutoff
-or Denikin.
-
-On the other hand, it was known that an Anglo-American force had landed
-at Archangel, which it was presumed would be well supplied with winter
-equipment, and if once a junction could be effected with this force, a
-channel for European supplies could soon be opened. Every cartridge,
-gun, rifle, and article of clothing had now to be shipped almost round
-the world, and brought over about six thousand miles of more or less
-disorganised railway communication. Koltchak had men, but no means for
-making them into fighters unless supplied from outside. It was felt
-certain that if his armies could smash their way through to Perm, and
-hold a point somewhere between there and Vatka, the junction of the
-Archangel and Petrograd Railway, the slightest movement of the Archangel
-expedition would result in a combination which could and would move
-straight forward to Petrograd, and free north Russia from the
-Terrorists.
-
-Originally I was to have operated in the centre with a detachment of the
-25th Middlesex Battalion and four machine guns, and authority had been
-given for my part in the advance. The complete defection of the Czechs,
-however, threw the time-table out of joint, and not even the restless
-energy of the Supreme Governor could make up this loss for nearly four
-weeks. In the meantime the cold became so intense that the British
-contingent, being only B1 men, had to drop out. General Gaida, with his
-divisional generals, Galitzin, Pepelaieff, and Verzbitzky, pressed
-forward their preparations, and after a splendid series of movements
-captured Perm with 31,000 prisoners and an enormous booty of war
-material. The losses of the Russians were about 6,000 killed, of the
-Bolsheviks about 16,000. There were practically no wounded, for any man
-who sank in the snow was dead in an hour. Thus did the admiral
-consolidate the power that had been entrusted to him.
-
-The Terrorists were completely demoralised, so that the army advanced to
-Glasoff, 80 miles east of Vatka and 60 miles south of Koltass. We were
-now only about 300 miles east of Petrograd, and there we waited for
-seven months for the Archangel move, which never came off. For some
-time the country was so absolutely clear of enemy forces that small
-parties of men passed unmolested from Glasoff to Archangel and from
-Archangel to Glasoff. Eventually the Terrorists got the correct measure
-of this Northern expedition, contained it with a slight screen, and
-concentrated huge forces to press us back over the Urals once more.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-THE DECEMBER ROYALIST AND BOLSHEVIST CONSPIRACY
-
-
-The tenure of a dictator's office is very uncertain. He issues his
-orders, but if the army chiefs can escape from executing them they do
-so, on one pretext or another. The Russian character is most peculiar in
-this respect. It will obey one thing only--force. Patriotism and public
-spirit, as we know them, do not exist to any great extent. Every man
-looks at every order from the personal point of view--"How will this
-affect me?"--rarely, if ever, "How will it affect the country?"
-
-It is remarkable how much Koltchak had already accomplished, but it
-seemed that his career might end at any moment, in spite of every
-precaution of his friends. Of these he had not many; no real dictator
-should expect to have any. No man will have many friends in Russia who
-puts personal questions second to the public welfare.
-
-The preparations for the Perm offensive were well under way, when a
-dispatch came from General Dutoff, stating, "That in view of the
-pressure by our forces on their left the Bolshevik leaders had decided
-to, what they called, 'organise their enemies' rear.' That seventy of
-their best propagandist and most capable agents and officers had passed
-between his columns and were now distributed somewhere in our midst."
-All we could do was to wait, and see where this treacherous movement
-would show itself first.
-
-The fact that Koltchak had declared for the calling of a National
-Assembly, elected by universal suffrage, to decide the future government
-of Russia, so soon as order was restored, had shattered completely the
-vision of the old army officers of a quick return to absolutism. His
-declaration against extremists on either side had driven Bolshevik and
-Tsarist into practically one camp. He was well known as a student of
-English customs and institutions and a pre-revolution advocate of
-constitutionalism. The Tsarist section hoped that his assumption of
-supreme authority was proof that he had discarded his democratic
-principles, but gradually his official declarations to the
-representative of the British Government leaked out and spread
-consternation in the ranks of both sections of the Absolutists. The
-Bolshevik leaders have never made any bones about their fear and dread
-of democracy as understood in England, and have declared they would
-prefer a return to the old régime rather than have a Constitution like
-that of England or America forced upon them. Hence there is no real
-difference of principle between the Bolshevik and the supporters of the
-old régime, only a difference as to who should wield the power. For the
-moment they let this minor point slip into the background, and combined
-for the destruction of the man who was the enemy of both.
-
-About midnight, December 23, Russian Headquarters gave me the alarm.
-Shots were being fired in all directions, and a spent bullet struck my
-carriage while I was getting into my clothes. Horsemen in little groups
-were surrounding the Staffka without much sign of order. Having
-inspected my battalion at their emergency quarters, I called for a
-personal guard to escort me to Headquarters. I regret there was no
-impressionist artist with us to record the weird procession my guard
-made. When sheepskin coats were provided for my men for use in a cold,
-snowbound country, it is a real English touch that they should have been
-black in colour, making my men a perfect target both night and day.
-Their fur caps were a dark brown of the well-known Nansen type, the
-half-moon peak making the head of the wearer a good mark at midnight up
-to 300 yards. The cap is pointed, and has much the appearance at night
-of a small mitre. What with huge fur boots, black pointed caps, and long
-black coats, there was nothing to indicate the British Tommy in the line
-of black monks that moved silently forward over the frozen snow. The
-temperature was such that as the slight wind brought the water to one's
-eyes the drops froze to hard white spots of ice at the corners. Breath
-from the nostrils froze before it could leave the nose, and from each
-nostril hung icicles, in some cases 2 inches long, which again froze to
-the moustache. The eyebrows and eyelashes and the protruding fur edge
-which enclosed the faces of the men carried a wonderful display of hoar
-frost, and gave the appearance of white lace frills, such as are seen on
-"granny's" caps.
-
-As we entered the Russian Headquarters, which were crowded with more or
-less excited officers and men, my guard lined up on each side of the
-vestibule, and without a word proceeded to unsling rifles and fix
-bayonets. The Russians, who were even now debating on which side they
-were going to slide down, looked at my soldier monks, and at once
-themselves fell into line. There was no longer any hesitation. "Anglisky
-soldats" were in possession of Russian Headquarters, and the reputation
-of English soldiers in emergencies like this is known all over the
-world. I interviewed the Chief-of-Staff, General Lebediff, as to his
-orders for suppressing the revolters and went downstairs to find the
-vestibule empty except for my "monks." No one who was not there could
-believe the absolute transformation that the mere presence of a few
-English soldiers had on this critical situation. In revolutions every
-rule and safeguard of society is uprooted; the people feel as in an
-earthquake, nothing is secure, everyone doubts his neighbour. If those
-who are prepared to support authority can only discover at the right
-moment one little group round whom they can rally, and who they know
-will think nothing of death in performance of duty, the danger is over
-at once. Hesitancy disappears, and the normal is instantly produced. We
-filed out to find the infantry in their ranks, and the horsemen mounted
-in line, under their officers, awaiting orders.
-
-I proceeded through the town to the residence of the Supreme Governor.
-On our way we passed parties of soldiers and Cossacks hurrying to their
-posts, who eyed us suspiciously, but on seeing me at the head in the
-uniform of a British officer, ejaculated loudly to their command the
-magic word "Anglisky," until like a talisman the word passed from sentry
-to sentry and street to street, and "Anglisky" became the password which
-held the whole town for law and order. We passed towards the admiral's
-house without challenge until the Cossack and Serbian guard at the
-actual entrance called us to halt pending the governor's orders. The
-order soon came for us to enter. The admiral was ill, very ill with
-inflammation of the lungs, but as brave as ever. My "monks" lined up in
-the vestibule in the same manner as at Headquarters, and even the
-personal Serbian guard had to make way for these queer-looking visitors.
-I got the information required. The revolt was very serious, but I was
-able to inform the admiral that effective measures had now been taken to
-provide for all eventualities. I begged leave to depart, which was
-granted, but not before my men had been given food and a taste of
-Russian vodka, which appears to be the only effective antidote to the
-cold of a real Siberian winter. I returned, to find that the fact that
-the English soldiers were out was known in every house in Omsk, and
-numerous requests from the highest to the lowest for protection had been
-received on the telephone. I give no names, but the fact shows what a
-remarkable influence the presence of a few British soldiers had in
-steadying the situation.
-
-My orders were to take no part in the internal affairs of Russia, but it
-is the duty of every commanding officer to take all possible means to
-protect his command. If I had remained in my quarters and made no sign
-until these Royalist and Bolshevik enemies had obtained possession of
-the town, I should have presented a dainty morsel which they could have
-masticated at leisure. I had to show my hand early enough to make sure
-it did not go against me. It turned out that I marched from my barracks
-just when news had been brought of the mutiny, under Royalist and
-Bolshevik leadership, of two companies of the 8th Regiment of the new
-Russian army. A body of Bolsheviks at Koulomsino, on the other side of
-the river, had taken up arms and were bent on the destruction of the
-bridge over the Irtish, which formed the means of communication with the
-armoured trains of H.M.S. _Suffolk_, and our naval detachments at Ufa.
-The Czechs (our Allies), who had the same orders as myself, on learning
-that the Tsarists were also in the conspiracy, frustrated this scheme by
-instantly moving forward a company for the protection of the bridge,
-which arrived just in the nick of time. Had we acted strictly to orders,
-Heaven only knows what the result would have been. British and Czech
-both had to act on our own judgment, and while, technically, we
-disobeyed orders, we fulfilled the policy of each country and protected
-our commands.
-
-It cost nearly a thousand lives to restore order, but the lawless
-elements, top and bottom, were taught a lesson they are not likely to
-forget. This happened in the middle of the Perm offensive. It did
-nothing to assist the Bolshevik cause, but it did much to embitter the
-struggle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-A BOMBSHELL FROM PARIS AND THE EFFECT
-
-
-The foregoing incidents gave place to more personal matters. About
-December 28 the Staff of the Canadian contingent under Lieutenant-
-Colonel Morrisy arrived, and, as one might expect, revolutionary plans
-in connection with the distribution of my battalion, and other matters,
-were instantly proposed. Some of them were actually carried out, with
-the result that a strained feeling became manifest in the British camp
-at Omsk, which caused me to propose to Brigadier-General Elmsley that
-my headquarters should be transferred to Vladivostok. Luckily the
-arrival of the 1/9th Hampshire Territorial Battalion on January 5,
-1919, under the Command of Lieutenant-Colonel Johnson, led to an
-improved condition of things all round us. This officer gripped
-the situation at once, and took such steps, in conjunction with
-the High Commissioner, Sir Charles Eliot, that I was prevailed upon
-to withdraw my request for the removal of my headquarters. Colonel
-Johnson was a great accession of strength to those who held the
-purely English point of view, and his battalion, recruited as it
-was from my home county, helped to make all our relations wonderfully
-cordial. General Elmsley replied later refusing my request, so that
-everything fitted in just right.
-
-On January 8 a parade was called to present General Stephanik with the
-Legion of Honour and Major-General Knox, the Chief of the British
-Military Mission, and myself with the Croix de Guerre. It was a real
-Siberian day, "62 below," and in five minutes ten men had frost-bitten
-ears. General Ganin, the French Commander-in-Chief of the Allied forces,
-made the presentations on behalf of the French Republic, uttering a few
-words to each recipient. I received the hearty congratulations of all
-our friends, which kept me warm the whole day. I thanked Colonel Pichon,
-who took over from me the command of the Ussurie front, and with whom I
-acted for some time, for this great honour. I felt sure that my
-decoration was the result of his reports upon myself while acting
-together under very awkward circumstances.
-
-Towards the middle of January the British High Commissioner conveyed to
-Admiral Koltchak an extremely sympathetic message from the British
-Government. The French High Commissioner followed next day with a
-similar message from the French Government, except that it distinctly
-referred to the possibility of help and recognition. The Allied
-representatives felt more happy and secure as a result of these
-felicitations than they had done for some time, and the Russian
-authorities began to feel it possible to press on with the work of
-"resurrection." A new page in the history of a great recovery had been
-added to Russian records. Exactly four days later a wireless message
-came through from Paris to say that the Allied Council had declared that
-it could give no help or recognise either side; that the different
-parties and Governments existing in Russia must bring about an
-armistice, and send representatives to the Turkish "Isle of Dogs," near
-Constantinople, and arrange a compromise with each other. In other
-words, that the Bolsheviks were to be recognised as legitimate
-belligerents, with whom it was quite possible to shake hands and sit
-down to draw up an agreement as to the proper method of conducting a
-policy of rapine, robbery, and murder. Needless to say, every Britisher
-was disgusted, and every genuine Russian patriot simply amazed. At one
-swoop down went all our hopes! We were crushed as much or more than the
-Russians, because we had the honour of our countries to defend, and
-defence seemed impossible.
-
-A sudden reaction against the European Allies set in at once, and became
-so violent that a Russian gentleman made an abusive speech to the Allied
-officers as they sipped tea in a well-known restaurant, and the public
-refused to allow the guard which was called to arrest him to carry out
-the order. This feeling was undoubtedly exploited by the Japanese for
-their own purposes.
-
-A very tense condition of affairs existed, when on January 31 I asked
-for a special interview with Admiral Koltchak that I might introduce my
-colleague and comrade, Colonel Johnson, and talk over the situation. The
-admiral was out walking by the river, quite unattended, but in full view
-of the guard at his residence near the river bank. It was his first walk
-since his illness, and he looked quite recovered. The talk naturally
-veered round to the Allied declaration in favour of the Bolsheviks and
-the situation it had created in Omsk. The admiral's attitude was quite
-simple. "We can talk and make compact with every party and Government in
-the different districts of Russia, but to compromise with Bolshevism, or
-shake the hand, or sit down and treat as equals the men who are
-outraging and murdering the Russian people--never! No decent Allied
-Government acquainted with the facts would ever expect it."
-
-I asked him to consider the question as in no way decided by the Paris
-message, that I felt sure there must be some points connected with the
-decision that required further elucidation. "Yes!" said the admiral.
-"There must be some facts with which we are not acquainted, for while
-the British Government advise an arrangement with the Bolsheviks they
-continue to furnish me with generous supplies for the Russian Army." I
-left quite satisfied that he still retained his faith in the friendship
-of England.
-
-There was one queer point which needs to be placed on record. Admiral
-Koltchak observed that the Japanese were still causing him much trouble.
-They had been unable to approach him personally but had been "getting
-at" his officers, whose business caused them to make frequent visits to
-the Ural front. They made statements to the effect that the only state
-which was in a position to help Russia was Japan. The other armies were
-war-weary and clamouring for demobilisation and therefore unwilling to
-fight the Bolsheviks. If Admiral Koltchak was compelled to make a
-reasonable arrangement with Japan, their army would guarantee to
-liquidate the Bolshevik forces in two months and establish a monarchy
-satisfactory to the Russian officers. This propaganda had reached the
-front, and had been referred to as assuming very serious importance by
-his front-line generals in their dispatches. To counteract this
-pernicious influence, he was proposing to visit the front himself to
-point out the impossibility of Japan, as one of the Entente Allies,
-being able herself to execute such a programme. I asked him how this
-propaganda began and who engineered it. He answered: "General Muto and a
-staff of twenty-six officers and intelligence assistants are working
-hard here in Omsk to influence Russian opinion in their direction."
-Finally the Supreme Governor said, "I make no complaint against these
-very excellent Japanese officers, they are only carrying out the orders
-of their political and military chiefs, but it makes my work of
-restoring order much more difficult."
-
-There were other little rifts within the lute. The Russian officers are
-Royalist almost to a man, and will remain so, for they are all most
-childlike in their adherence to this principle. Some gossip informs one
-of them that Prince Kuropotkin is still alive and has been seen on the
-Russian frontier. "Oh!" he exclaims. "Then the admiral will be handing
-over his power to Kuropotkin directly he hears the prince is alive!"
-Next day he may be told that the prince is not a soldier and his
-enthusiasm at once oozes out of his finger tips. The next day some
-British supplies arrive, and then he is all for reliance upon the
-Allies. A few days later, the Government not having been recognised by
-the Powers according to his wish, he curses the Powers and becomes
-morose. The day following he hears in a restaurant that
-Demitri-Pavlovitch is hiding as a peasant in Siberia, and he is
-immediately in about the same ecstatic condition as the shepherds who
-beheld the Star over Bethlehem. Every possible--or impossible--person
-under the sun becomes to him a potential saviour of his country; never
-does he think how he and his comrades themselves might save her. The
-Russian officer, indeed, is "just a great, big, brave, lovable baby, and
-nothing else." "Gulliver's Travels" ought to have an immense circulation
-should it ever be translated into the Russian language. The "Arabian
-Nights" appears as an unimaginative narrative of humdrum events compared
-with the stories in current circulation in Omsk and Siberia generally.
-
-The two following extracts from my diary record incidents which occurred
-at this time.
-
-"February 1, 1919. Last night three Bolshevik conspirators entered the
-officers' quarters of the 1st and 2nd Siberian Regiment disguised as
-Russian soldiers. The first intimation outside that anything was wrong
-was rapid revolver shots inside. The sentry captured one of the
-imitation soldiers as he tried to escape from the building. In less than
-two minutes the conspirators had shot five officers, two of whom were
-mortally wounded in the stomach. One conspirator was shot dead, one was
-captured, one got away. The knout was applied to the prisoner, and at
-the hundredth stroke he gave the whole conspiracy away. Over fifty
-arrests followed his confession, with the result that all is again quiet
-in Omsk."
-
-"February 3, 1919. Lieutenant Munro has just arrived at Omsk from
-Vladivostok with comforts from the ladies at Shanghai, Hong-Kong and
-Singapore. Words fail to describe the feelings of both officers and men
-as they received these tokens of love and remembrance from their own
-countrywomen in this cold inhospitable climate. It is a beautiful
-feeling, and though the actual work performed is the effort of a few,
-the whole sex receives a crude sort of deification from these womanly
-acts. The way one of the commonest Tommies looked at a small
-wash-flannel that had evidently been hemmed by hands unused to work of
-any description, and asked me if I would give the lady his thanks, would
-have gone to the heart of the fair but unknown worker could she have
-witnessed it.
-
-"I heard news of general insubordination among the Canadian troops that
-had just arrived at Vladivostok. If all the information received could
-be relied upon, the sooner they were shipped back to Canada the better.
-There is enough anarchy here now without the British Government dumping
-more upon us. I can see that it is a great mistake to mix Canadians and
-British troops in one Brigade. Naturally, British soldiers carry out
-orders; if other troops do not, then the British troops have to do all
-the work. The situation produced is that the highest paid soldier does
-no work and the lowest paid all the work. It soon percolates to the
-slowest Sussex brain that discipline does not pay. Nothing but the
-wonderful sense of order in the make-up of the average Englishman has
-prevented us from becoming an Anglo-Canadian rabble, dangerous to
-Bolshevik and Russian alike. I am told that Brigadier Pickford had done
-his best to maintain order and discipline in his ranks; that he had been
-compelled to make very awkward promises to his troops which having been
-made had to be fulfilled. In all the circumstances it was generally
-agreed that the proper thing to have done was to send the Canadians home
-to their farms, and leave the few Britishers who were there to carry on.
-We had established excellent relations with the Russians which it would
-have been a thousand pities to spoil."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-MORE INTRIGUES
-
-
-While the loyal Russian officers were being murdered in their beds,
-other events not less important were happening. When Admiral Koltchak
-assumed supreme authority the Directorate was surrounded by a party of
-Royalist officers as turbulent and lawless as Trotsky himself. Private
-code messages passed between these officers as freely as if they already
-had the power in their own hands. The first intimation that Koltchak had
-of these conspiracies was a code message from General Evanoff Renoff to
-General Beloff, General Bolderoff's Chief of Staff, which unfolded many
-of the aspirations of these men, and showed their objects to be
-exclusively personal. I read these messages with great interest, as they
-gave me an excellent insight into the mainsprings of the revolution and
-incidentally into the character of the average Russian officer. General
-Antonovsky, of the old Russian Military Academy, who also assisted in
-the drafting of the Brest-Litovsk Treaty with the Germans, was a
-participant in the scheme, and was within an ace of becoming the
-admiral's Chief of Staff. Everything was working splendidly, when the
-cipher message from Renoff opened the ball. Beloff was sent to the east,
-and Antonovsky to the south, and the Absolutists became broken up.
-
-On February 1 my liaison officer informed me that as he waited in the
-corridor of headquarters, General Beloff came out of General Lebediff's
-room. A little later General Antonovsky came out of another room, and
-then these two were suddenly joined by a certain Cossack general of a
-very truculent type. I knew that this boded badly for order, and I
-warned Koltchak's young aide-de-camp. Shortly after it was reported to
-me that an attempt had been made to exchange a sham guard for the real
-one at the Supreme Governor's residence. That night I held our direct
-wire from Colonel Johnson to my ear till 12.30 A.M., and found that it
-was tapped by Russian Headquarters. General Knox had got to know things,
-and took certain action, with the result that I sent my officer to
-Russian Headquarters with instructions to inform General Lebediff we
-were anxious for the Supreme Governor's safety; that if any harm was
-contemplated against him we should hold him responsible unless he made
-us acquainted with the danger in time to avert it; further, that if the
-Absolutist officers thought they could murder Admiral Koltchak and
-proclaim an absolute Monarchy without the sanction of the people of
-Russia they were mistaken; that whoever, whether high or low, attempted
-to destroy the present Government and throw Russia back into violence
-and anarchy would be treated as enemies by the British soldiers. General
-Lebediff answered that he knew of no special danger threatening Admiral
-Koltchak at the moment, but he thanked Colonel Ward for his offer to
-help protect the Government in case of necessity.
-
-The conspirators broke up at once, but the cunningest of the lot
-remained to weave again by social strategy the continuous web of Russian
-disorder. We knew that there were elements at work for a
-counter-revolution quite uncontrolled by, but acting with, the
-cognisance of officials of the Koltchak Administration. In revolutions
-sudden outbursts on the part of even a small party may soon jeopardise
-the whole organisation of State. Colonel Johnson and myself agreed that
-it was necessary to concentrate our forces, and in approaching the
-Russian authorities on this subject, we added further to the
-demoralisation of those who were in the conspiracy. We protested that it
-was our own safety that we had in view, but the conspirators did not
-believe us. I knew that the admiral's train had been for some days
-standing ready to take him to the front. On February 3 Omsk was informed
-that the important Japanese Mission (previously referred to) had started
-from Irkutsk on the last stage of its journey to the Supreme Governor.
-The governor's aide-de-camp informed me at the same time that the
-admiral was starting for the front at 5 P.M. on February 7.
-
-General Knox was anxious that there should be no evidence of weakening
-in our support of the Omsk Government, as in case of disorder our
-position was by no means secure. After consultation it was decided to
-offer the admiral a personal guard for his journey, to consist of fifty
-men and one officer from the Hampshire Regiment. This was accepted and
-referred to the Chief of Staff for confirmation. It was then reported to
-General Ganin and the French Staff. They at once protested that to have
-a purely English guard would lower French prestige in the eyes of the
-Russians. They quite agreed that there ought to be a guard, but it must
-be half English and half French, and to this we at once agreed. We
-therefore reduced our number to twenty-five. Then, however, the French
-Staff pointed out that they had no troops in Omsk, and they could not
-leave the Staff without a cook. The greatest number of orderlies they
-could spare was nine, so it was suggested that the guard should consist
-of forty-one English and nine French soldiers. This took the
-negotiators' breath away entirely; the first proposal was destructive of
-French prestige, the second was enough to destroy France altogether!
-Really France is much too beautiful and gallant a country to have this
-sort of stuff put forward on her behalf, but there it was. So the
-admiral's guard consisted of nine soldiers with one officer of each
-nationality--twenty all told.
-
-One point we did get home on. At the time appointed for the admiral's
-departure, an English guard of honour miraculously appeared on the
-scene, together with Russian and Czech guards. There _could_ be no
-French--yet French prestige continued to stand just as high as ever it
-did. I give these facts in the most friendly spirit, but with a hope
-that English officers will always understand that, however much we smile
-at the peculiar gyrations of the word "prestige" as understood by our
-Continental neighbours, it is very real to them, and strange exhibitions
-of it are seen on occasions.
-
-The Supreme Governor had arrived and shaken hands with the Russian,
-English and Czech representatives, including Sir Charles Eliot, the
-British High Commissioner, and General Bowes, the Chief of the British
-Military Mission to the Czecho-Slovaks. The French representative was
-late. When the ceremonial was nearly complete, a French officer (not
-above the rank of captain) elbowed his way to the front and vigorously
-brushed aside the British High Commissioner and general, and stood with
-his back towards them as though they were mere outside spectators who
-had no business there. The same evening the incident was being discussed
-amongst a group of Russian and English officers, when a Russian officer
-of the highest position observed, "You English have the queerest notion
-of national prestige of all the countries I have been so far acquainted
-with. Any ordinary Russian, Kirghis, Tartar, or Mongolian officer seeing
-a French captain brush aside the representatives and generals of another
-state would instantly decide that he only did so not because of want of
-politeness, which one-half the world does not understand, but because
-the nation to which he belongs was so great and powerful there was no
-need to be deferential to any of the others, and especially so to the
-state whose representatives allowed themselves to be so easily brushed
-aside."
-
-We had many conferences upon the condition of the Russian workman, and
-whether it was possible for the Allies to do anything to help them.
-British officers were making desperate efforts to organise and equip
-forces capable of dealing a death-blow to the Bolsheviks in the early
-spring. General Knox worked like a Trojan, and gave more inspiration to
-the Russian Government than all the other Allied representatives put
-together. In fact, without his sagacity and determination we should have
-been better employed at home. He travelled from "Vlady" to Omsk, from
-Omsk to "Vlady," as though the 5,000-mile journey was just a run from
-London to Birmingham. His great strength was that he made up his mind on
-a certain course, and stuck to it, while everyone around him could never
-decide upon anything for long. If you want anything done, don't have
-Allies. Allies are all right when a powerful enemy is striking you or
-them; it is then quite simple; mere self-preservation is sufficient to
-hold you together for common protection. Let the danger pass, let the
-roar of conflict recede in the distance, and Allies become impotent for
-any purpose except spying on each other and obstructing the work in
-hand. There was no evidence that anyone, except the English, was doing
-anything to smooth the way for the new Russian Government, but by sheer
-energy General Knox had brought together personnel and stores sufficient
-to justify belief in the early success of his plans. Then there suddenly
-arose another sinister figure which threatened to upset all our
-calculations--namely, a well-timed revolt of the railway workmen,
-calculated to cripple our communications and make the movement of troops
-and supplies impossible.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-RUSSIAN LABOUR
-
-
-General Dutoff, as I have previously recorded, had informed us that
-Bolshevist agitators had passed through our lines on this treacherous
-mission, and for months nothing had been heard of these emissaries of
-mischief. Now that we were approaching the critical point of the 1919
-operations rumblings of an unmistakable character were heard in all
-directions. The necessary military measures had been taken, but in our
-English eyes suppression was not enough. We have learnt in our country
-that the workmen are the backbone of the State, and that when labour is
-badly paid the heart of the State is diseased. Russia has no ideas about
-labour at all. The autocracy never gave it a moment's consideration. The
-last Tsar's idea of labour reform was to abolish good vodka, and he lost
-his life. The officer class, that forms so large a proportion of Russian
-life, never gave the subject five minutes' consideration. There is not a
-single general labour law upon the statute book of Russia, and the
-horror of it is that those who have hitherto pretended to lead the
-Russian workman refuse to demand laws to protect their labour. They
-believe that "law" is the last thing that a workman robbed of the most
-elemental rights should think about; that the only way for a workman to
-obtain rights is to abolish all "law." And this they have done with a
-vengeance! The professional Russian labour leader is an anarchist and
-nothing else, and in Bolshevism he has given a glimpse of his policy in
-practice.
-
-This, then, was the problem with which we had to deal, and with only a
-few weeks at our disposal. To the Russian workman it was a social
-question; to us it was both social and military. Finally, General Knox
-asked me to undertake a pacific propaganda along the railway to see if
-it were possible to persuade the workmen to keep at work and give the
-best service possible to their country to secure the restoration of
-order. I came to the conclusion that if anything could be done to give a
-more staple and practical outlook to the Russian labour mind it was well
-worth trying to accomplish it.
-
-At the outset I was faced with the difficulty of not being in a position
-to offer anything definite to the workmen in return for their
-willingness to assist the combatant branch of the Russian service in its
-new crusade against anarchy. With nothing to offer it seemed hopeless to
-ask for so much. The only man who could pledge the Government was the
-Supreme Governor himself, so I wrote to him as follows:
-
-
-[Copy.]
-
-OMSK, SIBERIA.
-
-_4th February_, 1919.
-
-To His High Excellency, Admiral Koltchak, Supreme Governor.
-
-Sir,--I have been requested by Major-General Knox, Chief of the British
-Military Mission, Siberia, to undertake a tour of the railway works
-along the Siberian Railway to address the workmen, and appeal to them
-as a British Labour representative to give their best service to the
-Russian State during the present and coming military operations, and to
-join no strike movement, or do anything to hamper the transport of men
-and supplies until the military operations against the enemy are
-completed.
-
-I have pointed out to General Knox that, while I am quite willing to
-undertake this mission to the railway workmen, I fear it will be quite
-useless unless I can promise, on behalf of the Russian Government, some
-improvement in their condition.
-
-1. For instance, I am informed that some of the railway and other
-Government workmen have not received any wages upon which to keep
-themselves and their families, for in some cases many weeks, and in
-other cases months. If this is true, it is impossible to expect workmen
-to be satisfied, and the wonder would be that they agree to work as well
-as they do.
-
-It would be necessary for me to be able to promise that such things
-would be rectified, and wages paid regularly in future.
-
-2. There are many things absent in Russia which industrial communities
-like England find necessary elements for industrial peace. I admit that
-very little constructional reform work can be executed during the
-present disturbed condition of the country, but it would help immensely
-if I could tell the workmen that I had the authority of the Russian
-Government that directly order had been restored, laws for the
-protection and help of the Russian workmen and their organisations, on
-the lines of those already working so effectively in England, would be
-adopted by the Russian Government.
-
-If I could get something definite from Your High Excellency upon these
-points, I believe it would do much to help in the work for the
-pacification of the labouring classes of Russia, and greatly strengthen
-Your Excellency's hold upon the hearts of the Russian people.
-
-(Signed) JOHN WARD.
-
-(_Lt.-Colonel, M.P., C.M.G., Commanding 25th Bn. Middlesex Regiment_.)
-
-
-
-[COPY.]
-
-OMSK.
-
-_February 5th_, 1919.
-
-SIR,--In reply to your letter of February 4th, I wish to inform you that
-I have learned with the greatest satisfaction that you are willing to
-undertake the important mission of addressing the workmen of our
-railways and calling them to give their best service to the cause of
-Russia in this crucial moment of our national existence.
-
-The two questions which you have raised in your letter should not be
-left without a prompt answer, and I therefore would like to bring to
-your knowledge the following:--
-
-1. The imperative necessity of orderly and regular payment of wages to
-the workmen has been the object of my personal anxiety, and pressing
-measures in that direction have been urged by the Government. The
-railways being considered by us just as important as the army, you will
-understand that everything in its power will be done by our Government
-to help the threatening situation in that respect.
-
-2. As for the second question which you have mentioned in your letter, I
-venture to assure you that the Government has already stated in its
-official programme that the workmen will find protection and help in the
-laws which shall be enforced and have to secure their organisation on
-lines similar to those of democratic states in Europe. The Government
-has actually a special Department of Labour which is preparing the
-future legislation on this question, following the general course of
-constructive reform work which I hope to be able to pursue with all the
-energy and vigour that the military situation will permit.
-
-I take this opportunity to renew the expression of my profound
-appreciation of the interest you take in our situation and of the
-valuable assistance you so generously offer in this most important
-matter of pacification of the labouring classes in Russia.
-
-Yours sincerely,
-
-(Signed) A. KOLTCHAK.
-
-Lt.-Colonel JOHN WARD, M.P., C.M.G.,
-_Commanding 25th Bn. Middlesex Regiment_.
-
-
-This is believed to be the first correspondence ever conducted by the
-head of any Russian Government upon a purely labour subject. It shows
-that in supporting Admiral Koltchak we had at least this fact to
-recommend our policy: that he was a democrat, and anxious that his
-country should be in labour matters amongst the first flight of nations.
-
-The question now to be solved was: What attitude would the anarchist
-adopt to this new evangelism?
-
-I was ready to start on my journey when there began such a blizzard as
-is occasionally described in the literature of Polar exploration. For
-forty-eight hours from the south came a furious gale. It was not too
-cold, only about twenty degrees of actual frost, but with the wind came
-blinding snow--not snow such as we see in England, but fine snow, like
-white dust. It beat on your face, found its way between the flaps of
-your head-covers, where it thawed and ran down your neck and chest and
-saturated your underwear. It smashed straight on to your eyeballs, and
-froze in cakes to your eyelashes and cheeks, so that in five or ten
-minutes you were blind and unable to find your way or move in any
-direction. All sentries had to be withdrawn and sent to the nearest
-shelter, for it was impossible to locate oneself or see a building till
-you blundered up against it. A note in my diary records that "a guard of
-eighteen Russians and one officer walked away from their post and have
-not been seen since, and six days have passed." Roofs were torn off the
-houses, and the strongest buildings rocked in a most alarming manner.
-The snow piled itself up against the houses till it covered the windows
-on the ground floors and half-way up those of the second. This southern
-gale took twenty-four hours in which to blow itself out, and a four
-days' calm followed, during which the snow was cleared from the railway
-and traffic resumed. The next startler was a message from Irkutsk
-stating that a terrific gale was breaking down from the north--a recoil
-from the one just described--accompanied with sixty degrees of actual
-frost, making it impossible to live out of doors. This storm struck Omsk
-on February 20, and no words can describe the complete obliteration of
-man and all his works accomplished by such a gale. Nothing can live in
-the intense cold created by such a wind. Hence movement and life cease,
-and King Frost has the whole field to himself. In a few hours the earth
-is levelled; all the indications remaining of the ordinary log dwellings
-are a few snow-banks with a row of dark posts from which smoke is
-emitted, showing that there are human habitations underneath. By
-February 22 this storm had worked itself out and we were able to
-proceed.
-
-The influence of the Koltchak Government could be seen in the orderly
-management of affairs connected with the railway and supplies generally.
-Not till we reached Kameragh could we observe any sign that there still
-remained unextinguished embers of the social inferno through which the
-country had passed. At this point the line was guarded by a strong
-detachment of troops quartered in trucks on the siding. The officer in
-command informed me that an attack by revolters had been made on the
-line at this point, who had held up the traffic for some hours, but had
-been driven off before any permanent injury was accomplished. The
-revolters did not wait after the attack, but set fire to the station and
-departed. He suggested that it might be as well to be ready for sniping,
-and for worse things, should accident force the train to come to a
-standstill between here and Krasnoyarsk. We arrived at the latter place,
-however, without incident on February 25.
-
-Krasnoyarsk is a fairly large town on the River Yenesei. The fine bridge
-over the river is the point to which the eyes of the revolters are
-constantly directed. The garrison was composed of one company of the
-25th Middlesex Regiment, an Italian battalion recently formed from
-amongst the Italian prisoners of war and armed by the British, about
-four hundred Cossacks, and a company of Czechs belonging to the 10th
-Regiment, who arrived that morning. There were numbers of Bolsheviks
-inhabiting an elevated part of the town. These met on the old Russian
-New Year's Day and passed a resolution that it was necessary to execute
-all army officers wherever they might be found isolated from their
-comrades. The army chiefs replied by ordering all guns to be trained on
-the Bolshevik part of the town and one round of shell from each of the
-eight guns to be planted in the Bolshevik quarters for every officer
-murdered. No officers had been murdered up to that time. A party of
-Serbians who had been armed to assist in protecting the inhabitants were
-caught selling arms and ammunition to the Bolsheviks; they were
-surrounded in the middle of the night and disarmed, one Cossack being
-killed. The 25th were "standing to" during this operation in case their
-assistance was required.
-
-We started for Irkutsk on the 25th, having been warned that the road to
-Kansk was practically dominated by the revolters. About 8 P.M. we
-arrived at the headquarters of General Affinasiaff, who came into my car
-and gave a minute description of the situation. The enemy forces
-numbered about 8,000, and those of the Russian Government about 3,000.
-For about one hundred versts the Russian forces, in small detachments,
-were allowing themselves to be pinned to the railway.
-
-It was very interesting to hear a clear statement as to the cause of
-the revolt and to find that the chief point of the grievances set forth
-in the revolters' own proclamations. In great part these opponents of
-the Government consist of rich peasants, who already possessing land
-which in many cases was equal in extent to the County of Rutland, had in
-1917, under the order of Lenin and Trotsky, taken forcible possession of
-the furniture, horses, farmhouses, carts, carriages, land, etc., of the
-big landholders, who with their families had been massacred by these
-same rich peasants.
-
-The next important element among the revolters were the escaped
-prisoners of the old régime, who, being released by the Bolsheviks, had
-taken to the forest to avoid recapture--probably the wildest and most
-savage set of men in the world. They were illicitly fed and protected by
-the aforementioned wealthy peasants with a view, firstly, to buy off
-their hostility to themselves, and, secondly, to secure their help to
-resist the civil officers of the new Government who were appointed to
-inquire into the methods by which these wealthy peasants became
-possessed of their dead neighbours' lands and properties; thirdly, to
-enable these wealthy peasants to resist the payment of taxes, not only
-those that were in arrears, but any that would become due in the future.
-This was the point dealt with in their proclamation, wherein it was
-stated that inasmuch as it was the people who lived in the towns that
-forced the revolution, therefore it was unjust to ask the peasants to
-pay for the damage done by those in the towns; further, that it was the
-people in the towns who kept on fighting one another, and until they
-had finished their quarrelling the peasants would not pay any taxes or
-do anything to help the Government; fourthly, this unholy partnership
-enabled the wealthy peasants to resist the mobilisation ordered by the
-Koltchak Government for the same reasons.
-
-As I have already pointed out, every minor Government and general,
-including General Denikin, made haste to show their submission to Omsk
-when Admiral Koltchak assumed authority, the only exception being
-Colonel Semianoff. He, it was known, was accepting a regular subsidy
-from the Japanese to enable them to resist the extension of the
-admiral's power towards Vladivostok, and it was under their instructions
-and protection Semianoff refused to recognise the authority of the Omsk
-Government and issued insolent manifestos against the Supreme Governor.
-The peasants inhabiting the western side of the Baikal seized upon this
-fact and said in their proclamations that inasmuch as Colonel Semianoff
-had refused to allow Koltchak's orders to operate on the east side, and
-was supported therein by one of the Allies, there was every reason why
-they should do the same on the west side of the lake. It shows what a
-tremendous influence Japan had either to create order or to make order
-impossible. She and Semianoff between them provided these revolters with
-just the argument they needed. By so acting Japan created and extended
-the area of anarchy and made the task of her Allies and Koltchak more
-difficult than it might otherwise have been.
-
-This may not be a very logical position for the peasants to have taken
-up, but anyone who knows anything about Russia will see that it fitted
-their psychology to a fraction. These people are more ignorant than our
-worst educated agricultural labourers. They own and live on huge tracts
-of land, in most cases as large as a great English estate. Their method
-of living is many stages below that of our landless farm labourer. Their
-ignorance is colossal, their cupidity and cunning the envy of the
-Armenians, who openly confess that in a bargain the Russian peasant
-beats the Jew to a frazzle. The order of the Soviet Government to the
-peasants to take possession of the landowners' estates and property was
-the trump card which Lenin and Trotsky played to secure immunity in the
-provinces while they massacred and robbed the property owners in the
-towns. These men, who are the natural enemies of all political progress
-and social reform, and who should have exercised a steadying effect upon
-the empty idealism of the professional classes, were too busy robbing
-their neighbours to be able to exert any influence upon the major events
-of the revolution. While perfectly willing to use the revolution--whose
-principles they abhorred--for their own personal aggrandisement, this
-wealthy peasantry are now equally unwilling to render the slightest help
-in the restoration of order.
-
-It was with profound interest that I read these documents, which
-entirely exploded the English legend of the landless Russian peasant
-pining for a few acres of land.
-
-We arrived at Irkutsk and proceeded to investigate the situation. When
-we passed here four months before it was the centre of Siberian life;
-official indolence had, however, again reduced its status to that of a
-third- or fourth-rate town.
-
-I was anxious to know how the new Rumanian Division under French
-auspices was progressing. Fourteen thousand rifles that could be ill
-afforded from the front had been left here some six weeks previous by
-one of our British supply trains. I found that the local Russian
-military authorities knew nothing, nor had they ever been consulted
-about it. They knew that not more than three thousand Rumanians lived in
-the district, and these had mostly embraced the opinions of the
-Bolsheviks. I made inquiries through the usual English channels, but
-they were equally uninformed. A visit to the Russian railway department
-elicited the fact that a French officer had signed the necessary orders
-for the trucks containing the rifles to remain at Irkutsk, that three
-thousand rifles had so far been unloaded, and that there was a French
-proposal to send the remainder to Tomsk, where it was hoped they might
-be got rid of amongst some Serbian bands with Bolshevik tendencies. This
-may or may not represent all the facts, but it indicates the
-unmistakable necessity that English help shall be given only by English
-hands.
-
-Russian officers were beginning to recover their old characteristics,
-and nightly filled the entertainment halls and restaurants and led the
-gaieties of the town. Very little thought was given to the grim
-struggle their half-clad comrades were waging with the forces of anarchy
-along the Ural mountains.
-
-British Consul Nash kindly entertained Colonel and Madame Frank and
-myself, and generally helped me in the organisation of this end of my
-campaign. He did not think much of my objective, but he helped all the
-same.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-MY CAMPAIGN
-
-
-I held my first meeting in the repairing shop at Irkutsk at 3 P.M.,
-March 4. It was a big crowd of working men and women. The Russian women
-work on the railways in such employments as carriage and wagon cleaners,
-snow and ice shovellers, and even repairing gangs on different sections
-of the line have a sprinkling of the fair sex.
-
-This audience listened to an explanation of the rise of the trade union
-movement in England with the greatest attention. The large majority
-accepted the proposition I tried to expound, that no question could be
-settled by the disputants merely killing each other off; but there were
-present about half a dozen members of the International World Workers,
-slouch-hatted, unshaven, and exactly true to type as seen at meetings in
-East London, Liverpool or Glasgow. These were not workmen employed on
-the railway; one kept a barber's shop, one was a teacher, one a Russian
-doctor, and one a Russian solicitor; but they were the officials of the
-only form of union that exists in Russian Siberia, a revolutionary
-circle composed of the very worst elements in the towns, bound together
-by one common purpose, the spoliation and assassination of every decent
-man, whether bourgeois or workman, who refuses to support a policy of
-anarchy. These five or six determined ruffians formed a kind of Blood
-Brotherhood, and behind a veil of anonymity issued mandates to, and in
-the name of, the Russian workmen, which, backed up by a system of
-murderous terrorism, the workmen were powerless to resist. It was quite
-a usual thing to find each morning dead men of all classes in the
-streets who had been murdered during the night by members of these
-circles. There was no system of law or police; every vestige of justice
-was uprooted, and these crimes went unpunished. The irony of it was that
-these acts were avowedly done in the interest of progress and reform and
-in the sacred name of Labour!
-
-The Irkutsk Circle asked questions which were not calculated to elicit a
-single fact connected with labour, either in Russia or England, but were
-just the usual clap-trap monkey business, such as:
-
-"Why should we be satisfied with half, when we have the bourgeoisie down
-and can take all?"
-
-"Why should we allow law to be re-established, which was always used by
-the few to rob the many?"
-
-"Surely it is less unjust to allow the many to continue to rob the few?"
-
-"In destroying the landlord and capitalist are not the Russian
-proletariat merely taking back its own property?"
-
-"Is it not a fact that the more systematically and effectively we
-annihilate the bourgeois and landlord class, and all the institutions
-belonging to them, the easier it will be to erect the new order?"
-
-These are all very subtle and difficult to answer briefly at a meeting
-of Russian workmen, not one of whom can read or write. It was wonderful
-foresight which placed Madame Frank, the editress of the _Russian Army_,
-as correspondent for this labour mission. She fastened on to each
-question in turn and gave instance after instance of how the suggestions
-they contained had worked out in practice, to the total destruction of
-all that was good and honourable in Russia. Then with magnificent play
-on the words "the new order" in the last question, she drew a picture of
-this _new order_ as exhibited in practice in that part of Russia under
-Bolshevik control. The influence of this little lady upon these simple
-Russian workmen was really remarkable. It was quite evident that the
-workmen would prefer the old régime to the new if Bolshevik tyranny is
-the only possible outcome of the new order.
-
-Our next stop was Imokentievskaya, where the head of the works looked as
-though he would have preferred execution rather than take part in a
-workmen's meeting. The professionals had been left behind, and the
-audience was composed entirely of the railway workers. They presented
-many characteristics of the average English workmen and hungrily
-received information relating to the methods of the best organised
-English trade unions. They had no idea of the things we had done and the
-progress we had made in bettering the working conditions of labour
-generally. Their professional leaders had disposed of the British
-movement by describing our organisation as "bourgeois trade unions," and
-always referred to our trade union activities as though we were
-organised and internally managed by the capitalist. They were surprised
-to learn that we were the only exclusively working-class organisation in
-the world; that the officials must have worked at the trade whose
-society they managed; that we did not, like themselves, allow doctors,
-lawyers, and mere politicians to manage our affairs, but insisted upon
-having our trade unions in our own hands. One real old "Russky"
-engine-driver asked: "If the English workmen found it so advantageous to
-keep their organisations exclusively working-class, why did not the
-Germans do the same?" I answered, "When a movement starts wrong it is
-very difficult to put it right; that outsiders all over the world
-struggle for a place in the trade unions, and if once they get in they
-either break themselves or the union rather than get out, and those who
-can't get in hang on outside like limpets and refuse to be kicked off;
-that the Russian workmen in organising their trade unions must start
-right and keep them free of every element except the working class."
-
-We stopped at Zema, the scene of a sharp encounter with armed strikers a
-few months previous. The meeting in the works was a great success. It
-was remarkable to find that though in my previous meeting with these
-workmen I took the attitude of a military dictator, they showed no
-resentment and had rigidly observed the agreement which had been entered
-into at the point of the bayonet. They were delighted to find that I,
-too, had performed my part of the contract in not forgetting their
-interests when opportunity presented itself.
-
-Nesniodinsk was not on my list, but a special request having been
-presented for me to address the workmen there, we made the necessary
-arrangements and visited this place on Sunday, March 8. It was perhaps
-the largest meeting held up to that point. The official heads had caused
-a special platform to be erected in a huge engine-repairing shop, and
-themselves took the greatest interest in the whole proceeding. It was a
-very harassing business, but if as an outcome the seed of orderly
-progress was sown, the effort was entirely worth while.
-
-Our carriage was fastened to the rear of a slow-moving train going west,
-and we did not arrive at Kansk till the evening of the 10th.
-
-Kansk is the most easterly point of the area of revolt and a fairly
-large depot for the railway. Some interesting facts about the revolt
-were picked up from the railway officials. The revolt began suddenly on
-December 26, at the same time that it broke out in Omsk and Kolumsino,
-and at first was aimed at the possession of the railway. The military
-guard at Kansk consisted of one officer and fifty men. The officer
-posted his sentries at different points some distance away, and the
-soldiers who acted as his personal guard awoke to find their
-sleeping-place and arms in the possession of half a dozen armed men. The
-marauders shouted "Your officer is dead," and ordered the men to lie
-still while they removed the rifles. This done, they proceeded to the
-quarters of the officer, who, finding his men already disarmed, bolted
-without firing a shot. The total strength of the Bolsheviks was fifteen
-men, and these fifteen held the station and a town of over five
-thousand inhabitants up to ransom for twenty-six hours! At the end of
-that time a squadron of Cossacks approached, and the Bolsheviks left,
-taking with them about 80,000 roubles belonging to the railway and post
-office. During their short stay they committed all sorts of barbarities.
-They murdered the railway school-mistress and tortured her husband by
-stripping him and pouring cold water over his naked body, finally
-driving him out into the snow, where he quickly froze to death. The
-charge against their two victims in this case was that they, by their
-calling, were teaching the youth of Russia to become young
-_bourgeoisie_, instead of leaving all men and women equal as nature
-intended.
-
-This garden of autocracy grows some strange plants. These banditti,
-known in England as Bolsheviks, are entrenched not more than 60 versts
-distant, protected from Koltchak's vengeance by the deep snows of the
-Siberian winter, which make it impossible to operate away from the
-railway.
-
-We held a splendid meeting of the workmen in the enormous workshop,
-remarkable for the quiet enthusiasm and the evident hope of better
-times. It was quite clear to me that the Russian workmen were tired of
-the Revolution. They were promised an Eldorado and realised Hell
-instead. They merely wanted to be shown a way out of the social
-nightmare. They passed a vote of thanks to me and the English workmen
-for whom I spoke.
-
-We started for Krasnoyarsk on the 12th, and before long found it
-necessary to get the machine guns and hospital equipment ready for
-instant use. After standing to arms all night we arrived, at midday on
-the 13th, at Klukvinah, the Russian Headquarters, and discovered that
-the Government forces had driven the enemy back from the railway, and
-that the remainder of our journey to Krasnoyarsk would be practically
-safe. We arrived about 9.15 P.M. on Wednesday, the 13th.
-
-Colonel Frank, Madame Frank, myself and the Czech interpreter, Vladimir,
-were passing through the station on our return from the town about 12.30
-midnight, when a rather exciting incident occurred. The station
-commandant approached Colonel Frank and appealed to him for help to send
-home a party of Serbian soldiers who had procured drink without payment
-at the point of their swords and revolvers, and had stripped a young
-woman passenger and exposed her for their orgies. Other bestial things
-were alleged against them, but no one had so far dared to interfere to
-restore order. After a moment's consideration Colonel Frank decided to
-go into the buffet and ask them to go quietly home, and if they refused,
-to secure force to arrest and remove them. I naturally followed.
-
-It was a big stone-floored room with the door at one end and a long bar
-at the other. The alleged Serbian soldiers were seated in a cluster on
-the right in front of the bar at the far end of the room. Colonel Frank
-advanced to them and said, "Brothers, you have had enough to drink, you
-are keeping all the attendants from their proper rest; it is time for
-you to go home." It was like an electric shock. About a dozen of the
-ruffians sprang to their feet hurling every possible Slavonic epithet at
-this brave Russian officer who was merely performing a public duty. One
-dark-visaged Serb cavalryman drew his sword and tried a lunge at the
-colonel across the table, and while the colonel watched this infuriated
-aborigine a Serbian officer close behind Frank tore the epaulette from
-the colonel's uniform and trampled it underfoot, shouting, "Death to
-this officer of the old régime!"
-
-I picked up the epaulette just as the other Serb, sword in one hand and
-revolver in the other, edged round the tables to the centre of the room
-for his attack upon my liaison officer. I did not think of drawing my
-own weapon, and so far it was man to man. Colonel Frank kept his eye
-fixed upon his antagonist, and now advanced towards him, ordering him to
-put down his arms and leave the room. But the Serb was out for blood and
-made a slash at the _polkovnika's_ head, the full force of which he
-evaded by ducking, though the sword severed the chin strap and button of
-his cap and carved its way through the thick band before it glanced up
-off the skull, helped by his right hand, which had been raised to turn
-the blow. At the same instant Colonel Frank fired point blank at the
-man's face; the bullet entered the open mouth and came out of the cheek,
-which merely infuriated the man more. Up to this moment the man had only
-used his sword, but now he began to raise his revolver. Before he could
-raise it hip high, however, the colonel shot him through the heart.
-Though the revolver dropped from his helpless hand, he crouched for one
-instant and sprang, clutching at the colonel's face, while four or five
-of his fellow Serbs attacked the colonel from behind. The foremost of
-these ruffians, a Serbian officer, fired at the back of the colonel's
-head and missed, but his second shot struck Colonel Frank on the left
-temple at the moment his real assailant had made his death spring, and
-down they both went, apparently dead, the Serbian on top. The other
-Serbs sprang forward to finish the Russian officer with the usual ugly
-dagger which Serbian robbers always carry. The body of the dead Serb,
-however, formed a complete shield, and this, coupled with the fact that
-we all thought the colonel dead, saved him from mutilation.
-
-I was not quite an idle spectator, but the fact that at the critical
-moment I discovered I had no weapon except for my cane reduced me to
-helplessness so far as dealing with this gang of murderers was
-concerned. Directly the fight began every Russian, including the armed
-militiaman who was supposed to keep order at the station, bolted from
-the room, leaving the women and children to look after themselves.
-Madame Frank went to the assistance of her husband and covered him as
-only a woman can, and as she grasped her husband's revolver the Serbs
-slunk back a pace, while I lifted his head and signed to the Serb
-officer who had fired at the colonel from behind to lift the dead Serb
-off the colonel's body. This he did and then proposed to the band
-surrounding us that they should kill us all three. Their knives
-glistened and a small automatic revolver was making a bee line for me,
-when a voice like the growl of a bear came from the direction of the
-door. The whole band instantly put up their weapons. I had stood up to
-receive my fate, and over the heads of our would-be murderers I saw a
-tall dark-bearded stage villain in a long black overcoat which reached
-to the floor, stalk across to the group. He looked at the body of the
-dead Serb and then at the prostrate Russian officer who at that instant
-began to show signs of returning consciousness. "Ah! Oh! Russky
-polkovnik," he roared, drawing his revolver. "Our dead brother demands
-blood."
-
-I could not stand and see a wounded friend murdered before my eyes, not
-even in this land of blood. I stepped over both bodies and placed myself
-between this monster and his victim. I raised both hands and pushed him
-back, saying, "I am Anglisky polkovnik, and will not allow you to murder
-the wounded Russian officer." He answered that he was "Serbian
-polkovnik," and I said "Come into the other room," and by strategy got
-him away. His friends, however, told him something which sent him back
-quickly to finish his job, but as he re-entered the buffet he
-encountered about a dozen British and Czech soldiers with fixed
-bayonets, and it was not so difficult now to convince him that it was
-not quite good form to murder a wounded man.
-
-We carried the Russian colonel to the British hospital, and as the
-leader of the Serbs had declared a blood feud, extra guards were placed
-on my wagon and the hospital. These ruffians were armed from our
-supplies under the direction of French officers. Directly the Russian
-military authorities began their investigations to bring this band to
-justice they, through the Czech commander, received orders from General
-Ganin, the French Allied commander, to move to Novo Nikoliosk out of
-Russian jurisdiction.
-
-It is not very clear at present why the French gave their protection to
-these and similar disturbing elements in Siberia. Perhaps the reason
-will show itself later.
-
-Krasnoyarsk is a huge railway depot with building and repairing shops
-employing about 3,000 workmen. To get at both shifts it was necessary to
-hold two meetings, one for the inside and the other for the outside
-staff. The first was a very silent, interested crowd, who listened to my
-address as though they understood its meaning and purport. The gallant
-"Russky" _polkovnika_ with bandaged head and hand translated the first
-part, Madame Frank the second. The impression created by this brave
-woman, who had herself commanded a company in the trenches before
-Kerensky destroyed the army, was very great. There was no mistaking the
-effect of her words as these oil-stained workmen raised their _papahas_
-to the message from the English trade unionists which she delivered.
-
-This town was the centre of international intrigue. There was an Italian
-battalion about 1,500 strong, the Czech 12th Regiment of about 200, and
-the British Middlesex Regiment, 220. To maintain their prestige the
-French were arming the Lett revolters as fast as the Russian General
-Affinasiaff could defeat and disarm them. The Italian soldiers were in
-very bad favour with the inhabitants and the local Russian civil and
-military authorities. Robberies and assaults were of almost daily
-occurrence, and at last the authorities made definite official
-complaints to the Allied Headquarters and asked that the Italian
-soldiers should either be kept under proper discipline or removed from
-the country. The main complaint, however, of the Russian officials was
-based on the open hostility of the Allied officers led by the senior of
-them to everything Russian.
-
-It is such an easy matter to make friends with the Russian people that
-this attitude of her alleged helpers was very saddening. When I landed
-at "Vlady" my orders were to remember that we English had come as
-friends to help Russia on to her feet, and I always tried to keep that
-in mind. I often wondered what instructions could have been given to my
-Allied colleagues.
-
-The next call was at Bogotol, where, under instructions from Consul
-Peacock, I inquired into the imprisonment of an Australian subject named
-Savinoff. The authorities produced the _dossier_ of his case, which when
-translated proved him to be a Bolshevik leader and second in command of
-an armed band that had attempted to murder the local authorities. His
-trial took place shortly after, with that of Titoff, his chief, who was
-one of the Central Committee of the Baltic Fleet who ordered the murder
-of hundreds of the naval officers of the old régime.
-
-The meeting maintained the usual standard of interest, and the chief of
-the works, whose face bore traces of the tortures inflicted upon him
-under Bolshevik rule, was delighted with the new hope we had brought to
-himself and his workmen.
-
-Our next meeting was at Taiga, and it was quite a great event. A
-special platform had been erected in the big workshop, around which
-swarmed nearly two thousand workmen. The people looked upon the meeting
-as the new birth of Russian life. No meeting had been held for two
-years, except the underground gatherings of conspirators. I appealed to
-the men to discard disorder and take a hand in the orderly
-reconstruction of the new Russian State, in which they were now
-guaranteed a place. Madame Frank's translation made a profound
-impression upon these toil-worn men and women. It was clear that the
-people were tired of the horrors of revolution and yearned for peace and
-quiet.
-
-I here interviewed General Knox, who was on his way to Omsk on important
-matters which had been brought to my notice.
-
-We arrived at Novo Nikoliosk on the morning of the 23rd, and proceeded
-to make arrangements for the meeting to be held on the same day. I
-visited the various commands, as usual, and held long consultations with
-General Zochinko, from whom I gathered much information as to the
-situation in this important district. It was interesting to hear some
-news of our old friend, the _Voidavoda_ of the Serbian band. He and his
-gang had arrived from his excursion to Krasnoyarsk on the day that a
-banquet was held by the newly-formed Polish regiment. As chief of his
-band he was invited, and delivered an oration of a particularly
-patriotic character which had won all Polish hearts. He was in a great
-hurry to get away next morning, fearing that we were following behind.
-He said nothing about our encounter, and the Russian officials became
-suspicious of his anxiety to get away. They brought a squad of soldiers
-to examine his trucks, and found an enormous amount of loot from
-Krasnoyarsk, as well as contraband goods upon which he had to pay duty
-to the amount of 130,000 roubles. Having squeezed this toll out of the
-"bounder," they gave him a free way to Ekaterinburg, where things are
-very scarce, and where he would be able to sell out at a good figure.
-
-General Zochinko told us some funny stories about the French Staff's
-attempt to form a powerful counter force to Bolshevism from the German
-and Austrian war prisoners. In Novo Nikoliosk the Allied Commander,
-General Ganin, had released some hundreds of Austrian and German Poles
-from the prison camps and formed them into regiments. In his haste to
-get these units complete he forgot to inquire into the antecedents of
-the officers chosen to command them. So careless, in fact, were the
-French that the Russian authorities awoke one morning to find one of
-their most dangerous prisoners, a well-known German officer spy, von
-Budburg, in full command of this alleged Allied force. Von Budburg had,
-like a true patriot, taken care to choose his subordinates from men of
-the same type as himself.
-
-Later on the French Staff became aware of the nature of their handiwork
-and sought help and advice from the Russian military authorities about
-disarming their new German Legion. A sudden descent on their quarters by
-another Polish unit, with some new Russian units standing by to render
-help if necessary, ended in these French protégés being disarmed and
-got back safely to their prison camp.
-
-Allied help to Russia is like a jig-saw puzzle, a mystery even to the
-man who devised it. A straight-forward recognition of the Omsk
-Government would have been an honest hand for honest work, but where
-would Allied diplomacy have come in? Diplomacy is only necessary when
-there are ulterior objects than mere plain, unambiguous assistance to a
-helpless friend. What are these hidden objects? The Allies had better be
-cautious how they proceed in the diagnosis and dismemberment of this
-great people or they may find themselves on the operating table with
-this giant holding the knife. In spite of the Biblical legend I prefer
-England to be a pal with Goliath!
-
-We arrived at Barabinsk on the morning of March 26, and after
-arrangements for the meeting were completed, took a walk round the
-market. A Russian market is a thing of joy and colour. There are no
-buildings: just a huge space in the centre of the town where thousands
-of shaggy, ice-covered horses stand each with an ice-covered sledge. The
-peasants, men and women, in huge fur coats which reach to the
-snow-covered ground, harmonise perfectly with the cattle they control.
-Their fur coats form a study in colour--patchwork coats from calfskins
-which combine every shade from white to rusty red; goatskins, from long
-straight black to white; curly bearskins from black to brown and brown
-to polar white; wealthy peasant women, with beautiful red fox furs
-hiding neck and face, their eyes glistening through the apertures which
-served the same purpose for the first and original tenant. The sledges
-contain everything--wheat, oats, potatoes, onions, rough leaf tobacco,
-jars of cream, frozen blocks of milk, scores of different types of
-frozen fresh-water fish from sturgeon to bream, frozen meats of every
-conceivable description, furs--in fact, the finest collection of human
-necessities to be found in any one place in the world. Prices were very
-high for home produce and simply absurd for foreign or distant
-productions. Colonel Frank was in need of a small safety pin (six a
-penny at home), and found that the price was seven roubles--14s. 3-1/2d.
-old money, and 3s. 6d. at the rate at which the British Army are paid.
-Everything else was in proportion.
-
-A very fine meeting was held in the works, and much good done in
-securing the confidence of the workmen in the efforts of the Supreme
-Governor, Admiral Koltchak, to create order out of chaos.
-
-We arrived at Omsk on the morning of the 28th, and on the 29th I gave a
-lengthy report to Admiral Koltchak, who expressed his hearty thanks and
-impressed upon me the necessity of continuing my journey to the Urals.
-He had received from the official heads of departments reports stating
-that the effect of my mission had been to improve the general attitude
-of the workmen all round. And he was most anxious that this effort to
-enlist the workmen's interest in an ordered State should be pushed
-forward with vigour.
-
-A further discussion upon general affairs, especially the policy of the
-French command in Siberia, took us through tea. I have absolute
-confidence in the character of the admiral, but the pigmies by whom he
-is surrounded are so many drags on the wheels of State. There is not one
-that I would trust to manage a whelk-stall. They have no idea of the
-duty of a statesman. Little pettifogging personal equations and jobs
-occupy the whole of their time, except when they are engaged upon the
-congenial task of trying to thwart the Supreme Governor. The patriotism
-of the front officers and soldiers, and the medieval chivalry of the
-Cossack are the only things left upon which to rebuild Russia. This
-naturally limits the architectural features of the new edifice, but the
-pioneer is always limited to the material at hand.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-OMSK RE-VISITED
-
-
-It is quite interesting to watch the oscillation of the Omsk mind from
-one orientation to another. At the time I left for the East the stream
-of favour flowed strongly in the English direction. General Knox started
-on a tour of Siberia in connection with the formation of the new
-Koltchak army; Sir Charles Eliot went to Hong-Kong; General Bowes was
-left to deputise for General Knox, and Colonel Robertson for Sir Charles
-Eliot. In three short weeks every sign of British influence had
-disappeared. The English were nowhere; the favour was shared equally by
-France and Japan.
-
-The Japanese had either learned how to behave themselves towards the
-Russians or they had received instructions from home. During the first
-three months I was in Siberia their arrogance was simply sublime, but
-after the armistice with Germany--upon whose power to defeat the Allies
-they banked their all--they were a changed people, so far as outward
-appearance and conduct were concerned. They talked about their alliance
-with England, their friendship with Russia, their love of France. When
-the Japanese try, they can make themselves very agreeable; indeed, so
-charming that it is impossible to resist their advances. That was their
-attitude then to all except the Chinese, whom they hold in the greatest
-contempt, and to the Americans, whom they fear. With a clear field their
-new policy made great headway.
-
-The French methods are quite different. Theirs is a drawing-room attack,
-and at this sort of thing the ordinary Britisher cuts but a sorry
-figure. Hence the field was also pretty clear for them, and they made
-full use of their opportunities. With a judicious word over a cup of tea
-an editor who refuses a bribe finds his or her talents a glut on the
-market. A joke around a _samovar_ reduces the rank of a particularly
-Russophile general. The glorious time they are having reaches its climax
-when you hear the polite condolences to the victims uttered in exquisite
-French.
-
-But Colonel Robertson had gone to "Vlady," and his place had been taken
-by a typical Britisher in the person of Consul Hodgson, who took a
-correct measure of the situation, and in less than forty-eight hours
-herded the whole caboose back into their own compounds. It is surprising
-that the influence of one virile, definite personality can be so great,
-and it proves how necessary it is that in this seemingly endless turmoil
-only the best men should be burdened with the responsibility of our
-representation. I started on my mission to the Urals with absolute
-confidence that, in the absence of General Knox, our interests in Omsk
-would not suffer so long as they were in the hands of our senior consul.
-
-After infinite trouble with Russian official elements, I started on my
-western journey on April 5. The mission consisted of Colonel Frank
-(liaison officer), Madame Frank (translator), Regt-Sergt.-Major Gordon,
-in charge of an escort of twenty-two N.C.O.s and men, with one machine
-gun. We were now entering the district behind the Ural front. These
-towns had not long been cleared of the Bolsheviks, so that it was
-interesting to discover how far their ideas had gained possession of the
-minds of the people. The new Russian armies were rapidly pushing
-forward. Their progress had been made more general and persistent since
-the end of November, 1918, the date on which the Czechs finally refused
-to take part in the great Perm offensive. When they read in the English
-papers of January, 1919, how the Czech, Italian, French, and Allied
-forces had inflicted defeat upon the Bolsheviks at Perm, it caused a
-grim smile to pass over the faces of the Russian officers who did the
-job. Not a single Czech, Italian, French, or Allied soldier fired a shot
-after Admiral Koltchak assumed supreme command. There is one notable
-exception. The armoured trains from H.M.S. _Suffolk_, under the command
-of Captain Wolfe Murray, continued to fight along the Ufa front well
-into January, 1919. Only the intense cold and the necessity of
-recoupment and re-equipment caused them to retire to Omsk. The British
-Navy fighting on the Urals was the only reminder the Russian soldier had
-that the Allies of his country had not entirely deserted her.
-
-We arrived at Tumen on April 7, and held a fine meeting of the workmen,
-who seemed quite pleased to hear that the Bolsheviks were not likely to
-return. These workmen looked upon the Bolshevik rule as on some horrible
-nightmare. They cared for little else so long as you could assure them
-on this point. So ghastly was the dream from which they had awakened
-compared with the flowery promises held out to them that I readily
-believe "Ivan the Terrible" would have been received at that moment as a
-saviour. This was a dangerous feeling which I tried my best to combat,
-for the excesses of the Bolshevik régime have prepared the way--and were
-deliberately intended so to do--for a return to absolutism.
-
-We arrived at Ekaterinburg at the same time as General Knox arrived from
-Chilliyabinsk. His first words were congratulations on my C.B., news of
-which had just arrived. I visited Consul Preston, and read the evidence
-he and his French colleague had collected relative to Bolshevik outrages
-on the workmen of the district. It was too sad to think about. This was
-the place where the Tsar and his family were imprisoned and murdered. Of
-them it could be fairly alleged that they were responsible for the
-crimes of the old régime; but what crimes have the poor workmen and
-peasants committed that the most fiendish cruelty should be reserved for
-them? I give it up! Perhaps there is some reason or justification; all I
-can say is I have not heard it, neither can I imagine what it can be.
-
-I held a meeting of railway workmen and officials, and was surprised at
-the attention and earnestness of the audience. They hungrily devoured
-every scrap of information as to our English trade union organisation
-and work, and requested that a further meeting should be held next day
-in a great carriage works in the centre of the town. This proved to be
-one of the most remarkable gatherings I have ever attended. A fine
-platform had been erected at one end of the main workshop. A sea of
-faces under huge multi-coloured _papahas_ spread over the floor, while
-every carriage was covered with human ants; even the beams of the
-building carried its human freight. Clearly it seemed to me that the
-resurrection of Russia had begun; the destruction of Russia began from
-the head, its re-birth is from the ground.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-IN EUROPEAN RUSSIA
-
-
-Nevanisk is situated just over the European boundary of the Urals.
-Before the Bolshevik came it was a great iron centre, one firm alone
-employing three thousand workmen. When I arrived there the various works
-were practically derelict and its vast collection of machinery idle. The
-streets were deserted, and it was estimated that half of its inhabitants
-had been destroyed. It was, and now it is not. The few remaining
-inhabitants were valiantly pulling themselves together, and if order and
-some sort of law could be established, they were confident that they
-could rebuild their life again. We talked to them and encouraged them to
-continue their struggle against the blight that had defiled their homes
-and their country. Their hopes seemed to revive from our assurance of
-English working-class sympathy. I am pleased they did not know that we
-had some people mad enough to wish to inflict similar wounds upon our
-own country.
-
-A pound of sugar cost thirty-five roubles, a pair of 3s. 11d. goloshes
-two hundred and fifty roubles, one pound of bread seven roubles. These
-were the things we wished to buy, and so made the discovery of their
-price; we bought bread only, as the thing we could not do without.
-Typhus was raging in almost every house. General Knox was inoculated,
-but I decided to run the risk. Doctors had largely disappeared, owing to
-the hatred of everybody with a bourgeois education.
-
-I wonder what sort of jokes or fun G.B.S. could make out of it. There
-_is_ fun in it somewhere. The contrast between the original idea of the
-revolution and the outcome of those ideas are so grotesque in their
-realisation that it looks as though some hidden power were indulging in
-a Mephistophelian laugh at the expense of mankind.
-
-We next arrived at Taighill, where the same effects had been produced,
-though on a smaller scale. It was Palm Sunday, and the great bell of the
-cathedral was booming through the surrounding pine forest calling the
-faithful to prayer. In the square of the town near by a statue of
-Alexander II lay in the mud, having been thrown down by the
-revolutionaries. Quite near a white figure of a woman, intended to
-represent the Enthronement of Liberty, had been hurled from its recently
-constructed base, and formed the roadside seat of five or six of the
-raggedest starvelings to be found in the world. An inscription on
-Alexander's statue states that it was raised to commemorate his
-emancipation of the peasants from serfdom. The Bolsheviks had not time
-to write _their_ inscription; but it did not matter--the empty houses
-and deserted streets were quite enough. By means of much elbow labour
-they had smoothed out the inscription on the statue of the Tsar
-Liberator and for the time made all things equal again.
-
-The meeting at Taighill was a repetition of the others, and we passed
-on to Kushva. This place had been badly mauled. The Bolshevik Commissar
-was evidently an anarchist pure and simple. All the hatred of class and
-creed which had generated under the Romanoffs found expression in this
-man's deeds. The amount of venom which he put into his administration
-and work was worthy of his cause. The effect of his policy, however,
-produced results exactly opposite to those he hoped for. The first
-evidence of his zeal lay upon the snow in front of the railway office. A
-huge steel safe with the door wrenched off and the contents missing
-indicated the strength of his principles. The official who had lost the
-key was thrown into the well near by to stimulate the memory of other
-safe-owners; but this official was not alone in his glory, for several
-railway workmen who refused to help rob this identical safe found a
-watery grave with their superior. Altogether over seventy people met
-their death in this well, workmen, _bourgeoisie_--all in one holocaust.
-But the majority were of no class; their only offence seemed to be that
-they had called themselves Social Revolutionaries. They have been the
-subject of the most bitter hatred by the Bolshevik leaders. The
-Bolshevik contention is that for men or women to call themselves
-Socialists, and then to hesitate to take a hand in the complete
-extermination of the bourgeois ruling classes, now there is a chance of
-doing so in Russia, is to act the part of poltroon and traitor to the
-cause. The "treachery" is all the greater if the objector is a workman
-or a workwoman.
-
-The Bolsheviks are quite honest about their purpose--the transfer of
-power and property by murder and robbery from the _bourgeoisie_ to the
-proletariat. If a member of the proletariat is so mad that he refuses or
-hesitates to act his part in this scheme, then those who have been
-called by the force of events to assume a dictatorship on his behalf are
-entitled to destroy him as an unconscious enemy to himself and his
-class. In the same way no mercy can be shown to the Social
-Revolutionaries who, while professing allegiance to definite proletarian
-domination, shrink from definite action now that the time for action has
-arrived.
-
-The Bolshevik Commissar of Kushva, acting on this principle, succeeded
-in a short time in raising a formidable opposition amongst the workmen
-in the surrounding districts. When the local school-mistress, a girl of
-seventeen, found a temporary grave in this sort of Black Hole of
-Calcutta the wells of Kushva and Taighill became a dreadful portent to
-the simple Russian _mujik_.
-
-The opposition began at the big Watkin Works, where over six thousand
-men were employed. Though possessing no military organisation, the
-workmen decided to resist by force the entrance of the Bolshevik Terror
-into their midst. With the help of several young engineers they managed
-to regiment themselves into some kind of military order. They selected
-with great skill the strategic positions for fortifications, and held
-the whole district against the repeated attacks of the enemy. Once the
-Bolshevik line of the Urals west of Ekaterinburg struck from north to
-south, from Kunghure to the Caspian, as the crow flies, for three
-thousand versts, except for one great loop enclosing the Watkin Works.
-But in November, 1918, the Bolshevik line swept forward, submerging
-these valiant workmen warriors. Admiral Koltchak's Chief of Staff
-naturally concluded that the workmen had given up the struggle and had
-made terms with their hated enemy.
-
-This surge forward of the Bolsheviks had been greatly assisted by the
-unfortunate defection of the Czech forces, who had left the front at the
-suggestion of their local National Council. General Gaida had thrown up
-his Czech commission, and had been given command of the right wing of
-the new Russian army. The admiral proceeded at once to put his new army
-to the test by an attempt to recover the lost ground and, if possible,
-save the remnants of the Watkin workmen. Everybody now knows how, in a
-temperature of over "60 below," these recently mobilised Siberian
-recruits re-established the fighting fame of the Russian soldier by
-sweeping the Terrorist forces from their positions and entirely
-destroying them at Perm. Imagine General Galitzin's surprise when the
-advance began to find these Watkin workmen still holding their district
-and rendering valuable help to their relieving comrades! The Kushva
-Soviet Commissar had built better than he knew.
-
-This district is remarkable for the valuable and extensive deposits of
-iron and sulphur, which seem inexhaustible. One huge hill has a store of
-about 800,000,000,000 tons, almost untapped except for uncovering work
-necessary to estimate its capacity.
-
-The Revolution in Russia may alter a few things, but it can scarcely
-effect much change in the character of its people. This iron mountain is
-an illustration of the mixture of mediaevalism and modernism to be found
-in Russia's industrial development. The summit of the mountain is capped
-with an Orthodox Greek church, and desperate efforts have been made to
-secure its removal to a less exalted and less valuable site. I was
-informed that the mere suggestion proved almost fatal to its
-originators, and by so narrow a margin did they escape that the proposal
-is not likely to be repeated. I made the suggestion quite innocently,
-and produced such a storm that only my foreign ignorance provided me
-with a satisfactory excuse. I was asked: "Would you take God from His
-place over this work?" One other thing I noticed everywhere. There was
-not one important workshop from Irkutsk to Perm without its altar,
-candles and all complete, and scarcely a business or Government office
-without its ikon facing you the moment you entered.
-
-I attended the Orthodox Easter celebration at Perm. The whole edifice
-was crowded with people of every walk in life. I was not merely an
-interested spectator, but one who believes that where man worships he
-appeals to the same God no matter by what name He is called.
-
-I watched this crowd, each holding a long lighted taper, stand for hours
-making the sign of the Cross, while the gorgeously-robed priest chanted
-the service and made sundry waves with his hands and gave certain
-swings with the incense-burner. The responses were made by a group of
-men with beautiful, well-trained voices, but the people looked
-spiritually starved. Not one took the slightest part in the service
-beyond an occasional whispered murmur, nor are they expected to. They
-stood outside the pale; there was no place for them. I must say that I
-contrasted this isolation of the congregation with the joint act of
-worship as performed in our churches, both Free and Anglican. I looked
-at these "Christian" men and women and thought of the butchery of
-Petrograd and Moscow, the wells of Kushva and Taighill, and the ruthless
-disregard of human life by both sides in this brutal internecine strife.
-I wondered whether I had stumbled upon at least one of the causes. At
-any rate, I did not forget we also had the heroes of the Watkin Works.
-
-Nadegenska is the extreme north-west point of the Ural system of
-railways, and is famous because of its great privately-owned steelworks.
-These works were originated by a poor peasant woman, who developed the
-whole district until it has become the most northerly Asiatic industrial
-centre in the Russian Empire. The contrast in treatment at these
-privately-owned works compared with those owned by the Government is
-significant. The Soviet Commissar knew nothing about the business
-himself, and appointed Works Commissars, still more ignorant of their
-duties, to control the establishment. The result was that production
-fell to such a point that the experts refused to work under such
-incompetents and gradually escaped to other outlandish districts. The
-manager stuck to his post during the battle of Perm, and by a judicious
-distribution among the Bolshevik Commissars of the surplus roubles of
-the Tsar remaining in his possession got them out of the works without
-damage. This was an unheard-of situation, for nowhere else have the
-Soviet Commissars left anything they could destroy.
-
-It was interesting to notice that nearly the whole of the machinery in
-these works was either of German or American make, the latter always
-predominating; there was some English and some Belgian, about an equal
-amount of each. I heard a curious statement at Kushva to the effect that
-the German firms were always prepared to build and fit out a big works,
-and run it for one year, without asking for a penny. Of course they
-always first carefully examined the possibilities of the locality, but
-the managers assured me that it was rare for German machinery to be
-equal, either for use or wear and tear, to the English, nor was it as
-cheap; but they could always get long credit from German firms, and that
-was most important in developing new enterprises.
-
-We set off for Perm, with a stop on our way at the Vackneah Turansky
-Works. These works employed from four to five thousand men, doing
-everything from smelting to the making of engines, carriages, shells,
-guns, etc., and were the best equipped workshops I saw in the Urals. The
-only complaint was lack of orders. The old régime did everything--nearly
-all this great mineral district was developed under the personal care of
-the Tsars. The Bolsheviks have destroyed the State control of these
-establishments, and already the _bourgeoisie_ are casting hungry eyes
-upon this great industry and the Omsk Ministers are rubbing hands over
-the loot they hope to collect during this transfer. How vain the hopes
-of those who looked to the Revolution to develop public control of all
-natural resources! Already the State lands are parcelled out amongst the
-wealthy peasants, who as a result of this robbery will establish a great
-landed aristocracy, and, if I do not misread the signs, a similar fate
-is about to overtake the great State industries with the creation of an
-aristocracy of wealth.
-
-At Turansky we picked up Sergeant Coleman, of the Durham Light Infantry,
-the only Englishman who weathered the journey from Archangel with a
-party of Russians who had started from the north to try and get into
-direct touch with the Russian Army. They had made a circuitous route and
-avoided the districts held by the Bolshevik forces, and therefore had
-nothing of interest to report to us. The whole party, under a Russian
-officer in English uniform, were attached to my train and taken to Perm,
-where instructions awaited them to proceed at once to Omsk.
-
-While examining the damage done during the street fighting at Perm we
-encountered a mob of the Red Guard who had marched over their own lines
-at Glashoff and surrendered to General Gaida. They were drawn up four
-deep in the market-place for a roll call. I studied their faces and
-general appearance, and came to the conclusion that if the progress of
-the world depended upon such as these the world was in a very bad way.
-They were Kirghis, Mongols, Tartars, Chinese, mixed with a fair
-sprinkling of European-Russian peasants, workmen and others mostly of
-the lowest type, but with just enough of the "old soldier" element to
-make them formidable. A strange idea struck me that I would like to
-speak to these men. The proposition, made almost in jest, was taken up
-seriously by my liaison officer, Colonel Frank, who interviewed the
-commandant of the station, Colonel Nikolioff, upon the subject. He at
-first took up a hostile attitude, but when he gathered the substance of
-my proposed address he consented, and arranged the meeting at the camp
-for 6 P.M. the following evening, April 22. Of all the meetings it has
-been my privilege to hold, this was the most unique. The Bolshevik
-soldiers stood to attention and listened to me with great interest. One
-or two were sailors, and some others could understand a little English,
-as could be seen by the way they conveyed in whispers the points of the
-speech to their neighbours. Madame Frank translated, and in beautiful
-Russian drove home each point. Hers was a magnificent performance. As
-she repeated my word-picture of their untilled fields, destroyed homes,
-outraged women, and murdered children, not the ravages of an alien
-enemy, but the work of their own hands, Russian against Russian, tears
-trickled down their war-scarred faces. Clearly these men felt they had
-been deceived, and would willingly endeavour to rectify the injuries of
-the past. Some volunteered their services at once to help their Mother
-Country to recover from the ravages they had made and administer justice
-upon those who had led them into madness, but Colonel Nikolioff asked
-them to remember that their crimes had been very great, and nothing but
-time could heal the wounds and soften the bitterness their conduct had
-created. Some asked that it should be remembered that they were not
-Bolshevik in principle, but had been forced to become soldiers in the
-Red Army, from which they could not desert until their villages were
-captured by the Koltchak army, as their whole families, held as hostages
-for their good conduct, would have been massacred. This they asserted
-had been done in numberless cases where the families were in Bolshevik
-hands.
-
-The value of the rouble in Perm at that time was about one penny. My
-officers and men were paid at the rate of 40 roubles to the £1. The
-prisoners' camp was about three and a half versts distant, and the
-duration of the meeting was one hour and five minutes; the droshky hire
-for the journey was 100 roubles per droshky. Everything was in
-proportion. For instance, common cigarettes were 1 rouble each. If I had
-smoked twenty a day or used them between myself and my numerous official
-visitors, half my colonel's pay would have gone. There must surely have
-been something wrong in fixing the rate of exchange at Harbin or
-"Vlady," 5,000 versts away, and leaving officers at the front in a stage
-of poverty not one whit better than the people whose all had been
-destroyed by the Revolution. I have no remedy to offer, but it is not
-very satisfactory to receive your rouble at 6d. and spend it at 1d. What
-is more! If I had been paid in £1 notes or sovereigns, I could have got
-something approaching 200 roubles for each at the Perm rate! Wages had
-increased under Bolshevik rule, but prices were such that one of the
-petitions we had to forward to the Government at Omsk on behalf of the
-workmen was that the wages and prices should be the same as under the
-old régime.
-
-On April 24 the ice on the Khama started to move about 5 A.M. It was a
-very imposing sight. It moved first as one solid block, carrying boats,
-stacks of timber, sledge roads--everything--with it. The point near the
-bridge held for some time, until the weight behind forced some part down
-and crunched its way through in one irresistible push; the other part
-rose over the resistance and rolled like an avalanche over and over,
-smashing itself into huge blocks which were forced into a rampart fifty
-feet high, when the enormous weight broke the ice platform on which it
-was piled, and the whole moved majestically off towards the Volga. Then
-one experienced the peculiar illusion of gliding along the river; it was
-necessary to plant one's feet far apart to prevent a fall. The Khama
-near Perm is over a mile wide, and this method of Nature to herald
-spring to these snow- and ice-bound regions lacks nothing so far as
-grandeur is concerned. During the next few days millions of tons of
-derelict timber passed on its way to the Caspian. The careless Russian
-never thinks of hauling his spare stock off the ice until the ice
-actually begins to move. He tells you that the proper time for the ice
-to move is between May 1 and 5; that if it moves a week earlier it means
-good crops, which would balance the loss of the timber, so that he has
-no cause to complain.
-
-It is no part of my business to deal with atrocities such as have
-disgraced the proletarian dictatorship of Moscow. Where I could not
-avoid them in my narrative of events, I have done so without reference
-to the revolting details which everybody so hungrily devours. History
-shows that it is not possible to avoid these excesses whenever the
-safeguards of civil order are swept away by the passions of the mob. Our
-own revolutionaries should remember this before and not after the event.
-They should be considered not as a risk but as a certainty when once the
-foundations of order are uprooted. At Perm the breaking of the ice
-revealed some of the truth, and it formed quite sufficient evidence of
-the callous behaviour of the Bolshevik administrators.
-
-Below a steep bank a few yards from the Terrorist headquarters a small
-shed was erected on the ice. It was called a wash-house, and during the
-day washing was done there. At night the place, apparently, was, like
-the streets, deserted, but as a square hole was cut through the ice, it
-was an ideal place for the disposal of bodies, dead or alive. The people
-knew that after an inspection of the better-class homes by officers of
-the Soviet if there was evidence of valuable loot; the whole family
-would quietly disappear, and the valuables were distributed by sale, or
-otherwise, amongst the Soviet authorities. If a workman protested
-against this violence, he disappeared, too, in the same secret fashion.
-
-The poor women who used the shed during the day for its legitimate
-purpose told from time to time grim stories of blood and evidence of
-death struggles on the frozen floor as they began the morning's work.
-Several thousand people were missing by the time the Koltchak forces
-captured the town.
-
-The ice in the shelter of the bank began to thaw before the more exposed
-part of the river, which enabled the people whose friends and neighbours
-were missing to put a rude and ineffective screen below the shed in the
-hope of recovering the bodies of some of their friends. I knew about the
-shed but not about the screen, until I was informed by Regt.
-Sergeant-Major Gordon that he had seen several hundred bodies taken from
-the river. The following morning I walked into the crowd of anxious
-people who were watching the work. The official in charge told me quite
-simply that they had not had a very good morning, for three hours' work
-had only produced some forty bodies. I looked at these relics of the new
-order; they were of both sexes and belonged to every condition of life,
-from the gruff, horny-handed worker to the delicately-nurtured young
-girl. A miscellaneous assortment of the goods, among other things,
-revolutions are bound to deliver.
-
-We held a big meeting in the great railway works which created quite a
-sensation. The fact that the English were at Perm spread back to Omsk,
-and four days later Japanese and French Missions put in an appearance.
-If the French came to maintain their prestige it was a pity that they
-did not choose a better agent for their purpose. I had been invited to
-lunch with a very worthy representative of the town, Mr. Pastrokoff, and
-his wife. I arrived to find the good lady in great agitation. A French
-officer had called and informed the household that a French Mission had
-just arrived composed of three officers; they would require the three
-best rooms in the house, the use of the servants and kitchen; that no
-furniture must be removed from the three rooms he saw under pain of
-punishment, etc. The lady protested and told the French officer that
-even the Bolsheviks had not demanded part of her very small house when
-made acquainted with the requirements of her family, but the officer had
-replied that any inconvenience was outweighed by the great honour
-conferred upon her house by the presence of officers of the French Army.
-It would not be polite to the glorious French Army to repeat Madame
-Pastrokoff's reply. It only shows how stupid it is to send to foreign
-countries any but the best men to represent a great and gallant nation.
-I naturally reminded Madame that she was a Russian, living in her own
-country, under her own Government, and she must report the case to the
-Russian authorities, who would doubtless provide accommodation for the
-French Mission if necessary.
-
-The Pastrokoffs, coupled with the vivacious Madame Barbara Pastokova and
-her husband, were among the most homely and interesting people it was my
-pleasure to meet in the Urals. If you have never been in Russia you know
-nothing of hospitality; you only squirm around the fringe of the
-subject. The hospitality of our friends at Perm was truly Russian, and
-I was sorry when we had to leave. M. Pastrokoff told me of the following
-incident of the early relief of Perm from the Terrorist.
-
-General Pepelaieff's army was stretched along the railway from Perm
-towards Vatka, the junction of the Archangel Railway. The temperature
-was over "60 below," the men were without clothes, thousands had died
-from exposure, and other thousands were in a ghastly condition from
-frost-bite. There was little or no hospital accommodation, and the Omsk
-Ministers were deaf to all appeals for help, they being more concerned
-as to how they could shake off the Supreme Governor's control than how
-best to perform their duty. In the early days of February the feeding of
-the army became a pressing problem, and still the Omsk Ministers
-remained silent. On February 10 Pastrokoff received an imperative order
-to appear at General Hepoff's office. At 11 A.M. he arrived to find nine
-of the wealthiest citizens of Perm already collected. Looking out of the
-windows they saw a full company of Siberian Rifles surround the building
-with fixed bayonets. The general entered the room and sat at his table,
-they remained standing. Looking at, and _through_, each one separately,
-he delivered this cryptic speech: "Gentlemen, I have brought you here to
-tell you that out on the railway between you and your enemies lie the
-remains of our brave army! They have little clothes, but plenty of wood,
-so their fires may prevent their bodies from being frozen, but ten days
-from now there will be no food, and unless food can be secured, nothing
-can prevent their dispersal or starvation. I have determined that they
-shall neither disperse nor starve. The Omsk Ministers have forgotten us,
-the Supreme Governor has given his orders, but these paltry people who
-ought to assist him do nothing. We must do their work ourselves."
-Reading down a list of the necessities of his army he said: "You
-gentlemen will produce these things within ten days. If on February 21
-these supplies are not to hand, that will be the end of everything so
-far as you ten gentlemen are concerned."
-
-"He allowed no discussion," said M. Pastrokoff, "and if he had we should
-have been discussing it now, and the Terrorists would have re-occupied
-Perm. I returned home and felt cold in the feet. I had a guard of
-fifteen men placed on my person, the others the same. I knew that some
-of my companions in distress were muddlers, but sent for my friend ----
-and drew our plans for carrying out the general's orders. We were
-greatly helped in this determination by witnessing the execution of a
-company and platoon commander of one of our regiments under General
-Hepoff's orders for having allowed thirty men of their company to desert
-to the enemy during an affair of outposts. We saw we had to deal with a
-man who never went back on his word."
-
-On February 18 the general sent his aide-de-camp to inform the ten that
-it would be necessary for them to put their affairs in order as they
-would be taken to the front for execution, so that the starving soldiers
-might know their immediate chiefs were not responsible for the condition
-of the army. M. Pastrokoff was able to prove the things were on the
-way, and only the disorganised condition of the railway made it
-necessary to ask for a few days' grace. The general granted four days,
-at the end of which the goods were delivered as per instructions. "What
-did the general then do?" I asked. "When his soldiers were fed he burst
-into my house and kissed me, and would have gone on his knees if I would
-have allowed him. He has been here several times since, and we have
-become great friends. He is a true Russian!" added Pastrokoff proudly.
-
-We returned to Ekaterinburg on April 29, and were surprised to find that
-General Knox and the Headquarters Staff had removed from Omsk and taken
-up position there. The Hampshires were about to move up; barrack and
-other accommodation had already been secured. The first echelon arrived
-the following morning. An Anglo-Russian brigade of infantry was in
-course of formation and seemed likely to prove a great success. It
-offered employment for the numerous officers and N.C.O.s who had arrived
-and for whom no proper place for work had so far been provided. It was
-truly a stroke of genius for our War Office to flood us with officers
-and men as instructors for the new Russian army, scarcely one of whom
-could speak a word of Russian! I feel sure the Russians and ourselves
-will get on well together, we are so much alike. Omsk and Whitehall are
-true to type; they each first exhaust the possibility of error, and when
-no wrong course is left, the right road becomes quite easy. The only
-difference is in the motive. Ours is mostly because social influence is
-always on the side of educated mediocrity, and theirs because self,
-coupled with corruption, is their natural incentive to all exertion. We
-have a different standard; all our theories of Government preclude the
-possibility of hidden personal advantage in the transaction of State
-business. The Russian view is that no competent official could be
-expected to conduct business transactions for the State unless he
-personally gains some advantage. If an official neglected a private
-opportunity so obvious, it would justify the suspicion that his scruples
-would make him unequal to the proper protection of the State. In other
-words, the official who is poor at the end of a decent term of office
-never should have been trusted with the interests of the community. It
-is strange to hear them catalogue the proved cases of corruption amongst
-officials of other countries. They never forget a case of this kind no
-matter in which country it occurred. They argue that they are no worse
-than others, forgetting that these exceptions only prove the rule,
-whereas in Russia the honest official is rather the exception. After
-all, public opinion decides the standard of conduct adopted by a
-country. Morals change with time, also with countries and peoples. A
-harem would be a nuisance in London, but stands as a sign of Allah's
-blessing in Constantinople.
-
-I returned to Omsk on May 3 to find that the snow and ice had given
-place to a storm of dust which crept through every crevice of one's
-habitation and flavoured everything with dirt and grit. It was, if
-anything, worse than a sandstorm in the Sudan. The Sudan type is fairly
-clean, but this Omsk variety is a cloud of atomic filth which carries
-with it every known quality of pollution and several that are quite
-unknown. I don't remember being able to smell a Sudan storm, but this
-monstrous production stank worse than a by-election missile. The service
-of a British soldier on these special trips is not exactly a sinecure.
-The people at home who pay can be sure their money is well earned before
-Tommy gets it. The south wind sweeps up from Mongolia and Turkestan, and
-while it brings warmth to our frozen bones its blessing becomes a bit
-mixed with other things before we get them. I only mention it, not to
-complain! We never do in war-time!
-
-A special dispatch from London arrived on May 5 which delayed my
-starting for Vladivostok. If the object at which it aimed could have
-been secured it would have been a beam of light upon a very sombre
-subject. I had a lengthy conference with General Knox upon my tour to
-the Urals and the facts gathered as to the mineral and productive
-resources of the districts through which I had passed. The London
-dispatch also occupied our attention, and as the Supreme Governor had
-fixed the next day for my final farewell interview with himself, the
-possible course of our conversation was also considered. It was arranged
-that my journey to "Vlady" should be delayed until the matter referred
-to in the dispatch had been dealt with in accordance with instructions.
-
-My audience with the Supreme Governor was very cordial, and he
-especially thanked me for the help I had rendered himself and Russia in
-the dark days of November and December, 1918. He expressed the opinion
-that my mission to the workmen had been a great success, and was the
-first piece of definite work so far accomplished in the reconstruction
-and resurrection of the Russian State. He pointed out that his own
-labours were devoted to the one object of restoring order to the
-country, but that this work could only be performed by a powerful army.
-England had rendered him all help possible, but still the military
-problem engrossed all his thoughts and precluded his taking active part
-in the work of social reconstruction. He thought his Ministers and other
-assistants would have been able to help in it, but he had been sadly
-mistaken, and his experience had taught him that it was necessary to
-learn everything himself and therefore he was all the more grateful for
-my assistance. We took tea together, during which he informed me that he
-was about to start for the front to arrange for a further push along the
-northern line towards Vatka in the direction of Petrograd, with the
-chance of forming a junction with the forces at Archangel, and if
-General Knox would consent he wished me to remain at Omsk until he
-returned. General Knox placed the London dispatch before the Supreme
-Governor, and I remained to assist in settling its details.
-
-On May 7 the Chief of the British Mission, Major-General Knox, asked me
-to assist him in drafting the reply to the London dispatch. The heads
-having been agreed to by the Supreme Governor, it was necessary to
-consult with the Minister who assisted him with his foreign affairs. He
-is distinguished by a sort of cleverness which borders very closely to
-cunning. In a few years he will probably make a very able diplomat of
-the old type, but whether that is the sort of equipment which will serve
-under the new order, now in the throes of birth, remains to be seen. He
-is Republican, having lived long in America, and honestly believes that
-Russia must be directed in her orientation towards Republican countries
-rather than to the evidently permanently and exclusively Monarchist
-country, England. There I think I know more of his Russian
-fellow-countrymen and better understand their character and sentiments
-than he! But he is very young, very able, and his name is Sukin, and he
-has time to learn.
-
-In accordance with the wish of the Governor, the dispatch and draft were
-shown to him, and a few hours later, while dining with a Cossack
-general, I was asked if I knew anything about a dispatch from London
-that was making a great stir amongst the members of the French and
-American Missions. I answered that being a regimental officer, not
-attached to the English Mission, dispatches were not my business, though
-as a rule if important dispatches arrived, I heard about them; I had
-heard of no dispatch which could upset the French or American Missions.
-
-I informed Consul Hodgson, who was representing the High Commissioner in
-his absence, of this, and it was decided to hurry on with the
-construction and completion of the draft. It was completed in its final
-shape by General Knox and myself in his train at the Omsk Vatka in
-front of the Russian Staffka, 9.30 A.M., May 9, 1919.
-
-Much of this Russian "Bill of Rights" had to be pushed down the throats
-of the Russian official elements. The Supreme Governor never wavered
-over a single point; his large democratic sympathies were satisfied by
-his signature to what he hoped would be the foundation of Russian
-liberty. How fortunate for Russia that she had such a man to call upon
-in her hour of need! No matter what the final result of his efforts may
-be, whether success or defeat, his was the mind and personality that
-enabled this great people to bridge what looked like an impossible gulf
-and turn their faces to the sun.
-
-How fortunate it was that at this critical hour in Russian history
-England was represented by Major-General Knox! I had never heard of him
-till I went to Siberia, yet in him we have a man combining the courage
-of the soldier with the higher qualities of a statesman, ready made for
-the special business in hand. The British Empire doubtless, like Topsy,
-"growed"! It is more an exhibition of race luck than genius. The way in
-which we occasionally drop the right man in the right place is not an
-act of Government so much as a stroke of chance. We make awful bloomers
-in these matters sometimes, but in this case our luck stood by us to
-some purpose. More than once, when the timidity of the "Politicals" had
-almost destroyed Russian faith in our honesty of purpose, the robust
-honesty of his personality turned the scale in our favour. Every Russian
-trusts him, except those who have forgotten they are Russians. They
-hate him. That is the real certificate of his worth. I can quite
-understand the fear of some Labour elements at home that our presence in
-Siberia may be used by reactionaries to re-establish the old régime. Had
-I been at home I might have had the same feeling. But I was there, and
-knew that it was our very presence which made that for the moment
-impossible. The excesses of the Bolsheviks made the people, both peasant
-and workman, hanker after the comparative security of the Tsars. The
-reactionary elements would have been only too pleased to see our backs;
-our presence was a safeguard against the absolutism for which some of
-them scheme. The weariness of the peasantry and workmen with
-revolutionary disorder gave the opportunity to reaction to establish
-another absolutism which was only restrained by outside influence.
-Major-General Knox does not write polished dispatches upon army
-movements under his command, but he perhaps performed greater service to
-humanity and democracy by his patient and efficient handling on the spot
-of one of the great world problems.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-MAKING AN ATAMAN
-
-
-General Evan Pootenseiff arranged a parade of the 2nd Siberian Cossack
-Regiment outside Omsk on May 14 to say "Good-bye" to the "Anglisky
-Polkovnika," his officers and soldiers. Needless to say, we were all
-there, and it was an occasion that will be remembered by all who had the
-honour to be present. Those who look upon the Cossacks as a sort of
-untrained irregular cavalry had better revise their ideas at once, for
-fear of further future miscalculations. The evolutions of this force in
-every branch of cavalry work are simply superb. The Cossack control of
-his horse, either singly or in combination, is not approached by any
-army in the world. The parade was under the immediate command of the
-Assistant Ataman, Colonel Bezovsky, and the wonderful display of
-horsemanship was loudly applauded by the English Tommies, who were the
-most interested spectators.
-
-The parade over, the officers adjourned to an extremely artistic Kirghis
-tent pitched on a treeless plain, where lunch was served; but the viands
-were left untouched until the toast of "His Britannic Majesty" had been
-drunk in good Tsaristic vodka. Then it became a real military
-fraternisation. Officers inside, soldiers out. No civilian was allowed
-to approach within three versts, except the old Kirghis chief who,
-dressed in his picturesque native dress, had travelled over fifty versts
-to attend the function of making an English Ataman. The band of the
-Cossack regiment tried valiantly to enliven the proceedings with music,
-but the English marching choruses soon silenced all opposition. Then the
-Cossack commander called his men around, and giving time with his
-cowhide thong, led them through some of the most weird Cossack war songs
-it is possible to imagine. The difference in our mentality was never so
-well illustrated as in the songs of the two people. Ours were lively,
-happy, and full of frolic and fun; theirs were slow, sad wails, which
-can only come from the heart of a long troubled people. The songs of
-Ermak Tinothavitch, the conqueror of Siberia, were fierce and martial,
-but the strain of tragedy ran through them all.
-
-Then the Cossacks placed their commander upon two swords and tossed him
-while singing the song of Stenkarazin, the robber chief, and at the end
-drew their swords and demanded toll, which took the form of five bottles
-extra. I was then admitted to the fraternity and presented with the
-Ataman's badge, and after due ceremony with a Cossack sword, by the
-regiment, admitted to their circle. I went through the sword tossing,
-and gained freedom for 100 roubles; and here my narrative of the making
-of a Cossack had better end. Sufficient to say I never met a
-freer-hearted set of men in my travels round the world than these
-dreadful guardians of the Tsars, and if in course of time I get tired of
-England, I shall claim my kinship with these freemen of forest and
-plain. These men so love liberty that not even the Tsars dared interfere
-with their rights.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-HOMEWARD BOUND
-
-
-On May 17 Omsk was excluded from the Vatka (station), and by this
-indirect means became aware that the Supreme Governor was returning from
-the front. The Cossack Guard lined up outside, while detachments of
-Russian infantry in English uniform occupied the platform. The Russian
-Tommies looked quite smart, and except for their long, narrow,
-triangular bayonets, might easily have been mistaken for English troops.
-While awaiting the train, General Knox informed me that two of our
-proposals, "Women's suffrage" and "Universal education," had been cut
-out by the reactionaries. Why are the churches of the world so hostile
-to the popular education of the people? The Church is quite prepared to
-allow the people to receive educational instruction if controlled by the
-priests. It prefers to leave them in ignorance and the easy prey of
-Bolshevik charlatanism rather than allow free play for intelligent
-thinking. Women's suffrage was opposed by quite a different set of men,
-mostly those who make enormous display of deference to drawing-room
-ladies, and look upon us Englishmen as wanting in gallantry because we
-do not kiss every feminine hand we shake. On the whole I think it is
-good to have pushed them ahead so far. Measured by Russian standards, it
-amounts to a revolution in ideas of government. The great thing just now
-is to fix some point beyond which the pendulum shall not be allowed to
-swing towards reaction. The workmen are sick of strife and would gladly
-go straight back to the old régime as an easy way of escape from
-Bolshevism. This is the danger from which English diplomacy has tried,
-and is trying, to guard the Russian people if possible.
-
-Thus, having finished my work at Omsk, I asked that arrangements might
-be made as quickly as possible to transport my escort and myself to
-Vladivostok. The arrangements were completed by May 21, when I announced
-myself ready to begin the first stage of my journey homeward. The
-Supreme Governor surprised me by proposing to visit me in my carriage at
-the Vatka to say "Good-bye." At 7 P.M. he came, attended by his
-aide-de-camp; he was very gracious in his thanks for my services to the
-Russian people. He said my voice, presence and influence had aroused the
-better elements to throw off the feeling of despair which had so
-universally settled upon them. He did not presume to calculate the good
-I had done, though none appreciated it better than himself, since we had
-been thrown by circumstances into personal contact with each other.
-Without attempting to form an estimate of his character, I considered
-his visit and words the act of a gentleman, and as such I appreciated
-it.
-
-I could but recall the last time he visited me in those dark, doubtful
-days of November, when I, who had no thought or place in my make-up for
-the word "Dictator," suddenly found myself in the presence of him who
-had that moment assumed such a position, and what was more serious for
-me, found myself forced on my own authority, unaided by one word of
-warning or counsel from others, instantly to decide not only my own
-attitude but also, to some extent, that of my country to this last act
-in the drama of a people grown desperate. Once having given my promise
-to help, he never found that help withheld at critical moments later.
-The British forces were few, but they were disciplined and knew their
-own mind, and this was what every other party, both Russian and Allied,
-lacked. Every Allied force had its "Politicals" at hand, and therefore
-were powerless for any purpose. The Fates had sent ours to Vladivostok,
-5,000 versts east, at the very moment when their presence and general
-political policy would have paralysed correct military action. The month
-which intervened before they could exert direct influence upon the
-situation enabled us to consolidate the new orientation. The greater
-part of this time we were "in the air," having cut our own
-communications, and no countermanding orders could interrupt or confuse
-the nerve centre. At first the "Politicals" were inclined to be angry,
-but with such a tower of strength as General Knox in support they soon
-came to look upon the proceedings as a _fait accompli_. Later they
-confessed that their absence at the supreme moment was the act of a wise
-Providence. The very nature of their business (had they been present)
-would have created delays and difficulties that might have proved fatal
-to success.
-
-Except for some quaint fetish about the necessity for maintaining the
-usual diplomatic forms, there is no necessity for delay in emergencies
-of this description. If an ordinarily intelligent Englishman, with a
-fair knowledge of English history and a grasp of the traditions and
-mentality of his countrymen, cannot carry on, how are people miles away,
-with no opportunity to visualise the actual situation, to instruct him?
-Diplomatic methods and forms are all right for leisurely negotiations,
-but are useless in urgent and dangerous occasions. If my work fails, as
-even now it may, I shall be subject to severe criticism; but I shall get
-that even if it succeeds, so what does it matter so long as in my own
-mind I did the best in the circumstances?
-
-My journey east was broken at Krasnoyarsk to enable me to interview the
-new commander, General Rosanoff, who had taken in hand the suppression
-of the revolt of the Lettish peasants north of the railway. South of the
-line all hostile elements had been dispersed. The line cut through the
-centre of the Bolshevik field of operations. The Czechs guarded the
-actual railway, and while they prevented large forces from moving across
-it, they took but little trouble to prevent miscreants from tampering
-with the rails, as was evidenced by the scores of derailed trains in all
-stages of destruction strewn along the track. This naturally involved
-great material loss and, what was still worse, a huge toll of innocent
-human life. One train, a fast passenger, accounted for two hundred
-women and children, besides uncounted men. Fairly large Russian forces
-were now placed at General Rosanoff's disposal, and by a wide turning
-movement from Krasnoyarsk in a north-easterly direction, and with a
-large cavalry force operating towards the north-west from Irkutsk, the
-whole gang would, it was hoped, be herded towards the centre, and a few
-weeks would probably liquidate the whole disturbance. The Krasnoyarsk
-and the Ussurie movements of the Bolsheviks were under the direction of
-able officers appointed by the Red Guard Headquarters at Moscow, with
-whom they were in constant communication.
-
-Passing Irkutsk, we again struck the Baikal--looking more glorious than
-before. The warm south-west winds had cleared the snow from the western
-hills and thawed the ice from that half of the sea. The other half was
-still ice-bound. In the morning sunshine the snow-covered mountains in
-the east pierced the heavens with the radiance of eternal day. The
-disappearance of the sun only adds to their beauty; they alone seem to
-know no night. As we travelled round under the shadow of these giants
-the temperature fell many degrees below zero, and the cold from the
-water penetrated the carriages, necessitating fires and warm furs, in
-spite of the June sunshine.
-
-I had received intimation that it would be of service to the Omsk
-Government if I would call upon Colonel Semianoff and use my good
-offices and my newly-conferred honour as a Siberian Cossack Ataman to
-recall this erring son of Muscovy to the service of the State. I knew
-that British pressure had been applied to persuade the Japanese to cease
-their financial and moral support--both open and secret--to this
-redoubtable opponent of the Russian Government, and it was rumoured that
-British wishes had at last been complied with. It was common knowledge
-that the illegal floggings, murders, and robberies committed under the
-alleged authority of Colonel Semianoff would not have remained
-unpunished a day if he had not been under the protection of one of the
-most numerously represented Allied forces. Whatever faults may be
-alleged against Admiral Koltchak, cruelty or injustice cannot be
-included among them. I well remember his fury when it was reported to
-him that some eighty workmen had been illegally flogged by Semianoff's
-soldiers at Chita. His poor dilapidated reserves were ordered to move at
-once to their protection. Semianoff prepared his armoured trains and
-troops to receive them, but the same Allied Power which fed, clothed,
-and armed his troops kept at bay those who were ordered to avenge the
-wrongs of the Russian workmen.
-
-On another occasion I remember Admiral Koltchak's almost hopeless
-despair when some truculent officers had used their weapons and badges
-of rank to secure the persons of some Bolshevik prisoners, and
-anticipating the decision of the court about to try them, shot them in
-cold blood. He at once executed the officers and men who handed them
-over, as well as such of those who took part in the conspiracy, even
-though they claimed to be merely the avengers of their own murdered
-families. Stern, impartial justice is part and parcel of this remarkable
-man's character. It was this very trait which made Semianoff and the
-Supreme Governor natural enemies.
-
-The day that I arrived at Chita it was officially announced that
-Semianoff had made his submission to the authority of Koltchak, and had
-accepted an appointment in the Russian Army. My task therefore changed
-its character; the proposed admonishment became a congratulation in a
-very frank and friendly half-hour's interview, the colonel returning the
-visit to my carriage later. Colonel Semianoff is one of the most
-striking personalities I have met in Russia; a man of medium height,
-with square broad shoulders, an enormous head, the size of which is
-greatly enhanced by the flat, Mongol face, from which gleam two clear,
-brilliant eyes that rather belong to an animal than a man. The whole
-pose of the man is at first suspicious, alert, determined, like a tiger
-ready to spring, to rend and tear, but in repose the change is
-remarkable, and with a quiet smile upon the brown face the body relaxes.
-Colonel Semianoff is a very pleasant personality. His great physical
-strength has caused the Japanese to name him "Samurai," or "Brave Knight
-of the Field," and I think that is a good description of his character.
-Relentless and brave, kindness nevertheless finds a part in his make-up.
-The princes of Mongolia have asked him to become their emperor, and
-should he choose this path a whirlwind will pass over the neighbouring
-lands. Perhaps underneath he is, after all, a good Russian--time will
-tell. If his conversion is real he will add a tower of strength to the
-Russian fighting forces.
-
-At Harbin I heard a full explanation of the reason for the Mongolians
-approaching Semianoff to become their emperor. Mongolia previous to the
-Revolution was considered as under a loose sort of Russian protection.
-Since the break-up of the Russian Empire the Japanese have cast longing
-eyes upon this extensive country, which is supposed to belong to both
-Russia and China but in reality it belongs to neither. The Japanese have
-roamed all over the country during these last two years, and have spent
-time and money lavishly in propaganda. They first tried to orientate the
-Mongol mind towards a direct connection with themselves, but their
-avarice and conceit offend all the people with whom they come into
-contact. This direct method of getting control of Mongolia had therefore
-to be abandoned in favour of a round-about but more dangerous policy.
-Colonel Semianoff is only half Russian, his mother being a Mongolian
-woman of high birth. He speaks Mongolian perfectly, and the Mongolians
-claim him for their own. Semianoff admitted to me personally that he had
-been subsidised all through by Japan. It was the Japanese who called the
-Mongolian princes together and prevailed upon them to offer Semianoff
-the title of Emperor of Mongolia. He had other fish to fry, however, but
-when his other schemes fail, as I think they must, he will be quite
-ready to play the Japanese game in Mongolia as faithfully as he did in
-Siberia. Semianoff will be the puppet, but Japan will pull the strings;
-that at least is their hope and belief.
-
-About thirty versts west of Manchuli our train was stopped by a red
-flag, and a railway workman informed us of a raid upon a homestead by
-the side of the railway, the robbers having decamped two hours before
-our arrival. The father had two bullets through his chest and one
-through the right side of his neck, and had crawled a distance of over a
-verst to give information. He was taken up on our train, and we went
-forward to the scene of the tragedy. In the small wooden house, covered
-with loose feathers, lay the dead body of the mother with her unborn
-baby, near by lay a girl of about ten with her head terribly wounded. In
-an outhouse was the body of their Chinese boy. My hospital orderly
-rendered what aid was possible to the girl, who was carried by Madame
-Frank to my carriage for conveyance to the hospital at Manchuli. A
-civilian doctor declared both cases hopeless, and the depositions of the
-man were taken. Briefly thus:
-
-When the Bolsheviks first occupied Manchuli a railway workman of
-anarchist tendencies was appointed Soviet Commissar of the district.
-Afterwards, when the Bolshevik power was destroyed and their forces were
-driven off the railway, the Bolshevik bands took to the forest, some
-engaging in running contraband over the Chinese frontier, others forming
-themselves into bands who not only robbed the isolated peasantry, but
-forced young men to join them, and afterwards levied toll upon large
-villages and small towns. About three in the morning this Bolshevik
-Commissar knocked at the cottage door and asked the father to let him
-come in, as he was very tired, having had a long journey with
-contraband. Believing him to be alone, the man opened the door. The room
-was immediately filled with armed men, who demanded his savings or his
-life. The commissar, from his knowledge of such matters, believing his
-savings to be in the feather pillow, ripped it open and found 4,600
-roubles. Having collected all the other small articles of value in the
-house, these innocent children of the Revolution held consultation on
-the necessity of killing everybody who knew them to be Bolsheviks, so
-that the crime should be cast upon the Chinese robber gangs who
-occasionally raid Russian territory. This important point in the
-regeneration of Russia settled, they shot the man in the chest, the
-bullet coming out by the shoulder-blade. The wife, begging for the life
-of her husband, was bayoneted, and the aroused Chinese workman was
-dispatched with a rifle. Then these harmless idealists proceeded to
-depart. So far they had not touched the girl, but the father, on
-regaining consciousness, heard the closed door open again, saw the
-leader of the "comrades" re-enter and pick up a small axe near the fire,
-with which he proceeded to smash the head of the child. Nature in its
-terrible revolt gave the father the power to raise himself slightly from
-the floor in a vain effort to grapple with this representative of the
-new régime. The commissar shouted: "What, still alive!" and fired two
-more point-blank shots at the prostrate man.
-
-It was entirely due to the tenacity of the father that the object of the
-killing was frustrated and the identification of the scoundrels with the
-Bolshevik commanders operating in this neighbourhood completed. I had
-no time to pick up the trail and punish the murderers. What sort of
-punishment the Tommies would have decided as necessary to fit the crime
-is better imagined than described!
-
-It was June when we passed over the Hinghan range, a series of sand
-mountains of great extent which form the breeding-ground for numerous
-herds of horses who spread themselves over the slopes and plains and
-sometimes endanger the safety of the railway. Snow was falling in
-clouds, and banked itself against the rails and telegraphs in a
-surprising manner considering the time of the year. The summer of this
-wild region lasts about two months--July and August--during which time
-the sand becomes hot, and travelling is not comfortable. After crossing
-the summit the plains fell gradually away, enabling the trains to move
-with great rapidity, and in less than two days we struck Harbin, and
-donned our topees and tropical clothes.
-
-Harbin is the centre of Chinese and Russian political and financial
-intrigue. Other races take a fair hand in the business, but the
-predominance must be conceded to these two. There is some sort of
-national feeling amongst the worst type of Russian speculator, but none
-amongst the Chinese. The Harbin Chinaman is perfectly denationalised,
-and ought, therefore, according to some standards of political
-reckonings, to be the most ideal citizen in the world; but the world who
-knows him hopes that for ever he may be exclusively confined to Harbin.
-I had a long conversation with General Ghondati, one of the most
-level-headed living statesmen of the old régime. All his hopes are
-centred on the success of Admiral Koltchak in his efforts to secure
-order to enable the National Assembly to consider the question of a
-Constitutional Monarchy on England's pattern to be established at
-Moscow. If this cannot be, he fears Russia's travail will last longer
-and may be fatal to her existence. He was not himself opposed to a
-Federal Republic, but was certain that without a head the undisciplined
-semi-oriental elements would never accept the abolition of absolutism as
-final. The Russian people have it in their bones to obey a leader; their
-warlike nature precludes the possibility of their continued loyalty to a
-junta, however able. A crown on top, with a parliament to control and
-direct, would be the happiest solution of Russia's present difficulties.
-He summed his theory up in these words: "A properly elected parliament
-to make the law and rule, but there must be a monarch to issue its
-orders."
-
-Though this is the expressed opinion of what the Bolshevik would term
-one of the "old régime," it is nevertheless the openly-expressed opinion
-of the sensible leaders of every class of Russian society except
-two--the Bolsheviks at one end, and the Absolutists at the other. More
-than once already these two extremes have come close together to
-frustrate the possibility of a compromise on constitutional lines. They
-openly declare that, unless power is given to either one or the other,
-they would prefer that the present anarchy should continue. It is not
-the first time in revolutionary history that the adherents of autocracy
-(Royalist and otherwise) have preferred the ruin of their country rather
-than lose their own personal power.
-
-Ghondati is a clear-headed patriot, and I am surprised that his counsel
-has not been sought for in this supreme moment of his country's history.
-His ideas relating to recognition by the Powers were rather remarkable.
-He did not think that any country could give help to Russia without
-either asking for conditions or being suspected of doing so. The only
-exception was England. The reason England is not suspected is that her
-Empire is so vast and varied in character that she has all the raw
-material for her trade and all the space she requires for her surplus
-population. Her help, unlike that of any other State so far, has been
-unselfish and unconditional. Ghondati quite saw that "this fact was
-producing a steady and permanent orientation of Russian opinion towards
-England, which, if cultivated by British statesmanship, would eventually
-give my country everything she required, while those whose help was
-always surrounded with conditions would have great difficulty to retain
-the advantages they secured only under the pressure of circumstances."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-AMERICAN POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-
-
-At Nikolsk my train was stopped as the No. 4 Post train from Vladivostok
-had been wrecked by Bolsheviks, a startling situation considering that
-eleven months previously the whole power of Bolshevism had been
-destroyed in these maritime provinces. The station commandant was an old
-friend, who had given me his own private official carriage at the time
-when our little yellow brother had decided to lower the prestige of his
-white Ally in Eastern eyes by making British officers travel in
-cattle-trucks. He came into my car and began to explain how the
-cross-purposes of the American and Japanese forces were producing a
-state of uncertainty and disorder as bad, if not worse, than existed
-under the Bolshevik régime. Our conversation was cut short by the
-receipt of a telegram from the station-master at Kraevesk. It was to the
-effect that he was using his own line from his house, because a few
-minutes previously a detachment of the Red Guard had entered the station
-and, in the presence of the American soldiers who were guarding the
-railway, had placed himself and his staff under arrest and taken
-possession of the station; that the Reds had sent a message to Shmakovka
-ordering all Russian railway officials and staff to leave their posts,
-as the Bolshevik army, with the sanction of the American forces, was
-about to take over the line. The Red Guard officer in proof of his order
-stated "that fifteen American soldiers are now standing in the room from
-which I am sending this message." Having issued these orders in the
-presence of the Americans, they had removed the telegraph and telephone
-apparatus, and the station-master wished to know what he was to do and
-whether any help could be sent him. Imagine my utter astonishment at
-this message, containing, as it undoubtedly did, evidence of
-co-operation and understanding between the Bolshevik forces and one of
-our Allies.
-
-In one of my numerous interviews with Admiral Koltchak at Omsk he had
-made some very serious statements regarding the American policy in the
-Far East, which he feared would result in reproducing the previous state
-of disorder. I assured him that the policy of the Allies was to resist
-disorder and support order, and that I could not believe America had
-come to Siberia to make his task more difficult, but to help him in
-every reasonable way. He agreed that such was the intention of the
-American people, but he feared that the American command was being used
-for quite other purposes. His officers had informed him that out of
-sixty liaison officers and translators with American Headquarters over
-fifty were Russian Jews or the relatives of Russian Jews; some had been
-exiled from Russia for political and other offences, and had returned as
-American citizens, capable of influencing American policy in a direction
-contrary to that desired by the American people. I assured him that
-this could not be, and that his people might themselves in this matter
-be under the influence of a near Eastern neighbour not friendly to
-American interference in Eastern affairs, and that under this influence
-they might greatly magnify the danger. My words seemed to ease the
-admiral's mind, but he regretfully replied that the reports were so
-voluminous and categorical in character that he thought I, as a
-representative of the people of England, as well as an officer of His
-Majesty's Army, ought to be made acquainted with the situation.
-
-This matter had almost disappeared from my mind, but the message from
-the station-master at Kraevesk revived it with the vividness of a sudden
-blow. I at once determined to make myself acquainted as far as possible
-with the policy of the American commanders, and with this object in view
-I interviewed many American officers and soldiers. I found that both
-officers and men were most anxious to render all the help possible to
-maintain Koltchak's authority and crush disorder in the Far East, and,
-as they put it, "justify their presence in Siberia." Many felt that at
-the time they were only helping the Bolsheviks to recover their lost
-hold upon the people by providing neutral territory for Bolshevik
-propaganda; that when they arrived in the country in August, 1918, the
-English, Czechs, and Japanese, with the aid of such Russian units as
-then existed, had reduced the maritime provinces to order, but that
-their own efforts had produced a state of affairs similar to, if not
-worse than, those which existed during the actual Bolshevik occupation.
-I learnt from these American troops that their officers and officials,
-from General Graves downwards, had been in actual correspondence with
-Red Guard officers, and that more than one understanding had been
-arrived at between them; that for a time the ordinary American soldiers
-thought the understanding between the two forces was so general and
-friendly in character that no further hostile acts were to be
-contemplated between them. It was true that this wrecking of trains and
-attacks on the line guarded by American soldiers made things look
-serious, but they felt sure that the confidence existing between the
-American and Red Guard Headquarters was so well established that these
-acts of brigandage could only be due to some misunderstanding. The
-Kraevesk affair appeared to be only a symptom of a much wider policy,
-and not the foolish act of a negligent subordinate officer.
-
-Following up my inquiries there fell into my hands a letter, dated May
-24, from the American officer (Captain ----) commanding the American
-forces at Svagena, addressed to the officer commanding the Red Guard
-operating in that district. The American officer addressed the Red Guard
-commandant as a recognised officer of equal military standing. The
-American officer complained that after a recent fraternisation of the
-two forces which had taken place in accordance with previous
-arrangements near the "wood mill," on the departure of the Red troops he
-received reports that the Red Guard officer had ordered the destruction
-of certain machinery at the mill, and had also torn up two sections of
-the line at points east and west of the station at Svagena. The American
-captain enumerated other accusations against the Red Guard, such as
-threats to bayonet certain orderly disposed people who would not join
-the Bolshevik army, and warned the Red Commissar that these acts were
-contrary to the _agreement_ entered into by the chiefs of the American
-and Red forces, and if such acts were repeated he would take steps to
-punish those who committed such breaches of _their joint understanding_.
-
-I think this letter from the American officer at Svagena is positive
-proof of some local or general understanding between the American
-authorities and the Red army operating in the maritime provinces, and
-further, that this understanding had existed for many months; that it
-was this understanding which prevented the American forces joining in
-the combined Allied expedition to relieve the besieged Russian garrison
-in the Suchan district; that under this American-Bolshevik agreement the
-small scattered Red Guard bands who were dispersed by the Allies at the
-battle of Dukoveskoie in August, have collected together and formed
-definite military units. In other words, that the American policy,
-unconsciously or otherwise, has produced a state of indecision amongst
-the Allies, and unrest and anarchy amongst the population of the
-Transbaikal and Ussurie Provinces, which may prove disastrous to the
-rapid establishment of order in Russia.
-
-There are other indications that the presence of the American forces in
-Siberia has been used by somebody for purposes not purely American. The
-business of the American command is to secure order in those districts
-which have been placed under its control by the Council of Allied
-Commanders. There is another self-evident and obvious duty, namely, to
-shape their conduct in such manner as to create friendly relations with
-such elements of Russian authority and order as are gradually appearing
-here and there, under the influence of the Supreme Governor, and also
-provide as little space and opportunity as possible for the collection
-and reorganisation of the elements of disorder. The policy of the
-American command, quite unintentionally perhaps, has been quite the
-reverse. Their policy has resulted in turning every Russian authority
-against them, or, where this has not happened, they have themselves
-turned against Russian authority. They have prepared plans and created
-opportunities for the reorganisation of the forces of disorder which, if
-it does not actually create a serious situation for themselves, will do
-so for those Allies who are trying to bring order out of chaos. The
-reduction of the whole country to order, to enable it to decide its own
-future form of Government, is as much an American as a British object.
-That some sinister underground influence has deflected American policy
-from this straight and honest course is quite obvious.
-
-Contrary to general Allied opinion, the American command declared a
-neutral zone in the Suchan district. Armed operations by Russian, i.e.
-Admiral Koltchak's or Red Guard forces, were prohibited within this
-zone. Lenin and Trotsky's officers jumped at this order and at once
-began to collect their scattered forces together. Within three weeks
-they raised their Bolshevik flag on their own headquarters, under the
-protection of the flag of the United States. From this neutral American
-zone the Bolsheviks organised their forces for attacking the Japanese on
-the Amur, for destroying British and other supply trains on the Ussurie
-Railway, and finally exchanged shots with the Russian sentries near
-Vladivostok itself, always bolting back to the American zone when
-attacked by the forces of the Supreme Governor.
-
-The other Allies and the Russians having got the measure of this neutral
-zone business, naturally took steps to protect their men and property,
-and for a time the operations of this very energetic Lenin officer were
-confined to robbing and destroying a few isolated villages in the
-maritime provinces; but the utter absurdity of American policy was at
-last brought home to the Americans themselves. The Red Guard commandant,
-chafing under the restrictions imposed upon him by the Russian and
-Japanese forces (in which the British also joined when Captain Edwards
-could get near with his good ship _Kent_), decided to attack the
-unsuspecting Americans themselves. The Red Guard were very clever in
-their operations. The American troops were guarding the
-Vladivostok-Suchan Railway; the neutral zone was situated at the extreme
-end of the line. If the Red Guard had attacked the end near the zone
-their tactics would have been discovered at once. They therefore usually
-marched out from the American zone, made a detour through villages and
-forest, and struck the railway at a point as far distant as possible.
-Destroying a bit of line--perhaps, if they had good luck, burning a
-bridge--they usually exchanged a few shots with the American troops, and
-if pressed, marched back to the zone under the protection of a section
-of the very forces they had been raiding. The American command naturally
-became more vigilant on the distant sections of the line, and this
-forced the Bolsheviks to operate nearer and nearer the protected zone;
-but in the meantime they managed to kill several Russian soldiers, wound
-a few Americans, and destroy five different sections of the railway.
-Then they operated too near the zone, and the American troops pressed
-them straight into their own zone, where, to add insult to injury, they
-claimed that in accordance with the American proclamation they could not
-be molested as military operations were prohibited within the zone!
-
-Instead of proceeding to root out this nest of pirates, someone
-suggested that a more comprehensive and binding arrangement was
-necessary between the American and Red Guard forces, to prevent such
-regrettable occurrences in future. It was common talk that a conference
-between the Red Guard commander and General Graves, the American G.O.C.,
-was actually arranged, but was dropped when the Supreme Governor's
-representative in the Far East declared to General Graves personally
-that his proposed conference with the enemies of the Russian Government
-would be considered as a hostile act. The breaking off of these
-negotiations caused great annoyance to the Soviet Government at Moscow,
-and they ordered their commissars in Ussurie to use the forces which had
-been organised under American protection to attack their protectors,
-which they at once proceeded to do. This doubtless altered the
-relationship of these two parties, though the chances are that the
-powerful influence which forced the American commanders into this
-ill-fated policy will be powerful enough to prevent an open American
-declaration against the Reds in the Far East.
-
-It is well at this stage to estimate the effect this American muddle has
-had, and will continue to exert, upon the effort of the Allies to secure
-some sort of order in the Russian Empire, and upon the position of the
-Americans themselves in their future relations with the Russian people.
-The American troops were spread over the whole province from Vladivostok
-to Nevsniudinsk, a point just east of the Sea of Baikal. They were
-almost entirely confined to the railway, but in this country the railway
-is the centre and heart of all things. American policy at Vladivostok
-applied to the whole of this area, which is really the Transbaikal
-provinces, or all Siberia east of Baikal. In the early days of
-September, 1918, when I passed with my battalion towards Omsk, this
-immense area had been reduced to order by the efforts of the Allies, at
-the head of which I place the gallant Czechs. The American forces
-arrived too late to take part in the military operations, but began to
-settle down to the work of administration with energy and ability. The
-French moved forward after myself, and the Italian unit followed later,
-leaving the American and Japanese, with such isolated local Russian
-forces as had called themselves into being, in absolute possession of
-Transbaikal Siberia. There was not a single band of Red Guards one
-thousand strong in the whole territory. After nine months of Allied
-occupation the Reds organised, largely under American protection, two
-divisions (so called) of from 5,000 to 7,000 men, and numerous
-subsidiary units of a few hundred, who murdered and robbed in every
-direction, and destroyed every semblance of order which the Supreme
-Governor and the Allies had with so much labour attempted to set up.
-Thus this huge province in a short time descended from comparative order
-to sporadic disorder, simply because America had no Russian policy of
-her own, and rejected that of her friends.
-
-It was a major mistake of England and France to leave America and Japan
-cheek by jowl without a moderating influence, to wreck the good work
-they had accomplished in the Far East. The rivalries of these two Powers
-in this part of the world were well known and should have been provided
-for. It was too much to expect that they would forget their concession
-and trade rivalries in a disinterested effort to help Russia. States are
-not usually philanthropic organisations, these two least of all. The
-work has therefore to be largely done over again, either by us or by the
-Supreme Governor, Admiral Koltchak. Or the Allies, finding the task too
-great, may retire and allow this huge province, probably the wealthiest
-part of the world, to recede back to the barbarism of the Bolshevik.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-JAPANESE POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-
-
-The lack of Allied cohesion produced by the defection of American policy
-from that of the European Powers may change completely the status and
-future of American enterprise in Siberia. America has transformed a
-friendly population into at least a suspicious, if not a hostile, one.
-Japan, on the other hand, has steadily pursued her special interests and
-taken full advantage of every American mistake, until she is now looked
-upon as the more important of the two.
-
-The attitude of Japan to the Russian problem made a complete somersault
-in the course of the year August, 1918, to August, 1919. When Japan sent
-her 12th Division, under General Oie, to the Ussurie in 1918, she did so
-with a definite policy. Her ambitions were entirely territorial in
-character; they doubtless remain so. The line of her advance has,
-however, completely changed. In 1918 she had made up her mind that
-Germany was bound to win the war; that Russia was a conquered country;
-that any day she might be called upon to repudiate her English alliance
-and her Entente engagements, and assist Germany and her Bolshevik Allies
-in driving the Entente Powers from the eastern end of the Tsar's
-dominions. Provided Germany defeated the Allies on the Western front,
-as she confidently anticipated, this task was well within her power. So
-insignificant was the task assigned to her in this eventuality that she
-confidently expected the immediate surrender of such scattered Allied
-and American forces as would find themselves marooned in this back end
-of the world. Believing this to be the position, she acted accordingly,
-treating the Russians and the other Allied forces in the stupidly
-arrogant manner I have already described. With the _naïveté_ of a young
-Eastern prodigy she not only made demands upon her Allies, but at the
-same time made definite proposals to such Russian authorities as
-retained a precarious control over the territory she had already
-assigned to herself. On landing her troops at Vladivostok she presented,
-through her proper diplomatic agents, to the commander of that province
-a set of proposals which would have placed her in control of the Russian
-maritime provinces. The Russian commander asked that these demands
-should be put in writing, and the Japanese agent, after some demur,
-agreed, on the understanding that the first demands should not be
-considered as final but only as an instalment of others to come. The
-first proposal was that Japan should advance the commander 150,000,000
-roubles (old value) and the commander should sign an agreement giving
-Japan possession of the foreshore and fishing rights up to Kamchatka, a
-perpetual lease of the Engilsky mines, and the whole of the iron (less
-that belonging to the Allies) to be found in Vladivostok.
-
-The Town Commander appears to have been quite honest about the
-business, for in correspondence he pointed out that he was not the
-Government of Russia, neither could he sign the property or rights of
-Russia away in the manner suggested. The Japanese reply was simple and
-to the point: "Take our money and sign the agreement, and we will take
-the risks about the validity." The old Directorate, with Avkzentieff,
-Bolderoff & Co. standing sponsors for the Russian Convention, were
-supposed to control Russian affairs at this time. Directly the
-commandant refused to agree to the Japanese demands they transferred
-their claims to the old Directorate. The Directorate sent Evanoff Renoff
-to "Vlady" to conduct the negotiations, and I suppose to collect the
-money. When I was at "Vlady," in June, 1919, huge stores of iron were
-being collected, and some of it had already been shipped to Japan.
-Avkzentieff was exiled and Bolderoff was living in comfort and safety in
-Japan. These were the things that were above and could be seen; what
-happened to the other part of the first instalment of Japanese proposals
-for "helping" Russia will doubtless be known later.
-
-At the end of August, 1918, it was decided that until some sort of
-central authority to act as the organ of Government was set up, it was
-futile to hope for the return of orderly government. For this purpose
-the British went forward to Omsk and asked the Japanese to do likewise.
-The Japanese would not move, first because they wished to consolidate
-their power in the provinces nearest Japan, and secondly secure as many
-concessions as possible before America arrived on the scene. When
-America did arrive she still tarried to watch American operations. The
-British moved off into the unknown with a 5,000-mile line of unguarded
-communications; the Japanese, true to type, opened negotiations with the
-Directorate for the absolute possession of the railway to the Urals, and
-also asked what concessions she could expect to receive, territorial and
-mineral, as compensation for the use of her army for the Directorate's
-protection. A convention had just been signed, or was on the point of
-signature, between the Japanese and the Directorate, placing the entire
-railway under Japanese hands, when the Directorate fell. The first act
-of the Supreme Governor, Admiral Koltchak, was to inform the Japanese
-that the change in the Government involved a change in policy with
-regard to the advance of Japanese troops and the occupation of the
-railway. The Japanese protested, but the admiral stood firm.
-
-This attitude of the Supreme Governor was a serious setback to Japanese
-policy, and they became alarmed for their position in the Far East
-should his authority extend in that direction; but it is not difficult
-as a rule to find tools for any kind of work in Russia. Ataman Semianoff
-had for some time been kept by the Japanese in reserve for such an
-occasion. His forces were ranged around Chita, and his influence and
-authority extended from the Manchurian border to Lake Baikal. On
-receiving intimation of the change in policy from Admiral Koltchak, the
-Japanese ordered Semianoff to repudiate the Supreme Governor's
-authority; they gave the same instructions to Kalmakoff, who occupied a
-similar position on the Ussurie Railway and so placed an effective
-barrier between themselves, their Eastern concessions, and the Supreme
-Governor. The Supreme Governor ordered his Staff to clear these two
-mutineers off the line, but the Japanese Staff informed the Supreme
-Governor that these two Russian patriots and their forces were under the
-protection of Japan, and if necessary they would move the Japanese Army
-forward to their succour.
-
-The successful resistance of Semenoff and Kalmakoff to the Omsk
-Government, backed up by the armed forces of one of the Allies, had a
-disastrous effect upon the situation throughout Siberia. If Semianoff
-and Kalmakoff could, with Allied help and encouragement, openly deride
-the Omsk Government's orders, then it was clear to the uninitiated that
-the Allies were hostile to the supreme Russian authority. If Semianoff
-and Kalmakoff can wage successful hired resistance to orderly government
-at the bidding of a foreign Power, why cannot we do so, to retain the
-land and property we have stolen and prevent the proper administration
-of justice for the crimes we have committed? It was intended as a
-deliberate attack upon authority and an incentive to the disorderly
-elements to continue the prevailing anarchy. A united, well organised
-Russia is not the kind of Russia Japan wishes to see established. If
-Japan is to succeed in her territorial ambitions in the Far East, Russia
-must be kept in a state of mental disorder and physical paralysis.
-Germany used the Russian love of conspiracy and intrigue to create
-disorder and destroy the Muscovite power; Japan intends, if possible,
-to continue that disorder for her own political reasons.
-
-Directly it became known that Semianoff and Kalmakoff had set the Omsk
-Government at defiance, numerous other would-be Semenoffs came on the
-scene until the very residence of the Supreme Governor and his
-Headquarters Staff scarcely escaped attack, and it became necessary to
-show the British Tommy on the side of order. This was the position up
-till the early days of December, 1918.
-
-Just about this time the fact that Germany was beaten began to take
-shape in the Japanese military mind, and the fact was hammered home by
-the terms of the Armistice. For some days the Japanese Mission at Omsk
-flatly refused to believe the cables; their national pride refused to
-admit that they had so far misunderstood the power of Britain and her
-Allies. It was a terrible awakening to the self-styled "Lords of the
-East" that all their schemes should be brought to nought, that British
-and American squadrons might be expected to cruise in the Sea of Japan,
-and perhaps hold the scales fair between her and her temporarily
-helpless neighbour. I do not suppose it will ever come to that, but such
-was her fear. From this time on, while the objects of Japan in Siberia
-were still the same, she pursued them by quite different methods.
-
-The first sign of change was that Japanese soldiers were allowed to
-salute British officers and were no longer allowed to use the butts of
-their rifles on inoffensive Russian citizens. Their military trains no
-longer conveyed contraband goods to their compatriots who had
-_acquired_ the Russian business houses in the main trading centres along
-the railway. The Staff no longer commandeered the best buildings in the
-towns for alleged military purposes and immediately sub-let them to
-private traders. Japan at once re-robed herself with the thin veil of
-Western morals and conduct which she had rapturously discarded in 1914.
-While Hun methods were in the ascendancy she adopted the worst of them
-as her own. She is in everything the imitator _par excellence_, and
-therefore apparently could not help herself.
-
-The British and French mildly protested against the attitude of Japan
-towards Semianoff and Kalmakoff, but it was continued until the anarchy
-created threatened to frustrate every Allied effort. Not until the Peace
-Conference had disclosed the situation did a change in policy take
-place. From this time on the conduct of Japan (both civil and military)
-became absolutely correct. President Wilson brought forward his famous,
-but impossible, proposal that the different Russian belligerents should
-agree to an armistice and hold a conference on the Turkish "Isle of
-Dogs." If patriotism is the maintenance of such rules of human conduct
-and national life as will justify one man in killing another, then no
-Russian patriot could meet in friendly conference those who had
-destroyed and murdered their own country and people. Russia during the
-previous two years had shown that there could be no compromise between
-anarchy and order, or their several adherents. This was, however, the
-policy of America, and as such received the blessing of every
-representative, Jew or Gentile, of the U.S.A. in Siberia. Japan saw a
-kink in the American armour and took full advantage of the chance to
-damage U.S.A. prestige. She rallied Russian patriotism to her side by
-advising that no notice be taken of this harebrained suggestion. Japan's
-advice received the secret blessing of both French and English who knew
-the situation, though in our case we had to admit that the British
-Premier had stood sponsor for this international monstrosity. This gave
-Japanese diplomacy its first clear hold upon Russian patriotism and
-enabled her to appear as a true friend of orderly government.
-
-American diplomacy in Russia had received its first great shock, but
-with careful handling it was still possible to recover the lost ground.
-With the utter failure of the "Isle of Dogs" policy, Russian rage
-quickly subsided and a normal condition soon returned. The Allies had
-received a salutary warning, and most of them took the hint, but America
-continued on her debatable course. Having failed diplomatically to
-effect a compromise, she tried to force her views by military means. The
-neutral zone system of her commanders was the natural outcome of
-President Wilson's proposal. The intention was excellent, that the
-results would be disastrous was never in doubt. It forced the American
-command to adopt a sort of local recognition of the Red Army within the
-zone, and enabled the Japanese to appear as the sole friend of Russian
-order. The Japanese were attacked by Red forces collected in these
-zones, with American soldiers standing as idle spectators of some of the
-most desperate affairs between Red and Allied troops. Japan was
-entitled to reap the kudos such a situation brought to her side, while
-America could not expect to escape the severest censure.
-
-Profiting by the blunders of her great antagonist, Japan managed in six
-months to recover all the ground she had lost while suffering under the
-illusion of a great Hun victory that was to give her the Lordship of the
-East. From a blustering bandit she has become a humble helper of her
-poor, sick, Russian neighbour. In which role she is most dangerous time
-will show. The world as a rule has little faith in sudden conversions.
-
-This, then, was the situation in the Far East in June, 1919. As I was
-leaving Vladivostok I heard that the Red forces that had been organised
-in the American neutral zones had at last boldly attacked their
-protectors. If this was correct, it may be the reason why Admiral
-Koltchak was able to report their defeat and rout over the Chinese
-border and we were back again at the point at which British and Czech
-co-operation had arrived a year previously.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-GENERAL CONCLUSIONS
-
-
-Before we decide our policy as to withdrawal or otherwise from Russia it
-is necessary to know whether we have contracted any obligations to the
-Russian people, and what is the nature of such obligations, if any. Are
-they moral, military, or political?
-
-Towards the end of 1914, when our army had been driven back behind the
-Marne and the future of Europe and our Empire was in the balance,
-frantic appeals were made by British statesmen, and even by still more
-august authority, asking Russia to rush to our aid and save us from
-destruction. This appeal was backed by British public and Labour
-opinion, and through our Press made a profound impression upon the
-Russian people. The Russian Government, regardless of their best
-military advice, forced their partially mobilised legions to make a
-rapid flying raid into East Prussia, which immediately reduced the
-pressure upon our own armies and made the victory of the Marne possible.
-Hurriedly mobilised, imperfectly equipped, not too brilliantly led,
-these legions, constituting the chivalry of Russia, became the prey of
-Prussia's perfect military machine. The Russian Government never dared
-to tell the Russian peasant the number of Russian souls who were
-mutilated by high explosives and smothered in the cold Masurian marshes
-in that sublime effort to save her friends. Russia lost as many men in
-saving Paris during that raid as did all the other Allies in the first
-year of the war.
-
-Russia continued to fight and mobilise until 1917, by which time she had
-collected a huge army of over twelve million men. The Hohenzollern
-dynasty and its military advisers came to the conclusion that it would
-soon be impossible to stem this human tide by ordinary military means,
-and having a complete understanding of Russian psychology through its
-dynastic and administrative agents, decided to undermine the _moral_ of
-the Russian people. German "Black Books" were not employed against
-British leaders exclusively. We need not wonder at the rapid spread
-among Russians of suspicion against their civil and military leaders
-when we remember that the same sort of propaganda admittedly influenced
-the administration of justice in England. The people of Russia were true
-to their friends, demoralisation and decomposition began at the head,
-rapidly filtering down to the lowest strata of society.
-
-If the Allied cause was deserted, it was the desertion of a ruling
-class, not of a people or its army. German treachery wormed its way in
-at the top, and so destroyed a great race it never could have conquered.
-
-Having disorganised the Russian military machine, Germany sent her
-agents to continue the disorder and prevent recovery. She secured the
-Brest-Litovsk Treaty, and made a levy of several hundred millions
-sterling upon her bailiffs, whom she put in possession of her
-neighbour's property. Lenin and Trotsky found anarchy the most effective
-weapon to further the interest of their masters and protect their
-Eastern flank. A peace which virtually extended German conquest to the
-hinterland of Tsing-Tchau was dangerous to every civilising influence in
-the Far East.
-
-The Bolshevik treaty was not less dangerous to Europe herself, since it
-brought a war-like population of one hundred and eighty millions within
-the sphere of German military influence.
-
-The British Expeditionary Force was ordered to Siberia in June, 1918, to
-assist the orderly elements of Russian society to reorganise themselves
-under a national Government and to resurrect and reconstruct the Russian
-front. Firstly, to enable Russia to resist German aggression; secondly,
-to weaken German military power on the Western front, where at that time
-she was again delivering hammer-blows at the gates of Paris. This
-expedition was approved by every party and patriot in Britain, and the
-only criticism offered at the time was that it should have been so long
-delayed. Soviet power under German and Austrian direction had released
-the German and Austrian prisoners of war, armed and organised them into
-formidable armies to perform the double task of maintaining their
-creatures in power at Moscow and extending their domination over a
-helpless friendly Allied Power.
-
-There was every reason for treating the Dictatorship of Lenin and
-Trotsky as a mere side-show of the German military party; they were, in
-fact, a branch of the military problem with which the Allies were bound
-to deal. Under Entente direction anti-Bolshevik Governments were
-established, and were promised the unstinted help of the Allies to
-recover their territory and expel the agents of the enemy who had so
-foully polluted their own home. It was on this understanding that
-Admiral Koltchak, by herculean efforts, hurled the German hirelings over
-the Urals, and awaited near Vatka the advance of the Allies from
-Archangel preparatory to a march on Petrograd. Alas! he waited for seven
-long months in vain; the Allies never came! After expending his last
-ounce of energy and getting so near to final victory, we failed him at
-the post. Why?
-
-The menace to our own armies in France had disappeared; there was, I
-suppose, no longer an urgent necessity to re-establish the Russian
-front, though the possibility of such re-establishment had kept huge
-German forces practically demobilised near the Russian and Ukrainian
-frontiers. Koltchak and his gallant comrade Denikin had served the
-Entente purpose. Lenin and Trotsky, by wholesale intimidation and
-murder, had aroused the enthusiasm of similarly disposed compatriots in
-Allied countries. These compatriots were becoming noisy in the
-constituencies. The establishment of order to enable the Russian people
-to establish a clean democratic Government, and arise from their
-nightmare of unbridled anarchy, while very desirable in itself, was not
-a good party cry in any of the Western democracies. I grant all these
-things; but what about honour? Has this no longer any place in the
-political curriculum of the Allied Powers?
-
-These are only some of the things it is necessary to remember before we
-finally decide to desert a temporarily sick friend. If I were the ruler
-of a state I should pray the gods to preserve me from half-hearted
-Allies and over-cautious friends. If I wished to help a fallen state or
-lend an honest hand in a great cause, whether it were to eradicate a
-hideous and fatal national malady or assert a principle of right and
-justice, first shield me from the palsy of Allied diplomacy! One
-clear-sighted, honest helper is worth a dozen powerful aiders whose main
-business is to put obstacles in each other's way.
-
-If we were discussing the question of Allied interference before the
-fact, I could give many reasons for remaining neutral; but we have to
-recognise that for their own purposes they have interfered, that their
-Military Missions and forces have been operating in the country for over
-a year, during which time they have made commitments and given pledges
-of a more or less binding character. That these commitments and pledges
-are not the irresponsible acts of subordinates on the spot, but have
-been made by Allied statesmen, both in and out of their several
-Parliaments; and in this respect our national leaders are no exception
-to the rule. Without filling my pages with quotations, readers will be
-able to find and tabulate such for themselves. So categorical are the
-nature of these that it is impossible to imagine them to have been made
-without fully understanding their import and significance to the
-orderly section of the Russian people who, on the faith of these
-pledges, gave us their trust.
-
-It cannot, therefore, be a discussion upon interference or
-non-interference; _that_ has long since been disposed of by our words
-and acts. It is now a question whether we shall withdraw from Russia
-because we have thought fit to change our attitude to the Russian
-problem. It is certain that our decision to-day upon this subject will
-decide our future relations with this great people. If you desert a
-friend in his hour of need, you cannot expect that he will be
-particularly anxious to help you when he has thrown off his ill-health
-and is in a position to give valuable help to those who gave succour in
-his distress.
-
-If our desertion turns this people from us, they will become the prey of
-our recent enemies, and if that happens we can prate about the Treaty of
-Paris as much as we like. The Teuton will have more than balanced the
-account.
-
-
-
-Index
-
-
-Absolutists, Russian
-Affinasiaff, General, headquarters of
-Allies, the,
- a Russian reaction against
- policy for resurrection of Russia
-All-Russian Government, the formation of
-America
- and Siberia
- and the Far East
- her "neutral zone" in the Suchan district
-American policy and its results
-Americans
- arrive at Vladivostok
- an agreement with Bolsheviks
-Anghara River
-Anglo-Russian infantry brigade, formation of
-Antonovka
- a critical position at
- Cossack position at
- Kalmakoff, surprised at
-Antonovsky, General, intrigues of
-Archangel
- an Anglo-American force at
- failure of a projected march on Petrograd from
-Argunoff exiled
-Armistice between Germany and Entente Powers
-Armoured trains, a duel between
-Avkzentieff and Chernoff
- exiled
- President of Council of Ministers
-
-Baikal
- a titanic struggle at
- arrival at
-Baikal Sea (_see_ Lake Baikal)
-Barabinsk
- a meeting at
- the market at
-Bath, Captain
-Beloff, General, intrigues of
-Berwkoff, death of
-Bezovsky, Colonel, and a Cossack parade
-Blizzard, gales and frost in Siberia
-Bogotol, a meeting at
-Bolderoff, General
- and Japanese demands
- confers with Koltchak at Petropalovsk
- in consultation with Czech National Council in Japan
-Bolsaar, Lieutenant
-Bolshevik
- losses at Perm
- method of military organisation,
-Bolsheviks
- an agreement with Americans
- atrocities of
- author's address to
- disguised as Russian soldiers
- recognised as legitimate belligerents
- successes of
- their conception of treachery
- train-wrecking by
- utter demoralisation of
-Boulton, Quartermaster-Captain
-Bowes, General
-Brest-Litovsk Treaty, the
-British Expeditionary Force ordered to Siberia
-British Military Mission placed under arrest
-Browne, Captain
-Browne, Major
- inspects guards of honour at Krasnoyarsk
-Buckley, Lieutenant
-Budburg, von, and an alleged Allied force
-
-Canadians
- arrive in Siberia
- insubordination among
-Chernoff, President of Social Revolutionary party
-Chilliyabinsk, a visit to
-Chinese Eastern Railway, American control of
-Chinese
- entertain British at Harbin
- friendship for the English
- frontier, State prisoners conveyed to
- robber bands of Mongolia
-Chita
- an incident at
- Bolshevik "kultur" at
- Japanese at
- Royalist conspiracies at
-Clark, Captain, and Dukoveskoie battle
-Coleman, Sergeant, of the Durham L.I.
-Cornish-Bowden, Second Lieutenant, and the political exiles
-Cossacks, horsemanship of
-Czech National Army, the, presentation of colours to
-Czechs
- a tribute to their gunnery
- and the question of a Dictatorship
- defection of
- defensive tactics of
- frustrate a Bolshevik scheme
- mutilated by Bolsheviks
-
-Denikin, General
- makes submission to Koltchak
-Detriks, General
- reports on military situation
- visits the front
-Directorate and Government, members of, arrested
-Directorate of Five, the
- dissolved
-Dukoveskoie
- a new line at
- battle of
-Dust-storms, Siberian
-Dutoff, General
- reports Bolshevik treachery
-
-Easter at Perm
-Eastman, Captain
-Education, the Church and
-Edwards, Captain
-Ekaterinburg
- an invitation from
- meetings of railwaymen at
-Eliot, Sir Charles, British High Commissioner
-Elmsley, Brigadier-General
-European Russia, a visit to
-
-Frank, Colonel R. Antonivitch, author's liaison officer
- an exciting incident at Krasnoyarsk
-Frank, Madame
- acts as correspondent and translator for labour missions
- commands a company in the trenches
- conveys a Bolshevik victim to hospital
-Frazer, David, _Times_ correspondent
-French, the, and General Knox's mission
- form a German Legion
- "prestige" of
- protect Serbian ruffians
- their influence in Omsk
-French-Tonquin Battalion, the
-Fugi, General, and his command
-
-Gaida, General
- and Pepelaieff
- arrests Czech soldiers
- author's introduction to
- captures Perm
- resigns his Czech commission.
- surrender of Red Guards to
-Galitzin, General Count
- and the Perm offensive
- personality of
-Ganin, General, a strange order from
- and his command
- decorates Allied representatives,
- releases enemy prisoners
- the Omsk Government and
-George V., King, letter to President Wilson
-German-Magyar-Chinese combination, the
-Germans, enterprise of
- sanguine of victory in world war
-"Germans of the East"
-Ghondati, General, his hopes and fears
-Glashoff, a seven months' wait at
-Golovaehoff, M., meets author
-Gordon, Regimental Sergt.-Major
-Graves, General, and the Bolsheviks
-
-Hachinsk, author at
-Hampshire Territorials arrive at Omsk
- move to Ekaterinburg, 222
-Harbin, author's reception at
- political and financial intrigues in
- question of travelling accommodation at
-Hazelar, a parade service at
-Hepoff, General, a story of
-Hinghan Range, the
-Hodgson, Mr., British consul
-Hong-Kong, "Die-Hards'" departure from
-"Hovart's Army"
-
-Imokentievskaya, a workmen's meeting at
-Inagaki, Colonel
-"Intelligenzia," the
- (_cf._ Kerensky)
-International World Workers, the
-Irkutsk, author opens his campaign at
- arrival at
- Bolshevik "kultur" in
- Japanese traders at
- much-needed rifles at
- welcome to Middlesex Regiment at
-
-Japan and the maritime provinces
- her attitude to Siberians
- intervention of
- policy in the Far East
-Japanese, a promise countermanded
- and "class" carriages for British officers
- and Semianoff
- and the English flag
- bugle band, a
- casualties at Dukoveskoie and Kraevesk
- changed attitude of, after the Armistice
- charge an armoured train
- propaganda in Omsk
- retire without notice
- their contempt for Russians
- their mistrust of Allies
-Johnson, Lieut.-Colonel, and his command
- introduced to Koltchak
-
-Kalmakoff, Ataman, Cossack commander
- a forced retirement
- dismisses his second in command
- Japanese orders to
-Kameragh, railway troubles at
-Kanaka, General, Japanese Chief of Staff
-Kansk, an address to workmen at
- revolt at
-Katanaev, Lieut.-Colonel, placed under arrest
-_Kent_
-Kerensky destroys old Russian army
-Kerensky and Korniloff
- Intelligenzia party of
- Russian opinion of
-Khama River, evidences of Terrorist atrocities in,
- moving ice on the
-King, Lieutenant T.E., of Middlesex Regiment
-Klukvinah, enemy defeat at
-Knox, General, a conference with
- a decoration for
- and the railway revolt
- at Taiga
- inoculated against typhus
- Japanese insult to
- object of his mission
- patriotic speech by
- removes to Ekaterinburg
- Siberian tour of
- tribute to
-Koltchak, Admiral, accepts supreme authority
- Allied felicitations to
- an unexpected conference with Bolderoff
- and an Allied appointment
- and the arrest of members of the Council
- and the Czech ceremony
- and the December revolt
- and the Omsk _coup d'état_
- assurances on the labour problem
- author's farewell interviews with
- becomes Minister for War
- impartial justice of
- intrigues against
- on American policy in the Far East
- orders arrest of Czechs
- personality of
- receives reports of author's mission
- tenders his resignation
- tribute to
- visits Ural fronts
-Korniloff, General, Kerensky's order to
-Koulomsino, Bolsheviks at
-Kraevesk, battle of
- startling news from
- "the station without a town,"
- visited by author
-Krasilnikoff, Lieut-Colonel, placed under arrest
-Krasnoyarsk, an incident at a banquet at
- an interview with Gen. Rosanoff at
- arrival at
- author's addresses at
- Bolsheviks in
- Colonel Frank wounded by Serbs at
- derelict war material at
- international intrigues at
-Kunghure front, a visit to the
-Kushva, evidences of Bolshevik rule in
- mineral deposits of
- the Bolshevik Commissar of
- the Watkin Works and its heroes
-
-Lake Baikal
- an autumn sunrise on
-Lebediff, Colonel (afterwards General)
- a warning to
-Ledwards, Mr., British Vice-Consul at Nikolsk
-Lenin
-Lisvin front, a visit to the
-
-Machinery, German _v_. English
-Malley, Major, friendly relations with
- his command
-Manchuli, a much-talked-of incident at
- Bolshevik atrocities at
- Japanese Division at
-Manchuria, plains of
-Manchurian-Chinese Eastern Railway, the
-Manchurian front, conditions on the
-Marca, author's Cossack attendant
-Matkofsky, General, welcomes author at Omsk
-Middlesex Regiment (25th Battalion) and battle of Dukoveskoie
- leaves Hong-Kong for Siberia
- machine-gun section of
- welcomed in Irkutsk
-Mitchel
- bravery of
-Moffat, Petty Officer, his Naval party surrounded,
-Mongolia, plains of
- robber bands of
- Tartars of
- the Japanese and
-Mongolians ask Semianoff to become their Emperor
-Moorman, Lance-Corporal
-Morrisy, Lieut.-Colonel, of Canadian contingent
-Mosquitoes In Siberia,
-Munro, Lieutenant, brings comforts for soldiers
-Murray, Captain Wolfe, commands armoured trains from _Suffolk_
-Muto, General, and Japanese propaganda
-
-Nadegenska, steelworks of
-Nash, Consul, as host
-Navy, the, artillery assistance by
-Neilson, Lieut.-Col. J.F.
-Nesniodinsk, an address to workmen at
-Nevanisk, before and after Bolshevik rule
-Nicholas II., Tsar, abolishes vodka
- his prison
- murder of
-Nikolioff, Colonel, and surrendered Bolsheviks
-Nikolsk, a courteous station-master
- arrival at
- Bolshevik "kultur" at
- Japanese headquarters at
-Niloy-ugol, the barracks at
-Novo Nikoliosk, author at
- enemy prisoners released at
-
-Oie, General, an urgent message from
- headquarters of
- thanks British
-Olhanka, Czech and Cossack retirement from
-Omsk, a _coup d'état_ in
- a dust-storm in
- arrival at
- blizzard, gales and frost in
- Canadians arrive at
- comforts for the troops
- disappearance of British influence in
- friendships formed at
- terrible days in
- the political situation in
- revisited
-Otani, General, orders to author
-
-Paris, a bombshell from, and the effect
-Paris Council, the,
- and the pressure on French front
-Pastokova, Madame, author's meeting with
-Pastrokoff, Mr.
- relates an incident of relief of Perm
-Payne, Commodore
- a paraphrased cable from War Office
- provides artillery assistance
-Peacock, Consul, and the imprisonment of an Australian
-Pepelaieff, General, conference with
- meets General Gaida
- plight of his army
- the Perm offensive
-Perm, a French Mission arrives at
- a meeting in railway works at
- a suggested advance on
- an incident of relief of
- Bolshevik atrocities in
- capture of
- high prices and rate of exchange at
- increased wages under Bolshevik rule
- the opposing forces at battle of
- the Orthodox Easter celebration at
-Petrograd, failure of a projected march on
-Petropalovsk, an eventful conference at
-Pichon, Major, and the Japanese commander
- author's tribute to
- consultation with author
- his command
- informs author of Armistice terms
- thanked by author
-Pickford, Brigadier, and the Canadian troops
-Plisshkoff, General, and his command
-Pomerensiv, Captain, a consultation with
- a present from
-Poole, General
-Pootenseiff, General Evan, his farewell to author
-Preston, Mr., British Consul at Ekaterinburg
- evidence as to Bolshevik outrages
-Prickly heat
-
-Renault, Monsieur, French representative at Omsk
-Renoff, General Evanoff
- a cipher message from
- and the Japanese demands
-Roberts, Captain
-Robertson, Colonel
-Rogovsky, exile of
-Rosanoff, General, Bolderoff's Chief of Staff
- in command at Krasnoyarsk
-Royalist and Bolshevist conspiracy, a
-Runovka, an entertaining duel at
- Cossack position at
- enemy success at
-Russia, a political crisis in
- a reaction against European Allies in
- aim of Allied "politicals" in
- an unholy partnership in
- German treachery in
- hard lot of workmen in
- labour problem in
- murder of the Tsar
- peasantry of
- railway troubles in
- the herald of Spring in
- the puzzle of Allied help to
-Russian Army, the, mutiny in
- "Bill of Rights," the
- democracy: the Soviet basis of
- Headquarters, British in possession of
- political exiles conveyed to Chinese frontier
-Russians, emotionalism of
- religious instincts of
- Royalist sympathies of officers
-
-Sand dunes of Mongolia
-Savinoff, trial of
-Semianoff, Colonel, agent of Japanese traders
- and the political exiles
- makes submission to Koltchak
- personality of
- repudiates Koltchak's authority
- revenue from railway carriages
-Serbian soldiers, an exciting adventure with
-Sheep, Mongolian
-Shmakovka, Allies at
- armoured trains dispatched from
- enemy centre at
-Siberia, a belated expedition to
- American policy and its results
- and the Allies
- arrival of Canadians in
- derelict corn in
- Government of
- Japanese policy and its results
- mosquitoes in
- reason for British intervention in
-Siberian Cossack Regiment (2nd), parade of
-Siberian Rifles, presentation of colours to
-Sly, Mr., British Consul at Harbin
-Social Revolutionary party, the
- a fateful proclamation by
- and the new army
-Soldiers' Councils established
-Soviets and Russian democracy
-Spascoe, author's headquarters at
- British quarters at
-Stephan, Captain (now Major)
- Czech commander
- his services to Allies
-Stephani, Captain
-Stephanik, General, the Legion of Honour for
-Suchan district, a neutral zone in
-_Suffolk_
-Sukin, M.
-Sungary, River
-Surovey, General
- releases Czech prisoners
-Svagena, an American-Bolshevik agreement at
- arrival at
- Czech retirement on
- Japanese at
-
-Taiga, a successful meeting at
-Taighill, Bolshevik destruction at
-Tartar herdsmen, Mongolian
-Terrorists (_see_ Bolsheviks)
-Teutonic penetration and Bolshevism
-Titoff, trial of
-Tomsk, the Siberian Districts Duma
-Trotsky
-Tumen, author addresses workmen at
-Typhus in European Russia
-
-Ufa Directorate, the
-United States (_see_ America)
-Ural front, question of supplies for
-Urals, the, mineral wealth of
-Uspenkie
-Ussurie front, critical conditions on
-Ussurie operations, completion of
-
-Vackneah Turansky Works, the
-Vatka
-Ventris, Major-General F.
-Verzbitsky, General
- and the battle of Perm
-Vladimir
-Vladivostok, Americans arrive at
- arrival of Canadians at
- author's arrival at
- Japanese arrival at
- Japanese demands to Town Commander of
- iron shipped to Japan
-Volagodsky, President of Siberian Council
-Volkov, Colonel, placed under arrest
-
-Ward, Colonel John, a Bolshevik
- surrender and an object-lesson
- a guard of soldier "monks"
- addresses surrendered Red Guards
- an interview with Major Pichon
- an urgent message from Japanese commander
- and December Royalist and Bolshevist conspiracy
- and the Kraevesk affair
- and the Omsk _coup d'état_
- appeals to working men and women at Irkutsk
- arrives at Vladivostok
- as administrator
- at banquet in honour of All-Russian Government
- at Irkutsk
- attends Allied commanders' council
- attends an Orthodox Easter celebration
- created a C.B.
- entrains for Ussurie front
- exciting experiences at Krasnoyarsk
- experiences of the "hidden hand"
- farewell interviews with Koltchak
- homeward bound
- in European Russia
- inquires into railwaymen's grievances
- leaves Hong-Kong for Siberia
- made an Ataman
- official reports on Omsk situation
- officialdom--and a proposed attack
- on the labour problem in Russia
- ordered to Omsk
- receives the Croix de Guerre
- reports result of his mission
- requests removal of his headquarters
- revisits Omsk
- speech at Svagena
- straight talk with a Japanese officer
- the Manchuli incident and an explanation
- visits a Tartar herdsman's abode
- visits Ural fronts
- witnesses a duel between armoured trains
-Webb, Sergeant, death of
-Wilson, President, his impossible proposal
- King George's letter to
-Wolves, Mongolian
-Women's suffrage, question of
-
-Zema, a stop at, and the cause
- a successful meeting at
- houses searched and arms seized
-Zenzinoff and Chernoff
- exiled
-Zochinko, General
-
-
-
-***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA***
-
-
-******* This file should be named 10972-8.txt or 10972-8.zip *******
-
-
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
-https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/9/7/10972
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-https://gutenberg.org/license).
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
-page at https://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit https://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
-donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's
-eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
-
-Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
-VERSIONS based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
-new filenames and etext numbers.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
-https://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-EBooks posted prior to November 2003, with eBook numbers BELOW #10000,
-are filed in directories based on their release date. If you want to
-download any of these eBooks directly, rather than using the regular
-search system you may utilize the following addresses and just
-download by the etext year.
-
-http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext06
-
- (Or /etext 05, 04, 03, 02, 01, 00, 99,
- 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90)
-
-EBooks posted since November 2003, with etext numbers OVER #10000, are
-filed in a different way. The year of a release date is no longer part
-of the directory path. The path is based on the etext number (which is
-identical to the filename). The path to the file is made up of single
-digits corresponding to all but the last digit in the filename. For
-example an eBook of filename 10234 would be found at:
-
-https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/2/3/10234
-
-or filename 24689 would be found at:
-https://www.gutenberg.org/2/4/6/8/24689
-
-An alternative method of locating eBooks:
-https://www.gutenberg.org/GUTINDEX.ALL
-
-*** END: FULL LICENSE ***
diff --git a/old/10972-8.zip b/old/10972-8.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 3309d5c..0000000
--- a/old/10972-8.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h.zip b/old/10972-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 58c8a0c..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/10972-h.htm b/old/10972-h/10972-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index a53965d..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/10972-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10686 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN">
-<html>
-<head>
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=iso-8859-1">
-<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia, by John Ward</title>
-<style type="text/css">
- <!--
- * { font-family: Times;}
- P { margin-top: .75em;
- font-size: 12pt;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .75em; }
- H1,H2,H3,H4,H5,H6 { text-align: center; }
- HR { width: 33%; }
- hr.full { width: 100%; }
- PRE { font-family: Courier, monospaced; }
- BODY {margin-left: 4%;
- margin-right: 4%; }
- .figure
- {margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;
- text-align: center; }
- .figure img
- {border: none;}
- a:link {color:blue;
- text-decoration:none}
- link {color:blue;
- text-decoration:none}
- a:visited {color:blue;
- text-decoration:none}
- a:hover {color:red}
- // -->
-</style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<h1>The Project Gutenberg eBook, With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia, by John Ward</h1>
-<pre>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at <a href = "https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a></pre>
-<p>Title: With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia</p>
-<p>Author: John Ward</p>
-<p>Release Date: February 6, 2004 [eBook #10972]</p>
-<p>Language: English</p>
-<p>Character set encoding: iso-8859-1</p>
-<p>***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA***</p>
-<br>
-<center><b>E-text prepared by Jonathan Ingram, Steven desJardins,<br>
- and Project Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders</b></center>
-<br>
-<br>
-<hr class="full">
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<h1>With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia</h1>
-<h2>By Col. John Ward </h2>
-<center>
-<b>C.B., C.M.G., M.P.</b>
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img01.jpg">
-<img width="30%" src="images/img01.jpg"
-alt="Colonel Ward, C.B., C.M.G., M.P." /></a><br />
-<b>Colonel Ward, C.B., C.M.G., M.P.</b></p>
-<center>
-<i>With Eight Plates</i>
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
-1920
-</center>
-<h3>
-TO MY COMRADES
-</h3>
-<center>
-OFFICERS, N.C.O.s AND MEN OF THE<br/>
-18th, 19th, 25th AND 26th BATTALIONS OF<br/>
-THE MIDDLESEX REGIMENT
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
-who, on sea and land, in sunshine and snow, so<br/>
-worthily upheld the traditional gallantry and<br/>
-honour of their people and country
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="RULE4_1"><!-- RULE4 1 --></a>
-<h2>
- FORWARD
-</h2>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-Originally written for the private use of my sons in case I did not
-return, this narrative of events connected with the expedition to
-Siberia must of necessity lack many of the necessary elements which go
-to make a history. I wrote of things as they occurred, and recorded the
-reasons and motives which prompted the participants. Many things have
-happened since which seem to show that we were not always right in our
-estimate of the forces at work around us. Things are not always what
-they seem, and this is probably more evident in the domain of Russian
-affairs than in any other. It would have been comparatively easy to
-alter the text and square it with the results, but that would have
-destroyed the main value of the story.
-</p>
-<p>
-The statesman and the soldier rarely write history; it is their
-misfortune to make it. It is quite easy to be a prophet when you know
-the result. You can, as a rule, judge what a certain set of people will
-do in a certain set of circumstances, but where you deal with State
-policy which may be influenced by events and circumstances which have
-not the remotest connection with the question involved, it is impossible
-to give any forecast of their conduct on even the most elementary
-subject.
-</p>
-<p>
-The recent tragic events played out in the vast domain of Siberia are a
-case in point. It is certain that Admiral Koltchak would never have gone
-to Siberia, nor have become the head of the constitutional movement and
-government of Russia, if he had not been advised and even urged to do so
-by the Allies. He received the most categorical promises of
-whole-hearted support and early Allied recognition before he agreed to
-take up the dangerous duty of head of the Omsk Government. Had these
-urgings and promises been ungrudgingly performed a Constituent Assembly
-would be now sitting at Moscow hammering out the details of a Federal
-Constitution for a mighty Russian Republic or a parliamentary system
-similar to our own.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the declaration of the Koltchak Government, General Denikin, General
-Dutoff, General Hovart, and the North Russian Governments made over
-their authority to Omsk. There was at once a clear issue&mdash;the Terrorist
-at Moscow, the Constitutionalist at Omsk. Had the Allies at this
-juncture translated their promises into acts, from what untold suffering
-Russia and Europe might have been saved!
-</p>
-<p>
-The mere act of recognition would have created a wonderful impression on
-the Russian mind, in addition to giving the Allies a lever by which they
-could have guided the course of events and stabilised the Baltic. It
-would have given security to Russian finance, and enabled trade
-relations to have commenced with the wealthiest part of the Russian
-dominions.
-</p>
-<p>
-The reconstruction of Russia, about which the Allies talk so glibly,
-would have gone forward with a bound by natural means, which not even
-Allied bungling could have prevented. The Omsk Government could have got
-money on better terms than any of the Allies, because, accepted within
-the comity of nations, it could have given better security than any of
-them, even including America. Europe would have been fed, Russia would
-have been clothed, and the world would have been saved from its greatest
-tragedies. All this and more would have naturally followed from the
-barest performance of our promises.
-</p>
-<p>
-We did worse than this. Breach of promise is only a negative crime. The
-Allies went to the other extreme; their help took the form of positive
-wilful obstruction. The Japanese, by bolstering up Semianoff and
-Kalmakoff, and the Americans, by protecting and organising enemies, made
-it practically impossible for the Omsk Government to maintain its
-authority or existence. The most that could be expected was that both
-would see the danger of their policy in time to avert disaster. One did;
-the other left when the evils created had got beyond control. Koltchak
-has not been destroyed so much by the acts of his enemies as by the
-stupidity and neglect of his Allied friends.
-</p>
-<p>
-As the Bolshevik rabble again sweeps over Siberia in a septic flood we
-hear again the question: "How can they do so unless they have a majority
-of the people behind them?" I answer that by asking: "How did a one-man
-government exist in Russia from 'Ivan the Terrible' to Nicholas II?"
-Both systems are autocratic; both exist by the same means&mdash;"Terror."
-There is, however, this difference. The autocracy of the Tsars was a
-natural product from an early form of human society. The Bolshevik
-autocracy is an unnatural product, and therefore carries within itself
-the seed of its own destruction. It is an abortion, and unless it
-rapidly changes its character cannot hope to exist as a permanent form
-of organised society. It is a disease which, if we cannot attack, we can
-isolate until convalescence sets in. There is, however, the possibility
-that the patient during the progress of the malady may become delirious
-and run amok; for these more dangerous symptoms it would be well for his
-neighbours to keep watch and guard. This madness can only be temporary.
-This great people are bound to recover, and become all the stronger for
-their present trials.
-</p>
-<center>
-JOHN WARD.
-</center>
-<p>
-<i>February, 1920</i>.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<hr>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="TOC"><!-- TOC --></a>
-<h2>
- CONTENTS
-</h2>
-
-<pre>
-<a href="#CH1">CHAPTER 1.</a> &mdash; FROM HONG-KONG TO SIBERIA
-<a href="#CH2">CHAPTER 2.</a> &mdash; BOLSHEVIK SUCCESSES
-<a href="#CH3">CHAPTER 3.</a> &mdash; JAPAN INTERVENES
-<a href="#CH4">CHAPTER 4.</a> &mdash; THE BATTLE OF DUKOVESKOIE AND KRAEVESK
-<a href="#CH5">CHAPTER 5.</a> &mdash; JAPANESE METHODS AND ALLIED FAR-EASTERN POLICY
-<a href="#CH6">CHAPTER 6.</a> &mdash; ADMINISTRATION
-<a href="#CH7">CHAPTER 7.</a> &mdash; FURTHER INCIDENTS OF OUR JOURNEY
-<a href="#CH8">CHAPTER 8.</a> &mdash; BEYOND THE BAIKAL
-<a href="#CH9">CHAPTER 9.</a> &mdash; OMSK
-<a href="#CH10">CHAPTER 10.</a> &mdash; ALONG THE URALS
-<a href="#CH11">CHAPTER 11.</a> &mdash; WHAT HAPPENED AT OMSK
-<a href="#CH12">CHAPTER 12.</a> &mdash; THE CAPTURE OF PERM: THE CZECHS RETIRE FROM THE FIGHTING
-<a href="#CH13">CHAPTER 13.</a> &mdash; THE DECEMBER ROYALIST AND BOLSHEVIST CONSPIRACY
-<a href="#CH14">CHAPTER 14.</a> &mdash; A BOMBSHELL FROM PARIS AND THE EFFECT
-<a href="#CH15">CHAPTER 15.</a> &mdash; MORE INTRIGUES
-<a href="#CH16">CHAPTER 16.</a> &mdash; RUSSIAN LABOUR
-<a href="#CH17">CHAPTER 17.</a> &mdash; MY CAMPAIGN
-<a href="#CH18">CHAPTER 18.</a> &mdash; OMSK RE-VISITED
-<a href="#CH19">CHAPTER 19.</a> &mdash; IN EUROPEAN RUSSIA
-<a href="#CH20">CHAPTER 20.</a> &mdash; MAKING AN ATAMAN
-<a href="#CH21">CHAPTER 21.</a> &mdash; HOMEWARD BOUND
-<a href="#CH22">CHAPTER 22.</a> &mdash; AMERICAN POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-<a href="#CH23">CHAPTER 23.</a> &mdash; JAPANESE POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-<a href="#CH24">CHAPTER 24.</a> &mdash; GENERAL CONCLUSIONS
-</pre>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="ILL"><!-- ILL --></a>
-<h2>
- LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
-</h2>
-<p>Transcriber's Note: Copies of some illustrations from the original text
-were not available.</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
-COL. JOHN WARD, C.B., C.M.G., M.P. <i>Frontispiece</i>
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
-<b>LANDING OF THE 25TH MIDDLESEX AT VLADIVOSTOK (No picture)</b>
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
-<b>ALLIED COMMANDERS IN FRONT OF HEADQUARTERS AT VLADIVOSTOK (No picture)</b>
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img02a.jpg">
-<img width="50%" src="images/img02a.jpg"
-alt="Gen. Detriks (Czech) and Col. Ward After the Allied Council at Vladivostok" /></a><br />
-<b>Gen. Detriks (Czech) and Col. Ward After the Allied Council at Vladivostok</b></p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img02b.jpg">
-<img width="50%" src="images/img02b.jpg"
-alt="A Conference Outside Col. Ward's Headquarters Wagon" /></a><br />
-<b>A Conference Outside Col. Ward's Headquarters Wagon</b></p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img03.jpg">
-<img width="70%" src="images/img03t.jpg"
-alt="Col. Ward and the Czech Leader (Col. Stephan) Examining the Ussurie Front, After Taking Over the Command." /></a><br />
-<b>Col. Ward and the Czech Leader (Col. Stephan) Examining the Ussurie Front, After Taking Over the Command.</b></p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img04.jpg">
-<img width="80%" src="images/img04t.jpg"
-alt="British Parade At Omsk" /></a><br />
-<b>British Parade at Omsk</b></p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img05a.jpg">
-<img width="90%" src="images/img05a.jpg"
-alt="Russian Headquarters 'Staffka' At Omsk" /></a><br />
-<b>Russian Headquarters "Staffka" At Omsk</b></p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img05b.jpg">
-<img width="75%" src="images/img05b.jpg"
-alt="British Staff and C.O.'s Wagon" /></a><br />
-<b>British Staff and C.O.'s Wagon</b></p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<center>
-<b>ARRIVAL OF THE BRITISH AT IRKUTSK (No picture)</b>
-</center>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="figure">
-<a href="images/img06.jpg">
-<img width="50%" src="images/img06.jpg"
-alt="Admiral Koltchak" /></a><br />
-<b>Admiral Koltchak</b></p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<a name="RULE4_2"><!-- RULE4 2 --></a>
-<h2>
- WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA
-</h2>
-
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH1"><!-- CH1 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER I
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-FROM HONG-KONG TO SIBERIA
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-The 25th Battalion of the Middlesex Regiment had
-already such a record of travel and remarkable experiences
-to its credit that it was in quite a matter-of-fact
-way I answered a summons from Headquarters at
-Hong-Kong, one morning in November, 1917, and
-received the instruction to hold myself and my
-battalion in readiness to proceed to a destination
-unknown. Further conferences between the heads
-of departments under the presidency of the G.O.C.,
-Major-General F. Ventris, revealed that the operations
-of the battalion were to be conducted in a very
-cold climate, and a private resident at tiffin that day
-at the Hong-Kong Club simply asked me "at what
-date I expected to leave for Vladivostok?"
-</p>
-<p>
-The preparations were practically completed when
-orders to cease them were received from the War
-Office at home, followed by a cable (some time in
-January, 1918) to cancel all orders relating to the
-proposed expedition. So we again settled down in
-Far Eastern home quietly to await the end of the
-war, when we hoped to return to the Great Old
-Country and resume the normal life of its citizens.
-</p>
-<p>
-Things remained in this condition until June,
-1918, when we were suddenly startled by an order to
-call upon the half of my battalion stationed at Singapore
-to embark on the first ship available and join me
-at Hong-Kong. This seemed to suggest that the
-truly wonderful thing called "Allied Diplomacy"
-had at last made up its mind to do something. After
-a great deal of bustle and quite unnecessary fuss the
-whole battalion embarked on the <i>Ping Suie</i> on a
-Saturday in July, 1918.
-</p>
-<p>
-It should be remembered that my men were what
-were called "B one-ers," and were equipped for the
-duty of that grade; but, after our arrival at Hong-Kong,
-Headquarters had called in most of our war
-material to replenish the dwindling supplies of this
-most distant outpost of the British Empire. Very
-little information could be gathered as to the kind of
-duty we might expect to be called upon to perform,
-and the ignorance of the Staff as to the nature of the
-country through which we were to operate was simply
-sublime. Added to this, most of the new material
-with which we were fitted was quite useless for our
-purpose. Those things which had been collected on
-the first notice of movement in 1917 had been dispersed,
-and the difficulty of securing others at short
-notice was quite insurmountable.
-</p>
-<p>
-The voyage was not remarkable except that one
-typhoon crossed our track not ten miles astern, and
-for eighteen miles we travelled alongside another, the
-heavy seas striking the ship nearly abeam, and causing
-her to roll in a very alarming manner. The troops
-had a very uncomfortable time, and were glad to
-sight the coast of Korea and the calm waters of the
-Sea of Japan.
-</p>
-<p>
-At Hong-Kong many of the men, including
-myself, had suffered much from prickly heat, which
-had developed in many cases into huge heat boils. It
-was very strange how rapidly these irruptions cured
-themselves directly we reached the cool, clear atmosphere
-of the coast of Japan.
-</p>
-<p>
-Elaborate preparations had been made for our reception,
-insomuch that we were the first contingent
-of Allied troops to arrive at Vladivostok. Two
-Japanese destroyers were to have acted as our escort
-from the lighthouse outside, but they were so busy
-charting the whole coastline for future possibilities
-that they forgot all about us until we had arrived near
-the inner harbour, when they calmly asked for our
-name and business. Early next morning, August 3,
-they remembered their orders and escorted us to our
-station at the wharf, past the warships of the Allied
-nations gaily decorated for the occasion.
-</p>
-<p>
-At 10 A.M. a battalion of Czech troops, with band
-and a guard of honour from H.M.S. <i>Suffolk</i>, with
-Commodore Payne, R.N., Mr. Hodgson, the British
-Consul, the President of the Zemstrov Prava, and
-Russian and Allied officials, were assembled on the
-quay to receive me. As I descended the gangway
-ladder the Czech band struck up the National
-Anthem, and a petty officer of the <i>Suffolk</i> unfurled
-the Union Jack, while some of the armed forces came
-to the present and others saluted. It made quite a
-pretty, interesting and immensely impressive scene.
-The battalion at once disembarked, and led by
-the Czech band and our splendid sailors from the
-<i>Suffolk</i>, and accompanied by a tremendous crowd of
-people, marched through the town to a saluting point
-opposite the Czech Headquarters, where parties of
-Czech, Cossack and Russian troops, Japanese, American
-and Russian sailors were drawn up, all of whom
-(except the Japanese) came to the present as we
-passed, while Commodore Payne took the salute for
-the Allied commanders, who were all present.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our barracks were outside the town at Niloy-ugol;
-they were very dirty, with sanitary arrangements of
-the most primitive character, though I believe the
-local British authorities had spent both time and
-money in trying to make them habitable. The
-officers' accommodation was no better, I and my Staff
-having to sleep on very dirty and smelly floors. A
-little later, however, even this would have been a
-treat to a weary old soldier.
-</p>
-<p>
-On August 5 I attended the Allied commanders'
-council. There were many matters of high policy
-discussed at this meeting, but one subject was of
-intense interest. General Detriks, the G.O.C. of the
-Czech troops, gave in reports as to the military situation
-on the Manchurian and Ussurie fronts. The
-conditions on the Manchurian front were none too
-good, but those on the Ussurie front could only be
-described as critical, and unless immediate help could
-be given a further retirement would be forced upon
-the commander, who had great difficulty with his
-small forces in holding any position. The Ussurie
-force had recently consisted of some 3,000 indifferently
-armed Czechs and Cossacks. The day I
-landed a battle had been fought, which had proved
-disastrous, and resulted in a hurried retirement to
-twelve versts to the rear of Kraevesk. The Allied
-force, now reduced to about 2,000 men, could not
-hope to hold up for long a combined Bolshevik,
-German and Magyar force of from 18,000 to 20,000
-men. The Bolshevik method of military organisation,&mdash;namely,
-of "Battle Committees," which decided
-what superior commands should be carried out or
-rejected&mdash;had been swept away and replaced by the
-disciplined methods of the German and Austrian
-officers, who had now assumed command. Should
-another retirement be forced upon the Ussurie
-forces, it could be carried out only with great loss,
-both of men and material. The next position would
-be behind Spascoe, with Lake Hanka as a protection
-on the left flank and the forest on the right.
-If this could not be held, then the railway junction
-at Nikolsk would be endangered, with the possibility
-of the communications being cut with other
-forces operating along the Transbaikal Railway
-and at Irkutsk. Under these circumstances the
-council decided that there was nothing left but to
-ask for authority from the War Office to send my
-battalion forward at once to the Ussurie front to
-render what assistance was possible. I naturally
-pointed out that my battalion was composed of B1
-men, most of whom had already done their "bit" on
-other fronts, and that a few weeks before I had had
-about 250 General Service men in my ranks, but on
-a blundering suggestion of the G.O.C. at Singapore
-they had been taken from my unit and transferred to
-others doing garrison duty in India. I had protested
-against this at the time, but had been over-ruled by
-London, so that my command was reduced to men
-of the lowest category. However, after making this
-statement I informed the council that in view of the
-desperate circumstances in which the Ussurie force
-was placed I would render every assistance in my
-power.
-</p>
-<p>
-About 2 P.M. Commodore Payne, R.N., came to
-my quarters and showed me a paraphrased cable he
-had received from the War Office. The cable
-authorised the immediate dispatch of half my battalion
-to the front, subject to the approval of the commanding
-officer. It seems to me they might have plucked
-up courage enough to decide the matter for themselves,
-instead of putting the responsibility upon the
-local commander. As it was left to me, however, I
-gave the necessary orders at once. That very night,
-August 5, I marched through Vladivostok to entrain
-my detachment. It consisted of 500 fully equipped
-infantry and a machine-gun section of forty-three
-men with four heavy-type maxims. Leaving my
-second in command, Major F.J. Browne, in charge
-of the Base, I marched with the men with full pack.
-The four miles, over heavy, dirty roads, were covered
-in fair time, though many of the men became very
-exhausted, and at the end of the march I found myself
-carrying four rifles, while other officers carried packs
-in addition to their own kit.
-</p>
-<p>
-The train was composed of the usual hopeless-looking
-Russian cattle-trucks for the men, with tiers
-of planks for resting and sleeping on. A dirty
-second-class car was provided for the Commanding
-Officer and his Staff, and a well-lighted first-class
-bogey car of eight compartments for the British Military
-Representative, who was merely travelling up to
-see the sights. When I got to the front I found a
-first-class car retained by every little officer who commanded
-a dozen Cossacks, but I proudly raised the
-Union Jack, to denote the British Headquarters, on
-the dirtiest and most dilapidated second-class contraption
-that could be found on the line. But of course
-we meant business; we were not out for pleasure.
-</p>
-<p>
-I was advised before I started from Vladivostok
-that Nikolsk, the junction of the Manchurian and
-Central Siberian Railways, was the most important
-strategical point on the South Siberian end of the
-line, and that though the position on the Ussurie
-was pretty hopeless and retirement might take place
-at any moment, we were not in any circumstances
-to retire below Nikolsk. The place to which we
-were to retire and take up a new position had been
-already decided&mdash;a line just below Spascoe, with
-Lake Hanka on the left and a line of forest-covered
-mountains on the right.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Nikolsk in the early morning, but
-the platform was crowded with inhabitants and two
-guards of honour, Czech and Cossack, with band,
-which mistook "Rule Britannia" for the National
-Anthem. I was introduced to all the officers, the
-British Vice-Consul, Mr. Ledwards, and his energetic
-wife. Breakfast was served to the men by the other
-corps, and my officers received the hospitality of the
-good Consul and Mrs. Ledwards. Then a march
-through the town, to show the inhabitants that the
-long-sought-for Allied assistance had really arrived
-at last.
-</p>
-<p>
-It appears that a very sanguine French officer
-had travelled over the line some months previously
-and had made lavish promises of Allied support, which
-accounts, perhaps, for my previous orders received
-at Hong-Kong towards the end of 1917. The Allies
-had decided to make a much earlier effort to reconstruct
-the Russian line against their German enemies,
-but, like all Allied efforts, their effective action had
-been frustrated by divided counsels and stupid
-national jealousy.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was the prospect of Falkenhayn, with the huge
-army of half a million men, flushed with its recent
-easy victory over Rumania, being freed for employment
-on the French front, that caused our hurried
-over-late expedition to Siberia. If the effort had
-been made at the right time the Russian people and
-soldiery would not have become so demoralised and
-hopeless as they had when I arrived, and millions of
-lives would have been saved from untold tortures.
-A famous statesman once sternly admonished his
-colleagues for their fatal policy of doing nothing until
-it was too late; in this case he himself is open to the
-same censure.
-</p>
-<p>
-At Nikolsk had recently been fought an important
-battle between the Czechs and the Terrorists,
-and we were shown a series of photographs of horribly
-mutilated Czech soldiers who had fallen into the hands
-of the Bolshevik army as prisoners of war. By a
-</p>
-<p>
-We received equally warm welcomes at many
-other stations, and at length we arrived at Svagena,
-which is the last fairly large town before Kraevesk,
-the station without a town, and very near the range
-of hostile artillery. Here quite a full-dress programme
-was gone through by the Czech band and
-the Czech and Cossack soldiers, ending with a short
-march past, and speeches by the English and Russian
-commanders. My speech was made along the lines
-of my instructions, which were mostly to this effect:
-We Britishers had entered the territory of Holy
-Russia not as conquerors, but as friends. The
-Bolshevik power had made a corrupt and dishonourable
-compact with their German masters, by which
-the territories of their Motherland, Russia, had been
-torn from her side, and a huge indemnity wrung
-from her people. Under German pressure the Bolshevik
-Soviet power had armed the released German
-and Austrian prisoners of war, and by means of this
-alien force was terrorising the Russian people and
-destroying the country. The Allies looked upon the
-Bolshevik power as a mere hireling branch of the
-autocratic German menace, and as such the enemies
-of British and Russian democracy alike. We came
-to help, resurrect and reconstruct the orderly elements
-of Russian life, and promised that if they would join
-us in this crusade, we would never cease our efforts till
-both our enemies were utterly defeated. And here
-the soldiers of the two nations made their pact, and
-though it was not an official utterance it had official
-sanction. My troops retired to quarters at Spascoe,
-which I had made my forward base.
-</p>
-<p>
-Next morning, August 7, with my interpreter,
-Lieutenant Bolsaar, I visited Kraevesk, and had a
-long consultation with the commander at the front,
-Captain Pomerensiv. I personally examined the line
-right up to the outposts, and eventually it was decided
-that I would send forward 243 men with four
-maxims to take up a position towards what I considered
-to be the threatened part of our right flank.
-As I was senior officer, Captain Pomerensiv handed
-the command of this front over to me, promising all
-help.
-</p>
-<p>
-Once in the saddle I asked for intelligence reports
-from all directions, and found it impossible for the
-enemy to make a frontal attack down the narrow
-space of the railway, flanked as it was on both sides
-by impassable marshes. The enemy centre was at
-Shmakovka, the place from which the Czechs had
-been forced to retire: that day, however, he had been
-observed moving a company of about 180 men with
-three machine guns along the road towards Uspenkie,
-a small town situated on our extreme right front.
-After consultation with Captain Stephan, Czech
-commander, and Ataman Kalmakoff, commanding
-the Cossacks, I decided to take the necessary steps
-to destroy this recently formed outpost. Ataman
-Kalmakoff had that morning announced to me his intention
-to leave my front and make a wide detour on
-the right behind the hills, and join his Cossack friends
-at Iman. I discovered that he was dissatisfied with
-the lack of enterprise hitherto shown on this front,
-and had decided to make a raid "on his own" on the
-rear of the enemy. But the moment I stated my
-intention to mop up Uspenkie he fell into line, and
-forgot all about his previous ill-humour. He took
-up an advanced position at Olhanka, reconnoitred the
-Uspenkie position the next day, and unmasked the
-Bolshevik formation, with a loss of two horses and a
-Cossack badly wounded. I formed my plans on his
-observations.
-</p>
-<p>
-My scheme was to advance one company of Czech
-troops from Khamerovka to Olhanka, the Ataman's
-most forward post on my right front, where they
-were to prepare a small entrenched camp. I would
-also advance 200 infantry with two machine guns the
-first night from Kraevesk to Khamerovka.
-</p>
-<p>
-The next day I ordered 200 men to entrain from
-Spascoe to Kraevesk to act as a reserve. They were
-to night march to Khamerovka, and occupy the place
-of my forward party, who would advance by night and
-join the Cossacks and Czech troops at Olhanka. I
-would be with the advanced group and make a daylight
-examination of the post to be attacked, and be
-joined at night by my second detachment from
-Khamerovka. By this means I should have had 400
-British rifles, a machine-gun section of forty-three
-men with four maxims, a company of Czech infantry
-of about 200 men, and last, but by no means least,
-Ataman Kalmakoff with about 400 Cossack cavalry&mdash;a
-total of about 1,000 men. I ordered the two
-roads along which any reinforcements for the enemy
-post must pass to be patrolled at night and also closely
-observed during the day.
-</p>
-<p>
-I had drawn up my plan of attack and the first
-stage of the operation had actually been executed,
-when I was brought to a sudden standstill by a piece
-of fussy interference.
-</p>
-<p>
-There was no linguist in my battalion capable of
-speaking Russian sufficiently well for my purpose,
-hence I had to seek the services of an agent of the
-British Military Representative at "Vlady." This
-agent returned to "Vlady" directly the necessary
-arrangements for the attack had been completed. I
-ought to have compelled him to remain with me, but
-as he appeared to favour the proposed forward movement
-I did not scent any danger to my purely defensive
-policy. He did not wait until he had reported
-to the Military Representative, but when only half
-way telegraphed from Nikolsk warning me that in his
-opinion this forward movement should not take place,
-as he had already received important information
-which altered the entire situation. I ignored this
-interference of an understraper, but a few hours later
-received definite instructions from the Political
-Representative, that I was to stand purely on the
-defensive, and not move an inch beyond my
-position. I was compelled to accept the instruction,
-but was disgusted with the decision. It proved to
-me in a forcible way what I had never realised before,
-how impossible it is for a man at a distance, however
-clever he may be, to decide a military problem,
-limited in locality and isolated, as was this case, from
-questions of public policy. When the one purpose
-of a force is the protection or maintenance of a
-limited front, only the man on the spot can be the
-judge of what is necessary to accomplish that
-purpose.
-</p>
-<p>
-My actual plan of operations was very simple.
-Having assembled my force at Olhanka, I should
-at dusk have occupied the roads leading from
-Shmakovka to Uspenkie, and from Uspenkie to
-the monastery by cavalry, thus making it impossible
-for enemy reinforcements to reach the post to be
-attacked under the cover of night. My own troops,
-together with the Czech company, would have
-approached the position from the south, and during
-the hours of darkness have taken up a line within
-rifle- and machine-gun range. At daybreak fire
-would have been opened from such cover as could
-be obtained, and while our eight machine-gunners
-barraged the post, the infantry would have advanced
-rapidly on the south front at the same time as the
-Cossacks charged in from the rear. The result
-would have been as certain as anything in war could
-be, and, as since then I have met the Bolsheviks in
-open fight, I am convinced that this small effort
-might have had decisive political and military
-influence in Eastern Siberia. But the "politicals"
-in uniform are not always noted for daring, and in
-this case were very timid indeed, and our position
-grew worse from day to day.
-</p>
-<p>
-I made the best dispositions possible in view of my
-cautious instructions, and soon every man, British,
-Czech and Cossack, was imbued with a determination
-to baulk the enemy's eastward ambitions at all costs.
-The numbers I had brought to their assistance were
-nothing compared to the influence of the sight of the
-poor, frayed and dirty Union Jack that floated from
-my Headquarters, and the songs of the Tommies
-round the mosquito fires in the bivouac at night.
-These two factors together changed the whole
-atmosphere surrounding the valiant, ill-fed and ill-equipped
-Czech soldiers.
-</p>
-<p>
-The day following the night I had fixed for the
-destruction of the enemy outpost two companies of
-enemy infantry and three guns marched out of
-Shmakovka as a reinforcement to the debatable
-position. I watched through my binoculars their
-slow movement along the dusty road. I judged what
-the enemy's intentions were, and knew also that I
-was powerless to prevent them. He quickly placed
-his guns in position, and the following day sent a few
-trial shots at Kalmakoff's position at Olhanka; after
-getting the range he ceased fire. About 11 P.M. the
-flash of guns was observed on our right, which continued
-until midnight. At 12.30 the field telephone
-informed me that the Czech company I had pushed
-forward, together with Kalmakoff's Cossacks, had
-been shelled out of their positions at Olhanka and
-were retreating along the Khamerovka and Runovka
-roads. I disregarded the imperative instructions I
-had received from "Vlady" not to move, and advanced
-my detachment by a midnight march to
-occupy a position where I could protect the bridges
-and cover the retreat of our friends. Had I failed
-to perform this simple soldierly duty we should have
-placed ourselves in a ridiculous position in the eyes
-of our Russian and Czech comrades. But though I
-acted against orders, I think in the circumstances I
-was fully justified in doing so.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Czech company retired safely behind the
-river at Khamerovka, and Kalmakoff's Cossacks took
-up a new position at Runovka, where he could still
-hang on to the skirts of the enemy and keep constant
-observation upon his movements. I retired to a
-bivouac of branches and marsh grass behind "Lookout
-Hill," where for a fortnight I carried on constant
-warfare against infected waters and millions of
-mosquitoes, without transport, tents, nets, or any of
-the ordinary equipment required by such an expedition.
-I admit that my ignorance of the conditions
-which might be expected to prevail in Siberia was
-colossal, but so also was that of those whose duty it
-was to have made themselves acquainted with the
-situation.
-</p>
-<p>
-At Hong-Kong I had suggested that we might
-find tents useful, but the proposal was turned down,
-either because there was none or because they were
-considered quite unnecessary. I asked timidly
-whether I should require mosquito nets, and well
-remember the scorn with which the Chief of Staff
-greeted my question. "Who ever heard of mosquitoes
-in Siberia?" Well, the fact is that while
-there are a few in the tropics, there are swarms of
-these pests all over Siberia. In the tropics their size
-prevents them from doing much damage, except as
-malaria carriers. In Siberia they take the shape of
-big, ugly winged spiders, which will suck your blood
-through a thick blanket as easily as if you had nothing
-on. They have a knack of fixing themselves in one's
-hair below the cap and raising swollen ridges round
-one's head until it is painful to wear any headgear
-at all. In my case my wrists were puffed out level
-with my hands. After sleeping, one woke unable
-to open one's eyes. The absence of any protection
-wore out the patience and nerves of the men, and
-the searching Bolshevik shells were accepted as a
-welcome diversion.
-</p>
-<p>
-No blame was attached to my chiefs; I was fully
-equipped as a B1 Garrison battalion, and as such I
-was dispatched to Vladivostok. I was sent there to
-perform a certain duty, but on arrival was at once
-called upon to perform another of quite a different
-character. I had to carry out the duties of a first-line
-service battalion with the personnel and equipment
-of second grade garrison troops. Whether
-those with whom the order originated in London
-were aware of the nature of the duty I was expected
-to perform I do not know; but it is obviously dangerous
-to send British troops of any category to an
-actual scene of operations and expect them to stand
-idle, uninterested spectators of the struggles of their
-friends. They should either be kept away or sent
-ready for all emergencies.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH2"><!-- CH2 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER II
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-BOLSHEVIK SUCCESSES
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-The outflanking movement by the enemy which I
-had anticipated from the day I first took over the
-command, and which I had made my plans to counteract,
-was now in full swing, but so far no damage
-to our main position had been effected.
-</p>
-<p>
-General Detriks visited the front and informed
-me that the Allied Council had chosen Major Pichon,
-of the French detachment which was timed to arrive
-next day, to take over the command of this front.
-After a personal inspection he expressed himself as
-satisfied with my dispositions and suggested that I
-should still retain the command, and that he would
-see that the decision relating to Major Pichon's
-appointment was reconsidered in view of the changed
-conditions he now found. But I could see that a
-revision of the Allied Council's resolution might
-affect French <i>amour propre</i>, and place both Council
-and commander in an anomalous position. I therefore
-requested General Detriks to take no steps to
-alter the resolution of the Allied Council, and stated
-that I would gladly serve under Major Pichon or
-any other commander elected by the Council. British
-prestige, I added, was too well established for such
-trifles to be considered when the only reason for our
-presence was to help our Czech and Russian friends.
-He, however, pointed out that it was impossible to
-allow a British colonel to serve under a French major,
-and that my command must be considered quite an
-independent one.
-</p>
-<p>
-Major Pichon arrived on August 18, 1918, and
-I formally handed over the command. He asked
-me to consider myself as jointly responsible for the
-operations on that front, and said that we would from
-time to time consult together as to any action that
-might be necessary. I found him both polite and
-considerate and most anxious to meet the wishes of
-the several parts of his command; in fact, he was a
-gentleman whom it was a pleasure to meet and work
-with. His battalion-commander, Major Malley,
-was equally urbane, and together I think we made a
-very happy combination.
-</p>
-<p>
-The great outstanding personality of this front
-was Captain Stephan, the commander of the 8th
-Czech Battalion. Originally a brewer of Prague,
-he had been compelled on the outbreak of war to
-join the Austrian Army. He had done his duty as
-a soldier of that effete Monarchy, been captured by
-the Russians, and while a prisoner of war had been
-liberated by the Revolution; he was one of the men
-who had organised their fellow exiles and offered
-their services to France and the Allied cause, believing
-that in the success of England's arms was to be
-found the liberation of their beloved Bohemia. I
-asked him why he had offered his services to France,
-and his answer and his compatriots' answer was
-always the same: "It is to great England we always
-look to as our saviour, but the German armies are
-in France, and to meet our enemies on the field of
-battle was, and always will be, the first ambition of
-every Czech soldier, for if England says we are a
-nation, we know we shall be."
-</p>
-<p>
-I must say I felt flattered by the almost childlike
-confidence which Pole, Czech and Russian had in
-the name and honour of England. We were undoubtedly
-the only nation represented on this front
-and in Siberia generally against whom not one word
-of suspicion was directed. I naturally expected that
-the prestige of France, in view of her pre-war
-alliance with Russia, would be very great, but from
-the closest observation of all ranks of Russian society
-I think it would be impossible to say which was most
-suspected in the Russian mind, France, America or
-Japan. The presence, however, of French soldiers,
-and the politeness of the French officers, may do
-much to generate a warmer feeling in Russia towards
-France. The presence of the soldiers of the
-Rising Sun, and the manners and general attitude
-of her officers towards the Siberian population, will,
-if persisted in, certainly result in changing fear to
-universal hate.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the afternoon of his arrival an important
-movement of enemy forces on our right front caused
-Major Pichon to ride through my bivouac, when he
-was formally introduced to the officers and men under
-my command. Later he informed me that he did
-not consider the movement sufficiently important to
-make any change in our dispositions necessary.
-Towards dusk Captain Stephan, accompanied by his
-adjutant, rode up and reported an important movement
-of enemy forces towards Runovka, our solitary
-remaining position on the opposite side of the river,
-which formed the natural defence and limit of our
-right flank. Again I was asked to move forward to
-render such assistance as might be necessary in case
-our right were forced to retire across the river. We
-marched forward in the darkness with the flash of
-the Bolshevik guns lighting up the way, but as their
-attention was entirely directed to our outpost at
-Runovka, we were as safe as if we had been in Hyde
-Park. The Czechs have a fatal preference for woods
-as a site for defensive works, and they selected a
-wood on the left flank of the road for my position. I
-rejected their plan, and chose a position about two
-hundred yards in front of the wood at a point where
-the roads cross, and a fold in the ground, aided by
-the tall marsh grass, almost entirely hid us from the
-observation-post of the enemy. Millions of mosquitoes,
-against which we had no protection whatever,
-attacked us as we began to entrench, but
-officers and men all worked with a will, and by dawn
-we had almost completed what was probably the best
-system of field-works so far constructed on this front.
-How we wished we might see the enemy advance over
-the river and attempt to deploy within range of our
-rifles! He had by vigorous artillery fire driven
-our remaining Czech company across the river,
-and so had become complete master of the other
-side.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was here that a second chance came to deal
-effectively with this attempt to outflank our entire
-position. A sudden dash across the bend of the
-river in the north-eastern corner at Khamerovka on
-to the unprotected line of enemy communications
-would have resulted in a complete frustration of the
-enemy plans, with a fair prospect of his decisive defeat.
-I even suggested this, but had to confess that
-I had moved forward twice, contrary to my imperative
-orders, and that unless I chose to run the risk
-of court-martial, if not dismissal, I could not join in
-the attack, though I would come to the rescue. This
-was too ambiguous for the other leaders, and the
-opportunity was allowed to pass.
-</p>
-<p>
-Shortly after, I met an old tramp with his pack,
-and handed him over to my liaison officer. We could
-not very well detain him as he had already in his
-possession a Czech and a French passport, but afterwards
-I much regretted that I had not perforated
-his papers with a bullet as they rested in his breast
-pocket. He tramped along the road, and my sentries
-deflected his course away from the trenches,
-but he saw my men scattered about in the wood
-behind, and at daybreak the enemy artillery began
-to spatter the wood with a plentiful supply of shrapnel
-and shells. One dropped within twenty yards
-of myself and officers whilst at breakfast; pitching
-just under a tree, it lifted it into the air in a truly
-surprising manner. The number of shells&mdash;some of
-which were German make&mdash;the enemy wasted on
-that wood proclaimed an abundant supply of
-ammunition. To this persistent shelling we had
-nothing to reply, and at last from sheer exhaustion
-the enemy fire died down. With darkness he began
-again, and the feeble reply of three small mountain
-guns, which we knew were with the Runovka Cossack
-outpost, indicated that an attack was developing
-in that direction.
-</p>
-<p>
-The unequal duel continued intermittently until
-2 A.M., when a field telephone message informed me
-that Runovka had been abandoned, that the Czech
-company was retiring across our front, and that
-Kalmakoff's Cossacks were retiring over the river
-lower down and taking up a position at Antonovka
-on our extreme right rear. This meant that our
-whole defensive positions were completely turned,
-and the next enemy move would place him near our
-lines of communication.
-</p>
-<p>
-This, however, was not our only difficulty. Until
-two days previous we had been able to give an occasional
-shot in return for the many sent towards us;
-then the Bolshevik gunners found the mark on the
-two guns whose duty it was to prevent an advance
-along the railway, and our two and only field guns
-were called in to fill the gap, leaving the infantry
-without any artillery protection. I cabled to Commodore
-Payne, R.N., who commanded H.M.S.
-<i>Suffolk</i>, at Vladivostok, informing him of our critical
-position and asked him to send such artillery assistance
-as was possible. The commodore was as prompt
-as is expected of the Navy. In an incredibly short
-space of time he fitted up an armoured train with two
-12-pounder Naval guns and two machine guns, and
-dispatched it at express speed to my assistance, with
-a second similar train following behind, the whole
-being under the command of Captain Bath, R.M.L.I.
-It is scarcely possible to describe the feeling of relief
-with which our exhausted and attenuated forces
-welcomed this timely aid from our ever-ready Navy.
-It enabled us to bring the two Czech guns into position
-to keep down the fire of the enemy, and gave
-us a sense of security in that our rear was safe in case
-retirement should be forced upon us. It put new
-heart into the men, though they never showed the
-slightest sign of depression in spite of their many
-discomforts. The British soldier certainly offers the
-most stolid indifference to the most unfavourable
-situations.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Bolshevik leaders were not long in showing
-their hand. They remained silent during the following
-day, but at night they began to shell us from
-their new position in Runovka itself, selecting as the
-site for their two batteries the hill on which the
-Orthodox church stood, and using the Greek tower
-as their post of observation.
-</p>
-<p>
-About 9.30 A.M. an enemy armoured train moved
-slowly forward from Shmakovka, followed by four
-others, which directed a flank fire at my position.
-The shells all plunked into the marsh about four
-hundred yards short, affording much amusement and
-causing many caustic Cockney comments. Next
-came a troop train which gave us great hopes of a real
-attack developing on our front, but our Naval 12-pounders
-on the <i>Suffolk's</i> armoured train began to
-do good practice, and a shot registered on the front
-enemy engine caused volumes of steam to burst from
-her sides, and great consternation suddenly appeared
-amongst the trains' personnel. The Naval gunners
-did not seem inclined to lose the mark, and so the
-whole attempt fizzled out, and the trains steamed
-back to shelter.
-</p>
-<p>
-The two old Czech field guns, which had been
-repaired by H.M.S. <i>Suffolk's</i> artificers at "Vlady,"
-wheeled into position behind a fold in the ground on
-our right rear and began a duel with the two enemy
-batteries at Runovka. This duel was most entertaining.
-The enemy artillery searched our wood and
-works, and the line of trees occupied by the French
-was plentifully sprayed with shrapnel, but they failed
-to locate our guns, or get anywhere near them, or
-indeed to cause a single casualty either to man or
-horse. During the night a peasant gave the guns'
-position away, and in the early morning exchanges
-one gun came to grief. The remaining gun changed
-position, and the duel became still more interesting.
-By skilful manoeuvring the gun was got much
-nearer, and at once the range was obtained to a
-nicety. Every shot was placed so near the mark
-as to rouse the infantry's obvious excitement to
-fever heat, and finally a shell was planted right
-into the enemy observation tower, setting it on
-fire and burning it to the ground. By placing four
-shells near to hand, and working like Trojans, the
-Czech gunners fired four shots so rapidly as to
-deceive the enemy into the belief that four guns were
-now opposing them, and after about two hours of
-this relay work the enemy batteries were beaten to
-a frazzle, and retired from the unequal contest with
-two guns out of action. It was simply magnificent
-as a display of real efficient gunnery. There is no
-doubt the enemy had intended to make an effort to
-cross the river at Runovka and that his artillery had
-been placed with a view to protecting the passage of
-his troops. The young Czech gunnery lieutenant by
-his stratagem with one solitary field-piece had made
-this plan appear impossible to the enemy commander.
-Never was deception more complete.
-</p>
-<p>
-Having felt our right flank and found it too
-strong, the enemy continued his movement towards
-our right rear. He could only do this with safety
-by correctly anticipating our strategy. He took our
-measure to a military fraction. He saw that, though
-he offered the most tempting bait, we made no
-effort to move forward to snap it up, and doubtless
-came to the conclusion that we were chained to our
-positions by either dearth of numbers or military
-incapacity. In the last stage of his movement his
-communications stretched for twenty-three miles
-along our flank, with three posts of just over one
-hundred men to protect his supply trains. If the
-commander of that force is still alive he probably has
-a poor opinion of the ability of his opponents. We
-were ready to deal him a death-blow at any moment
-from the day he occupied Uspenkie until he crossed
-the river before Antonovka. He and his column were
-only saved by orders from Vladivostok.
-</p>
-<p>
-For two days no movement was observable in the
-enemy lines, and it began to look as though he would
-or could not take full advantage of his extremely
-favourable position.
-</p>
-<p>
-I had waged an unequal contest with millions of
-mosquitoes while trying to sleep in a field telephone
-hut made of rough branches and marsh grass. The
-Czech soldier who acted as operator had helped me
-as much as possible, but at last in desperation I got
-up and walked about until the wonderful colouring
-in the East heralded another glorious Siberian summer
-day. The bluey-purple pall had given place to
-a beautiful orange-tinted yellow such as I had never
-seen before. The sentry prodded a sleeping Tommy
-who had a huge black frog sitting on the highest point
-of his damp, dewy blanket, and a bugle glistening
-by his side. The sleeper awoke, and after washing his
-lips at the tank, sounded the soldiers' clarion call, the
-"R&eacute;veill&eacute;." Instantly the whole bivouac was alive,
-but scarcely had the bugle notes died away when the
-telephone buzzer began to give forth a series of sharp,
-staccato sounds. The Czech operator gave a sharp
-ejaculation, like "Dar! Dar! Dar!" looking more
-serious as the sounds proceeded. He then calmly
-hung up the speaking-tube on the tree that
-supported our home and began to explain to my interpreter,
-Lieutenant Bolsaar, the message just received.
-It was that Major Pichon wished to see me
-at his headquarters at once in reference to the serious
-position of Antonovka. I mounted my horse,
-"Nero," which was a beautiful present from Captain
-Pomerensiv on handing over his command, and soon
-arrived at Kraevesk and heard the full story of the
-surprise at Antonovka.
-</p>
-<p>
-From Major Pichon I gathered that Ataman
-Kalmakoff with his Cossacks had taken up a position
-on the high ground in the village of Antonovka,
-keeping touch with the French on his left, and a
-company of the 5th Battalion of Czechs on his right,
-who guarded the road to Svagena, and that though
-he posted sentries in the usual way during the night,
-the enemy in large numbers crept between them, and
-when the alarm was given and Kalmakoff mounted
-his horse he found some thirty of his men already
-wounded or dead and his machine guns in enemy
-hands. Most of his troops were in a cul-de-sac, and
-had to charge a high fence and by the sheer weight of
-their horses break a way out. Kalmakoff with a few
-Cossacks tried to retake the guns with a superb
-charge, but though he got through himself he lost
-more men, amongst whom was a splendid fellow, his
-second in command, named Berwkoff, who was
-greatly loved by us all. A Magyar soldier seeing
-Kalmakoff with his Ataman banner borne by his
-side, took a point-blank shot at his head, but he forgot
-the high trajectory of the old Russian rifle, and the
-bullet merely grazed the top of the Cossack leader's
-head and sent his <i>papaha</i> into the mud. His banner-bearer
-could not see his leader's cap so left, and
-jumped off his horse to rescue it. Raising the cap
-from the ground, he found himself challenged with
-the bayonet by the same Magyar soldier. He had no
-time to draw, but with a mighty sweep, sword in scabbard,
-he felled the Magyar to the ground; he had no
-time to dispatch him, and was barely able to get away.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Czech company was retiring slowly towards
-Svagena, and the Cossacks, while keeping in touch
-with the enemy, were retiring towards the railway
-on our rear. This was a very startling situation, and
-required immediate action if we were not to be caught
-in a trap.
-</p>
-<p>
-We both decided that a retirement was the only
-alternative to being completely surrounded.
-</p>
-<p>
-We there and then drew up the orders necessary
-to secure that the retreat should be both methodical
-and orderly. The Czechs were to retire first, past my
-lines, and entrain at Kraevesk, followed by the English
-and the French, who were to bring up the rear,
-which was to be covered by the English armoured
-train, assisted by the machine-gun section of the
-Middlesex Regiment under Lieutenant King. So
-the evacuation of our splendid position regretfully
-began.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH3"><!-- CH3 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER III
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-JAPAN INTERVENES
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-It should be remembered that directly it was decided
-by the Paris Council that a diversion through Russia
-was the surest way of relieving pressure on the French
-front, the English apparently decided to be first in.
-Though Japan was unquestionably in the most favourable
-position to send help quickly, she was known to
-have German commitments of such a character as precluded
-her from taking the lead in what was, at that
-time, more an anti-Teutonic than pro-Russian expedition.
-Her Press was, and had been all through
-the war, violently pro-German, and however much
-the Tokio Cabinet might wish to remain true to the
-Anglo-Japanese Treaty, it was forced to make a
-seeming obeisance to popular feeling in Japan. If
-it had been only an English expedition, Japan's
-hand would not have been forced; but the American
-cables began to describe the rapid organisation by
-the U.S.A. of a powerful Siberian expedition, which
-gave the Japanese Government ample justification&mdash;even
-in the eyes of her pro-German propagandists&mdash;to
-prepare a still larger force to enable her to shadow
-the Americans, and do a bit of business on her own.
-Several months earlier Japanese suspicions had been
-aroused by the dispatch to Siberia of an alleged
-civilian railway engineering force to help Russia
-reorganise her railways, and the immense benefit that
-this force had admittedly conferred on the Far
-Eastern populations was acknowledged on all sides.
-But the very success of American enterprise in this
-beneficent direction had created in the minds of the
-Japanese a doubt as to the wisdom of allowing free
-play to American penetration.
-</p>
-<p>
-Japan consequently hurried forward her preparations,
-and a few days after I had taken over the
-Ussurie command her 12th Division, under the
-command of General Oie, landed at Vladivostok.
-He at once established his headquarters at Nikolsk,
-and his Chief of Staff, General Kanaka, took up his
-position behind our lines at Svagena, using us as a
-screen for the deployment of his command, which
-had already begun.
-</p>
-<p>
-Major Pichon informed me that he had telephoned
-the Japanese general at Nikolsk describing
-the new situation on our front, and asking him to
-move up sufficient forces from Svagena to protect
-our right. I went to my wagon to get breakfast.
-A little later Major Pichon informed me that the
-Japanese commander had asked us to suspend our
-retirement as he was moving up from Svagena a
-battery of artillery and one battalion of infantry,
-who would re-establish the position at Antonovka
-on our right rear, from which we need not fear any
-further danger. In consequence of this message I
-ordered my men to re-occupy their old positions, and
-by 9.30 we had carried out the orders of the Japanese
-commander.
-</p>
-<p>
-Having got back into our old position, we
-inquired the direction of the Japanese advance that we
-might, if necessary, co-operate with their movement,
-and to our utter consternation were informed that
-the Japanese had not started, had no intention of
-doing so, and that we must take what steps were
-necessary for our own safety, but if we retired at all
-we were to fall back behind their lines and, we
-suppose, take no further part in the operations.
-</p>
-<p>
-The first promise of help and its countermanding
-had placed us in an extremely dangerous situation.
-We had left our positions once, and nothing but the
-lack of vigilance on the part of the enemy had
-enabled us to reoccupy them without fighting. Our
-movements must have been seen, and though he had
-not understood them till too late to take full advantage
-the first time, that he would allow us to get away
-so easily again seemed to us to be very unlikely. In
-fact, it appeared as though we had been sacrificed
-to give a clear field for some manoeuvre or purpose
-which we could not understand.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our conference was a very urgent one, and for
-a time Major Pichon thought it best to hang on to
-our positions and trust to someone making an effort
-for our relief. Had British or American troops been
-collecting in our rear, we would not have hesitated
-a moment to remain, for we should have been certain
-of immediate help.
-</p>
-<p>
-We knew that a battalion of Czech infantry had
-been moved up from Svagena towards Antonovka to
-threaten the enemy's outflanking columns, and that
-this battalion had made it a dangerous proceeding for
-the enemy to close in on our rear. Hence we decided
-to withdraw certain units to Svagena, and for the
-remainder to retire to a position at Dukoveskoie and
-make a new line from the railway through that village,
-thus linking up with the Czech troops who had
-marched to our assistance; they would thus become
-the extreme right of our new line.
-</p>
-<p>
-This movement would enable the Japanese 12th
-Division at Svagena to continue their deployment
-behind our screen, and if the enemy continued his
-outflanking tactics would involve the Japanese in
-the fighting whether they willed it or not.
-</p>
-<p>
-The retirement was carried out as arranged in
-perfect order, with the loss of very little material and
-not more than a dozen men taken prisoners. The
-French were the last to entrain. The whole movement
-was covered by the two armoured trains under
-the command of Captain Bath, R.M.L.I. Before
-retiring the bluejackets blew up the bridge on our
-front and otherwise destroyed the line in a very
-workmanlike manner. If we had been supported,
-the retirement would have been quite unnecessary; it
-was the result of lack of confidence in our Allies after
-the first let-down.
-</p>
-<p>
-The new line was held as follows: On the left
-of the railway one company of Czech infantry; the
-two British armoured trains occupied the railway,
-and a Middlesex machine-gun battery of four maxims
-occupied the right, while the wooded slope leading
-to Dukoveskoie was held by the French, and a battalion
-of Japanese infantry extended beyond the
-village. The right of the village was very sparsely
-held by a reduced battalion of the 5th Czech
-Regiment and Kalmakoff's Cossacks. The whole
-force was under the personal command of Major
-Pichon.
-</p>
-<p>
-The enemy quickly repaired the bridges and the
-line, and within forty-eight hours his armoured trains
-were observed moving cautiously into Kraevesk, my
-old headquarters. Simultaneously his patrols advanced
-from Antonovka and came into touch with
-Kalmakoff's scouts on the right, and three days from
-our retirement his advanced elements were testing
-our line from end to end.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the morning of August 22 the Japanese 12th
-Division began to move up from Svagena to Dukoveskoie
-and deploy immediately behind the new line.
-As is usual in all Japanese tactics, they pushed their
-right out far beyond the enemy positions, and early
-in the evening began to envelop his left with their
-usual wide turning movement. Their right was
-supported by two heavy batteries, and from the
-centre, near Dukoveskoie church, their units, now
-acting as a reserve, were in position before sunset.
-Large bodies of Japanese troops were in bivouac
-immediately behind the centre of the village
-near their headquarters ready to deploy in either
-direction.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the evening of August 22 orders were received
-to push forward the observation post of our armoured
-trains to a spot indicated, which proved to be six
-hundred yards ahead of our positions and near enough
-to be easily raided from the enemy lines. Lieutenant
-T.E. King, my machine-gun officer, was at the
-same time ordered to move forward two maxims,
-with a reduced company of Czech infantry in support
-to protect this advanced post. The night was enlivened
-by constant skirmishes between British and
-Terrorist patrols until about 8.30 A.M., when it was
-observed that the Japanese patrols on the right had
-quietly retired without giving any notice of their
-intention, and that the enemy were in position
-on the plain for an attack and had already advanced
-along a ridge to within a hundred yards of
-the outpost. The movements of the enemy were
-observable only from the main look-out, from which
-orders were already on the way gradually to withdraw
-the party to a position nearer the lines. Before the
-order could be delivered the enemy attacked.
-Lieutenant King proceeded to withdraw the guns
-alternately, working the foremost gun himself, but
-defective ammunition frustrated his effort. He gallantly
-tried to restart the gun, but the enemy were
-now upon him, and he had no alternative but to
-retire without the gun. The small Naval party in
-the advanced look-out were practically surrounded,
-but under Petty Officer Moffat, who was in charge,
-they managed to get out, with the enemy on their
-heels. This party was saved by a marine named
-Mitchel, who, seeing Petty Officer Moffat in
-difficulties, turned on his knee and faced his pursuers.
-Their fire was erratic, but his was cool and accurate,
-and after three or four rounds the Magyars kept their
-heads well down in the long marsh grass, which
-permitted the party to escape. The result of this
-skirmish, however, allowed the enemy armoured
-train to advance to a point dangerously near our
-defensive works, which, with a little more enterprise
-and determination, he might easily have enfiladed.
-But though the enemy train had mounted a 6-inch
-gun our 12-pounder Navals were too smartly handled
-to allow any liberties to be taken. This was the
-situation on the morning that the Japanese 12th
-Division began to deploy behind the new Allied line
-at Dukoveskoie.
-</p>
-<p>
-About 3 P.M. on August 23 I asked my liaison
-officer, Colonel R. Antonivitch Frank, of the Russian
-Army, to accompany me towards the front line,
-as I had heard rumours of large concentrations of the
-enemy, who, elated with this small initial success,
-seemed determined to dispute our possession of the
-village of Dukoveskoie. I arrived in time to witness
-a duel between one of our armoured trains and a
-rather spirited fellow of the same sort on the other
-side. The Bolshevik shells would persist in dropping
-to the right of our train on a road on which Colonel
-Frank and I were sitting our horses, so we decided
-to dismount and send the animals out of range, while
-we boarded the train and enjoyed the contest. One
-of our 12-pounders went groggy and obliged us to
-retire slightly, but we dared not go back far, as the
-Terrorist train had all the appearance of following,
-and would soon have made short work of our infantry,
-which were occupying very indifferent trenches near
-the railway, Captain Bath saw the danger and
-steamed forward, firing rapidly; shells burst all round
-his target, and so bewildered his opponent that he
-soon turned tail and retired to safety. I applied to
-the Japanese commander, General Oie, through
-Major Pichon that our trains, directly it was dark,
-might be allowed to return to Svagena to shunt the
-injured gun to the rear train. About 7 P.M., while
-preparing to return for this purpose, a few sharp rifle-cracks
-were heard near the centre of the line. These
-reports grew rapidly in volume, and now became
-mixed up with the bass "pop-pop" of machine guns.
-The rolling sound of conflict spread from the centre
-along the whole right front. Till now it had been
-exclusively a small-arm fight. At this point the Bolshevik
-artillery began to chime in, followed by the
-Japanese and Czech batteries. The lovely Siberian
-summer night became one huge booming, flashing
-inferno, terrible but intensely attractive. The silent
-tree-clad mountains to right and left vibrated with
-the music of battle, while shell and shrapnel screeched
-like frightened ghouls over the valley below, where
-white and yellow men were proving that there is no
-colour bar to bravery. This din lasted about two
-hours, and then died away almost as rapidly as it
-began.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our trains which had remained to take a hand in
-the business if necessary steamed slowly back to
-Svagena, and I turned into my wagon for the night.
-After the usual battle with the mosquitoes, I fell
-asleep, but it seemed as though I had only slept a few
-minutes, when a banging at the door announced a
-visitor, who turned out to be a Staff captain from the
-Japanese Headquarters with an urgent message for
-the Commander of the Reserves at Svagena, who
-with great ceremony handed me the following order
-of the day:
-</p>
-<blockquote><pre>
-"To COLONEL WARD,
- Officer Commanding Reserves.
- Operation Order by
-LIEUT.-GENERAL S. OIE,
- Commanding 12th Division,
- Svagena.
-</pre>
-<p>
-"<i>August 23, 1918.</i>
-</p>
-<p>
-"1. All enemy attacks were driven back to-day. We gained two
-machine guns and five captives.
-</p>
-<p>
-"2. The Allied troops will attack the enemy, inflicting upon
-them an annihilating disaster, to-morrow, August 24.
-</p>
-<p>
-"3. The Japanese troops will attack the enemy, starting the
-present line, at 3 o'clock, the 24th, morning.
-</p>
-<p>
-"4. The reserve British, French, Kalmakoff's forces, and a few
-Japanese companies will be under the command of Japanese. Colonel
-Inagaki will arrive at the north-western side of Dukoveskoie at
-2 o'clock to-morrow morning.
-</p>
-<pre>
-"(Signed) S. OIE,
- Lieut.-General,
- Commanding 12th Division."
-</pre></blockquote>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH4"><!-- CH4 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER IV
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-THE BATTLE OF DUKOVESKOIE AND KRAEVESK
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-I Looked at my watch, and called the Japanese
-officer's attention to the fact that the time was
-1.45 A.M., and that Dukoveskoie was four miles distant.
-Although he could speak perfect English, he
-held out his hand and with a profound bow pretended
-not to understand the point of my observation. It
-was in point of time simply impossible to arouse the
-British, Czech, Cossack and Japanese detachments
-and march four miles in the middle of the night in
-fifteen minutes; but I had lived long enough in the
-East to know that the Oriental never sets a European
-impossible tasks without a good reason from
-his own point of view. I dispatched orderlies to
-each detachment with definite instructions to be
-ready to move at once. The Japanese refused to
-move or even get out of their tents. The Czechs
-were enjoying a much-needed rest, and refused to
-budge, while Kalmakoff's Cossacks remained asleep
-beside their horses. Ataman Kalmakoff was at Vladivostok,
-and his second in command was dismissed
-on his return for refusing to obey my orders, as
-the Ataman was most anxious that his men should
-be always in the fighting line wherever it might be.
-Captain Clark, M.C., reported the 25th Middlesex
-as ready to march, transport and all complete,
-twenty-five minutes after receiving the order.
-</p>
-<p>
-To make doubly sure there was no mistake, I
-called personally upon the Japanese officer, who
-point-blank refused either to arouse or move his men
-in accordance with his own Headquarters' order. I
-am bound to admit that from that moment I had a
-suspicion that the order of General Oie was so much
-Japanese camouflage, and that it was not intended
-that we should take any part in the immediate operations.
-I also determined to frustrate this attempt to
-exclude the Allies from participation, and gave the
-order to my own men to move.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our road for about two miles lay alongside the
-railway, after which the soddened nature of the
-ground and the danger of losing direction in the
-darkness forced me to take to the railway. About
-a mile and a half along the track brought us to our
-armoured trains, where we were to pick up our
-Machine-Gun Section, which was to act with us if
-necessary, or remain as a reserve or rallying-point in
-case of need. Except for the sentries, the train crews
-were asleep, and almost within rifle range of our
-place of assembly. I halted my men and roused
-Captain Bath to inquire if he had received instructions
-as to his part in the coming battle. He informed me
-that he had received a telephone message from
-General Oie (through Major Pichon) which he could
-not understand and had asked for it to be repeated.
-He thereupon produced the message, which was to
-the effect that a battle would commence at 3 A.M.,
-but that the British armoured trains and the British
-troops were not to be allowed to take any part in the
-impending engagement. On the production of the
-actual message I began to understand why the order
-of battle had been given to me too late for me to be
-at the rendezvous with Colonel Inagaki, and the
-refusal of the units of my command to march with
-me. These instructions to Captain Bath from the
-Japanese Headquarters explained the riddle. I gave
-Captain Bath instructions to move forward in my
-support in case of need and to watch the proceedings
-generally, to render aid to any Allied detachment
-which might be in difficulties, and otherwise to obey
-General Oie's orders. This duty he performed with
-complete satisfaction to the commanders of the
-French and Czech detachments.
-</p>
-<p>
-Having arranged my rear, the men of the 25th
-were ordered to move forward in file on each side of
-the railway track to the point selected for our rendezvous.
-The time was now 3.25 A.M., the dull light
-of dawning day enabling us to distinguish moving
-objects four hundred yards away. A scout came back
-to report the presence of cavalry on the left, but in
-the early morning haze we could not make out
-whether it was friendly or enemy. I moved my
-troops to the opposite side of the railway embankment
-and prepared to receive their charge. I then
-dispatched my liaison officer, Colonel Frank, forward
-to discover their strength and character. He
-quickly returned with the information that the
-cavalry was Japanese, moving into position on our
-extreme left. I re-formed my men and advanced towards
-my position as ordered, ninety minutes behind
-time. I halted and examined the ground, but saw
-nothing of Colonel Inagaki or any of the detachments
-on the spot selected for our assembly. Standing on
-the line, I saw the foremost enemy armoured train
-about four hundred yards ahead, and their outpost
-giving the alarm. No shot had so far been fired, but
-I gave the order to load. At this stage an incident
-happened which put an end to the hitherto silent
-advance of the attacking army. In the act of loading
-a rifle went off accidentally. The soldier to whom
-it belonged was standing just behind me, and I
-ordered Captain Browne to examine and report. In
-doing so the rifle again went off; it saved the man
-from punishment, but it began the battle. There
-was a puff of white smoke, and an instant later a
-5-inch shell burst over our heads. The men opened
-out into the corn and scrub, and I dismounted while
-the advance continued. Taking my servant's rifle,
-I led the way.
-</p>
-<p>
-The enemy must have anticipated our rendezvous,
-for the place was ploughed with shells from end to
-end. The first pitched just under the centre of a
-peasant's cottage, and in a moment cottage and
-peasant were no more. The heavy purple pall hung
-on the ground, and had we been on the spot selected,
-this description would have been written by other
-hands than mine. By the increasing light and the
-aid of my glasses I was able to make out the entire
-scheme of the advance, which was a continuous line
-from one mile on the left of the railway, extending
-to about ten miles on our right. A space of about
-one hundred yards on each side of the line was
-unoccupied&mdash;for the reason, as I afterwards learnt,
-that it was considered too exposed and dangerous
-for the purpose of an advance. Unable to find anyone
-to direct my movements, on my own initiative
-I decided to fill this vacant space, so making the
-line continuous, and move forward with the Japanese
-to the attack. Disposing my men in the shelter of
-the scrub on either side of the railway, I directed their
-movements from the centre of the track. There was
-an ugly moment when a maxim situated in a cornfield
-began to fire point-blank at a range of one hundred
-yards, but a Czech outpost entrenched quite near
-made it so hot for the gunner that after firing about
-150 rounds he scooted, leaving a well-placed gun and
-5,000 rounds, all belted, behind. We now advanced
-over the Czech and French trenches, for these forces,
-like our armoured trains, had been ordered to take
-no part in the advance. It was while near these
-trenches that a grey-coated Magyar, four hundred
-yards away, took deliberate standing aim at myself.
-It was a most difficult shot, and I felt quite safe,
-but though the Magyar missed me, he killed a
-Czech soldier five yards to the left, the bullet entering
-the centre of his forehead just over the nose.
-About sixty shots answered his, and he sank across
-the rails. When we reached him he lay, with many
-others, quite dead. Captain Clark picked up his rifle
-and bandolier, and used it with good effect upon the
-retreating enemy.
-</p>
-<p>
-There is no doubt that if we had failed to get
-into position under the cover of darkness we should
-have had the greatest difficulty in making any headway
-along the railway except with very heavy
-casualties. As I have stated previously, the end car
-of the enemy armoured train had a 6-inch gun, but it
-was mounted so high that the whole platform could
-be swept with rifle-fire. The reason for the high
-mounting was to enable two machine guns to be
-worked along the track from the bed of the car under
-the heavy gun. If our advance had been observed the
-enemy would easily have smashed it, but we got within
-400 yards before they knew we were there. By concentrating
-all our fire on the end of the car we
-swept the platform clear, perforated the body underneath
-with a hail of bullets so that nothing could
-live, and put every gun which could be brought to
-bear along the track out of action. By this means
-the apparently most dangerous point of our advancing
-line became the safest, and we accomplished our purpose
-without a single casualty. Five enemy armoured
-trains were on the line disputing every inch of the
-way, but their shrapnel was either too high or
-exploded so far behind the front line that, though it
-made havoc amongst the laggards, it had but little
-effect upon those who kept well to the front. The
-battle was now joined at all points and reaching the
-decisive moment.
-</p>
-<p>
-In the centre by skilful manoeuvring, a Japanese
-5-inch battery had taken up a position actually in
-front of the general infantry advance. Such daring
-deserved to succeed, and in this case it did so beyond
-all expectations. The point selected was a thin
-group of trees, which gave a view of the railway
-from the left, across the plain to Kraevesk, and
-enabled the leading enemy trains to be shelled almost
-from the flank. The infantry, while still going
-methodically forward, were receiving far too much
-attention to feel comfortable, and Japanese soldiers
-were putting tufts of grass and leaves in front of
-their caps to hide the red band, which made an
-excellent target for riflemen and machine-gunners.
-Occasionally one would rub a handful of mud around
-the tell-tale band; experience soon taught the
-Japanese soldiers the dangers of a little colour. It
-was just ding-dong open fighting, wonderfully spectacular
-in character. Then a shell burst plunk under
-the line behind the two foremost enemy trains, which
-made retreat for them impossible. Desperate efforts
-were made to repair the line, but well-directed rifle
-and light machine-gun fire made this impracticable.
-Another well-placed shell dropped just under the
-gunners' quarters on the front train, and instantly the
-car was enveloped in flames. In turn the fire spread
-to the gun-carriage, which had become untenable
-from rifle-fire. This proved a complete catastrophe
-for the enemy, who from positions on our extreme
-left and centre had a full view of the slaughter around
-the doomed trains. Their nerves were completely
-shattered, their fire became spasmodic and erratic,
-and then among the trees on a hill to the left
-appeared a white flag.
-</p>
-<p>
-That flag was too late. The Japanese cavalry shot
-out in file as a straight extension of our left. Having
-come parallel with the farthest group of resistance,
-they right turned, and instantly swept up the
-slope in a beautiful line and forward over all
-resistance, white flag and all. They took no
-prisoners.
-</p>
-<p>
-My men were only "B one-ers," and the pace
-was beginning to tell; still they were leading,
-owing to the fact that our advance was along the
-railway and the usual tracks at the side, while the
-Japanese had to contend with the marshes and woods
-farther away. I therefore ordered a rally, and
-advanced only with such troops as could be reasonably
-expected to keep the line. This party numbered
-about sixty, and included Captain Clark, the Padre
-(Captain Roberts), Lieutenant Buckley, my Czech
-interpreter (Vladimir), Regimental Sergt.-Major
-Gordon, Sergeant Webb (who, I am sorry to say,
-died a few days later at Spascoe), Colonel Frank (my
-liaison officer), and rank and file. With this party
-we advanced within fifty yards of part of the burning
-train, amid a shower of debris from the exploding
-shells stored in its magazine. The second train looked
-quite deserted, and therefore, beyond examining the
-ammunition cart of a 5-inch gun left derelict on
-the road and counting ten rounds of unfired ammunition,
-we passed without molestation up the railway
-embankment on the way to Kraevesk.
-</p>
-<p>
-We had passed the trains and left them about
-two hundred yards in our rear when we were startled
-by rapid rifle-fire behind us. On looking round, we
-were astonished to see spiteful jets of rifle-fire issuing
-from both sides of the uninjured train directed
-against thick bunches of Japanese troops who were
-passing along the track over which we had just
-advanced. Even the Eastern temperament has
-limits to its serenity. For a moment the Japs were
-completely off their guard, but they soon recovered,
-and dropping flat in the grass, they opened a brisk
-fusillade. The Magyars were protected by the plated
-sides of their wagons, and were making sad havoc
-amongst the soldiers of the Rising Sun. Taking in
-the situation at a glance, a Japanese officer gave the
-order to charge. Every man instantly bounded
-forward, and, like a disturbed nest of ants, they
-swarmed all over the train, stabbing, clubbing and
-bayoneting every Bolshevik they could get at, tossing
-their dead enemies out of the carriages off their
-bayonets with the same motion as if they were
-shovelling coal. Then they posted a sentry on the
-highest part of each train, and the gun in the road,
-and called them their "trophies of war." My great
-regret was that no Bolshevik was left alive to tell
-us the reason why they allowed about sixty English
-officers and soldiers to pass unmolested at point-blank
-range of about forty yards, and only began to fire
-when the Japanese soldiers came under their rifles.
-Many explanations were given at the time, none of
-which seemed to be quite satisfactory, so the mystery
-remains.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was here that a polite request was made that
-the British detachment should not keep so far ahead
-of the other troops, but I was anxious to keep well
-ahead for an important reason. The Bolsheviks had
-ravaged and tortured both young and old, rich and
-poor, male and female throughout the country till
-their very name stank in the nostrils of the common
-people. Their blood lust had been so great that when
-they had no Russian peasant to torture they fell
-back on the poor unfortunate Czech soldiers who
-had fallen into their hands as prisoners of war.
-Many authentic cases of this kind are so revolting in
-character that it is better to keep them in the dark
-rather than advertise how fiendishly cruel men can
-be to one another. I knew that the Czechs had
-threatened to retaliate. The incident of the white
-flag previously recorded may have had something to
-do with the same sentiment, though I can scarcely
-think it had. I decided, however, that the more
-humane rules of war should apply so far as I was
-concerned, and I soon had a chance of making a
-demonstration of my views before the whole army.
-A fugitive Bolshevik soldier had escaped from the
-Japanese cavalry, and started to make his way across
-our left front in an attempt to join the retreating
-Bolshevik trains. Exhausted by the heavy going of
-the marsh, he had dropped for cover and rest. The
-Japanese line was fast approaching the spot where
-he had taken shelter, so he raised himself from the
-grass and began to run. I levelled my servant's rifle,
-but misjudged the distance, and he took no notice.
-I took aim at a point over his head, and he dropped
-in the grass so suddenly that Colonel Frank thought
-I had killed him. As we approached the spot his
-black hair showed up above the green, and I took
-aim again, but did not fire. I informed Colonel
-Frank I wanted the man, if he would surrender, to
-be an example of how a prisoner of war should be
-treated. Colonel Frank shouted to the man to
-surrender. The man shouted back that the Japanese
-killed all prisoners. He was then informed that I
-was an English officer, and if he would surrender I
-guaranteed his life unless he had committed some
-greater crime than merely fighting as a Bolshevik
-soldier. He made no further parley, but almost ran
-to me as for protection. I was standing on the
-embankment, in full view for miles, and it was easy
-for the whole incident to be seen. I took his rifle,
-with fixed bayonet, and bandolier and fifty rounds
-from him. His papers showed him to be a demobilised
-Russian soldier. I placed him under a guard of
-two men with orders to see him safely to the rear.
-Time after time demands were made to his guards to
-allow the murder of the prisoner. But those two
-British bayonets made his life as safe as though he
-had been in Trafalgar Square. I could tell by the
-atmosphere which the incident created that our Allies
-thought this regular conduct wholly out of place
-on a battlefield, but it fulfilled its purpose, and
-surrenders were accepted during the further operations.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our progress was now very rapid, and except for
-a few bursts of shrapnel which continued to fly harmlessly
-over the front ranks and injure such as were
-far behind, we approached our old station, Kraevesk,
-easily. As to the method from the military point
-of view of approaching this place, the less said about
-it the better. A single company of British troops
-would have held up the whole show and inflicted losses
-on the attackers out of all proportion to the object
-gained. The stuffing, however, was completely
-knocked out of the Bolshevik army, and the advance
-took more the form of beaters driving big game.
-Having previously reconnoitred the whole ground,
-I again chose the railway for my party. The
-Japanese swarmed up through the wooded slope on
-the right. I chose the railway because I knew the
-shallow cutting had a slight curve which would give
-a safe line of approach to the station, situated about
-three hundred yards behind this low-lying hill. The
-Japs advanced through the wood in masses, huge
-bunches of men without regular formation. On
-rounding the curve, I saw an enemy armoured train
-about four hundred yards distant. A Bolshevik
-officer walked leisurely out of our old headquarters
-and put one foot on the step of the engine, looking
-straight at myself standing on the line. I drew a
-bead on him with Lance-Corporal's Moorman's rifle.
-I do not believe I hit him, but I was near enough
-to make him skip quickly into the engine shelter.
-A flash from the leading gun, and a 2-inch shell
-passed so close to my head that I fell into the four-foot
-way, and felt the top of my skull to find out if
-it was still there. This shell exploded about one
-hundred yards behind me and mortally wounded two
-Japanese and injured several others. The machine
-guns on the train now swept the wood, where the
-Japs were advancing, with such effect that for a few
-moments there was a regular stampede back over
-the brow of the hill. My party had taken cover in
-the scrub on the left, and I crawled on hands and
-knees in their direction. I found a deep dyke at
-the foot of the cutting covered with high weeds, and
-into this I rolled. Gradually raising my head over
-the thistles, I potted rapidly at the gunner, and my
-party did the same.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Japs by this time had recovered from their
-first shock, and began to open fire on the train,
-which steamed slowly back to the far end of the
-station, when it came to a standstill and pumped
-shrapnel along our front. We had got far ahead of
-our artillery, so it became a contest of rifle versus
-armoured train. On the left of the station was a
-thick log store, and keeping that between ourselves
-and the armoured train, we crept into the station
-and began to fire at close range at the gunners, whose
-heads appeared above the sides of the armoured
-carriages. The Japanese used a red brick cottage
-for a similar purpose on the other side, while others
-tried to outflank the train and cut off its retreat.
-The officer in charge detected this manoeuvre, and,
-using all his guns, he retired behind the hill, and
-later was reported as steaming towards Shmakovka.
-We took possession of the station, and near our old
-headquarters found a hut in which was the Bolshevik
-officers' breakfast, with potatoes cooked to a nicety
-on the fire. These were looted by Colonel Frank and
-Sergeant-Major Gordon. The sun was very hot&mdash;the
-time was about 8.30 A.M.&mdash;we had fought over
-very difficult country for twelve miles, and as we
-sat on the crossing of the railway the potatoes were
-very good. By some hopeless blunder the Japanese
-cavalry had been ordered to close in from the flank
-on this station instead of the next, so we lost the
-huge bag of prisoners which was waiting to be
-captured. The Jap cavalry commander sat down
-and sampled my potatoes, but he lost the culminating
-stroke of the whole movement. This small minor
-action proved to be one of the most decisive of the
-war, as it destroyed the whole Terrorist army east
-of the Urals.
-</p>
-<p>
-I was ordered by General Otani to remain in
-reserve, and returned to my base at Svagena to find
-the proverbial luck of my battalion had been maintained.
-The Japs had over six hundred casualties,
-some of which occurred close to my men, but not
-a man of the 25th was hit. We had many cases of
-complete prostration, but, in view of the category
-of my unit, not more than was to be expected considering
-the strenuous month's work they had undergone.
-One and all behaved like Englishmen&mdash;the
-highest eulogy that can be passed upon the conduct
-of men.
-</p>
-<p>
-General Oie sent a letter of special thanks to the
-Commanding Officer of the British unit for their
-great services in the engagement. At 4.25 P.M.,
-August 28, I received the following communication
-from the General Headquarters:
-</p>
-<blockquote><p>
-"1. On August 26 the Division had occupied
-the heights situated at the north of Shmakovka.
-The inhabitants reported the enemy had left there
-between nine and twelve on the night of August 24
-by eleven trains, strength of which was about 5,000
-men; 2,000 men retired by road from Uspenkie.
-The Division bivouacked at Shmakovka.
-</p>
-<p>
-"2. On the 27th the enemy continued their
-retreat to the north of the River Ussurie, and no
-enemy could be seen to the south of it, though nine
-railway bridges out of ten between Shmakovka and
-Ussurie had been destroyed. Damage done is some
-ten metres each, and a few days would be required
-to repair them. The Ussurie railway bridge is
-not damaged, and on the night of the 26th, after
-a small detachment had occupied it, one company
-of infantry reinforced. Against the enemy on Lake
-Hanka, which was known to have gone down the
-river with gunboats, one company of infantry has
-been dispatched to the right bank of Ussurie east of
-Shmakovka.
-</p>
-<p>
-"3. The Division remains at the present position,
-and prepares to move forward on the 28th."
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>
-This completed the Ussurie operations, for the
-battle was absolutely decisive. The enemy were
-entirely demoralised, and never made another stand
-east of Lake Baikal.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH5"><!-- CH5 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER V
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-JAPANESE METHODS AND ALLIED FAR-EASTERN POLICY
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-The Japanese, for their own peculiar reasons, as will
-have already appeared, had decided in the early stages
-of the operations that the maritime provinces were
-their special preserve. They looked with the greatest
-suspicion upon the forces and efforts of the other
-Allies, especially British and American, and by their
-orders tried deliberately to exclude them from their
-counsels and as far as possible from the administration
-of the territory recovered from the Terrorists.
-The 27th Battalion of American Infantry had landed
-at Vladivostok a few days before the battle of
-Dukoveskoie, and promises were made that they
-should be hurried forward to take a share in the
-fighting; but the Japanese, who controlled the railway,
-saw to it that they arrived a day late. Instead
-of pushing them ahead, they were detrained at
-Svagena, and then entrained again from day to day,
-always about fifty versts behind the Japanese front.
-In addition the Japanese never trusted their Allies.
-No order to the Japanese Army was ever given to
-the Allied commanders until the operation had been
-carried out or had got to such a stage as to make it
-impossible for them to take part or offer suggestions.
-</p>
-<p>
-Captain Stephan (now Major), of the Czech
-Army, and myself knew every road and track from
-Shmakovka to Svagena, and were certain that with
-proper care the whole enemy force on the Ussurie
-front could have been destroyed or captured. The
-Japanese would neither consult nor inform any of
-their Allies about any movement until it had taken
-place. They treated the Czech commanders with
-the most scant courtesy; the English officers' carriages
-were invaded by their private soldiers, who
-would insolently ask what business we had in Siberia
-and when did we propose to go home; but they
-reserved their most supreme contempt for the
-Russian people. These poor wretches they drove off
-the railway platforms, using the butts of their rifles
-upon the women as well as the men, just as though
-they were dealing with a tribe of conquered Hottentots.
-I did not understand this behaviour on the
-part of our Eastern Ally, and felt it could only be
-the irresponsible bullying of a few individual men and
-officers. Later on I found it to be the general policy
-of the Japanese Army to treat everybody as inferior
-to themselves; they had learnt this Hun lesson to a
-nicety.
-</p>
-<p>
-I give two instances which are neither glaring
-nor isolated, but of which no doubt official record
-remains. I was standing on Nikolsk platform waiting
-for a train; there was a crowd of Russian people,
-and a Japanese sentry was standing near. This man
-quite suddenly darted forward and jammed the butt
-of his rifle in the centre of a Russian officer's back;
-the force of the blow knocked him flat on the floor
-in such pain that he rolled about for a few minutes,
-while the Jap, grinning, held his bayonet at the "On
-guard!" Though there were many standing near,
-not one Russian had the pluck to shoot him, and
-not wishing to mix myself up in the affair, I took
-no action, but watched further developments. Ten
-minutes later another Jap sentry repeated the performance,
-but this time the victim was a well-dressed
-Russian lady. So cowed were the Russian people
-that even her friends were afraid to help her. I
-stepped forward to offer assistance, with the Jap
-standing over me; when, however, he saw my
-revolver he put up his bayonet, but continued to
-laugh as though it was a huge joke. A few Tommies
-were attracted to the spot, and the Jap saw that
-things were beginning to take a serious turn. I
-proceeded to the Japanese Headquarters, situated in
-a carriage near by, and reported the occurrence.
-The officer seemed astonished that I should interfere
-on behalf of mere Russians, who he said may have
-been Bolsheviks for all he knew, and inquired
-whether the sentry had ever treated me so. I
-answered that "the first Japanese that touches an
-English officer or soldier in my presence will be a
-dead man." This seemed to surprise the Japanese
-officer, who pointed out that the Japanese were in
-occupation of Siberia, and were entitled to do what
-they liked. I had to inform him that the Japanese
-were acting in alliance with the other Powers, including
-Russia; that we were here as the friends of
-the Russian people, and not as their conquerors.
-This he would or could not understand. I ended
-the interview by warning him that if his sentries
-were not instructed to behave a little less like savages,
-there would be an end to those sentries' careers. I
-later heard that the interview did good, but could
-not in the case of Japanese troops do more than
-slightly mitigate their behaviour to the defenceless
-Russian inhabitants.
-</p>
-<p>
-That is merely a type of their conduct towards
-ordinary people. There is, however, one excuse for
-them: given the right circumstances, they treat all
-alike. A battalion commander was not quite the
-sort of material to operate upon, for the simple
-reason that he was usually surrounded with sufficient
-force to secure proper respect, but a general without
-a powerful escort was always fair sport for their gentle
-attentions. Not even the chief of the British Military
-Mission could hope to escape from the most insulting
-behaviour. An incident placed my unit in charge
-of a part of the telegraph system, which enabled
-me to handle personally the sort of message which
-entered the Japanese Headquarters relative to a
-special train that was approaching their station. I
-handled the message myself. It ran as follows:
-</p>
-<p>
-"A special train, No. ........., will enter your section
-at ......... time; it conveys the chief of the British
-Military Mission, General ........., and Staff from
-Vladivostok to Ufa for important conference with
-General Surovey, the Commander-in-Chief of the
-Czech and Russian Armies. You will please give
-'line clear' throughout the journey." Did the
-Japanese give "line clear" throughout? That will
-never be the way that this highly efficient and interesting
-little people will do anything, if their army
-is a sample of the whole. They stopped the train,
-and boarded it with a squad of men with fixed
-bayonets. They insulted the chief of the British
-Mission by placing him and his Staff under arrest,
-and then proceeded to make elaborate inquiries to
-find out whether they were not German emissaries
-in disguise. The impudence of the whole proceeding
-was so remarkable and yet characteristic that when
-the Staff of the General reported the occurrence to
-me I did not for a moment know whether I should
-die with rage or laughter.
-</p>
-<p>
-I went to Siberia entirely biassed in favour of
-this admittedly wonderful people. I took care to
-instruct my soldiers to salute every Japanese officer
-and to be most polite to every Japanese soldier, and
-they carried out my instructions to the letter; but
-my attention was called to the fact that only on rare
-occasions did a Japanese officer take the trouble to
-return the salute of my men, and still more rarely
-did a Japanese soldier salute an English officer. He
-was much more likely to give an insulting grimace.
-I say quite frankly that I admire the workmanlike
-way the Japanese go about their soldierly duties, but
-it is impossible to ignore their stupidly studied
-arrogance towards those who are anxious to be on
-terms of peace and amity with them. It is unfortunately
-true that they were misled into believing that
-Germany was ordained to dominate the world, and,
-believing this, they shaped their conduct upon this
-awful example. They quite openly boast that
-they are the Germans of the East. Let us hope
-that they will read aright the recent lesson of
-history.
-</p>
-<p>
-During my stay in the maritime provinces I
-never saw or heard of a single act or order from the
-Japanese Headquarters which would help in the
-slightest degree in the administrative reorganisation
-of the country. On the contrary I saw many things
-which convinced me that the Land of the Rising Sun
-was at that time more concerned in maintaining
-disorder as the surest way of fostering her own
-ambitious designs.
-</p>
-<p>
-At this stage the other Allies were without a
-Far-Eastern policy. Their sole object was to push
-back as far as possible the German-Magyar forces,
-which were carrying out the sinister policy of
-Teutonic penetration under the guise of Bolshevism.
-Bolshevism in the Far East at this date was an
-attempt to reduce to a system the operations of
-the Chinese robber bands of the Mongolian border.
-Mixed with and led by released German and Magyar
-prisoners of war, they became a formidable force
-for destroying all attempts at order in Russia
-and resisting the possible reconstruction of the
-Russian front against the Central Powers. Previous
-to the Bolshevist r&eacute;gime these Chinese bands had lived
-by murder and loot; it was their trade, though
-hitherto considered illegal, and sometimes severely
-punished. No wonder they joined the Soviet crusade
-when it declared robbery and murder to be the basis
-upon which the new Russian democracy must rest.
-This German-Magyar-Chinese combination was
-bound to meet with remarkable initial success. The
-Chinese got his blood and loot in a legal way without
-much danger, and the German prisoner played
-an important part in the defence of the Fatherland
-and the destruction of its enemies.
-</p>
-<p>
-If Germany lost on the Western Front, and by
-means of this unnatural combination still retained
-her hold upon the potential wealth of the late Tsar's
-dominions, she had indeed won the war. This was
-the reason for our presence in Siberia, but it was
-not the reason for the presence of Japan.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH6"><!-- CH6 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER VI
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-ADMINISTRATION
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-Shortly after the incidents referred to in Chapter
-IV, I received General Otani's orders to take over
-the command of the railway and the districts for fifty
-versts on either side, from Spascoe to Ussurie inclusive.
-My duty was to guard the railway and administer
-the district, taking all measures necessary to keep
-open this section of the line of communications. I
-was instructed to fix my headquarters at Spascoe,
-and make all arrangements to winter there. In
-accordance therewith I proceeded to get into touch
-with what remained of the old Russian authorities,
-civil and military, and the new ones wherever such
-had been created. So far as the men's comfort was
-concerned, new roads were constructed and old ones
-repaired, broken windows and dilapidated walls and
-woodwork were either replaced or renovated. Electrical
-appliances were discovered and fixed, and what
-had previously been a dull, dark block of brickwork
-suddenly blossomed out into a brilliantly lighted
-building and became at night a landmark for miles
-around.
-</p>
-<p>
-We also began painfully to piece together the
-broken structure of human society. For over a
-year no law but force had been known in these
-regions, and many old wrongs and private wounds
-demanded liquidation. I made many journeys to
-outlandish villages and settlements, with a small
-personal escort, fixed a table in the centre of the
-street, and with the aid of the parish priest and the
-president of the local council, heard and decided
-disputes, public and private, from threats and injury
-to the person to the possession and occupation of a
-farm. There was no appeal&mdash;the stolid Tommies
-who stood behind me with fixed bayonets put my
-judgments beyond question. I remitted one or two
-points of property law to legal decision, but all
-parties in each case protested that they would have
-preferred my instant judgment. Three murderers I
-remitted to a court which I called together with an
-old Russian officer to preside, but he was so terrified
-at the prospect of having to order their execution
-for fear they might be Bolsheviks&mdash;whose name was
-a terror to everybody&mdash;that I had to send them to
-another district to enable the law to be carried out.
-The report of these proceedings spread with such
-rapidity that it became quite embarrassing, if not
-impossible, to deal effectively and thoroughly with
-the daily increasing number of litigants. I began to
-understand the reason why in more civilised communities
-legal proceedings are made so expensive.
-Either the Russian peasant is a most litigious
-person, or else he mistook a free system of justice
-as a healthy English pastime which he thoroughly
-enjoyed.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was extremely flattering to be told that these
-people preferred that the "Anglisky Polkovnika
-Boorpg" should decide their disputes than that they
-should be reserved for a Russian tribunal. It was
-the most interesting work I had so far done in the
-country. The trial of even the simplest case gave
-me many insights to Russian institutions and character
-that only years of book study could otherwise
-have accomplished. I learnt the difference between
-the right of the peasant holder as compared with
-that of the Cossack circle. The law of the forest
-afforded an education in itself. The intimate relationship
-of Russian family life, from the highest
-to the lowest, was constantly laid bare before me
-with all its romance and mediaeval trappings and its
-sordid substratum of violence and superstition. In
-fact, I became so interested in this work that it was
-with the greatest regret that I relinquished it for
-a more urgent and important call.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Allied forces in the Transbaikal had now
-accomplished their task of dispersing the forces of
-lawlessness, and had made some progress in the work
-of administration, but if this work was to be consolidated
-and made of permanent value it must be
-given a centre, other than the Allied command,
-around which it could rally and to which it might
-reasonably look for guidance and support. The
-Siberian Government had been established by the
-alive elements of the old r&eacute;gime and the more showy
-members of the Social Revolutionary party, but their
-authority was ignored and their orders were not often
-conspicuous for their wisdom. This great people
-can do almost anything, but even they cannot live
-without a head, and the question was, how was some
-sort of head to be provided? The Allies had taken
-control of the far-eastern provinces, but, if their
-object was to be carried through and German designs
-frustrated, it was necessary to push at once their
-control to the Urals and, if possible, beyond. The
-brilliant feats of the Czechs had temporarily thrown
-the Terrorist forces into confusion, but with wealthy,
-helpless Russia as their prize cupidity alone would
-be sufficient to excite them to renewed effort. To
-be effective, Allied help and activity must be transferred
-nearer to the scene of actual conflict, and
-Ekaterinburg or Omsk appeared to be the only
-possible centres which could provide the proper
-accommodation and surroundings for this next step
-in the Allied programme. This much as a general
-proposition was conceded by all, but everybody held
-differing views as to the way in which it should be
-carried out.
-</p>
-<p>
-Japan, having firmly planted her feet in the
-much-coveted maritime provinces, did not look with
-enthusiasm upon the suggestion that she should
-leave what she most wanted in order to lessen the
-pressure upon a front in which she had no interest.
-That Paris should fall under German blows was of
-no importance compared with American control of
-the Chinese Eastern Railway or the presence of the
-<i>Brooklyn</i> at Vladivostok.
-</p>
-<p>
-America had not exactly made up her mind what
-particular part of the Far East was most precious in
-her eyes, but wished to be friendly with everybody
-and get as much as possible out of all. Her armies
-were on the Western front, but her eyes were on
-the Eastern Pacific, and was it not better after all
-to remain where you could keep an eye on the other
-fellow?
-</p>
-<p>
-Who would think of taking a military force over
-six thousand miles from its base through a partially
-hostile country? Would it get through the many
-dangers and difficulties it was certain to encounter
-on the way? And if it did, who could guarantee a
-friendly reception? and if not, how could a ghastly
-disaster be avoided? These were some of the problems
-which called for decision, and once decided could
-never be recalled.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Americans and the Japanese were otherwise
-occupied and therefore not available, and though it
-may seem mere national egotism to make such a
-statement, there was only one force in which
-moderate Russians of all parties had absolute confidence&mdash;without
-which anything might happen. All
-eyes turned to the old "Die-Hard" Battalion which
-had now proved its mettle on land and sea.
-</p>
-<p>
-Russian society had been ripped up by the roots,
-and the whole country reduced to a huge human
-jungle. Human life was at a discount, in fact was
-the cheapest thing in the country. If a centre of
-order was to be created anywhere, force must be provided
-for its initial protection. Statecraft cannot
-work with violence ever threatening its very life.
-The risks were great, a big force would create suspicion,
-a small force must rely upon something more
-than mere bayonets for its safety. It was with due
-regard to its dangers, but with a certainty that it
-was worth it, that I accepted the task which the fates
-had forced upon me.
-</p>
-<p>
-We had settled down for a winter in Spascoe,
-when I received the necessary orders to proceed to
-Omsk, with the suggestion that before executing
-them I had better visit Headquarters at Vladivostok
-for a conference with General Knox. I tried to get
-a carriage suitable for the journey for my Staff from
-the railway authorities, but failed, and ended by
-purloining a cattle-truck. In this contraption we got
-as far as Nikolsk, where our truck was to have been
-hung on to the Harbin Express; but the station-master,
-the best type of Russian public official,
-thought it a disgrace that the Commander and Staff
-of their most trusted Ally should travel so. He
-placed his private car at my disposal on my promise
-to return the same if and when I could find another.
-We arrived at "Vlady," and in four days had completed
-the arrangements for the move and secured
-verbal and documentary instructions as to the general
-policy to be pursued. The means to be employed to
-worm my way towards the Urals were left entirely
-to myself.
-</p>
-<p>
-I had already formed a very high opinion of the
-Russian character. Much can be done by sympathy
-and persuasion, but if they fail, then the "big stick"
-of Peter the Great, used sparingly, is the only method
-which is certain to secure obedience to orders.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the return journey I was hung up at Nikolsk
-for several days. Heavy rains had caused the valleys
-and marshes to become flooded, and a haystack which
-had been carried off its bed by the water had lodged
-against the temporary sleeper buttress and swept the
-bridge away. The hay had held the torrent back till
-it became so high that it rushed over about two miles
-of the railway, destroying that also. The Japs would
-not repair the damage, nor for some time would they
-give a chance for the Russians to do so. I managed
-to get orders through to Major Browne so that no
-time was actually lost. It was estimated that it
-would take seven days to get on the move, but by
-a general hustle all round in three days we began
-our 5,000 miles journey. Starting from Spascoe we
-travelled to Nikolsk, and then turned back up the
-Manchurian-Chinese Eastern Railway. On arriving
-at Nikolsk we were informed that the French Tonquin
-Battalion had also received orders to move west some
-seven days prior to us, but were not yet ready, nor
-were they likely to be for two or three days. We
-had arrived at "Vlady," and gone thence to the
-Ussurie front before the French; so now again we
-led the way towards the sinking sun.
-</p>
-<p>
-This French unit was under the command of
-Major Malley, who from his appearance ought never
-to have dropped the "O" before his surname. He
-and his officers were some of the best; but the
-atmosphere of South China had robbed them of some
-of their native energy. He informed me that his
-destination was a point on the railway near the
-borders of North-West Manchuria, and by consulting
-my own instructions I guessed the object of his move.
-In case of need I should at least have the border
-open. In addition to which the move was an indication
-that so far as this venture was concerned English
-and French policy ran parallel.
-</p>
-<p>
-The first part of the journey was through hundreds
-of miles of uncarted corn. As far as the eye could
-see, to right or left, one vast sea of derelict corn,
-left uncared for on the land to rot in the Siberian
-winter. The entire absence of labour, and the complete
-breakdown of internal administration and communication
-had produced stark want in the presence
-of plenty. It made one feel quite sad to look day
-after day upon this waste of human food and remember
-the food rations and regulations at home. All
-along the line there was a continuous stream of
-refugees of all nations and races&mdash;poor, hunted creatures
-who had horrible stories to tell of the ravages
-of the Bulgar and the atrocities of the Bolsheviki.
-At one place the Serbian women and children got the
-breakfast of my men, the Tommies refusing to eat
-until the kiddies had been satisfied. And the pathetic
-homage they paid to our flag when they discovered
-it was the flag of England! I shall never forget some
-of the scenes which showed us also the wonderful
-trust the struggling nationalities of the world have in
-the power, humanity and honour of our country. It
-is a priceless possession for the world which Englishmen
-must for ever jealously guard.
-</p>
-<p>
-Through apparently never-ending uplands we
-entered the great range which forms the natural
-boundary between China and Siberia. On and on,
-through mountain gorge and fertile valley, we broke
-at length out on to the wide open plains of Manchuria.
-Perhaps it could be best described as a combination
-of all the most wonderful scenery in the world. It is
-somewhat difficult to keep three huge trains of over
-forty trucks each together on a single line. This,
-however, had to be done, first for purposes of safety,
-and secondly for defence in the then lawless state of
-the country. The next difficulty was transport.
-Horses had to be watered, and if they were to be
-ready for use the train must stop and the animals be
-exercised every fourth day. Hence much scheming
-and management had to be exercised for the journey
-to be successfully carried through.
-</p>
-<p>
-I saw much about the "hidden hand" in the
-newspapers we received from home, but our experiences
-of the same character were sometimes
-amusing and sometimes serious. The railway was
-under a sort of joint control, Russian, American and
-Japanese, and it soon became clear that one or the
-other of these groups was unfriendly to our western
-advance. It may have been all, but of that I have
-no proof. The first incident was a stop of four hours.
-After the first two hours a train passed us that had
-been following behind; after another two hours,
-when slightly more vigorous inquiries were being
-made as to the cause of delay, we were quite naively
-informed that the station-master did not think we
-ought to risk going farther. We soon informed him
-to the contrary, and again started forward. The
-next stop of this character was at a fairly big station
-about twenty hours from Harbin. This station-master
-held us up for seven hours. This I thought
-the limit. At last he showed my interpreter a telegram
-asking him to prevent us going any farther.
-It was not signed, and when I demanded that we
-should be allowed to proceed, he said that there were
-no engines. I had seen two standing idle outside.
-I rushed on to the platform just in time to prevent
-the engines disappearing. While the station-master
-had been parleying with me he had ordered the
-engines to put on steam. I gave orders for my guard
-to form up across the line at each end of the station
-and either bayonet or shoot anyone who tried to take
-the engines away. I then forced the operator to tell
-me if the line ahead was clear, and threatened to take
-the station-master under military arrest for trial at
-Harbin unless he announced my intention to start
-in that direction and cleared the way ahead. I put
-a soldier with fixed bayonet on the footplate to see
-that the driver held to his post and did not play tricks
-with the train, and started on our journey. We made
-every inquiry possible, but no one could give us the
-slightest reason for our stoppage, but seemed to think
-that there was something wrong with the works
-which had allowed us to get so far. From then on
-I took no risks.
-</p>
-<p>
-There are no special features about Harbin. It
-is just a conglomeration of houses of a more or less
-Chinese character thrown together in three heaps,
-the first two attempts of the thrower not getting quite
-near enough to the target, which was the junction
-of the Chinese Eastern Railway. Elaborate preparations
-had been made by an Allied Committee for our
-reception, and when we drew into the station about
-4 P.M. it was crowded with about as cosmopolitan a
-crowd of Far Eastern races as we had so far met
-with&mdash;the Mayor, the Chinese Governor and all the
-notabilities, foremost amongst them being the British
-Consul, Mr. Sly; but most important of all was
-General Plisshkoff, the commander of the local forces
-known as "Hovart's Army." Speeches were delivered,
-and a reply given which elicited from a Cossack
-band the most astounding rendering of the
-British National Anthem that was ever heard around
-the seven seas. The gem of the proceedings was a
-presentation of two lovely bouquets by the English
-ladies of Harbin. I never felt so much the necessity
-for adopting the Eastern custom of kissing all the
-ladies you are introduced to as at this one supreme
-moment of the journey; it was a real test of the
-power of restraint. But the ladies' husbands were
-there, and everything passed off quietly, even though
-some wretched fellows took snapshots of the presentation
-for home production. I inspected the
-several guards of honour, and General Plisshkoff returned
-the compliment, while the famous "25th"
-band discoursed what was declared to be the sweetest
-music that had been heard in Harbin since its history
-began. Tea was served in a specially decorated marquee
-on the platform and all the men were given
-presents of one sort or another, and the town gave
-itself over to tumultuous enjoyment, happy in the
-thought that at last one of the Allies had appeared
-on the scene, a faint indication that a desperate effort
-was about to be made by the oldest and most trusted
-nation in Europe to conjure order out of chaos. The
-officers were entertained by the British Consul, and
-preparations were made for a ceremonial march
-through the town next day. This turned out a great
-success and greatly impressed the inhabitants.
-</p>
-<p>
-The day following we were entertained by the
-Chinese Governor, a very courtly old gentleman, and
-the local Chinese general at the headquarters of the
-Chinese administration. The band was in attendance,
-and during the meal dealt with some of the British
-military choruses which have spread themselves round
-the world. Of course we all joined in, as only
-Englishmen can, and this became so infectious that
-even the staid mandarins unbent and added their
-quota to the noise. It is surprising to note the
-resemblance between the solemn Chinese and the
-self-centred Englishmen. The solemnity of the one
-reacts upon the other, and both become what neither
-is in reality nor can be separately. After our hard
-work and harder fare on the Ussurie this gorgeous
-banquet was equal to a month's leave, and we let go
-with a vengeance. What the Chinamen thought
-about it next morning I do not know; for myself, I
-only remembered the kindness of this act of friendship
-and the <i>camaraderie</i> of the whole affair. How
-strange that we should feel more at home with these
-pukka Chinamen than with others we have met who
-are supposed to have much closer affinity.
-</p>
-<p>
-Immediately after leaving Harbin we crossed the
-finest bridge of the whole journey to Omsk. It carries
-the railway over the River Sungary, which meanders
-about over the enormous yet fairly well cultivated
-plains of Northern Manchuria. It is not my intention
-to describe either the peoples or the countries through
-which we passed, but no study of the blending and
-dovetailing of totally different races into the different
-types that we particularise under the names of
-Chinese, Mongol, Tartar and Russian, would be
-complete without a journey along the Siberian and
-Eastern Chinese Railway. The same remark applies
-to their dress, habitations and customs. It is an
-education in itself, especially if, like us, one had to
-stop occasionally to drive bargains, negotiate help,
-and have the closest and most intimate intercourse
-with the common people. None of them had even
-seen the British flag, few of them had the slightest
-idea where the "Anglisky" lived, and one old
-Kirghis explained to his wondering tribemen that we
-were a strange tribe that had broken away from
-"Americanski" and gone to live on a great island in
-the middle of the lakes, where no one could touch
-us unless they risked their lives on great wooden rafts.
-I thought the amount of inverted truth in this charming
-description very pleasing if not very flattering
-to our national vanity.
-</p>
-<p>
-After climbing the great Hinghan Range the
-plains of Mongolia came as a wonder to me. Imagine
-if you can a perfectly flat land through which your
-train glides hour after hour, day after day. The
-whole is covered with rough grass and a growth
-somewhat like a huge horse daisy or marguerite. At
-the time we passed these plants had dried, and a
-terrific wind sweeping over the plains had broken
-countless numbers of the dry herb off near the
-ground. They fell on their round sides. Directly the
-plants had lost their anchorage away they bounded
-like catherine wheels over the plains. It does not
-require much imagination to picture hundreds of
-thousands of these rounded tufts of dried grass
-bounding along over immense distances. It is
-quite a fascinating pastime to select a few of the
-larger and better formed ones coming over the
-horizon and calculate how long they take to arrive
-opposite your position. Calculations made in this
-way convinced me that a small coloured message
-properly fastened to these moving objects might
-have been carried five hundred miles in twenty-four
-hours. If, instead of looking at one, you look
-at the whole, the impression is of the solid earth
-passing rapidly from west to east. There are occasional
-obstructions in the shape of a huge flock of
-sheep which would cover half of Rutlandshire. These
-are herded by quaintly dressed Mongolian Tartars, on
-wonderful shaggy-haired horses, who ride at a furious
-pace around their flocks and guard them from attack
-by the wolves which infest this part of the world. It
-is worth recording how they do so. The wolf is a
-very cunning animal who has numerous methods of
-attack, and, like a hare, is very difficult to locate if
-in his form and practically level with the ground.
-But his very cunning is often his undoing. On no
-account will the wolf allow a string on which there
-are little coloured rags fluttering to pass over him,
-nor will he willingly get near it. The Tartar herdsmen
-go forward in line over the plain in the direction
-their flocks are feeding with a small strong string
-with little coloured flags fluttering along it, fastened
-from horse to horse. This effectively sweeps the
-whole space as the trawler sweeps the sea. No wolf
-can hope to escape the trained eye of the Tartar near
-the horse where the strain of the line lifts it high off
-the ground, and no wolf will allow the line to pass
-near him, hence the herdsman gets both sport and
-profit out of his occupation. Having fed off the
-grass and herbs in one place, the whole Tartar tribe
-moves forward at regular periods on what appears to
-be an endless crawl across the world, but what is
-really an appointed round, settled and definite, within
-the territorial lands of the race to which it belongs.
-Their women and children journey with them and
-hunt and ride with the men, free as the plains over
-which they travel. In spite of this community of
-interests the men seem to place but very little value
-upon their women except as a sort of communist
-coolie attachment for carrying the camp from one
-place to another, for preparing the rude meals, and
-for the care of the boys, of whom the tribe is very
-proud.
-</p>
-<p>
-Over this featureless wilderness we progressed
-day after day, each stopping-place marked by a few
-aspen trees mixed up with a few others that look
-very much like mountain ash but are not. The
-winter houses of the people are single-roomed, square,
-wooden structures, very strangely built, with flat roofs
-consisting of about two feet of earth. Against and
-over these structures in winter the frozen snow piles
-itself until they have the appearance of mere
-mounds, impossible to locate except for the smoke
-which escapes from a few long crevices left open
-under the eaves of what is intended to be the front
-of the house. These smoke-escapes perform the
-double duty of chimneys and also keep clear the
-way by which the inhabitants go in and out. Their
-herds are either disposed of before the winter begins
-or are housed in grass-covered dug-outs, which in
-winter, when the snow is piled over them, take the
-form of immense underground caverns, and are quite
-warm and habitable by both man and beast. The
-one I entered had over two hundred beautiful little
-foals housed in it, and others similar in character
-had cows and sheep and poultry all as snug as you
-please. The entrance was lighted with a quaint old
-shepherd's lantern, not unlike those I had seen used
-by shepherds in Hampshire when I was a boy. The
-entrance was guarded all night by a number of dogs,
-and curled up in a special nook was the herdsman,
-with a gun of a kind long since discarded in Europe.
-Such are the conditions under which these people
-live half the year, but they make up for this underground
-life when in April they start their cattle
-on the move by first allowing them to eat their
-shelters.
-</p>
-<p>
-Near the edge of this plain we began to encounter
-a few sand dunes with outcrops, very similar to those
-on the coast line of our own country. Over these
-we gently ran day after day until we could see vast
-fields of sand and scrub that it must have taken
-thousands of years of gale and hurricane to deposit
-in the quaint pyramidal fashion in which they stand
-to-day. Even yet they are not fixed; occasionally
-a tree falls exposing the naked sand to the action
-of the wind, which swirls around the hole and moves
-the sand into a spiral whirlpool, lifting and carrying
-it away to be deposited again on the lea side of a
-distant valley, choking the pines and silver birch
-and sometimes destroying large woods and forests.
-It is surprising that though we travelled for hundreds
-of miles along the edge of this huge sand
-plateau we did not see a single rivulet or stream
-coming from its direction, though there were the
-traces of a river far out on the plain. Sunset on
-these sand-hills was quite entrancing. The occasional
-break in these conical formations, when the
-sun was low down, gave one the impression of a vast
-collection of human habitations, with gable ends to
-the highest of the buildings. The fact is, however,
-that, so far as we saw or could make out, no human
-habitation exists over the whole face of this sea of
-sand, though men live quite calmly around the craters
-of volcanoes and other equally dangerous and impossible
-places. The fear created by legends of
-human disaster attaching to the local history of these
-sands is of such a character that even the daring of
-the Tartar is for once mastered. The sands themselves
-when on the move are dangerous enough, but
-their cup-like formation would hide armies until the
-traveller was in their midst, when retreat would be
-impossible. The same applies with greater force to
-the banditti or beasts of the desert; hence the gloomy
-history and legends of the Mongolian sands.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Hazelar on a Saturday evening,
-and collected our echelons during the night. On
-Sunday morning I made application to the priest for
-permission to hold our parade service in the grounds
-of the Greek church. This was granted, and the
-parade was a huge success. The spectacle of the
-padre (Captain Roberts) in his surplice conducting
-the English service under the shadow of the church
-our help had rescued from the violence of the Terrorists
-was very impressive. The service was watched
-with intense interest by hundreds of Russian men
-and women and by crowds of Chinese, Korean and
-Tartar plainsmen. Some of the Russian ladies joined
-in the responses, and many women's voices joined
-in the old English hymns. These were the first religious
-services that had been held for a year, and
-seemed to give assurance to the people that their
-troubles were nearly over, that peace had come again.
-The huge padlock and chain upon the church door
-had been removed, and general thankfulness seemed
-to be the predominant feeling. The scene was doubtless
-very strange to those unaccustomed to united
-worship by both priest and people. In these small
-matters I was extremely punctilious, as I saw what
-an impressionable people I had to deal with. I further
-calculated that once we had joined in public
-service together the edge of hostility would lose its
-sharpness. I did not leave it at this, but entered
-the markets without a guard and held conferences
-with both peasant and workman, stating our reasons
-for coming and the friendly service we wished to
-perform. It was clear from the beginning that my
-safety depended upon our securing the confidence of
-the majority of the people. A mere military parade
-would have failed, but with a thorough understanding
-of our object in entering so far into their country
-we gained their confidence and enlisted their help.
-On the other hand, there is a small proportion of
-disgruntled and abnormal people in all communities
-who cannot be controlled by reason, and for whom
-force is the only argument, and for these we also
-made ample provision.
-</p>
-<p>
-There was not much interest in the remainder
-of the Manchurian and Mongolian part of the journey
-until we arrived at Manchulli. This was occupied by
-the Japanese Division under the command of General
-Fugi. Here it was necessary to get a supply of fresh
-bread and exercise the transport. I paid my respects
-to the Chinese general, who had just lost part of his
-barracks, forcibly taken from him for the occupation
-of Japanese troops. I also paid an official visit
-to General Fugi and Staff and the Russian commandant
-of the station.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH7"><!-- CH7 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER VII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-FURTHER INCIDENTS OF OUR JOURNEY
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-It was at Manchulli that an incident happened which
-was much talked about at the time and was given
-many strange versions. It is quite easily explained
-when all the facts are known. It was impossible
-to secure proper travelling accommodation for my
-officers, either at Spascoe or Nikolsk, but I was
-informed that such would be provided at Harbin.
-In company with the British Consul (Mr. Sly) I
-called upon the manager of the railway at Harbin to
-secure such accommodation. He was very polite and
-promised to do all he could to help, but next morning
-informed me that no carriage was available, but
-if I could find one empty I could take it. I failed,
-and reported the fact to him. He could do nothing,
-but said there were plenty at Manchulli held up by
-Colonel Semianoff and the Japanese, who laid hold
-of every carriage that tried to get through this station,
-and that Colonel Semianoff collected a great revenue
-by refusing to part with these carriages unless the
-user was prepared to pay very high prices for the
-same. If I was prepared to take the risk, and
-would use force if necessary to secure carriages, I
-should be able to get them there, and so far as the
-railway authorities at Harbin were concerned, I could
-take any two empty carriages I might find.
-</p>
-<p>
-The weather was beginning to get very cold, and
-each mile added to our discomfort, and the only
-accommodation for officers on two of the three trains
-were cattle trucks. After my official visit I made
-request for two carriages. The station commandant
-pretended to consult the Russian and Japanese
-officials, and then informed me that there was not
-one available. I told him it was untrue. He agreed
-that if I could point out any carriages unoccupied I
-could have them. He went with his register to the
-carriages I indicated, and he admitted they were idle
-and empty and I would be allowed to take them. I
-put a guard on the carriages and thought the incident
-settled, but nothing is settled for long in the Far
-East. I made request for these carriages to be
-shunted on to my trains, and after a two hours' wait
-went to the station about the shunting and was
-calmly informed that they knew nothing about the
-carriages. The commandant, with whom I arranged
-the matter, had gone home (an old dodge!), and
-would not be on duty till to-morrow, and that
-nothing else could be done.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was reported to me that the reason the carriages
-could not be secured was that the railway
-officials of a certain Power had given instructions
-that no "class" carriages were to be provided for
-British officers, as it was necessary that the population
-along the route should understand that we were
-not considered representatives of a first-class Power.
-Englishmen who have not travelled much in the
-Far East will scarcely understand the working of
-the Oriental mind in these matters. An officer of
-any Power who travels in a cattle truck will not
-only lose the respect of the Oriental for his own
-person, but will lower the standard of the country
-he represents, irrespective of its position in the
-comity of nations. The representative of the Isle
-of Man, if he travelled in the best style, would stand
-before the representative of His Majesty the King
-if his means of transit were that of a coolie. It is
-doubtless very stupid, but it is true. Your means
-of locomotion fixes your place in the estimation of
-the East, because it is visible to them, while your
-credentials are not.
-</p>
-<p>
-I there and then made up my mind to act, and
-if necessary go "the whole hog." I informed the
-authorities that nothing should be shunted in that
-station until those two carriages were joined to my
-trains, and proceeded to occupy the whole station.
-Up to this point I had neither seen nor heard anything
-of the Japanese in relation to this matter, but
-they now came on the scene, and I soon discovered
-that it was they who had engineered the whole
-opposition to the British officers getting suitable
-accommodation, and had spirited away the old commandant
-who had registered the carriages to me.
-At first they did not know the correct line to adopt,
-but made a request that the guard should be taken
-off the station. My answer was, "Yes, instantly,
-if it is understood that these carriages are to be
-shunted to my trains." They agreed to this, and
-my guards were taken off, having held the station
-for twenty-three minutes. I had my evening meal,
-and was expecting to start when I was informed
-that the Japanese had now placed guards upon my
-carriages and refused to allow them to be shunted
-on to my train. I thought this was just about the
-limit, and before taking action decided I had better
-discover the reason, if any, for what seemed a definite
-breach of faith. I visited the Japanese station
-officer, and he said that they had just discovered that
-these two carriages were set aside to convey General
-Fugi to Harbin a few days hence. I refused to
-believe that such a discovery could have only just
-been made, and I would take the carriages by force
-if necessary.
-</p>
-<p>
-It looked very awkward, and a Japanese Staff
-officer was sent for. I sent my liaison officer
-(Colonel Frank) to find the absent station commandant
-who had allocated the cars to me. The Japanese
-Staff officer was expressing his sorrow for my not
-being able to get any carriages for my officers and
-pointing out how impossible it would be for the train
-of General Fugi to be broken up by the loss of the
-two carriages I had claimed, when in stalked the
-old Russian commandant and blew these apologies
-sky high by declaring that these carriages had
-nothing to do with General Fugi's train; that they
-were unemployed, and they were mine. I decided
-to strengthen the guard to eighteen men on each
-carriage, and offered protection to the railwaymen
-who shunted them to my train. The Japanese
-soldiers followed the carriages on to my train, so
-that we had the strange sight of a row of Tommies
-with fixed bayonets on the cars, and a row of
-Japanese soldiers on the ground guarding the same
-carriages. No officer came to give them open instructions,
-but the Jap soldiers disappeared one at
-a time until the Tommies were left in undisputed
-possession.
-</p>
-<p>
-We returned to my car to find it guarded by
-Chinese soldiers. I asked the reason, and was informed
-that at an earlier stage of this incident a
-Chinese officer had been to my car with a note to
-inform me that the great friendship which the
-Chinese always bore to the great English nation
-made it impossible for them to stand by and allow
-their friends to be attacked while passing through
-Chinese territory. I thanked them for their friendship,
-and suggested that Englishmen were always
-capable of protecting themselves in any part of the
-world, wherever their duty took them; but they
-would listen to nothing, and remained on guard
-until my train moved out of the station.
-</p>
-<p>
-I do not suppose there was at any time real danger
-of a collision between the different forces at Manchulli,
-but it had the appearance of a very ugly
-episode that might have developed into one of
-international importance. I took my stand for the
-sole purpose of maintaining the dignity of the
-British Army. Other incidents connected with this
-small dispute about officer accommodation, yet having
-nothing to do with it, made me determined to
-carry my point.
-</p>
-<p>
-During these proceedings I noticed my liaison
-officer in angry dispute with two Japanese officers
-against a truck carrying the Union Jack as an indication
-of the nationality of the train. They were
-pointing to the flag in such a manner that I saw at
-once the dispute was about this offending emblem.
-When the Japanese officers had moved away I called
-Colonel Frank to me and inquired the cause of
-dispute. He said: "I can understand the contempt
-of the Japanese for our Russia; she is down and is
-sick, but why they should wish to insult their Ally,
-England, I cannot understand. The Japanese
-officers who have just left me inquired where the
-English commander got his authority to carry
-an English flag on his train. I answered it was an
-English train carrying an English battalion to Omsk,
-and no authority was necessary. The Japanese
-officers replied that they considered the flying of any
-other flag than theirs in Manchuria or Siberia an
-insult to Japan. I told them they were fools, that
-if the English commander had heard their conversation
-(they both spoke in Russian) he would demand
-an apology. At which they grinned and departed."
-We tried every means to find the two officers, but
-were unable to do so. This was the atmosphere in
-which we discussed the smaller subject, and may
-explain the obstinacy of both sides; at any rate, it
-had something to do with my determination.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Chita without further incident of
-importance. Bread and horse exercise delayed us
-one whole day, and inability to secure engines part
-of another, until in desperation I went with a squad
-of men to the sheds and forced an engine-driver to
-take out his engine, I myself riding on the tender,
-where I nearly lost my sight with hot debris from the
-funnel, while Major Browne, who stood sentinel
-beside the driver, had holes scorched in his uniform.
-This act of violence secured not only an engine for
-my train, but for the others also.
-</p>
-<p>
-I had broken my glasses, and it was necessary
-to secure others. I walked to the town and called
-at the shop of a jeweller and optician, with whom
-we conversed. Other customers joined in the talk,
-and we were here informed of the murder of the
-present owner's mother during the Bolshevik occupation
-of the town. The Soviet Commisar, with
-Red soldiers, visited the shop one day to loot the
-stock. The mother, an old lady over sixty years of
-age who was then looking after the business, protested
-against the robbery of her property. The
-commisar ordered one of the Red Guard to bayonet
-her, which he did. They then proceeded to remove
-everything of value, locked up the premises with the
-dead woman still lying on the shop floor, and for
-several days refused permission to her neighbours to
-give her decent burial on the plea that she was a
-counter-revolutionist. It was evident from the
-appearance of the place that the Red soldiers were
-pretty expert at this sort of business; but stories like
-this are so numerous that it is nauseating to repeat
-them.
-</p>
-<p>
-The next point of interest was Lake Baikal, or
-as it is more correctly described by the Russians, the
-"Baikal Sea." We approached this famous lake on a
-very cold Sunday evening, and long before we reached
-its shores the clear cold depths of the water gave
-evidence of its presence in the changed atmosphere.
-A furious gale was blowing across the lake from the
-west, which lashed huge waves into fury and foam
-as they beat in endless confusion on the rockbound
-shore. Blinding snow mixed with the spray gave
-the inky blackness of the night a weird and sombre
-appearance. Our Cossack attendant, Marca, droned
-a folk-song about the wonders of the Baikal, which,
-when interpreted by my liaison officer, fitted the
-scene to a fraction. We put up the double windows,
-listed the doors and turned in for the night. I was
-fearful that we should leave the lake before morning
-and so fail to get a daylight view of this most
-interesting part of our journey. We all awoke
-early to find the scene so changed as to appear almost
-miraculous.
-</p>
-<p>
-The strange light of these northern zones was
-gently stealing over an immense sea of clear, perfectly
-calm, glassy water, which enabled us to locate
-the whiter coloured rocks at enormous depths. A
-fleecy line of cloud hung lazily over the snow-capped
-mountains. The Great Bear nearly stood on his
-head, and the Pole Star seemed to be almost over
-us. The other stars shone with icy cold brilliance
-and refused to vanish, though the sun had begun to
-rise. And such a rising! We could not see that
-welcome giver of warmth and life, but the beautiful
-orange and purple halo embraced half the world.
-From its centre shot upwards huge, long yellow
-streamers which penetrated the darkness surrounding
-the stars and passed beyond into never-ending
-space. Gradually these streamers took a more
-slanting angle until they touched the highest peaks
-and drove the cloud lower and lower down the side
-of the mountains. I have been on the Rigi under
-similar conditions, but there is nothing in the world
-like an autumn sunrise on Lake Baikal. I stopped
-the train ostensibly to allow water to be obtained
-for breakfast, but really to allow the men to enjoy
-what was in my opinion the greatest sight in the
-world. Some of the men were as entranced as
-myself, while others (including officers) saw nothing
-but plenty of clean fresh water for the morning
-ablutions. We all have our several tastes even in
-His Majesty's Army.
-</p>
-<p>
-Rumour says there are exactly the same fish to
-be found in Lake Baikal as in the sea, with other
-varieties which represent ordinary fresh-water types.
-I do not believe there is any authority for these
-statements. Sea gulls of every known category are
-certainly to be found there, and wild duck in variety
-and numbers to satisfy the most exacting sportsman.
-</p>
-<p>
-Passing along this wonderful panorama for some
-hours we arrived at Baikal. The maps supplied to
-me show the railway as making a bee line from the
-south of the lake to Irkutsk. This is not so; the
-line does not deviate an inch from the western shores
-of the lake until it touches the station. Baikal is
-reached nearly opposite the point at which the railway
-strikes the lake on the eastern side. The lake
-is fed by the River Selengha, which drains the
-northern mountains and plains of Mongolia. No
-river of importance enters it on the north except the
-short, high Anghara; in fact, the rivers Armur and
-Lenha start from quite near its northern and eastern
-extremities. It is drained on the west by the famous
-River Anghara, which rises near Baikal, and enters
-the Polar Sea at a spot so far north as to be uninhabitable,
-except for the white bears who fight for
-the possession of icebergs.
-</p>
-<p>
-Baikal had been the scene of a titanic struggle
-between the Czecho-Slovak forces and the Bolsheviks,
-who had in case of defeat planned the complete and
-effective destruction of the line by blowing up the
-numerous tunnels alongside the lake, which it must
-have taken at least two years to repair. The Czechs
-moved so rapidly, however, that the enemy were
-obliged to concentrate at Baikal for the defence of
-their own line of communication. Before they had
-made up their minds that they were already defeated
-a lucky Czech shot struck their store of dynamite
-and blew the station, their trains, and about three
-hundred of their men to smithereens. The remainder
-retreated off the line in a southerly direction,
-and after many days' pursuit were lost in the forests
-which form the chief barrier between Siberia and
-Mongolia, to emerge later on an important point on
-the railway near Omsk.
-</p>
-<p>
-We stopped at Baikal for water and fuel, and
-examined the damage done by the explosion. The
-great iron steamer which used to be employed to
-convey the train from one side of the lake to the other
-was almost destroyed, its funnels and upper works
-being wrenched and twisted beyond repair. But out
-from every crevice of her hull and from every broken
-carriage came German and Austrian prisoners of war
-dressed in every conceivable style of uniform. There
-was no guard of any description, but they all
-appeared to be under the direction of a young German
-officer, who saluted very stiffly as we passed. No
-doubt existed amongst these Germans (so I heard
-from our men later) that we were tramping towards
-Germany and certain death. Not one would believe
-but that Germany would win the war, and destroy
-not only England, but also America. They had no
-feelings about France, nor would they consider her
-as other than an already half-digested morsel.
-Quartermaster-Captain Boulton put it to one
-prisoner: "But suppose Germany were defeated?"
-"Then," said the prisoner, "I would never return
-to Germany again." We fell in with thousands of
-German prisoners who all held a most perplexing
-view of ourselves. They described us as the only
-real and bitter enemy of their country. But the same
-men would volunteer to work for us rather than for
-any other Ally, because they said we treated them
-fairly and behaved to them like men, and listened
-to their grievances. That is something at any rate.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH8"><!-- CH8 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER VIII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-BEYOND THE BAIKAL
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-From Baikal to Irkutsk is a short run down the left
-bank of the Anghara. We arrived at Irkutsk about
-the same time as a small detachment of Japanese
-troops, who were acting as a guard to their traders
-and their stores, who usually travel with the army.
-The Japs have very pretty bugle calls for different
-military purposes, mostly in the same key, with a
-sort of Morse code for the different orders, but a
-Japanese bugle band is the most terrible thing in
-the world of sound. It makes one either swear or
-laugh, according to one's taste. They gave us an
-exhibition in moving off from the station, which
-everyone who heard will never forget. I was rather
-surprised to find that the Jap traders had established
-themselves at Irkutsk, as their headquarters were at
-Chita, which was also the centre of their agent,
-Semianoff. Why they came to Irkutsk at all is a
-problem. It was generally understood that some of
-the Allies were prepared to concede them only the
-fairest part of Siberia up to Lake Baikal. Perhaps
-they had heard whispers of the mineral wealth of
-the Urals.
-</p>
-<p>
-Irkutsk, situated on the right bank of the
-Anghara, is a rather fine old town for Siberia. Its
-Greek cathedral has a commanding position, and
-contests successfully with the Cadet School for supremacy
-as the outstanding architectural feature first to catch
-the eye. The town is approached by a quaint, low
-wooden bridge which spans the swiftly running river.
-When we saw it the battered remnants of human
-society were grimly collecting themselves together
-after some months of Bolshevik anarchy and murder.
-Whole streets were merely blackened ruins, and
-trade, which had been at a complete standstill, was
-just beginning to show a return to life. Putting out
-its feelers, it had taken upon itself a precarious life
-not yet free from danger. The 25th Battalion
-Middlesex Regiment was the only British unit in
-the country; it had spread itself out in a remarkable
-manner, and shown the flag on a front of 5,000 miles.
-In spite of its category it had brought confidence and
-hope to a helpless people out of all proportion to its
-strength or ability.
-</p>
-<p>
-A public banquet (the first since the Revolution)
-was held ostensibly to welcome Volagodsky, the Social
-Revolutionary President of the Siberian Council, but
-really to welcome the first British regiment that had
-ever entered and fought in Siberia. It was a great
-occasion, and the first real evidence I had seen of
-possible national regeneration. Even here it was
-decidedly Separatist, and therefore Japanese in character;
-a glorification of Siberia and Siberian efforts,
-completely ignoring the efforts of other Russians in
-the different parts of their Empire. Evanoff Renoff,
-the Cossack Ataman, led the panegyric of Siberia,
-and the President and the Secretary for Foreign
-Affairs, a long, watery-eyed young man, joined in
-the chorus. They were doubtless all well pleased
-with themselves, and thoroughly enjoying a partial
-return to the old conditions. Colonel Frank translated
-in a whisper all that was said, so that I got a
-good hang to the mental atmosphere of this unique
-gathering. The toast of their Ally, Great Britain,
-was the occasion which brought me to my feet. The
-band played "Rule Britannia" as a substitute for
-"God Save the King," for the simple reason that
-though mostly Social Revolutionaries they dared not
-play a Royalist hymn until they had tested the feelings
-of their audience. This gave me my cue. I
-laughed at their fears, and informed them that whatever
-happened, our anthem, which for the time represented
-the unity of our race, would be played by my
-band at the ceremonial to-morrow, and all the Bolsheviks
-in Russia would not be powerful enough to
-prevent it. From this I led to the flag, another great
-emblem of racial unity. I called attention to the
-entire absence of a Russian flag from Vladivostok to
-Irkutsk, and asked, "Is this the country of the once
-great and mighty Russia that a stranger travels over
-without knowing what country it is?" I suggested
-that though we had twenty revolutions I could never
-imagine Englishmen being ashamed of the English
-flag or afraid to call themselves Englishmen. The
-translation of my remarks ended in a wonderful ovation,
-and I thought the band would never play
-anything else but the National Anthem, which it
-repeated again and again.
-</p>
-<p>
-My list of telegrams and messages of every
-kind and character from every part of Russia
-and the outside world, together with constant
-repetition of the speech in the Press, indicates
-plainly that from this day began the resurrection of
-the Russian soul. Another sign of renewed vigour
-and life was the fact that from that day the Russian
-flag (minus the Crown) flew from the flagpost over
-every big station we passed, and on all public buildings.
-The Russians are extremely emotional, and I
-had managed to strike the right chord the first time.
-</p>
-<p>
-The day following we marched to the square space
-surrounding the cathedral, and I inspected the newly-formed
-units of the army. Splendid men with good
-physique, but slow and stilted in movement. The
-remnant of the cadets who had escaped the general
-massacre was there, a wonderfully smart set of beautiful
-boys, who at a distance, looking at their faces only,
-I took for girls, much to the disgust of the colonel
-in charge. It was altogether a fine and impressive
-sight, with big crowds and the fine cathedral as a
-background. With the "Present" and "The King"
-at the end, every man present uncovered, and an old
-Russian lady knelt and kissed my adjutant's hand
-and blessed us as "saviours," while the commandant
-asked for cheers for "the only country which came
-to our help without conditions." I wonder how that
-will pan out?
-</p>
-<p>
-We were entertained at the British Consul's, followed
-by a concert at night. It was terribly cold,
-and no droshkies were to be had. We had to walk
-to the theatre in a blinding snowstorm. At 2 A.M.
-we started on our last lap.
-</p>
-<p>
-The sentiments of the people changed completely
-every few hundred miles. After leaving Irkutsk we
-soon discovered that we were in enemy territory, and
-the few weeks, and in some cases days, that had
-elapsed since the retirement of the Bolshevik Commissars
-had left the country the prey of the desperado.
-Let there be no mistake, Bolshevism lived by the
-grace of the old r&eacute;gime. The peasant had his land,
-but the Russian workman had nothing. Not one in
-a thousand could tell one letter of the alphabet from
-another. He was entirely neglected by the State;
-there was not a single effective State law dealing
-with the labour conditions or the life of the worker
-in the whole Russian code. His condition was, and
-will remain, in spite of the Revolution, utterly
-neglected and hopeless. He has not the power to
-think or act for himself, and is consequently the prey
-of every faddist scamp who can string a dozen words
-together intelligently. There are no trade unions,
-because there is no one amongst them sufficiently
-intelligent either to organise or manage them. All
-the alleged representatives of Labour who have from
-time to time visited England pretending to represent
-the Russian workmen are so many deputational
-frauds. There cannot be such a delegate from the
-very nature of things, as will be seen if the facts are
-studied on the spot. The lower middle classes,
-especially the professional teacher class, have invented
-the figment of organised Russian labour for their own
-purpose.
-</p>
-<p>
-The condition of the Russian workman is
-such that he can only formulate his grievances by
-employing others to do it for him. Hence there has
-come into existence numerous professional councils,
-who for a consideration visit the workers in their
-homes and wherever they congregate, and compile
-their complaints and grievances. But these professionals
-always point out that the rectification of
-small points like rates of wages and working hours
-are a waste of time and energy; that the real work
-is to leave the conditions so bad that, in sheer despair,
-the worker will rise and destroy capitalism in a night,
-and have a perfect millennium made ready for the
-next morning.
-</p>
-<p>
-The poor, ignorant, uneducated, neglected
-Russian workman is perfect and well-prepared soil
-for such propaganda. He found himself bound hand
-and foot in the meshes of this professional element,
-who did not belong to his class and, except in theory,
-knew nothing of his difficulties. When this professional
-element had misled, bamboozled and deserted
-him, in a frenzy of despair he determined to
-destroy this thing called education, and made the
-ability to read and write one of the proofs of enmity
-to his class on the same principle that our uneducated
-workmen of the first half of the nineteenth
-century destroyed machinery and other progressive
-innovations, whose purpose they did not understand.
-There would be less chatter about revolution if our
-people could only understand what it means to go
-through the horrors that have destroyed Russia and
-her people more effectively than the most ruthless
-invasion.
-</p>
-<p>
-We stopped at a station near a mining village
-largely peopled with emigrant Chinese workmen.
-We removed the Bolshevik flag from the flag-post,
-and insisted upon the Russian flag being run up in
-its stead. A Russian woman told us to go back, and
-when we asked her why, she said, "Well, it does not
-matter; our men will soon find enough earth to bury
-you." But another Russian woman thanked us for
-coming, and hoped we were not too late to save a
-country that was sick unto death.
-</p>
-<p>
-That night we ran into Zema station, where we
-came to a sudden stop. I sent my liaison officer to
-find the cause, and he informed me that a body of
-men were beside the engine and threatening to shoot
-the driver if he moved another foot. I ordered the
-"Alarm" to be sounded, and instantly 400 British
-soldiers tumbled out of the trucks. Taking their prearranged
-positions, they fixed bayonets and awaited
-orders. My carriage was the last vehicle of the train.
-I walked forward to find the cause of our enforced
-stoppage, and was just in time to see in the darkness
-a squad of armed men leaving the station. I took
-possession of the station and telegraphs, and then
-heard from the officials that Bolshevik agents had
-come to the town and had persuaded the workmen
-to leave work, to take arms and cut the line to
-prevent the Allies moving forward, and await the
-arrival of the Bolshevik force which had retired from
-Baikal. This force had worked its way along the
-Mongolian frontier, and was now feeling its way
-towards the line to destroy the bridge which carries
-the railway over the River Ocka at a point about
-three versts from Zema. I placed guards around
-and in the railway works, engine sheds, and
-approaches, and discovering telegrams still passing
-between the Bolsheviks and the inhabitants, I occupied
-by force the post and telegraph office in the
-town. Orders were issued that all men must pledge
-themselves not to interfere with the trains, and
-return to work by 6 A.M., or they would be dealt with
-under martial law. Two hours elapsed, during
-which time my other trains arrived, with machine-gun
-</p>
-<p>
-The troops surrounded the house of the leader
-of the movement, but the bird had flown. I found
-some Bolshevik literature advocating the wholesale
-destruction of the <i>bourgeoisie</i> and <i>intelligenzia</i> (I
-forget which they put first), also 3,600 roubles,
-which I gave back to the wife, saying, "That
-is a gift from me to you." This act disgusted
-the local chief of the gendarmerie, who assured me
-that it was German money and ought to be confiscated.
-I had no doubt it was, but then I was
-English, and a Hampshire man at that. Then the
-usual teacher arrived and asked if he would be allowed
-to speak to the "Anglisky Polkovnika." Receiving
-an affirmative, he entered and began the conversation.
-He na&iuml;vely confessed that if he had
-known it was an "Anglisky" train he would have
-allowed it to pass. They had read my order as to
-their pledge to return to work, and wanted to know
-what I proposed to do if they did not do so. I
-answered that after having taken up arms against
-us they could expect no mercy, and that if they did
-not obey my orders every leader I could find I would
-shoot. The teacher inquired if I would allow the
-men to be called together for consultation by their
-prearranged signal at the works. I agreed, if they
-came without arms. Soon after, the most awful
-sound came from a huge buzzer. It was now midnight,
-and the air was rent by a wailing sound that
-grew in volume, to die away into a world sob. Every
-Britisher there was affected in some peculiar fashion;
-to myself it was like nothing so much as a mighty
-groan from a nation in distress. Colonel Frank,
-my Russian guide, philosopher and friend, ran from
-the table when the sound began, and paced the car
-in evident anguish, and as it died away exclaimed,
-"Poor Russia!" and I had felt the same thought
-running through my mind. All my men expressed
-themselves in similar sentiments and as never wanting
-to hear it again.
-</p>
-<p>
-My business was to get out of the place as quickly
-as possible, but to leave the line safe. The small
-militia force was quite inadequate to deal with a
-population fully armed. Hence I ordered the
-surrender of all arms by the inhabitants, and allowed
-twelve hours in which this was to be done.
-</p>
-<p>
-Six A.M. arrived, and my officers reported all
-men at work except eight, and these reported later
-and asked forgiveness, which was readily granted.
-I then informed the management that I intended to
-call a meeting of the men and hear their grievances.
-The management tried to dissuade me from my purpose,
-but I at once ordered their attendance in the
-headquarters of the works at 10 A.M., when I would
-hear the men's complaints. Promptly to time
-the work finished, and the men crowded to the spot
-selected. A British sentry with fixed bayonet and
-loaded rifle stood on either side as I sat at the table,
-while others were placed in selected positions about
-the building. I called the managers and heads of
-all the departments first, and warned them that I
-had been forced to take this trouble into my own
-hands, that I intended to settle it, and that if they
-interfered with the men in any way, either by harsh
-measures or victimisation, I would place them under
-court-martial just the same as I would any workman
-who prevented the smooth working of the railway;
-in fact, they being presumably more intelligent,
-would find no mercy. This information caused quite
-a commotion amongst all concerned. I asked the
-men to state their grievances. The first workman
-said he had no economic grievance; his was political.
-He had been told the Allies were counter-revolutionists,
-and as such should be destroyed. Two or three
-protested against this, and said they came out on
-economic grounds. They said their objection was
-to piece-work. I tried to get a statement from them
-that their wages were low, but they would not consent
-to this, admitting that their pay for the same
-work was five times what it was in 1917.
-</p>
-<p>
-I came to the conclusion that it was more of a
-military movement on the part of the Bolshevik
-leaders than a strike such as we understand it in
-England. I gave my decision that the men's leaders
-were to be tried by General Field Court-Martial.
-The men's committee then said that they had never
-had the chance to meet anyone in authority before,
-that they were anxious not to appear as enemies to
-the great English people, that if I would carry out
-no further repressive action against them, they would
-continue to work until the end of the war. They
-heard that Bolsheviks were approaching their town,
-and knew the tortures in store for them if they were
-found continuing to help the Allies in their advance
-to the Urals. If I would secure protection for them
-they would sign an agreement never to strike until
-the war in Russia had ended. I believed them, and
-the agreement was signed, but I insisted upon
-disarmament.
-</p>
-<p>
-That evening the time limit in which the arms
-were to be handed in expired. We were informed
-by the local militia that some arms were handed in
-voluntarily, but many more remained.
-</p>
-<p>
-The following morning a train with General
-Knox and his Staff pulled into the station. I reported
-the whole occurrence to the general, and
-how I had received and sent forward notice of his
-coming and the object of his journey. It was here
-that he informed me of the outrage which the
-Japanese officers had perpetrated upon him, in spite
-of the fact that a big Union Jack was painted on the
-side of each carriage of his train.
-</p>
-<p>
-The inhabitants of Zema were just congratulating
-themselves on having got rid of the "Anglisky"
-when they suddenly found machine guns in position
-ready to spray all their main thoroughfares with lead
-should the occasion arise. Sections of the town were
-searched, house by house, until the piles of arms
-necessitated transport to remove them. Real
-sporting guns which could be used for no other purpose,
-and the owner of which was guaranteed by the
-local police, were returned. In some houses dumps
-of looted fabrics from other towns were taken possession
-of, and altogether work for the courts was
-found for the next two months.
-</p>
-<p>
-The echo of Zema travelled far and wide, and
-gave the authorities an object-lesson how to tackle
-a cancer as deadly as it was devilish. When Kerensky
-destroyed the old Russian army sixteen million
-ignorant and uneducated soldiers took their rifles and
-ammunition home. This was the insoluble problem
-of every attempt to re-establish order in the Russian
-dominions. The Middlesex Regiment made the
-first plunge at Zema, and others soon followed along
-the path indicated. We re-armed the local militia,
-and we took the remainder of the confiscated arms
-to Omsk, where they were taken over by the Russian
-authorities for the new Russian army. I wired to
-Irkutsk for reinforcements for the local militia, as I
-did not think them strong enough to deal with the
-possibilities of the situation. The commandant at
-Irkutsk wired that he had information which proved
-there was no truth in the rumoured approach of
-Bolshevik forces, which reply I knew from the experience
-I had gained in Russian ways merely indicated
-his determination not to weaken his own
-guard.
-</p>
-<p>
-At midnight I started on my further journey.
-About a fortnight later I received a despairing message
-from the local militia chief at Zema for help; he
-said he was nearly surrounded by the Baikal Bolshevik
-contingent, which had suddenly appeared. I took
-the message to Russian Headquarters at Omsk, and
-called attention to my wire to Irkutsk and the refusal
-to protect this part of the line. Later I received a
-report from the commander of the Russian force sent
-to deal with the situation. He said that the Bolshevik
-leader had come into Zema expecting to receive
-material and military help from the people. He
-found them disarmed and unfriendly, and determined
-to take no part in further outrages against established
-order. He wreaked vengeance upon some of his false
-friends, and was then surprised by Government
-troops, who dispersed his forces, killing 180 and
-capturing 800, together with ten machine guns and
-150 horses.
-</p>
-<p>
-As a rule, Bolshevik contingents were easily disposed
-of in a town. They usually looted everything
-and everybody. Officers were elected from day to
-day, with the result that such a thing as discipline
-did not exist. Still, had that party arrived when I
-was in Zema we should have had a pitched battle
-worth a lifetime, for as it turned out they had many
-machine guns, while we had only four; but there
-would never have been any doubt about the result,
-for though we were only a "garrison battalion," the
-steadiness of my men under fire had hitherto been
-excellent.
-</p>
-<p>
-We had been passing through hundreds of miles
-of wonderful virgin forests for the last two weeks,
-with only an occasional opening for village cultivation
-and an occasional log town of more or less importance.
-The hills and valleys as we approached Krasnoyarsk,
-covered with pine trees and frozen rivers, looked like
-a huge never-ending Christmas card. At last we
-arrived at Krasnoyarsk, a large, straggling town of
-great importance on the River Yenisei. As we approached
-we passed miles of derelict war material&mdash;tractors,
-wagons, guns of every kind and calibre all
-cast aside as useless, there being no place where minor
-defects could be repaired. Some had no apparent
-defects, but there they lay, useful and useless, a monument
-to the entire absence of organisation in everything
-Russian.
-</p>
-<p>
-I had suffered a slight indisposition, so Major
-Browne deputised for me, and inspected the Russian
-and Czech guards of honour drawn up to welcome
-the troops on their arrival. I found the town in a
-very disturbed condition, and as it was necessary to
-guard the great bridge, I accepted the suggestion to
-quarter a company under the command of Captain
-Eastman, O.B.E., in the excellent barracks which
-had been prepared for my unit. This place had been
-originally fixed upon as the station for the whole
-battalion, but important events were happening in
-Omsk. Our High Commissioner, Sir Charles Eliot,
-and the Chief of the British Military Mission, General
-Knox, had already arrived there, and required a
-guard, hence I was ordered to proceed with the remainder
-of my battalion. We remained in Krasnoyarsk
-for two days, and marched through the town
-and saluted the British Consulate. On the last evening
-the usual banquet was held in our honour, and is
-worth a few words because of an incident which
-created great interest at the time. The guests were
-made up of many officers and others in uniform, and
-also civilian representatives of the Town Council, the
-district Zemstvo, and other public organisations.
-The usual fraternal speeches and toasts were given,
-and not more than the usual six speakers attempted
-to deliver an address at one time. A number of
-dark-featured, glowering civilians sat at a table almost
-opposite to myself, men who by their attire and
-sombre looks appeared to be unsuited to the banquet
-atmosphere, and out of place amongst the gorgeous
-uniforms of Cossack Atamans and Russian generals.
-They seemed to take not the slightest interest in the
-proceedings except for a few moments when certain
-of my words were being translated. All seemed bent
-on the business of the evening and a good dinner,
-indicating a return to normal conditions. A Social
-Revolutionary representative of the town delivered a
-furious tirade, which I could get my officer to translate
-only in part, but even that part showed me the
-world-wide division of opinion amongst my Russian
-hosts.
-</p>
-<p>
-The orchestra, composed of German and Austrian
-prisoners, discoursed sweet music during the evening,
-alternately listening to the fiery eloquence of Cossack
-and Tartar. A Cossack officer, who had drunk a
-little vodka, rose and gave an order to the band, but
-the prisoners only got out about three notes. What
-was in those notes, Heaven only knows! Instantly
-the whole banqueting hall was a scene of indescribable
-confusion. Tartar and Cossack shouted with glee;
-older Russian officers ordered the band to stop, and
-vainly tried to silence the disorder. The dark-visaged
-and apparently unemotional civilians threw off their
-armour of unconcern, and hurled epithets and shook
-clenched fists and defiance at their military fellow-countrymen.
-Then they all rushed out of the building
-in a body, hissing and spluttering like a badly
-constructed fuse in a powder trail. It was like the
-explosion of a small magazine. I had no idea what
-had happened, but took in the full significance of the
-scene I had witnessed when told that the notes which
-had acted like a bomb formed the first bar of "God
-Save the Tsar." A few miles farther on the Autocrat
-of All the Russias had already met an ignominious
-death by being thrown down a disused pit
-near the line dividing Asia and Europe. In death, as
-in life, he remained the divider of his people.
-</p>
-<p>
-The trains started off during the night, and on
-the evening of the next day we arrived at Hachinsk,
-where a Russian guard did the usual military honours,
-and a sad-faced, deep-eyed priest presented me with
-bread and salt, as becomes a Tartar who welcomes a
-friend. It was lucky for me that I had some little
-training in public speaking, and that "Polkovnika
-Franka" could make such excellent translations, or
-we might not have made such a good impression as I
-flatter myself we did on some occasions.
-</p>
-<p>
-At last we arrived at Omsk, the end of our
-journey, having passed in a zigzag direction almost
-round the world. A few miles to the Urals and
-Europe again&mdash;so near and yet so far!
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH9"><!-- CH9 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER IX
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-OMSK
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-As Omsk, unlike so many other towns of Siberia,
-did not care to pay the usual toll demanded by the
-railway prospectors, it is situated several versts from
-the main trunk line. To overcome this inconvenience
-a branch line was afterwards run up to the town
-itself. The date of our arrival was October 18, and
-a right royal welcome awaited us. The station was
-decorated with the flags of all nations, the Russian
-for the first time predominating. We were met by
-General Matkofsky, the commander of the district,
-and his Staff, who welcomed us on behalf of the
-new Russian army, by M. Golovaehoff, Assistant
-Minister for Foreign Affairs, and the representatives
-of the municipal authorities and the co-operative
-societies. The women of Russia presented us with
-bread and salt, and, generally speaking, the people of
-Omsk gave us a real Russian welcome. The ceremonial
-over, the men were taken to the Cadet School
-for tea and entertainment, while the Russian officers
-regaled the Middlesex officers at a feast in the Officers'
-Club. We were introduced to all and sundry, and
-began to mix wonderfully well. If we had laid ourselves
-out for it, we might have visited every decent
-Russian home in Omsk. As it was, we soon became
-so much in demand that most of us had in a short time
-formed lasting friendships with a very charming set
-of people. Their welcome was doubtless tinged with
-relief at the security afforded by the presence of well-disciplined
-troops. The wife of a Russian general
-told me that she felt as though for the first time she
-could sleep peacefully in her bed. The little cadet
-son of another officer gave permission for his loaded
-rifle to be taken from the side of his bed, where it
-had rested every night since the Bolshevik Revolution
-and the cadet massacres had commenced. If I understand
-the Russian character denials of this may be
-expected, but it is a fact that the presence of those
-800 English soldiers gave a sense of confidence and
-security to the people of Omsk that was pathetic in
-its simplicity and warmth. However suspicious of
-each other as a rule the Russians may be, there is no
-question that when their confidence is given, it is
-given generously and without reservation. As to its
-lasting qualities, that has to be proved, but at the
-time it is something real and tangible, and no amount
-of trouble taken for one's comfort is too great.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the date of arrival I had only a few moments
-for conversation with Sir Charles Eliot, our High
-Commissioner, on the political situation. I gathered
-from him and his Staff that a desperate effort was
-being made to join the forces of the Directorate of
-Five, which stood as the All-Russian Government
-and received its authority from the Constituent
-Assembly at Ufa&mdash;largely Social Revolutionary in
-character&mdash;and the Siberian Government, the
-outcome of the Siberian Districts Duma, which met
-at Tomsk and was largely reactionary, with a small
-mixture of Socialist opinion. The English and
-French representatives were genuinely anxious that
-a workable compromise should be made between
-these two groups and a Cabinet formed that would
-give confidence to moderate Russian opinion, and so
-command Allied recognition with reasonable prospects
-of success. This very desirable ambition of
-the Allied "politicals" had the sympathy of every
-friend of Russia, but advice is one thing, accomplishment
-another. It was impossible to expect that the
-effects of hundreds of years of tyranny and bad
-government could be swept away by the waving of
-a diplomatic wand. The Siberian Government was
-largely composed of the "old gang," Revolutionary
-and Royalist, and derived its support almost exclusively
-from the desire of the people to escape further
-bloodshed; it was guarded by the Royalist Cossack
-clans, as lawless as they are brave. The Ufa Directorate
-derived its authority from the moderate
-Social Revolutionary party composed of the "Intelligenzia"&mdash;republican,
-visionary, and impractical.
-Kerensky was, from all accounts, a perfect
-representative of this class, verbose and useless so
-far as practical reconstructive work was concerned.
-This class blamed the unswerving loyalty of the
-Cossacks and the old army officers for all the
-crimes of which the Tsars were guilty, and had
-hunted them like rats in cellars and streets during
-the worst days of the Second Revolution. The
-officer and Cossack class cursed Kerensky and the
-Social Revolutionaries for destroying the old army
-and letting free the forces of anarchy and Bolshevism,
-which had destroyed the State and had massacred
-the manhood of Russia in an orgy of violence and
-hate.
-</p>
-<p>
-There should be no mistake made as to the
-apportionment of blame. Kerensky is considered
-by all classes of Russian society as the cause of all
-their calamities. They think, rightly or wrongly,
-that at the supreme moment when the destiny of
-his race and country was placed in his hands he
-proved traitor to the trust; that had he possessed
-one-tenth of the courage of either Lenin or Trotsky
-millions of Russians would have been saved from
-worse than death.
-</p>
-<p>
-To combine these hostile and divergent elements
-into a united party for the resurrection of Russia
-seemed impossible to me, as it did to one other
-Britisher, Mr. David Frazer, the <i>Times</i> Pekin
-correspondent; but the "politicals" thought otherwise.
-That they were guided by the highest motives
-and that they gave of their very best in the interest
-of the Russian people no one who has the slightest
-knowledge of the high personal character of our
-representatives could doubt for a moment, but they
-tried to accomplish the unattainable. The most that
-could be said of their policy is that it was worth
-attempting. Try they did, and under the influence
-of the Bolshevik guns booming along the Urals and
-of Royalist conspiracies at Chita a piece of paper was
-produced with a number of names upon it which
-seemed to bear the resemblance of a working arrangement
-between these two opposites.
-</p>
-<p>
-I am writing this within three weeks of the
-occurrence, and may modify my views later, but for
-the life of me I cannot understand the satisfaction of
-our "politicals" with their work. They "downed
-tools" at once and disappeared from the scene of
-their triumph as though the few names on a piece
-of paper had solved the whole problem of the future
-of Russia. It would be mighty interesting to know
-the nature of their communications to their respective
-Governments. One thing, however, had been
-done which was fated to have important after-effects.
-Vice-Admiral Koltchak had been brought into the
-new Council of Ministers with the title of Minister
-for War. I had never met the officer, and knew
-nothing about him or his reputation, and merely
-lumped him in with the rest as an additional unit in
-an overcrowded menagerie. Frazer and I had many
-talks about these events, but we could fasten on to
-nothing real in the situation except danger.
-</p>
-<p>
-On November 6, 1918, we were all invited to a
-banquet in honour of this new All-Russian Government.
-It was to be the climax of all our efforts
-and a tangible evidence of the successful accomplishment
-of a great diplomatic task. I was rather late,
-and the ante-rooms were already filled with soldiers
-and diplomats in grand uniforms with glittering
-swords and decorations.
-</p>
-<p>
-I watched this peculiar and intensely highly-strung
-crowd with the greatest interest, and except
-for one figure&mdash;a sort of cross between a Methodist
-parson and a Plymouth Brother&mdash;was struck by the
-complete absence of personality amongst the people
-present. The parsonified person referred to turned
-out to be the Social Revolutionary, Volagodsky,
-President of the Siberian Council, who had now
-transferred his love from Siberia to the whole of
-Russia. But as my liaison officer was repeating the
-names of those present a smart little energetic figure
-entered the room. With eagle eyes he took in the
-whole scene at a glance. The other officers had
-bowed gracefully to all their friends and gallantly
-kissed the ladies' hands, while around them buzzed
-the conversation. For an instant the buzz ceased,
-during which the brown figure with the dark, clear-cut
-face shook hands with an officer friend and
-departed. The impression on my mind was that I
-had seen a small, vagrant, lonely, troubled soul without
-a friend enter unbidden to a feast.
-</p>
-<p>
-The new President of the Council of Ministers,
-Avkzentieff, presided at the banquet, and as we sat
-down I found myself at the end of the head table,
-which gave me a good view of the stranger I had
-seen in the vestibule sitting second round the corner.
-The dinner was good, the vodka gave warmth to
-the blood and made a very pleasant contrast to the
-"60 below" outside. Avkzentieff led the speeches.
-Immediately my mind flew to Hyde Park Corner,
-and then to the Lyceum stage with Irving in "The
-Bells." He spoke with assumed sincerity, cutting
-the air with his hands in the manner that a Cossack
-sweeps off a head with his blade. He sank his voice
-and hissed his words in a hoarse stage whisper, while
-pointing to the ceiling with a dramatic forefinger.
-In other words, he was the best actor it had been
-my pleasure to see for a long time&mdash;a second edition
-of his more famous colleague, the futile Kerensky.
-Little did I dream that within a few days I would
-beg for this man's life and that the Middlesex
-Regiment would shield him from eternity.
-</p>
-<p>
-Then followed a speech by General Knox (Chief
-of the British Military Mission), who implored all
-classes of Russian thought to pull together to establish
-an Army and a Government capable of supporting
-law and public order, a speech full of patriotism
-and very much to the point. Then came General
-Bolderoff, Commander-in-Chief of the new Russian
-army and military member of the Ufa Directorate.
-He had the appearance of a big, brave, blundering
-Russian officer. Not too much brain, cunning, but
-not clever. I should, however, give him credit for
-more than ordinary honesty. Later Admiral Koltchak
-spoke&mdash;just a few short definite sentences.
-Very few cheers or shouts greeted this orator. He
-seemed more lonely than ever, but presented a personality
-that dominated the whole gathering. There
-was the usual passing round and signing of menus.
-I sent mine direct to the admiral for his signature,
-and when he automatically passed it to General
-Bolderoff I said "Neat," and it was returned with
-the solitary name of this solitary man. I was now
-absolutely satisfied that the new Government was a
-combination that refused to mix, and took the most
-stringent precautions to see that my unit did not
-become involved in its impending overthrow. I,
-however, made an important discovery at this congratulatory
-banquet, namely, that Russia still had
-one man who was able to rescue her from anarchy.
-</p>
-<p>
-The business of Omsk went on much as usual,
-but Omsk society became more subdued in its
-whisperings. Clique countered clique, and conspirators
-undermined conspirators, while a peculiar
-tension hung over all.
-</p>
-<p>
-During the negotiations connected with the formation
-of this Government a very serious hitch
-occurred which at one time threatened the whole
-project with disaster. General Bolderoff was known
-as a Social Revolutionary in politics. Through him
-the Social Revolutionaries had practically supreme
-control of the new army. Avkzentieff and Co., aiming
-at Social Revolutionary control of all the forces
-of the new Government, demanded that a Social
-Revolutionary should also control the newly-organised
-militia, which were to act as a sort of military
-police under the new r&eacute;gime. This was resented
-by the more moderate members of both groups, as
-it would have practically placed all power in the
-hands of one group, and that not distinguished for
-administrative ability or caution. In addition to
-which, the very claim made the moderates suspicious
-as to the use for which such power was to be
-employed. The presence of the Allies and the determination
-to form some sort of administration overcame
-these suspicions, and the moderates gave way
-and left both forces under the command of the
-Social Revolutionary group.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Allies were pushing forward supplies
-intended for the new armies facing the Terrorists
-along the Ural front, but it was soon discovered that
-such arms were being deflected from their proper
-destination. The front line was kept denuded of
-arms and equipment of which it was in greatest need,
-while the militia in the rear, and under the Social
-Revolutionary control, were being regimented and
-fitted out with everything they required. The
-appeals of the front-line generals to Bolderoff, the
-Social Revolutionary Commander-in-Chief, fell on
-deaf ears, and things were getting into a serious
-condition. Admiral Koltchak, as Minister for
-War, presented the appeals to General Bolderoff,
-and backed them in a very determined manner.
-Bolderoff was equally outspoken, declaring that
-the appeals from the front were fictitious, and
-concluded one of these wrangles by informing the
-admiral that it was not his business; that the Social
-Revolutionary group had been forced by one of the
-Allies to accept the admiral as a member of the
-Government; that they had done so merely to secure
-Allied support and recognition, but he would remain
-a member of the Government only so long as he did
-not interfere in business from which, by a resolution
-of the Directorate, he was expressly excluded.
-Admiral Koltchak thereupon tendered his resignation,
-but was later prevailed upon to withdraw it so
-as to keep up a resemblance of harmony before the
-Allied Powers. He, however, insisted upon making
-a personal inspection of the front, for which permission
-was granted, as much to get him out of Omsk
-as for the proper performance of his ministerial
-duties.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH10"><!-- CH10 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER X
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-ALONG THE URALS
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-On November 4 I received a telegram from Mr.
-Preston, British Consul at Ekaterinburg, asking that
-a detachment might be sent to attend on November
-9 at the inauguration of Czech national life and
-the ceremonial presentation of colours to four Czech
-battalions of the Czech National Army. I consulted
-General Knox, and he having received a similar
-request from General Gaida, commanding at Ekaterinburg,
-that a detachment should visit the several
-fronts over the Urals for the purpose of giving moral
-support to the war-weary veterans of our Allies, it
-was decided that I should take the regimental band
-and a guard of one hundred picked men for this
-purpose. Both Czech and Russian were sad at the
-long weary wait between the promised help of
-England and the appearance of the first khaki-clad
-soldier on the scene.
-</p>
-<p>
-All preparations had been made for my journey,
-and I was timed to start from Omsk at 3 P.M. on
-Friday. Early on Friday I was informed that
-Admiral Koltchak, the Minister for War, was also
-travelling to the Czech ceremony, and, as engines
-were very scarce, would I allow his carriage to be
-attached to my train? I readily consented. About
-midday a further note informed me that the admiral's
-own car was found to be full of the wives and children
-of his old naval officers, that there were no other
-cars, but they hoped to be able to get another by
-7 P.M. The result was that we did not turn out of
-the town station till that hour. We had only got
-to the lower station, less than a mile on our journey,
-when the officials informed me that something had
-broken on the admiral's carriage which would take
-two hours to repair. I felt there was a deliberate
-attempt being made by someone to prevent either
-the admiral or myself from performing our journey.
-At 11 P.M. I walked out to the workshops where the
-repairs were being effected, and sat on an anvil until
-4 A.M., through a horrible Siberian night, while a
-good-tempered "Russky" blacksmith accomplished
-his part of the task.
-</p>
-<p>
-No Russian official would dream of doing a
-straight thing if a crooked one would accomplish his
-purpose. So "Polkovnika" Frank telegraphed in
-my name to all the railway section commandants
-ordering them under pain of summary execution to
-clear their part of the line and prepare express
-engines at each stopping-place ready to haul on to
-the admiral's train the moment it came in. We
-bribed an old Russian <i>provodnik</i> to get us a Russian
-flag to fasten on the admiral's carriage, which he
-did, and we became the first Russian train that had
-dared to carry a Russian flag for nearly a year. We
-also had two Union Jacks, and altogether the Russian
-officials became suspicious that here at any rate was
-a combination of colour to which the greatest respect
-must be paid.
-</p>
-<p>
-The result was that we finally started on our
-journey at 7 A.M. instead of 7 P.M., just twelve hours
-late, and arrived at our destination one hour in
-front of time. Guards of honour awaited us, and
-breakfast of a more or less scanty character. A
-presentation of bread and salt, on a fine wooden
-dish on which the ladies had painted a picture of
-the old monastery under whose walls the great Czech
-national ceremony was to take place. We marched
-past the building in which the Tsar Nicholas II and
-his family had been imprisoned and from which they
-were taken to die. I am anxious not to believe the
-untold horrors alleged to have been inflicted on the
-female members of his family, but they are told
-categorically. It is best to believe nothing one
-hears in Russia, and what one actually sees is not
-always what it seems.
-</p>
-<p>
-We saluted the flag at the Consulate, where our
-great good comrade and fellow-countryman, Consul
-Preston, gave warmth and good cheer to man and
-beast. Suddenly we turned to the right and entered
-a huge square, already surrounded by Czech troops,
-infantry, artillery and cavalry. It was indeed a great
-sight. On the highest corner of the square a platform
-was erected, on the right of which we were
-given the post of honour, and for some strange
-reason which I could not understand were asked to
-play the British National Anthem, when the whole
-Czech Army came to the "Present!" as General
-Gaida and his Staff, with the colours, entered the
-square. I felt that we were celebrating the birth of
-a nation. The scene had that peculiar solemnity
-about it that makes the moment feel pregnant with
-world events. One of the units was my old Ussurie
-battalion, and our old chum, Captain (now Colonel)
-Stephan, was the proudest man there, as he bore
-from the hands of the priest the newly-consecrated
-colours of his country. What quantities of beer we
-shall drink together if I ever see him in his dear
-Prague, thinking of our thirsty days in Eastern
-Siberia!
-</p>
-<p>
-It was my first introduction to the dashing young
-Czech officer, General Gaida, who by sheer pluck
-had played such an important part in cutting a way
-for his army from west to east. We had the usual
-banquet, at which Admiral Koltchak delivered the
-first important speech since his appointment as
-Minister for War. I gave expression to the delight
-of my own country at the birth of new nations and
-the resurrection of freedom amongst the subject
-people of the world. I also gave expression to my
-pleasure that the first act of the new Russian Minister
-for War was to visit his army at the front and
-make himself personally acquainted with the conditions
-of the Russian soldiers who were so gallantly
-fighting to protect the people and the State from
-violence and anarchy.
-</p>
-<p>
-The ceremony over, we started at once for the
-Kunghure front, and the early morning found us
-sliding rapidly down the European side of the Urals.
-Huge forests, all loaded with snow, covered the
-mountain sides, and there was a temperature quite
-impossible for British military operations. We
-arrived about 11 A.M. at the headquarters of the
-army under the command of General Count Galitzin.
-We held long conferences and then lunched in his
-mess, which was quartered in an eight-wheeled
-American truck. An occasional shell exploded first
-to right and then to left, but none came very near,
-and by 2 P.M. the firing died away altogether. It
-was decided to march to the advanced outpost and
-take the band to give both friend and foe an opportunity
-to judge a sample of British music. We got
-to the extreme point near which a cutting in the
-railway gave excellent protection for the band, while
-the admiral's Staff and my Middlesex guard went
-forward to have a look at the enemy. The band
-started "Colonel Bogey," then went on to something
-which I do not remember, but while we were groping
-about through machine-gun pits, etc., the band
-behind began "Tipperary." That just put the
-finishing touch to Bolshevik patience! This famous
-war tune got on their gunners' nerves and they began
-to shell the tune for all they were worth. Needless
-to say not a single shell went anywhere near the
-mark. All shrieked over our heads and exploded
-harmlessly among the forest trees; one, however,
-dropped near the railway bridge and went off like
-a Hampstead squib on a wet bonfire night. It shows
-an utter lack of culture among the Bolshevik officers
-that they could not appreciate good music after we
-had taken so much trouble to bring it within their
-reach. The band finished and the shelling ended.
-I expect they fancied they had frightened my bandsmen,
-but the fact was they enjoyed the unique
-experience immensely.
-</p>
-<p>
-General Count Galitzin is a very fine type of the
-officer of the old r&eacute;gime; an aristocrat to his finger
-tips, but a fine leader of men, born to command. I
-should think there is a big strain of Tartar blood in
-his make-up, but he is altogether the sort of man one
-would prefer to meet as friend rather than foe. We
-discussed the possibility of an offensive in the direction
-of Perm, from where I humorously suggested
-we might be able to rescue the forces of General
-Poole, which had gone into winter quarters somewhere
-in the direction of Archangel. We returned
-to Ekaterinburg, and without stopping, proceeded
-towards the Lisvin front to meet General Pepelaieff.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived on the Lisvin front about 10 A.M.
-next day, but did not see the enemy or hear his
-guns. This army had been compelled to retire some
-60 versts the very day we were discussing an advance
-on Perm, and its present position was none too
-secure. Pepelaieff is a young general, not more
-than thirty, but looked a real hard-working soldier.
-His uniform was as dirty and worn, though not quite
-so dilapidated, as the majority of his soldiers. He
-had absolute confidence that he could beat the enemy
-if his men had rifles and ammunition, which many
-had not. Half his men were waiting for the rifles
-of comrades who might be killed or frozen in the
-snow. The conferences were quite businesslike, and
-Admiral Koltchak's presence seemed to galvanise the
-whole army into life and energy. The "Russky
-soldat," whose boots had long since disappeared
-and whose feet were bound up in bags to protect
-them from the snow, felt almost certain that proper
-boots and clothes would follow from the War
-Minister's visit. Pepelaieff came back in my carriage
-to meet General Gaida, and the admiral also
-relished a British soldier's ration as we discussed
-things generally, including the proposed advance
-and the necessary measures to make it into a
-victory.
-</p>
-<p>
-We were to have gone next to the extreme right,
-where General Verzbitsky operated on the flank,
-but the admiral said the condition of the soldiers was
-very sad, and his immediate business was to organise
-the rear and so secure the means by which the soldier
-at the front could do his duty. We saw the ceremonial
-of the presentation of colours to the 11th
-Siberian Rifles, a fine proceeding greatly enhanced
-by the fact that three officers of the regiment had
-rescued the colours (originally presented by Peter
-the Great) from the Bolshevik Revolutionaries, and
-as pedlars and peasants had tramped for months
-through the Bolshevik lines and brought them safely
-to the new regiment.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was necessary for the admiral to see General
-Surovey and General Detriks and their Staffs at
-Chilliyabinsk, and also to have a look at the Ufa
-front. Travelling all night, we arrived at Chilliyabinsk
-next morning, and after quite a formal
-inspection of guards, we adjourned for lunch. The
-date I do not remember, but my old friend Colonel
-Pichon burst through all etiquette to inform me of
-the terms of armistice between Germany and the
-Entente, and brought out a bottle of champagne he
-had preserved for the occasion; we swore by all the
-powers above and below that we were the greatest
-people the world had ever seen in all its ages and
-intended to remain so.
-</p>
-<p>
-Lunch over, I left the admiral to his generals
-and walked a little through this straggling, snow-swept
-town, firmly believing that we were about to
-start for Ufa. At 5 P.M. I was informed that the
-conferences were over and there were urgent reasons
-for an immediate return to Omsk. I did not object
-as I was not anxious to see more of this army of
-ill-fed, half-clad soldiers struggling to save the State
-under intolerable conditions. We started on our
-return journey and travelled till 11 A.M. next day,
-by which time we had arrived at Petropalovsk. Here
-the station commandant informed us that General
-Bolderoff wished our train to wait for his, as it was
-most essential that he should have a conference with
-the Minister for War. This was the first intimation
-I had received that General Bolderoff had left Omsk
-and was on his way to visit the Ufa front. The
-admiral invited me to his carriage and explained the
-critical situation at Omsk, but could give no reason
-for the sudden decision of the Commander-in-Chief
-to leave Omsk and meet him on the way. I had
-my suspicions that the two groups of the Government
-had come to grips, and that each had decided
-to destroy the other; that Admiral Koltchak was to be
-sounded as to which of these groups had his favour,
-and that his life, and perhaps that of his British
-escort, would depend upon his answer. Bolderoff
-and the people at Omsk were unaware of the presence
-of the British escort or its numbers, and while they
-may have discovered our joint appearance at the
-Ekaterinburg function, there had been no original
-decision to accompany the admiral to Chilliyabinsk.
-That was only arranged the previous day. In revolutions
-you can never be too careful, hence I gave
-orders to my men to load and be ready for instant
-action if necessary. Orders were also issued to patrol
-the platform and allow no people, uniformed or
-otherwise, to collect near the trains, and in no circumstances
-were the two soldiers who were to accompany
-the admiral to lose sight of him for one instant without
-reporting it to me. Two others stood guard at
-the entrance to General Bolderoff's carriage. When
-I saw the look on the face of the Commander-in-Chief's
-attendants I was satisfied that my precautions
-were no more than necessary.
-</p>
-<p>
-The general's train drew into the station and
-Admiral Koltchak entered Bolderoff's carriage at
-exactly 12 noon on November 6, 1918. I asked my
-servant, Moorman, to take a "snap" of the two
-trains, as I felt that this conference was full of
-big events for Russia. While taking the snap a
-returned emigrant workman spoke to Moorman in
-good English. He asked who all these officers were
-and what they were all talking about, and when my
-servant informed him he did not know, the emigrant
-said: "It is all right so long as they do not want
-to bring back the old r&eacute;gime, but if that is their
-object I can tell them that Russia will never submit
-to live under the old r&eacute;gime again." I thought, and
-think now, that in that workman's words I heard
-the voice of Russia. The conference between the
-admiral and the general broke up at five o'clock; it
-had lasted five hours.
-</p>
-<p>
-The admiral was hungry and came into my carriage
-for something to eat; his servants had nothing
-ready as it is the Russian custom never to begin to
-prepare a meal till you are ready to eat it. After
-the meal we talked, and from the conversation I
-gathered the nature of the questions discussed at his
-conference with the Commander-in-Chief. He asked
-me whether in England our Minister for War had
-any responsibilities placed upon him for the supply
-of clothing, equipment and general condition of
-the British Army? I replied that in England the
-Minister for War was responsible to the Cabinet
-and, through Parliament, to the country for the
-general efficiency of the British Army in every detail.
-He answered: "What would you think in England
-if the Commander-in-Chief told the Minister for
-War that these matters had nothing to do with him,
-that he would be allowed to keep a small office with
-two clerks but no staff, as it was the Minister for
-War's name only that was of any use to the Directorate
-(or in your case Cabinet), and the less he
-interfered with the affairs of his department the
-better for all concerned?" I answered: "If I were
-the Minister I should claim to have absolute control
-of my department, or resign." He thought a minute
-and said: "That is what I have done," or "what I
-intend to do," I forget which. From what followed
-I think it must have been the former, because I
-asked him what General Bolderoff said in answer to
-his claim, to which he replied: "General Bolderoff
-is a very good man, and though he does not see
-everything as I wish, I think he understands the
-situation, and will himself ask that greater power
-should be given to enable me to save the new Russian
-army, that it may be able to resurrect the Russian
-State." I well remember that word "resurrect";
-it was so pregnant with truth. The State <i>was</i> dead,
-Russia was no more; resurrection was necessary.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Omsk town station at 5.30 on the
-evening of November 17, 1918. The admiral thanked
-me for my help and my guard and for the kindness
-and protection I had afforded him. I promised him
-my continued help and sympathy in his patriotic
-attempt to revive the spirit of his people. He went
-straight to his lodgings and remained there.
-</p>
-<p>
-The <i>Times</i> correspondent in a message to his
-newspaper has suggested that the admiral had prior
-knowledge of what was to happen that night in
-Omsk. I do not think that was the case. He may
-have guessed that something very unpleasant was in
-the wind&mdash;the least sensitive amongst those behind
-the scenes knew that&mdash;but what it was, from which
-direction it would come or on whom it would fall
-was a secret known to but very few, and I am convinced
-that the admiral, except in a second degree,
-was not one of them. Colonel (soon to be General)
-Lebediff could tell the whole story, though his name
-was not even mentioned during the <i>coup d'&eacute;tat</i>. A
-young and able Cossack officer, he was on the Staff
-of Korniloff when Kerensky invited the great Cossack
-general to march his army to Petrograd to save the
-newly-elected National Assembly. It is well known
-how, when Korniloff obeyed Kerensky's order, he
-treacherously turned and rent to pieces the only
-force which was moving at his own request and could
-have saved Russia. He, in turn, became the victim
-of the ghouls who urged him to this act of destruction.
-Lebediff escaped, but one can be certain that
-he retained a lasting hate towards the Social Revolutionaries
-who had betrayed his great leader.
-</p>
-<p>
-The comrades of Kerensky, and in some cases
-the actual betrayers, had found refuge in the Directorate
-of Five and the Council of Ministers, and were
-continuing to play the same double game which had
-brought ruin on the first National Assembly and
-disaster upon the Russian people. They were
-members of the same futile crowd of useless charlatans
-who by their pusillanimity had made their
-country a byword and the Treaty of Brest-Litovsk
-possible. I was in a position to judge. I was certain
-that this young man was the wrong sort to allow
-the execution of his chief to pass without attempting
-punishment.
-</p>
-<p>
-He had drifted down to Southern Russia and
-joined General Denikin in his first efforts against
-the Bolsheviks. Sent from Denikin with dispatches
-to Omsk, he became the centre of a group of desperadoes
-who were in want of a cool brain to make
-them formidable. The state of Omsk at this time
-was simply indescribable. Every night as soon as
-darkness set in rifle and revolver shots and shouts
-could be heard in all directions. The morning
-sanitary carts picked up from five to twenty dead
-officers. There were no police, no courts, no law,
-no anything. In desperation the officers grouped
-themselves together and hit back indiscriminately at
-the people they thought responsible for the murder
-of their comrades. So a fair proportion of civilian
-bodies became mixed up with those wearing
-uniforms. That the officers got home at last on the
-right people is proved by the fact that these nightly
-murders became fewer and then practically ceased
-altogether.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was into this scene of blood that we were
-hurled, and this was the condition which had become
-quite normal in the capital under the rule of the
-five-pointed Directorate. Its members were the
-most unmitigated failures that even poor distracted
-Russia had so far produced, and the people waited,
-hoping and longing, for their speedy removal. I
-was not at all surprised when, next morning, my
-liaison officer, Colonel Frank, returned from the
-Russian Headquarters in great perturbation and
-with great excitement informed me that Russia was
-doomed never to rise out of her troubles. I asked
-why. He answered that during the night some
-villains had arrested the Social Revolutionary members
-of the Directorate and Government, that no one
-at Headquarters knew the persons who had again
-upset the whole government of the country, and he
-had no doubt that the members of the late Government
-were already murdered. I took the necessary
-precautions for the safety of my command and
-awaited developments. I knew that the telegraph
-to the east was cut and that a <i>coup d'&eacute;tat</i> was in
-course of execution.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH11"><!-- CH11 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XI
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-WHAT HAPPENED AT OMSK
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-At 11 A.M. on November 18 I was officially informed
-that the Council of Ministers had met at
-9 A.M., and were now in session, having met to
-consider the situation produced by the arrest of the
-Directorate. They had already asked Admiral
-Koltchak to accept supreme authority, that he had
-refused, but the Ministers had great hope that for
-the sake of Russia the admiral could be prevailed
-upon to take the burden of Government upon himself,
-as it appeared to be the only means of getting
-the country out of her desperate situation. The
-wildest rumours were in circulation: that my carriage
-would be attacked by bombs, that the British would
-at any time be obliged to fight for their lives. I
-told my informants that they need not worry about
-us; we were well able to take care of ourselves.
-They could not understand our indifference. The
-fact was that not a man or officer in my battalion
-had the slightest inkling of the position. Then the
-tune changed. Would I defend the Ministers who
-were still in session if they were attacked? My
-answer was that any political refugee who sought
-asylum in my lines would be protected, but he must
-give up every idea of again taking any part in
-Russian affairs. "But what would you do if the
-Russian troops revolted and sought to murder those
-who had come into your lines. Would you give them
-up?" "Never!" "What if the Czech commanders
-made the demand?" "Still never; besides
-which the Czechs are too honourable ever to make
-a demand such as no soldier could accept." The
-last question was the most important of all, and was
-doubtless the kernel of the whole series, the others
-being mere camouflage.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Czechs had just inaugurated their National
-Republican Government, and were naturally
-obsessed with the usual "Liberty, Equality, and
-Fraternity" business, and could not be expected to
-view the establishment of a Dictatorship within their
-sphere of operations with entire unconcern or without
-serious misgivings. The hostile attitude of the
-Russian branch of their National Council at Ekaterinburg
-and Chilliyabinsk, directly they heard of
-Koltchak's acceptance of the supreme authority, is
-proof of the danger which might evolve from that
-quarter.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Council of Ministers, and perhaps Koltchak
-himself, were unable to take the final plunge
-until they had a thorough understanding of
-the British attitude. The position of the Czech
-forces at Omsk made it impossible for them to
-approach the place where the Ministers were in
-session without passing the British, and my machine
-guns commanded every avenue leading to or from
-the Russian Headquarters.
-</p>
-<p>
-Things were now in such a state of tension that
-for the safety of my command I informed both the
-Russian and Czech authorities that I should not
-allow bodies of troops or citizens either to approach
-or collect near my cantonment; that such approach
-or collection would be treated as hostile, and dealt
-with accordingly. That these arrangements gave
-the Ministers greater confidence to proceed with
-their policy I have no doubt. That was one of the
-inevitable consequences of the preparations for our
-own defence, but not the inspiration of their policy,
-which was entirely their own; but it did steady the
-situation.
-</p>
-<p>
-I place these facts on record that those who are
-interested may be able to give them their proper
-order of value and importance. I afterwards learnt
-that more than one highly-placed official's wife had
-all preparations made for a rapid descent upon the
-Middlesex quarters.
-</p>
-<p>
-About 2.30 P.M., November 18, I was informed
-that Admiral Koltchak had assumed absolute
-power under the title of "Supreme Governor,"
-with a Council of Ministers who would be responsible
-to him for the proper performance of their
-duties; that he proposed to call on the French
-representative, Monsieur Renault, to present himself
-in the evening; that he would then call on me,
-as the senior British officer in Omsk, and in my
-case he would answer any questions I chose to
-put to him. He called, and it is as well to place
-here the report I made upon the subject at the
-time:
-</p>
-<blockquote><p>
-From Lieutenant-Colonel John Ward, M.P., C.M.G.,
-Omsk, Siberia.
-</p>
-<p>
-To G.O.C. China Command. Through B.M.M. H.Q.
-</p>
-<p>
-Headquarters B.M.M., Vladivostok.
-</p>
-<p>
-SIR,&mdash;For State reasons I deem it necessary to
-give the following information that it may be forwarded
-home to the proper authorities.
-</p>
-<p>
-About 2.30 P.M. on November 18, 1918, my
-liaison officer (Colonel Frank, of the Russian Army)
-informed me that at a meeting of the Council of
-Ministers, just held, the Council had offered to place
-supreme sovereign power in the hands of Admiral
-Alexander Koltchak. The admiral had first refused
-to accept, but that such pressure had been applied
-to force him to accept that he had at last reluctantly
-consented.
-</p>
-<p>
-Further, that Admiral Koltchak had assumed the
-title of "Supreme Governor of all Russia," and was
-calling upon the French Ambassador in the evening,
-after which he would call on me as the Senior British
-Officer holding official position in Omsk.
-</p>
-<p>
-About 9 P.M. Admiral Koltchak called at my
-headquarters. The following gentlemen were present
-to receive him: Lieutenant-Colonel J.F. Neilson,
-Captain Stephani, Colonel R. Frank (Russian
-Army), and Mr. Frazer (<i>Times</i> correspondent).
-He wore the full dress of a Russian admiral.
-</p>
-<p>
-The admiral, who speaks fair English, informed
-me of the circumstances and reasons for his assumption
-of supreme authority in all Russia.
-</p>
-<p>
-An attempt had been made to combine all parties
-in the Government of the country to reduce it to a
-state of order, so that the people might be able to
-decide the future Government of Russia. The
-Council chosen by the Ufa Assembly had tried to
-work together for this purpose, but had failed. The
-final dissolution had been brought about by a proclamation
-issued by the Central Committee of the
-Social Revolutionary party, which was intended to
-produce in the new army the same conditions that
-had destroyed the old army. The proclamation had
-been signed by the Social Revolutionary President,
-Chernoff, and when it was proposed to take action
-against those who were destroying the discipline of
-the army, two Social Revolutionary members of the
-Council, Avkzentieff and Zenzinoff, could see nothing
-wrong in Chernoff's subversive propaganda. It later
-transpired that both were members of the Social
-Revolutionary Committee which had issued the
-literature in question, and refused to either leave the
-Social Revolutionary Committee or repudiate the
-anti-discipline propaganda of their friends.
-</p>
-<p>
-This brought the new Government to a complete
-standstill, and, faced with absolute anarchy, the
-Council of Ministers had no alternative but to dissolve
-the old Directorate of Five and centre the
-supreme power in one person, to whom the Council
-of Ministers would be responsible for the administration
-of their several departments.
-</p>
-<p>
-I answered that the reasons, coupled with my
-own knowledge, appeared to justify the action, but
-I had heard that the Social Revolutionary members
-of the Directorate and others had been arrested, and
-that if this action supposed their execution it would
-make the whole proceeding look like an attempt on
-the part of the old army officers to destroy the
-present arrangements in favour of a return to the
-old r&eacute;gime. Further, if the people of England
-thought this was the policy of the admiral and his
-friends, they would not only lose the friendly
-sympathy of the English people but also of America
-and France.
-</p>
-<p>
-Admiral Koltchak replied that at the moment he
-did not know the whereabouts of the prisoners, but
-he would make inquiries and inform me later. That
-his sole object in burdening himself with the overwhelming
-responsibilities of Supreme Governor of
-Russia in this sad hour of her history was to prevent
-the extremists on either side continuing the anarchy
-which made the establishment of a free constitution
-impossible. That if his action at any future time
-was not in harmony with the establishment of free
-political institutions as understood by the Democracy
-of England, he would be convinced that he had
-failed.
-</p>
-<p>
-I thanked him for his good opinion of my
-country, and called his attention to the letter of
-His Majesty the King to President Wilson, received
-at Omsk on November 14, 1918, in which the principles
-of democracy and freedom were exalted, and
-warned him that the free peoples of the world would
-resist any attempt to force the Russian people back
-under a system of tyranny and despair.
-</p>
-<p>
-Admiral Koltchak replied that he had read the
-letter of His Majesty the King of England, and his
-one hope was that soon Russia might enjoy the blessing
-of equally free institutions.
-</p>
-<p>
-Omsk, Siberia, <i>November</i>, 20, 1918.
-</p></blockquote>
-<blockquote><p>
-From Lieutenant-Colonel John Ward, M.P.,
-C.M.G., Omsk, Siberia.
-</p>
-<p>
-To G.O.C. China Command. Through B.M.M.
-</p>
-<p>
-Headquarters B.M.M., Vladivostok.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>Further Report on Political Crisis in Russia</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-Following my report of the assumption by
-Admiral Koltchak of the supreme Governorship of
-Russia, I wish to add:
-</p>
-<p>
-As I was unable to secure any official information
-relative to the whereabouts of the members of
-the Directorate who had been made prisoners during
-the night of November 17, I wrote to the Russian
-authorities (through Lieutenant-Colonel J. F. Neilson)
-on the night of the 18th requesting information
-upon the subject. On November 19, in the absence
-of information, I sent the following letter direct to
-Admiral Koltchak, the Supreme Governor:
-</p>
-<p>
-OMSK, 19.11.18. 3 P.M.
-</p>
-<p>
-From Colonel Ward.<br/>
-To Admiral Koltchak.
-</p>
-<p>
-After our interview last evening I sent you a
-note (through Lieutenant-Colonel J. F. Neilson)
-asking for information and some guarantee for the
-imprisoned members of the Council.
-</p>
-<p>
-So far I have received no information upon the
-subject.
-</p>
-<p>
-I have already told you that I am sure my country
-would look with grave concern upon any injury
-inflicted without proper trial upon these prisoners
-of State, and I should esteem it as a favour if you
-can supply me with information upon this subject.&mdash;
-Yours sincerely,
-</p>
-<p>
-(Signed) JOHN WARD (Lt.-Col.).
-</p>
-<p>
-Colonel Frank, my liaison officer, took the letter
-to Russian Headquarters, and on his return informed
-me that the admiral thanked me for my letter
-and that he was pleased to be able to allay my
-fears.
-</p>
-<p>
-Three officers, named Lieutenant-Colonel Krasilnikoff,
-Colonel Volkov, and Lieutenant-Colonel
-Katanaev, had presented themselves at Headquarters
-and reported that they took upon themselves the
-entire responsibility for the arrest of the members
-of the old Russian Government, that they had not
-injured them in any way, that they were prepared
-to hand their prisoners over to the authorities,
-together with several millions of roubles, believed to
-be loot, and papers which they had found in their
-possession. That the admiral had placed the
-prisoners under a strong guard of his own, and had
-placed the three officers under arrest to be tried
-by court-martial.
-</p>
-<p>
-He further promised that no harm should come
-to them, and that he proposed to convey them out
-of the country at the earliest opportunity.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>November 20</i>. 1 P.M.
-</p>
-<p>
-Admiral Koltchak, hearing that a supply guard
-of my battalion was returning to Vladivostok, has
-made request that I would allow the railway cars
-conveying the State prisoners to some unknown
-point on the Chinese frontier to be attached to my
-train for purposes of secrecy and additional safety.
-I have consented, and have strengthened the guard
-for this purpose.
-</p>
-<p>
-Omsk, Siberia, <i>November</i>, 21, 1918.
-</p></blockquote>
-<blockquote><center>
-[COPY.]
-</center>
-<p>
-From Second-Lieutenant P.C. Cornish-Bowden,
-25th Battalion Middlesex Regiment.
-</p>
-<p>
-To The Adjutant, 25th Battalion Middlesex
-Regiment.
-</p>
-<p>
-Sir,&mdash;I have the honour to report for the information
-of the Commanding Officer:
-</p>
-<p>
-1. The train conveying the four Russian political
-exiles (Messrs. Avkzentieff, Argunoff, Rogovsky,
-and Zenzinoff) and the Russian guard, together with
-a detachment of British troops under my command,
-left Omsk about 2 A.M. on November 21, and arrived
-at Harbin on November 27. The journey was quiet.
-Most of the larger towns, where trouble was anticipated,
-were passed at night.
-</p>
-<p>
-2. I have since been informed by the officer
-commanding the Russian guard that all traffic
-between Irkutsk and Chita was stopped by order
-of General Semianoff, and that the trains were
-searched for the exiles after we had passed, but I
-have no evidence in support of this.
-</p>
-<p>
-3. The exiles expressed the greatest possible
-gratitude for the presence of British troops, and said
-that they mistrusted their own Russian guard,
-though I saw nothing whatever at any time to lead
-me to believe their suspicions were well founded.
-</p>
-<p>
-4. On arrival at Harbin the exiles strongly
-petitioned me to accompany the train to Chang-Chun,
-and the officers in charge of the Russian guard
-being quite willing, I decided to accompany the train
-to the Chinese-Manchurian frontier. We reached
-Chang-Chun about 2 A.M. on November 28, and the
-exiles left that place by themselves by train on the
-evening of the same day.
-</p>
-<p>
-5. We reached Harbin again on the 29th inst.,
-where I parted company with the Russian guard.
-We reached Vladivostok on the morning of December
-2. I immediately reported to the O.C. Detachment,
-and I reported the before-mentioned facts
-verbally to General Knox.
-</p>
-<p>
-6. The conduct of the N.C.O. and men of my
-detachment on the journey was very good, and no
-increase of sickness took place amongst them.&mdash;I
-have the honour to be, sir, your obedient servant,
-</p>
-<p>
-(Signed) P.C. CORNISH-BOWDEN
-(Second-Lieutenant).
-</p>
-<p>
-Vladivostok, Siberia, <i>December</i> 2, 1918.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>
-I had already gained enough experience of
-revolutions to know that if I did not press my point
-vigorously Avkzentieff and Co. were as dead as
-mutton. I also knew that my countrymen have a
-rooted dread of dictatorships, and that if Admiral
-Koltchak's assumption of power was either connected
-with or promoted by the execution of his
-opponents without trial, assistance or eventual recognition
-by the British Government would be made
-almost impossible. My own agents had discovered
-the place where the prisoners were detained, also
-that they were to be quietly bayoneted in the night,
-as shooting would attract attention. I was also
-certain that Koltchak knew nothing about this. The
-whole business was in the hands of an Officers'
-Revenge Society, a body who had sworn an oath to
-kill just the number of Bolshevik Revolutionaries as
-there had been officers murdered by Trotsky's and
-Avkzentieff's people. Both parties had similar combinations
-which left the marks of their foul deeds
-on the streets every night.
-</p>
-<p>
-The state of affairs was such that only by a
-dictatorship could the most rudimentary order be
-maintained. I, a democrat, believing in government
-of the people by the people, thought I saw in the
-dictator the one hope of saving the remnants of
-Russian civilisation and culture. Words and names
-have never frightened me. If circumstances force
-on me a problem for solution, I never allow preconceived
-notions and ideas formed in the abstract,
-without the experience of the actual then existing
-facts, to warp my judgment in deciding the issue;
-and I am vain enough to believe that, had the same
-situation presented itself to Englishmen generally,
-nine out of ten would act as I did. I merely
-"carried on." The traditions of our race and
-country did the rest.
-</p>
-<p>
-Having, in my talk with the admiral and the
-report I made, accepted his position of Supreme
-Governor, I did not mean that he should be left to
-fight his way unaided against the enemies who surrounded
-him. In other words, while outwardly
-remaining neutral, I constantly made representations
-and gave advice, when asked, about everything, both
-internal and external; and here it may be interesting
-to our own people to know some of the problems
-which confronted the Supreme Governor. The
-Japanese question was the first. General Rosanoff
-was Bolderoff's Chief of Staff, and it was important
-to the Supreme Governor that he should get the
-hang of outstanding matters and also make himself
-fairly acquainted with the policy of the deposed
-Directorate. He interviewed General Rosanoff and
-the Staff generally, and discovered that after the fall
-of Samara the Bolshevik army moved rapidly towards
-Ufa, and the Directorate became so alarmed that
-they demanded some definite policy from the Commander-in-Chief
-as to how he proposed to deal with
-this menace. Bolderoff never thought of effectively
-organising the new Russian army, but suggested
-that things were so critical, and that England,
-France, and America were so slow, that the only
-alternative was to invite the Japanese to push their
-army forward to the Urals. This was exactly what
-Japan wanted, but the Japanese Staff demanded as
-a <i>quid pro quo</i> to their advance to Ekaterinburg and
-Chilliyabinsk that they should be placed in absolute
-possession of the railway and telegraph lines to those
-points. Bolderoff and the Directorate boggled at
-this for a time, but as the Bolsheviks began to get
-close to Ufa, and also concentrated an army of about
-one hundred thousand men for an offensive towards
-Ekaterinburg, the situation became so pressing that
-the Directorate gave way, and a few days before the
-<i>coup d'&eacute;tat</i> Bolderoff had sent word to the Japanese
-that their terms were accepted.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Japanese had made all preparations to move
-when Koltchak took the reins in his own hands. He
-asked my advice. I advised him to say to the
-Japanese that the change of Government had also
-involved a change of policy, and that it would be
-inadvisable for the Japanese to advance beyond their
-position at Chita until the subject had been further
-discussed. They made him many tempting offers of
-help, both arms and money, but he refused them
-all, and they were unable to move him from the
-position he had taken up.
-</p>
-<p>
-A subject that led to unfortunate bickerings
-between Admiral Koltchak and the French was the
-appointment by the Allied Council of Paris of
-General Ganin as the Commander of the Allied and
-Russian Forces in Siberia.
-</p>
-<p>
-It is too important an item in the general failure
-of Allied policy to pass over without mention. From
-the very nature of the case the main Allied effort
-was the formation and organisation of a new Russian
-army. Our policy was not to prop Russia on her
-feet, but to enable her to stand by herself.
-Major-General Knox had been sent out by the War Office
-to accomplish this purpose, and no more able or
-competent officer could have been appointed for the
-task.
-</p>
-<p>
-General Knox had hardly begun to perform
-this duty when the French agents in Siberia became
-alarmed for their own position. Cables were dispatched
-to Europe pointing out the danger to French
-prestige which General Knox's mission entailed. If
-the English were to be made responsible for the
-reorganisation of the Russian Army, and were
-successful, this would tend to make New Russia rely
-more upon the English than the French, as had
-been the case hitherto; that it would be better to
-leave Russia without an army than have it organised
-under such influence. These senseless fears of our
-French friends found willing listeners in Paris.
-General Knox had already made some selections of
-officers and the business was well under way when a
-message from the Allied Council in Paris put an
-extinguisher on all his work. His orders were
-cancelled, and he was told to do nothing until a
-French commander had been appointed, whose
-name would be forwarded later.
-</p>
-<p>
-By this uninformed Allied interference a well-thought-out
-scheme of army reorganisation was hung
-up for four of the most precious months to Russia.
-By the time General Ganin arrived the time for the
-project had passed and the whole business had been
-taken out of Allied hands.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Russian situation at that time was such that
-four days' delay would have been fatal, and if nothing
-had been done for four months we should have been
-hunted out of the country.
-</p>
-<p>
-Finding Allied jealousy so great as to render all
-their efforts impotent, first General Bolderoff and
-then his successor, the Supreme Governor, began to
-organise armies on their own for the protection of
-the people and their property. These armies were
-ill-equipped and badly disciplined&mdash;not the kind of
-armies which would have been raised had General
-Knox's plans been allowed to develop&mdash;but they
-performed their duty, they captured Perm, and had
-increased to over 200,000 before General Ganin
-appeared on the scene.
-</p>
-<p>
-When General Ganin reported himself to the
-Supreme Governor with the Allied Council's orders
-to take over the command of the Allied and Russian
-forces in Siberia, he was met with a blank refusal
-from the Omsk Government.
-</p>
-<p>
-I was consulted upon the question, and I am
-therefore able to give the reasons for their objection.
-The Omsk Government's position was a very simple
-one: "Had General Knox or any other Allied
-commander organised, paid, and equipped the new
-Russian army he would have naturally controlled
-it until such time as a Russian Government could
-have been established strong enough to have taken
-over the responsibility. The French would not
-allow this to be done, and we ourselves therefore
-undertook the duty. Having formed our own army
-in our own country, it is an unheard of proposal that
-we should be forced to place it under the command
-of a non-Russian officer. It would be derogatory
-to the influence and dignity of the Russian Government
-and lower the Government in the estimation
-of the people."
-</p>
-<p>
-From this position they never retreated, but
-Allied bungling had landed General Ganin, who is
-himself an able and excellent officer, in a not very
-dignified position.
-</p>
-<p>
-Bolderoff, as I have stated, was at the Ufa front
-when Koltchak assumed supreme power. He remained
-there in consultation with the Czech National
-Council and the members of the old Constituent
-Assembly for five or six days without a word as
-to his intentions. It was a critical position for
-Koltchak, who did not know what he was doing or
-intended to do. Hot-heads advised immediate
-action, but I suggested caution. The subject-matter
-of Bolderoff's conferences or whether he had any
-we do not know, but we do know this: General
-Dutoff, who commanded the Russian armies south
-of Ufa, had some proposals from Ufa put before
-him, and replied advising caution, as he had it on
-unimpeachable authority that the English were
-behind Admiral Koltchak. This statement, I was
-told, fell like a bombshell among the conspirators at
-Ufa, and soon after General Bolderoff returned to
-Omsk. There he interviewed Koltchak as Supreme
-Governor, and made satisfactory statement relative
-to his absence. He was offered a post, which he
-refused, stating that he wished to leave the country,
-as he did not believe that a dictatorship could help
-Russia out of her difficulties. His request was
-granted, and so ended a very different interview
-between these two men from that at Petropalovsk
-a few days before.
-</p>
-<p>
-Some time after this the Japanese representative
-at Omsk made a request to be informed whether
-General Bolderoff had been forced to leave the
-country, or had left voluntarily. This was answered
-in a definite way in accordance with the facts. In
-the same note the Japanese also demanded to be
-informed whether the British Army had supplied the
-train and guard which had taken the exiled Social
-Revolutionary Members of the Directorate to Chang-Chun,
-on the Chinese frontier. This question was
-not answered quite so definitely, but the interest of
-the Japanese in these men shows how far the <i>coup
-d'&eacute;tat</i> had upset their plans relative to the occupation
-of the Urals.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Supreme Governor issued definite orders to
-the different isolated sections of the Russian forces.
-All commanders obeyed these orders more or less
-except one, General Semianoff, whose headquarters
-were alongside that of the Japanese at Chita, from
-which he sent insolent refusals to recognise Koltchak's
-authority. Koltchak prepared to deal with this
-mutinous and buccaneering officer. The Japanese at
-once plainly informed the Omsk Government that
-General Semianoff was under their protection, and
-they would not allow the Russian Government to
-interfere with him.
-</p>
-<p>
-Under Japanese protection this fellow continued
-to carry out indiscriminate executions and flogging of
-workmen until the whole district became depopulated,
-and the Allies were forced to demand an
-explanation from Japan for their extraordinary
-conduct. So fearful were they that their tool was
-about to be dealt with, that when the 1/9th Battalion
-of the Hampshire Territorial Regiment started from
-Vladivostok, the Japanese asked the Omsk Government
-whether these British troops were coming forward
-to attack General Semianoff. The answer we
-gave was that all movements of British troops were
-conducted by the British Military Mission, to whom
-they must apply for information. I never heard any
-more of their inquiries.
-</p>
-<p>
-About this time a party of Cossacks, with a high
-officer at their head, called at the prison one night
-and produced to the governor an alleged order for the
-release of nine political prisoners. The [perhaps]
-unsuspecting governor handed his prisoners over;
-they were taken away, and next morning their friends
-found them shot. Someone ought to have been
-hanged, but Koltchak could find no one to hang.
-His Chief of Staff must have discovered some facts
-about the crime, but he refused to act. In fact, he
-did not acquaint the admiral about the crime until
-four days later when it had become public property.
-Koltchak was quite overcome, first with rage at the
-crime itself, and secondly at his impotence in being
-unable to prevent it. But Omsk went on the even
-tenor of its way: it is remarkable what horrors people
-can face without a tremor when they get used to
-them, as they must in revolutions.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH12"><!-- CH12 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-THE CAPTURE OF PERM: THE CZECHS RETIRE FROM THE FIGHTING
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-The <i>coup d'&eacute;tat</i> had thrown the proposed Perm
-offensive completely into the background. The
-Czechs, under the influence of their Political Council,
-who had joined the Social Revolutionary Committee,
-and their leader Chernoff, retired to the rear. Each
-unit elected a committee and established a Soldiers'
-Council on the strictest Bolshevik plan, and ceased
-to be of further use either to the Russians or their
-own cause. The officers of the new Russian army
-became greatly concerned for the integrity of their
-own young troops with such a shocking example of
-lack of discipline before their eyes, and begged
-Admiral Koltchak to order these hostile political
-bodies out of Ekaterinburg. The admiral offered
-them a town in the rear where they might discuss
-politics to their hearts' content, without danger to
-his army. This, however, did not suit their plans,
-for their obvious object was to destroy the integrity
-of the new Russian army. Admiral Koltchak in
-desperation ordered the leaders to be arrested and the
-conspiracy to be broken up. General Gaida, though
-a Czech officer, put the admiral's order into effect,
-and handed the prisoners over to the Commander-in-Chief,
-General Surovey, at Chilliyabinsk. General
-Surovey, under pressure of the Czech Council and
-Chernoff's Committee, released the prisoners, and
-began to hunt the famous young General Gaida out
-of their hitherto equally famous army. To save himself
-from disgrace at the hands of his political enemies,
-the general resigned his commission in the Czech
-Army, and by joining the Russian Army was instantly
-re-established in his position as Commander
-of the Russian armies on the right. Thus fell the
-glorious Czech legions from their high pinnacle of
-fame, killed as all armies must be the moment they
-join in party strife.
-</p>
-<p>
-From the point of view of purely Russian tactics,
-it was necessary to strike south from Ufa, with the
-object of effecting a junction with the Orenburg
-Cossacks under General Dutoff, and if possible linking
-up with the forces of General Denikin in South
-Russia. But no exact or reliable information could
-be secured as to the strength and equipment of Dutoff
-or Denikin.
-</p>
-<p>
-On the other hand, it was known that an Anglo-American
-force had landed at Archangel, which it
-was presumed would be well supplied with winter
-equipment, and if once a junction could be effected
-with this force, a channel for European supplies could
-soon be opened. Every cartridge, gun, rifle, and
-article of clothing had now to be shipped almost round
-the world, and brought over about six thousand miles
-of more or less disorganised railway communication.
-Koltchak had men, but no means for making them
-into fighters unless supplied from outside. It was
-felt certain that if his armies could smash their way
-through to Perm, and hold a point somewhere
-between there and Vatka, the junction of the Archangel
-and Petrograd Railway, the slightest movement
-of the Archangel expedition would result in a combination
-which could and would move straight forward
-to Petrograd, and free north Russia from the
-Terrorists.
-</p>
-<p>
-Originally I was to have operated in the centre
-with a detachment of the 25th Middlesex Battalion
-and four machine guns, and authority had been given
-for my part in the advance. The complete defection
-of the Czechs, however, threw the time-table out of
-joint, and not even the restless energy of the Supreme
-Governor could make up this loss for nearly four
-weeks. In the meantime the cold became so
-intense that the British contingent, being only B1
-men, had to drop out. General Gaida, with his
-divisional generals, Galitzin, Pepelaieff, and Verzbitzky,
-pressed forward their preparations, and after
-a splendid series of movements captured Perm with
-31,000 prisoners and an enormous booty of war
-material. The losses of the Russians were about
-6,000 killed, of the Bolsheviks about 16,000. There
-were practically no wounded, for any man who sank
-in the snow was dead in an hour. Thus did the
-admiral consolidate the power that had been entrusted
-to him.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Terrorists were completely demoralised, so
-that the army advanced to Glasoff, 80 miles east of
-Vatka and 60 miles south of Koltass. We were now
-only about 300 miles east of Petrograd, and there we
-waited for seven months for the Archangel move,
-which never came off. For some time the country
-was so absolutely clear of enemy forces that small
-parties of men passed unmolested from Glasoff to
-Archangel and from Archangel to Glasoff.
-Eventually the Terrorists got the correct measure of
-this Northern expedition, contained it with a slight
-screen, and concentrated huge forces to press us back
-over the Urals once more.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH13"><!-- CH13 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XIII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-THE DECEMBER ROYALIST AND BOLSHEVIST CONSPIRACY
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-The tenure of a dictator's office is very uncertain.
-He issues his orders, but if the army chiefs can escape
-from executing them they do so, on one pretext or
-another. The Russian character is most peculiar in
-this respect. It will obey one thing only&mdash;force.
-Patriotism and public spirit, as we know them, do
-not exist to any great extent. Every man looks at
-every order from the personal point of view&mdash;"How
-will this affect me?"&mdash;rarely, if ever, "How will it
-affect the country?"
-</p>
-<p>
-It is remarkable how much Koltchak had already
-accomplished, but it seemed that his career might
-end at any moment, in spite of every precaution of
-his friends. Of these he had not many; no real
-dictator should expect to have any. No man will
-have many friends in Russia who puts personal
-questions second to the public welfare.
-</p>
-<p>
-The preparations for the Perm offensive were well
-under way, when a dispatch came from General
-Dutoff, stating, "That in view of the pressure by
-our forces on their left the Bolshevik leaders had
-decided to, what they called, 'organise their enemies'
-rear.' That seventy of their best propagandist and
-most capable agents and officers had passed between
-his columns and were now distributed somewhere in
-our midst." All we could do was to wait, and see
-where this treacherous movement would show itself
-first.
-</p>
-<p>
-The fact that Koltchak had declared for the calling
-of a National Assembly, elected by universal
-suffrage, to decide the future government of Russia,
-so soon as order was restored, had shattered completely
-the vision of the old army officers of a quick
-return to absolutism. His declaration against extremists
-on either side had driven Bolshevik and
-Tsarist into practically one camp. He was well known
-as a student of English customs and institutions and
-a pre-revolution advocate of constitutionalism. The
-Tsarist section hoped that his assumption of supreme
-authority was proof that he had discarded his democratic
-principles, but gradually his official declarations
-to the representative of the British Government
-leaked out and spread consternation in the ranks of
-both sections of the Absolutists. The Bolshevik
-leaders have never made any bones about their fear
-and dread of democracy as understood in England,
-and have declared they would prefer a return to the
-old r&eacute;gime rather than have a Constitution like that
-of England or America forced upon them. Hence
-there is no real difference of principle between the
-Bolshevik and the supporters of the old r&eacute;gime, only
-a difference as to who should wield the power. For
-the moment they let this minor point slip into the
-background, and combined for the destruction of the
-man who was the enemy of both.
-</p>
-<p>
-About midnight, December 23, Russian
-Headquarters gave me the alarm. Shots were being fired
-in all directions, and a spent bullet struck my carriage
-while I was getting into my clothes. Horsemen in
-little groups were surrounding the Staffka without
-much sign of order. Having inspected my battalion
-at their emergency quarters, I called for a personal
-guard to escort me to Headquarters. I regret there
-was no impressionist artist with us to record the weird
-procession my guard made. When sheepskin coats
-were provided for my men for use in a cold, snowbound
-country, it is a real English touch that they
-should have been black in colour, making my men a
-perfect target both night and day. Their fur caps
-were a dark brown of the well-known Nansen type,
-the half-moon peak making the head of the wearer a
-good mark at midnight up to 300 yards. The cap is
-pointed, and has much the appearance at night of
-a small mitre. What with huge fur boots, black
-pointed caps, and long black coats, there was nothing
-to indicate the British Tommy in the line of black
-monks that moved silently forward over the frozen
-snow. The temperature was such that as the slight
-wind brought the water to one's eyes the drops froze
-to hard white spots of ice at the corners. Breath
-from the nostrils froze before it could leave the nose,
-and from each nostril hung icicles, in some cases
-2 inches long, which again froze to the moustache.
-The eyebrows and eyelashes and the protruding fur
-edge which enclosed the faces of the men carried a
-wonderful display of hoar frost, and gave the appearance
-of white lace frills, such as are seen on
-"granny's" caps.
-</p>
-<p>
-As we entered the Russian Headquarters, which
-were crowded with more or less excited officers and
-men, my guard lined up on each side of the vestibule,
-and without a word proceeded to unsling rifles and
-fix bayonets. The Russians, who were even now
-debating on which side they were going to slide down,
-looked at my soldier monks, and at once themselves
-fell into line. There was no longer any hesitation.
-"Anglisky soldats" were in possession of Russian
-Headquarters, and the reputation of English soldiers
-in emergencies like this is known all over the world.
-I interviewed the Chief-of-Staff, General Lebediff,
-as to his orders for suppressing the revolters and went
-downstairs to find the vestibule empty except for my
-"monks." No one who was not there could believe
-the absolute transformation that the mere presence of
-a few English soldiers had on this critical situation.
-In revolutions every rule and safeguard of society is
-uprooted; the people feel as in an earthquake,
-nothing is secure, everyone doubts his neighbour. If
-those who are prepared to support authority can only
-discover at the right moment one little group round
-whom they can rally, and who they know will think
-nothing of death in performance of duty, the danger
-is over at once. Hesitancy disappears, and the
-normal is instantly produced. We filed out to find
-the infantry in their ranks, and the horsemen
-mounted in line, under their officers, awaiting orders.
-</p>
-<p>
-I proceeded through the town to the residence
-of the Supreme Governor. On our way we passed
-parties of soldiers and Cossacks hurrying to their
-posts, who eyed us suspiciously, but on seeing me at
-the head in the uniform of a British officer, ejaculated
-loudly to their command the magic word "Anglisky,"
-until like a talisman the word passed from sentry to
-sentry and street to street, and "Anglisky" became
-the password which held the whole town for
-law and order. We passed towards the admiral's
-house without challenge until the Cossack and Serbian
-guard at the actual entrance called us to halt
-pending the governor's orders. The order soon came
-for us to enter. The admiral was ill, very ill with
-inflammation of the lungs, but as brave as ever. My
-"monks" lined up in the vestibule in the same manner
-as at Headquarters, and even the personal Serbian
-guard had to make way for these queer-looking visitors.
-I got the information required. The revolt
-was very serious, but I was able to inform the admiral
-that effective measures had now been taken to provide
-for all eventualities. I begged leave to depart, which
-was granted, but not before my men had been given
-food and a taste of Russian vodka, which appears to
-be the only effective antidote to the cold of a real
-Siberian winter. I returned, to find that the fact
-that the English soldiers were out was known in
-every house in Omsk, and numerous requests from
-the highest to the lowest for protection had been
-received on the telephone. I give no names, but the
-fact shows what a remarkable influence the presence
-of a few British soldiers had in steadying the situation.
-</p>
-<p>
-My orders were to take no part in the internal
-affairs of Russia, but it is the duty of every commanding
-officer to take all possible means to protect
-his command. If I had remained in my quarters and
-made no sign until these Royalist and Bolshevik
-enemies had obtained possession of the town, I
-should have presented a dainty morsel which they
-could have masticated at leisure. I had to show my
-hand early enough to make sure it did not go against
-me. It turned out that I marched from my barracks
-just when news had been brought of the mutiny,
-under Royalist and Bolshevik leadership, of two
-companies of the 8th Regiment of the new Russian
-army. A body of Bolsheviks at Koulomsino, on the
-other side of the river, had taken up arms and were
-bent on the destruction of the bridge over the Irtish,
-which formed the means of communication with the
-armoured trains of H.M.S. <i>Suffolk</i>, and our naval
-detachments at Ufa. The Czechs (our Allies), who
-had the same orders as myself, on learning that the
-Tsarists were also in the conspiracy, frustrated this
-scheme by instantly moving forward a company for
-the protection of the bridge, which arrived just in
-the nick of time. Had we acted strictly to orders,
-Heaven only knows what the result would have been.
-British and Czech both had to act on our own judgment,
-and while, technically, we disobeyed orders,
-we fulfilled the policy of each country and protected
-our commands.
-</p>
-<p>
-It cost nearly a thousand lives to restore order,
-but the lawless elements, top and bottom, were taught
-a lesson they are not likely to forget. This happened
-in the middle of the Perm offensive. It did
-nothing to assist the Bolshevik cause, but it did much
-to embitter the struggle.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH14"><!-- CH14 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XIV
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-A BOMBSHELL FROM PARIS AND THE EFFECT
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-The foregoing incidents gave place to more personal
-matters. About December 28 the Staff of the Canadian
-contingent under Lieutenant-Colonel Morrisy
-arrived, and, as one might expect, revolutionary plans
-in connection with the distribution of my battalion,
-and other matters, were instantly proposed. Some of
-them were actually carried out, with the result that
-a strained feeling became manifest in the British
-camp at Omsk, which caused me to propose to
-Brigadier-General Elmsley that my headquarters
-should be transferred to Vladivostok. Luckily the
-arrival of the 1/9th Hampshire Territorial Battalion
-on January 5, 1919, under the Command of Lieutenant-Colonel
-Johnson, led to an improved condition
-of things all round us. This officer gripped the situation
-at once, and took such steps, in conjunction with
-the High Commissioner, Sir Charles Eliot, that I
-was prevailed upon to withdraw my request for the
-removal of my headquarters. Colonel Johnson was
-a great accession of strength to those who held the
-purely English point of view, and his battalion, recruited
-as it was from my home county, helped to
-make all our relations wonderfully cordial. General
-Elmsley replied later refusing my request, so that
-everything fitted in just right.
-</p>
-<p>
-On January 8 a parade was called to present
-General Stephanik with the Legion of Honour and
-Major-General Knox, the Chief of the British Military
-Mission, and myself with the Croix de Guerre.
-It was a real Siberian day, "62 below," and in
-five minutes ten men had frost-bitten ears. General
-Ganin, the French Commander-in-Chief of the Allied
-forces, made the presentations on behalf of the French
-Republic, uttering a few words to each recipient.
-I received the hearty congratulations of all our
-friends, which kept me warm the whole day. I
-thanked Colonel Pichon, who took over from me the
-command of the Ussurie front, and with whom I
-acted for some time, for this great honour. I felt
-sure that my decoration was the result of his reports
-upon myself while acting together under very
-awkward circumstances.
-</p>
-<p>
-Towards the middle of January the British High
-Commissioner conveyed to Admiral Koltchak an
-extremely sympathetic message from the British
-Government. The French High Commissioner followed
-next day with a similar message from the
-French Government, except that it distinctly referred
-to the possibility of help and recognition. The
-Allied representatives felt more happy and secure as
-a result of these felicitations than they had done for
-some time, and the Russian authorities began to feel
-it possible to press on with the work of "resurrection."
-A new page in the history of a great recovery
-had been added to Russian records. Exactly four
-days later a wireless message came through from Paris
-to say that the Allied Council had declared that it
-could give no help or recognise either side; that the
-different parties and Governments existing in Russia
-must bring about an armistice, and send representatives
-to the Turkish "Isle of Dogs," near Constantinople,
-and arrange a compromise with each other. In
-other words, that the Bolsheviks were to be recognised
-as legitimate belligerents, with whom it was quite
-possible to shake hands and sit down to draw up an
-agreement as to the proper method of conducting a
-policy of rapine, robbery, and murder. Needless to
-say, every Britisher was disgusted, and every genuine
-Russian patriot simply amazed. At one swoop down
-went all our hopes! We were crushed as much or
-more than the Russians, because we had the honour
-of our countries to defend, and defence seemed impossible.
-</p>
-<p>
-A sudden reaction against the European Allies
-set in at once, and became so violent that a Russian
-gentleman made an abusive speech to the Allied
-officers as they sipped tea in a well-known restaurant,
-and the public refused to allow the guard which was
-called to arrest him to carry out the order. This
-feeling was undoubtedly exploited by the Japanese
-for their own purposes.
-</p>
-<p>
-A very tense condition of affairs existed, when on
-January 31 I asked for a special interview with
-Admiral Koltchak that I might introduce my colleague
-and comrade, Colonel Johnson, and talk over
-the situation. The admiral was out walking by the
-river, quite unattended, but in full view of the guard
-at his residence near the river bank. It was his first
-walk since his illness, and he looked quite recovered.
-The talk naturally veered round to the Allied declaration
-in favour of the Bolsheviks and the situation it
-had created in Omsk. The admiral's attitude was
-quite simple. "We can talk and make compact with
-every party and Government in the different districts
-of Russia, but to compromise with Bolshevism, or
-shake the hand, or sit down and treat as equals the
-men who are outraging and murdering the Russian
-people&mdash;never! No decent Allied Government
-acquainted with the facts would ever expect it."
-</p>
-<p>
-I asked him to consider the question as in no way
-decided by the Paris message, that I felt sure there
-must be some points connected with the decision that
-required further elucidation. "Yes!" said the
-admiral. "There must be some facts with which
-we are not acquainted, for while the British Government
-advise an arrangement with the Bolsheviks they
-continue to furnish me with generous supplies for the
-Russian Army." I left quite satisfied that he still
-retained his faith in the friendship of England.
-</p>
-<p>
-There was one queer point which needs to be
-placed on record. Admiral Koltchak observed that
-the Japanese were still causing him much trouble.
-They had been unable to approach him personally but
-had been "getting at" his officers, whose business
-caused them to make frequent visits to the Ural
-front. They made statements to the effect that the
-only state which was in a position to help Russia
-was Japan. The other armies were war-weary and
-clamouring for demobilisation and therefore unwilling
-to fight the Bolsheviks. If Admiral Koltchak was
-compelled to make a reasonable arrangement with
-Japan, their army would guarantee to liquidate the
-Bolshevik forces in two months and establish a monarchy
-satisfactory to the Russian officers. This propaganda
-had reached the front, and had been referred
-to as assuming very serious importance by his front-line
-generals in their dispatches. To counteract this
-pernicious influence, he was proposing to visit the
-front himself to point out the impossibility of Japan,
-as one of the Entente Allies, being able herself to
-execute such a programme. I asked him how this
-propaganda began and who engineered it. He answered:
-"General Muto and a staff of twenty-six
-officers and intelligence assistants are working hard
-here in Omsk to influence Russian opinion in their
-direction." Finally the Supreme Governor said, "I
-make no complaint against these very excellent
-Japanese officers, they are only carrying out the
-orders of their political and military chiefs, but it
-makes my work of restoring order much more
-difficult."
-</p>
-<p>
-There were other little rifts within the lute. The
-Russian officers are Royalist almost to a man, and
-will remain so, for they are all most childlike in their
-adherence to this principle. Some gossip informs one
-of them that Prince Kuropotkin is still alive and has
-been seen on the Russian frontier. "Oh!" he exclaims.
-"Then the admiral will be handing over
-his power to Kuropotkin directly he hears the prince
-is alive!" Next day he may be told that the prince
-is not a soldier and his enthusiasm at once oozes out
-of his finger tips. The next day some British supplies
-arrive, and then he is all for reliance upon the
-Allies. A few days later, the Government not having
-been recognised by the Powers according to his
-wish, he curses the Powers and becomes morose. The
-day following he hears in a restaurant that Demitri-Pavlovitch
-is hiding as a peasant in Siberia, and he is
-immediately in about the same ecstatic condition as
-the shepherds who beheld the Star over Bethlehem.
-Every possible&mdash;or impossible&mdash;person under the sun
-becomes to him a potential saviour of his country;
-never does he think how he and his comrades themselves
-might save her. The Russian officer, indeed,
-is "just a great, big, brave, lovable baby, and
-nothing else." "Gulliver's Travels" ought to have
-an immense circulation should it ever be translated
-into the Russian language. The "Arabian Nights"
-appears as an unimaginative narrative of humdrum
-events compared with the stories in current circulation
-in Omsk and Siberia generally.
-</p>
-<p>
-The two following extracts from my diary record
-incidents which occurred at this time.
-</p>
-<p>
-"February 1, 1919. Last night three Bolshevik
-conspirators entered the officers' quarters of the 1st
-and 2nd Siberian Regiment disguised as Russian
-soldiers. The first intimation outside that anything
-was wrong was rapid revolver shots inside. The
-sentry captured one of the imitation soldiers as he
-tried to escape from the building. In less than two
-minutes the conspirators had shot five officers, two of
-whom were mortally wounded in the stomach. One
-conspirator was shot dead, one was captured, one got
-away. The knout was applied to the prisoner, and
-at the hundredth stroke he gave the whole conspiracy
-away. Over fifty arrests followed his confession, with
-the result that all is again quiet in Omsk."
-</p>
-<p>
-"February 3, 1919. Lieutenant Munro has just
-arrived at Omsk from Vladivostok with comforts from
-the ladies at Shanghai, Hong-Kong and Singapore.
-Words fail to describe the feelings of both officers
-and men as they received these tokens of love and
-remembrance from their own countrywomen in this
-cold inhospitable climate. It is a beautiful feeling,
-and though the actual work performed is the effort of
-a few, the whole sex receives a crude sort of deification
-from these womanly acts. The way one of the commonest
-Tommies looked at a small wash-flannel that
-had evidently been hemmed by hands unused to
-work of any description, and asked me if I would
-give the lady his thanks, would have gone to the heart
-of the fair but unknown worker could she have
-witnessed it.
-</p>
-<p>
-"I heard news of general insubordination among
-the Canadian troops that had just arrived at Vladivostok.
-If all the information received could be relied
-upon, the sooner they were shipped back to Canada
-the better. There is enough anarchy here now without
-the British Government dumping more upon us. I
-can see that it is a great mistake to mix Canadians
-and British troops in one Brigade. Naturally, British
-soldiers carry out orders; if other troops do not, then
-the British troops have to do all the work. The situation
-produced is that the highest paid soldier does no
-work and the lowest paid all the work. It soon percolates
-to the slowest Sussex brain that discipline does
-not pay. Nothing but the wonderful sense of order
-in the make-up of the average Englishman has prevented
-us from becoming an Anglo-Canadian rabble,
-dangerous to Bolshevik and Russian alike. I am told
-that Brigadier Pickford had done his best to maintain
-order and discipline in his ranks; that he had been
-compelled to make very awkward promises to his
-troops which having been made had to be fulfilled.
-In all the circumstances it was generally agreed that
-the proper thing to have done was to send the Canadians
-home to their farms, and leave the few Britishers
-who were there to carry on. We had established
-excellent relations with the Russians which it would
-have been a thousand pities to spoil."
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH15"><!-- CH15 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XV
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-MORE INTRIGUES
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-While the loyal Russian officers were being murdered
-in their beds, other events not less important
-were happening. When Admiral Koltchak assumed
-supreme authority the Directorate was surrounded
-by a party of Royalist officers as turbulent and lawless
-as Trotsky himself. Private code messages
-passed between these officers as freely as if they
-already had the power in their own hands. The first
-intimation that Koltchak had of these conspiracies
-was a code message from General Evanoff Renoff to
-General Beloff, General Bolderoff's Chief of Staff,
-which unfolded many of the aspirations of these men,
-and showed their objects to be exclusively personal.
-I read these messages with great interest, as they
-gave me an excellent insight into the mainsprings of
-the revolution and incidentally into the character of
-the average Russian officer. General Antonovsky, of
-the old Russian Military Academy, who also assisted
-in the drafting of the Brest-Litovsk Treaty with the
-Germans, was a participant in the scheme, and was
-within an ace of becoming the admiral's Chief of Staff.
-Everything was working splendidly, when the cipher
-message from Renoff opened the ball. Beloff was
-sent to the east, and Antonovsky to the south, and
-the Absolutists became broken up.
-</p>
-<p>
-On February 1 my liaison officer informed me
-that as he waited in the corridor of headquarters,
-General Beloff came out of General Lebediff's room.
-A little later General Antonovsky came out of another
-room, and then these two were suddenly joined by
-a certain Cossack general of a very truculent type.
-I knew that this boded badly for order, and I warned
-Koltchak's young aide-de-camp. Shortly after it was
-reported to me that an attempt had been made to
-exchange a sham guard for the real one at the
-Supreme Governor's residence. That night I held
-our direct wire from Colonel Johnson to my ear till
-12.30 A.M., and found that it was tapped by Russian
-Headquarters. General Knox had got to know
-things, and took certain action, with the result that
-I sent my officer to Russian Headquarters with instructions
-to inform General Lebediff we were
-anxious for the Supreme Governor's safety; that if
-any harm was contemplated against him we should
-hold him responsible unless he made us acquainted
-with the danger in time to avert it; further, that if
-the Absolutist officers thought they could murder
-Admiral Koltchak and proclaim an absolute
-Monarchy without the sanction of the people of
-Russia they were mistaken; that whoever, whether
-high or low, attempted to destroy the present Government
-and throw Russia back into violence and anarchy
-would be treated as enemies by the British soldiers.
-General Lebediff answered that he knew of no
-special danger threatening Admiral Koltchak at the
-moment, but he thanked Colonel Ward for his offer
-to help protect the Government in case of necessity.
-</p>
-<p>
-The conspirators broke up at once, but the
-cunningest of the lot remained to weave again by
-social strategy the continuous web of Russian disorder.
-We knew that there were elements at work
-for a counter-revolution quite uncontrolled by, but
-acting with, the cognisance of officials of the Koltchak
-Administration. In revolutions sudden outbursts on
-the part of even a small party may soon jeopardise
-the whole organisation of State. Colonel Johnson
-and myself agreed that it was necessary to concentrate
-our forces, and in approaching the Russian authorities
-on this subject, we added further to the demoralisation
-of those who were in the conspiracy. We protested
-that it was our own safety that we had in view,
-but the conspirators did not believe us. I knew that
-the admiral's train had been for some days standing
-ready to take him to the front. On February 3
-Omsk was informed that the important Japanese
-Mission (previously referred to) had started from
-Irkutsk on the last stage of its journey to the Supreme
-Governor. The governor's aide-de-camp informed
-me at the same time that the admiral was starting for
-the front at 5 P.M. on February 7.
-</p>
-<p>
-General Knox was anxious that there should be
-no evidence of weakening in our support of the Omsk
-Government, as in case of disorder our position was
-by no means secure. After consultation it was
-decided to offer the admiral a personal guard for his
-journey, to consist of fifty men and one officer from
-the Hampshire Regiment. This was accepted and
-referred to the Chief of Staff for confirmation. It
-was then reported to General Ganin and the French
-Staff. They at once protested that to have a purely
-English guard would lower French prestige in the
-eyes of the Russians. They quite agreed that there
-ought to be a guard, but it must be half English and
-half French, and to this we at once agreed. We
-therefore reduced our number to twenty-five. Then,
-however, the French Staff pointed out that they had
-no troops in Omsk, and they could not leave the Staff
-without a cook. The greatest number of orderlies
-they could spare was nine, so it was suggested that
-the guard should consist of forty-one English and
-nine French soldiers. This took the negotiators'
-breath away entirely; the first proposal was destructive
-of French prestige, the second was enough to
-destroy France altogether! Really France is much
-too beautiful and gallant a country to have this sort
-of stuff put forward on her behalf, but there it was.
-So the admiral's guard consisted of nine soldiers with
-one officer of each nationality&mdash;twenty all told.
-</p>
-<p>
-One point we did get home on. At the time
-appointed for the admiral's departure, an English
-guard of honour miraculously appeared on the scene,
-together with Russian and Czech guards. There
-<i>could</i> be no French&mdash;yet French prestige continued
-to stand just as high as ever it did. I give these facts
-in the most friendly spirit, but with a hope that English
-officers will always understand that, however
-much we smile at the peculiar gyrations of the word
-"prestige" as understood by our Continental neighbours,
-it is very real to them, and strange exhibitions
-of it are seen on occasions.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Supreme Governor had arrived and shaken
-hands with the Russian, English and Czech representatives,
-including Sir Charles Eliot, the British
-High Commissioner, and General Bowes, the Chief
-of the British Military Mission to the Czecho-Slovaks.
-The French representative was late. When the ceremonial
-was nearly complete, a French officer (not
-above the rank of captain) elbowed his way to the
-front and vigorously brushed aside the British High
-Commissioner and general, and stood with his back
-towards them as though they were mere outside
-spectators who had no business there. The same
-evening the incident was being discussed amongst a
-group of Russian and English officers, when a Russian
-officer of the highest position observed, "You English
-have the queerest notion of national prestige of
-all the countries I have been so far acquainted with.
-Any ordinary Russian, Kirghis, Tartar, or Mongolian
-officer seeing a French captain brush aside the
-representatives and generals of another state would
-instantly decide that he only did so not because of
-want of politeness, which one-half the world does not
-understand, but because the nation to which he
-belongs was so great and powerful there was no need
-to be deferential to any of the others, and especially
-so to the state whose representatives allowed themselves
-to be so easily brushed aside."
-</p>
-<p>
-We had many conferences upon the condition
-of the Russian workman, and whether it was possible
-for the Allies to do anything to help them. British
-officers were making desperate efforts to organise and
-equip forces capable of dealing a death-blow to the
-Bolsheviks in the early spring. General Knox worked
-like a Trojan, and gave more inspiration to the
-Russian Government than all the other Allied representatives
-put together. In fact, without his sagacity
-and determination we should have been better employed
-at home. He travelled from "Vlady" to
-Omsk, from Omsk to "Vlady," as though the 5,000-mile
-journey was just a run from London to Birmingham.
-His great strength was that he made up his
-mind on a certain course, and stuck to it, while everyone
-around him could never decide upon anything for
-long. If you want anything done, don't have Allies.
-Allies are all right when a powerful enemy is striking
-you or them; it is then quite simple; mere self-preservation
-is sufficient to hold you together for
-common protection. Let the danger pass, let the
-roar of conflict recede in the distance, and Allies
-become impotent for any purpose except spying on
-each other and obstructing the work in hand. There
-was no evidence that anyone, except the English,
-was doing anything to smooth the way for the new
-Russian Government, but by sheer energy General
-Knox had brought together personnel and stores
-sufficient to justify belief in the early success of his
-plans. Then there suddenly arose another sinister
-figure which threatened to upset all our calculations&mdash;
-namely, a well-timed revolt of the railway workmen,
-calculated to cripple our communications and make
-the movement of troops and supplies impossible.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH16"><!-- CH16 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XVI
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-RUSSIAN LABOUR
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-General Dutoff, as I have previously recorded, had
-informed us that Bolshevist agitators had passed
-through our lines on this treacherous mission, and for
-months nothing had been heard of these emissaries of
-mischief. Now that we were approaching the critical
-point of the 1919 operations rumblings of an unmistakable
-character were heard in all directions. The
-necessary military measures had been taken, but in
-our English eyes suppression was not enough. We
-have learnt in our country that the workmen are the
-backbone of the State, and that when labour is badly
-paid the heart of the State is diseased. Russia has
-no ideas about labour at all. The autocracy never
-gave it a moment's consideration. The last Tsar's
-idea of labour reform was to abolish good vodka, and
-he lost his life. The officer class, that forms so large
-a proportion of Russian life, never gave the subject
-five minutes' consideration. There is not a single
-general labour law upon the statute book of Russia,
-and the horror of it is that those who have hitherto
-pretended to lead the Russian workman refuse to
-demand laws to protect their labour. They believe
-that "law" is the last thing that a workman robbed
-of the most elemental rights should think about;
-that the only way for a workman to obtain rights
-is to abolish all "law." And this they have done
-with a vengeance! The professional Russian labour
-leader is an anarchist and nothing else, and in
-Bolshevism he has given a glimpse of his policy in
-practice.
-</p>
-<p>
-This, then, was the problem with which we had
-to deal, and with only a few weeks at our disposal.
-To the Russian workman it was a social question; to
-us it was both social and military. Finally, General
-Knox asked me to undertake a pacific propaganda
-along the railway to see if it were possible to persuade
-the workmen to keep at work and give the best service
-possible to their country to secure the restoration of
-order. I came to the conclusion that if anything
-could be done to give a more staple and practical
-outlook to the Russian labour mind it was well worth
-trying to accomplish it.
-</p>
-<p>
-At the outset I was faced with the difficulty of
-not being in a position to offer anything definite to
-the workmen in return for their willingness to assist
-the combatant branch of the Russian service in its
-new crusade against anarchy. With nothing to offer
-it seemed hopeless to ask for so much. The only man
-who could pledge the Government was the Supreme
-Governor himself, so I wrote to him as follows:
-</p>
-<blockquote><p>
-[Copy.]
-</p>
-<p>
-OMSK, SIBERIA.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>4th February</i>, 1919.
-</p>
-<p>
-To His High Excellency, Admiral Koltchak,
-Supreme Governor.
-</p>
-<p>
-Sir,&mdash;I have been requested by Major-General Knox,
-Chief of the British Military Mission, Siberia, to undertake
-a tour of the railway works along the Siberian
-Railway to address the workmen, and appeal to them
-as a British Labour representative to give their best
-service to the Russian State during the present and
-coming military operations, and to join no strike movement,
-or do anything to hamper the transport of men
-and supplies until the military operations against the
-enemy are completed.
-</p>
-<p>
-I have pointed out to General Knox that, while I am
-quite willing to undertake this mission to the railway
-workmen, I fear it will be quite useless unless I can promise,
-on behalf of the Russian Government, some improvement
-in their condition.
-</p>
-<p>
-1. For instance, I am informed that some of the
-railway and other Government workmen have not received
-any wages upon which to keep themselves and
-their families, for in some cases many weeks, and in
-other cases months. If this is true, it is impossible to
-expect workmen to be satisfied, and the wonder would
-be that they agree to work as well as they do.
-</p>
-<p>
-It would be necessary for me to be able to promise
-that such things would be rectified, and wages paid
-regularly in future.
-</p>
-<p>
-2. There are many things absent in Russia which
-industrial communities like England find necessary
-elements for industrial peace. I admit that very little
-constructional reform work can be executed during
-the present disturbed condition of the country, but it
-would help immensely if I could tell the workmen that
-I had the authority of the Russian Government that
-directly order had been restored, laws for the protection
-and help of the Russian workmen and their organisations,
-on the lines of those already working so effectively
-in England, would be adopted by the Russian Government.
-</p>
-<p>
-If I could get something definite from Your High
-Excellency upon these points, I believe it would do
-much to help in the work for the pacification of the
-labouring classes of Russia, and greatly strengthen Your
-Excellency's hold upon the hearts of the Russian people.
-</p>
-<center>
-(Signed) JOHN WARD.
-</center>
-<p>
-(<i>Lt.-Colonel, M.P., C.M.G., Commanding 25th Bn.
-Middlesex Regiment</i>.)
-</p></blockquote>
-<blockquote><p>
-[COPY.]
-</p>
-<p>
-OMSK.
-</p>
-<p>
-<i>February 5th</i>, 1919.
-</p>
-<p>
-SIR,&mdash;In reply to your letter of February 4th, I wish
-to inform you that I have learned with the greatest
-satisfaction that you are willing to undertake the important
-mission of addressing the workmen of our railways
-and calling them to give their best service to the
-cause of Russia in this crucial moment of our national
-existence.
-</p>
-<p>
-The two questions which you have raised in your
-letter should not be left without a prompt answer, and
-I therefore would like to bring to your knowledge the
-following:&mdash;
-</p>
-<p>
-1. The imperative necessity of orderly and regular
-payment of wages to the workmen has been the object
-of my personal anxiety, and pressing measures in that
-direction have been urged by the Government. The
-railways being considered by us just as important as
-the army, you will understand that everything in its
-power will be done by our Government to help the
-threatening situation in that respect.
-</p>
-<p>
-2. As for the second question which you have mentioned
-in your letter, I venture to assure you that the
-Government has already stated in its official programme
-that the workmen will find protection and help in the
-laws which shall be enforced and have to secure their
-organisation on lines similar to those of democratic states
-in Europe. The Government has actually a special
-Department of Labour which is preparing the future
-legislation on this question, following the general course
-of constructive reform work which I hope to be able
-to pursue with all the energy and vigour that the military
-situation will permit.
-</p>
-<p>
-I take this opportunity to renew the expression of
-my profound appreciation of the interest you take in
-our situation and of the valuable assistance you so generously
-offer in this most important matter of pacification
-of the labouring classes in Russia.
-</p>
-<p>
-Yours sincerely,
-</p>
-<p>
-(Signed) A. KOLTCHAK.
-</p>
-<p>
-Lt.-Colonel JOHN WARD, M.P., C.M.G.,
-<i>Commanding 25th Bn. Middlesex Regiment</i>.
-</p></blockquote>
-<p>
-This is believed to be the first correspondence
-ever conducted by the head of any Russian Government
-upon a purely labour subject. It shows that in
-supporting Admiral Koltchak we had at least this
-fact to recommend our policy: that he was a democrat,
-and anxious that his country should be in
-labour matters amongst the first flight of nations.
-</p>
-<p>
-The question now to be solved was: What attitude
-would the anarchist adopt to this new evangelism?
-</p>
-<p>
-I was ready to start on my journey when there
-began such a blizzard as is occasionally described in
-the literature of Polar exploration. For forty-eight
-hours from the south came a furious gale. It was
-not too cold, only about twenty degrees of actual
-frost, but with the wind came blinding snow&mdash;not
-snow such as we see in England, but fine snow, like
-white dust. It beat on your face, found its way
-between the flaps of your head-covers, where it
-thawed and ran down your neck and chest and
-saturated your underwear. It smashed straight on
-to your eyeballs, and froze in cakes to your eyelashes
-and cheeks, so that in five or ten minutes you were
-blind and unable to find your way or move in any
-direction. All sentries had to be withdrawn and
-sent to the nearest shelter, for it was impossible to
-locate oneself or see a building till you blundered up
-against it. A note in my diary records that "a
-guard of eighteen Russians and one officer walked
-away from their post and have not been seen since,
-and six days have passed." Roofs were torn off the
-houses, and the strongest buildings rocked in a most
-alarming manner. The snow piled itself up against
-the houses till it covered the windows on the ground
-floors and half-way up those of the second. This
-southern gale took twenty-four hours in which to blow
-itself out, and a four days' calm followed, during
-which the snow was cleared from the railway and
-traffic resumed. The next startler was a message
-from Irkutsk stating that a terrific gale was breaking
-down from the north&mdash;a recoil from the one just
-described&mdash;accompanied with sixty degrees of actual
-frost, making it impossible to live out of doors. This
-storm struck Omsk on February 20, and no words
-can describe the complete obliteration of man and all
-his works accomplished by such a gale. Nothing
-can live in the intense cold created by such a wind.
-Hence movement and life cease, and King Frost has
-the whole field to himself. In a few hours the earth
-is levelled; all the indications remaining of the
-ordinary log dwellings are a few snow-banks with
-a row of dark posts from which smoke is emitted,
-showing that there are human habitations underneath.
-By February 22 this storm had worked itself
-out and we were able to proceed.
-</p>
-<p>
-The influence of the Koltchak Government could
-be seen in the orderly management of affairs connected
-with the railway and supplies generally. Not
-till we reached Kameragh could we observe any sign
-that there still remained unextinguished embers of
-the social inferno through which the country had
-passed. At this point the line was guarded by a
-strong detachment of troops quartered in trucks on
-the siding. The officer in command informed me
-that an attack by revolters had been made on the
-line at this point, who had held up the traffic for
-some hours, but had been driven off before any
-permanent injury was accomplished. The revolters
-did not wait after the attack, but set fire to the station
-and departed. He suggested that it might be as
-well to be ready for sniping, and for worse things,
-should accident force the train to come to a
-standstill between here and Krasnoyarsk. We
-arrived at the latter place, however, without incident
-on February 25.
-</p>
-<p>
-Krasnoyarsk is a fairly large town on the River
-Yenesei. The fine bridge over the river is the point
-to which the eyes of the revolters are constantly
-directed. The garrison was composed of one company
-of the 25th Middlesex Regiment, an Italian
-battalion recently formed from amongst the Italian
-prisoners of war and armed by the British, about
-four hundred Cossacks, and a company of Czechs
-belonging to the 10th Regiment, who arrived that
-morning. There were numbers of Bolsheviks inhabiting
-an elevated part of the town. These met on
-the old Russian New Year's Day and passed a resolution
-that it was necessary to execute all army officers
-wherever they might be found isolated from their
-comrades. The army chiefs replied by ordering all
-guns to be trained on the Bolshevik part of the town
-and one round of shell from each of the eight guns
-to be planted in the Bolshevik quarters for every
-officer murdered. No officers had been murdered
-up to that time. A party of Serbians who had been
-armed to assist in protecting the inhabitants were
-caught selling arms and ammunition to the Bolsheviks;
-they were surrounded in the middle of the
-night and disarmed, one Cossack being killed. The
-25th were "standing to" during this operation in
-case their assistance was required.
-</p>
-<p>
-We started for Irkutsk on the 25th, having been
-warned that the road to Kansk was practically
-dominated by the revolters. About 8 P.M. we
-arrived at the headquarters of General Affinasiaff,
-who came into my car and gave a minute description
-of the situation. The enemy forces numbered about
-8,000, and those of the Russian Government about
-3,000. For about one hundred versts the Russian
-forces, in small detachments, were allowing themselves
-to be pinned to the railway.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was very interesting to hear a clear statement
-as to the cause of the revolt and to find that the chief
-point of the grievances set forth in the revolters' own
-proclamations. In great part these opponents of
-the Government consist of rich peasants, who already
-possessing land which in many cases was equal in
-extent to the County of Rutland, had in 1917, under
-the order of Lenin and Trotsky, taken forcible
-possession of the furniture, horses, farmhouses, carts,
-carriages, land, etc., of the big landholders, who
-with their families had been massacred by these same
-rich peasants.
-</p>
-<p>
-The next important element among the revolters
-were the escaped prisoners of the old r&eacute;gime, who,
-being released by the Bolsheviks, had taken to the
-forest to avoid recapture&mdash;probably the wildest and
-most savage set of men in the world. They were
-illicitly fed and protected by the aforementioned
-wealthy peasants with a view, firstly, to buy off their
-hostility to themselves, and, secondly, to secure their
-help to resist the civil officers of the new Government
-who were appointed to inquire into the
-methods by which these wealthy peasants became
-possessed of their dead neighbours' lands and
-properties; thirdly, to enable these wealthy peasants
-to resist the payment of taxes, not only those that
-were in arrears, but any that would become due in
-the future. This was the point dealt with in their
-proclamation, wherein it was stated that inasmuch
-as it was the people who lived in the towns that
-forced the revolution, therefore it was unjust to ask
-the peasants to pay for the damage done by those in
-the towns; further, that it was the people in the
-towns who kept on fighting one another, and until
-they had finished their quarrelling the peasants
-would not pay any taxes or do anything to help
-the Government; fourthly, this unholy partnership
-enabled the wealthy peasants to resist the mobilisation
-ordered by the Koltchak Government for the same
-reasons.
-</p>
-<p>
-As I have already pointed out, every minor
-Government and general, including General Denikin,
-made haste to show their submission to Omsk when
-Admiral Koltchak assumed authority, the only
-exception being Colonel Semianoff. He, it was
-known, was accepting a regular subsidy from the
-Japanese to enable them to resist the extension of
-the admiral's power towards Vladivostok, and it was
-under their instructions and protection Semianoff
-refused to recognise the authority of the Omsk
-Government and issued insolent manifestos against
-the Supreme Governor. The peasants inhabiting the
-western side of the Baikal seized upon this fact and
-said in their proclamations that inasmuch as Colonel
-Semianoff had refused to allow Koltchak's orders to
-operate on the east side, and was supported therein
-by one of the Allies, there was every reason why they
-should do the same on the west side of the lake. It
-shows what a tremendous influence Japan had either
-to create order or to make order impossible. She
-and Semianoff between them provided these revolters
-with just the argument they needed. By so acting
-Japan created and extended the area of anarchy and
-made the task of her Allies and Koltchak more
-difficult than it might otherwise have been.
-</p>
-<p>
-This may not be a very logical position for the
-peasants to have taken up, but anyone who knows
-anything about Russia will see that it fitted their
-psychology to a fraction. These people are more
-ignorant than our worst educated agricultural
-labourers. They own and live on huge tracts of land,
-in most cases as large as a great English estate.
-Their method of living is many stages below that
-of our landless farm labourer. Their ignorance is
-colossal, their cupidity and cunning the envy of the
-Armenians, who openly confess that in a bargain the
-Russian peasant beats the Jew to a frazzle. The
-order of the Soviet Government to the peasants to
-take possession of the landowners' estates and property
-was the trump card which Lenin and Trotsky
-played to secure immunity in the provinces while
-they massacred and robbed the property owners in
-the towns. These men, who are the natural enemies
-of all political progress and social reform, and who
-should have exercised a steadying effect upon the
-empty idealism of the professional classes, were too
-busy robbing their neighbours to be able to exert any
-influence upon the major events of the revolution.
-While perfectly willing to use the revolution&mdash;whose
-principles they abhorred&mdash;for their own personal
-aggrandisement, this wealthy peasantry are now
-equally unwilling to render the slightest help in the
-restoration of order.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was with profound interest that I read these
-documents, which entirely exploded the English
-legend of the landless Russian peasant pining for a
-few acres of land.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Irkutsk and proceeded to investigate
-the situation. When we passed here four months
-before it was the centre of Siberian life; official
-indolence had, however, again reduced its status to
-that of a third- or fourth-rate town.
-</p>
-<p>
-I was anxious to know how the new Rumanian
-Division under French auspices was progressing.
-Fourteen thousand rifles that could be ill afforded
-from the front had been left here some six weeks
-previous by one of our British supply trains. I found
-that the local Russian military authorities knew
-nothing, nor had they ever been consulted about it.
-They knew that not more than three thousand
-Rumanians lived in the district, and these had mostly
-embraced the opinions of the Bolsheviks. I made
-inquiries through the usual English channels, but they
-were equally uninformed. A visit to the Russian
-railway department elicited the fact that a French
-officer had signed the necessary orders for the trucks
-containing the rifles to remain at Irkutsk, that three
-thousand rifles had so far been unloaded, and that
-there was a French proposal to send the remainder to
-Tomsk, where it was hoped they might be got rid
-of amongst some Serbian bands with Bolshevik
-tendencies. This may or may not represent all the
-facts, but it indicates the unmistakable necessity
-that English help shall be given only by English
-hands.
-</p>
-<p>
-Russian officers were beginning to recover their
-old characteristics, and nightly filled the entertainment
-halls and restaurants and led the gaieties
-of the town. Very little thought was given to
-the grim struggle their half-clad comrades were
-waging with the forces of anarchy along the Ural
-mountains.
-</p>
-<p>
-British Consul Nash kindly entertained Colonel
-and Madame Frank and myself, and generally helped
-me in the organisation of this end of my campaign.
-He did not think much of my objective, but he helped
-all the same.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH17"><!-- CH17 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XVII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-MY CAMPAIGN
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-I held my first meeting in the repairing shop at
-Irkutsk at 3 P.M., March 4. It was a big crowd of
-working men and women. The Russian women work
-on the railways in such employments as carriage and
-wagon cleaners, snow and ice shovellers, and even
-repairing gangs on different sections of the line have
-a sprinkling of the fair sex.
-</p>
-<p>
-This audience listened to an explanation of the
-rise of the trade union movement in England with
-the greatest attention. The large majority accepted
-the proposition I tried to expound, that no question
-could be settled by the disputants merely killing each
-other off; but there were present about half a dozen
-members of the International World Workers,
-slouch-hatted, unshaven, and exactly true to type as
-seen at meetings in East London, Liverpool or
-Glasgow. These were not workmen employed on the
-railway; one kept a barber's shop, one was a teacher,
-one a Russian doctor, and one a Russian solicitor;
-but they were the officials of the only form of union
-that exists in Russian Siberia, a revolutionary circle
-composed of the very worst elements in the towns,
-bound together by one common purpose, the spoliation
-and assassination of every decent man, whether
-bourgeois or workman, who refuses to support a
-policy of anarchy. These five or six determined
-ruffians formed a kind of Blood Brotherhood, and
-behind a veil of anonymity issued mandates to, and
-in the name of, the Russian workmen, which, backed
-up by a system of murderous terrorism, the workmen
-were powerless to resist. It was quite a usual thing
-to find each morning dead men of all classes in the
-streets who had been murdered during the night by
-members of these circles. There was no system of
-law or police; every vestige of justice was uprooted,
-and these crimes went unpunished. The irony of it
-was that these acts were avowedly done in the interest
-of progress and reform and in the sacred name of
-Labour!
-</p>
-<p>
-The Irkutsk Circle asked questions which were
-not calculated to elicit a single fact connected with
-labour, either in Russia or England, but were just
-the usual clap-trap monkey business, such as:
-</p>
-<p>
-"Why should we be satisfied with half, when we
-have the bourgeoisie down and can take all?"
-</p>
-<p>
-"Why should we allow law to be re-established,
-which was always used by the few to rob the many?"
-</p>
-<p>
-"Surely it is less unjust to allow the many to
-continue to rob the few?"
-</p>
-<p>
-"In destroying the landlord and capitalist are
-not the Russian proletariat merely taking back its
-own property?"
-</p>
-<p>
-"Is it not a fact that the more systematically and
-effectively we annihilate the bourgeois and landlord
-class, and all the institutions belonging to them, the
-easier it will be to erect the new order?"
-</p>
-<p>
-These are all very subtle and difficult to answer
-briefly at a meeting of Russian workmen, not one of
-whom can read or write. It was wonderful foresight
-which placed Madame Frank, the editress of the
-<i>Russian Army</i>, as correspondent for this labour
-mission. She fastened on to each question in turn
-and gave instance after instance of how the suggestions
-they contained had worked out in practice, to
-the total destruction of all that was good and honourable
-in Russia. Then with magnificent play on the
-words "the new order" in the last question, she drew
-a picture of this <i>new order</i> as exhibited in practice in
-that part of Russia under Bolshevik control. The
-influence of this little lady upon these simple Russian
-workmen was really remarkable. It was quite
-evident that the workmen would prefer the old r&eacute;gime
-to the new if Bolshevik tyranny is the only possible
-outcome of the new order.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our next stop was Imokentievskaya, where the
-head of the works looked as though he would have
-preferred execution rather than take part in a workmen's
-meeting. The professionals had been left
-behind, and the audience was composed entirely of
-the railway workers. They presented many characteristics
-of the average English workmen and hungrily
-received information relating to the methods of the
-best organised English trade unions. They had no
-idea of the things we had done and the progress we
-had made in bettering the working conditions of
-labour generally. Their professional leaders had disposed
-of the British movement by describing our
-organisation as "bourgeois trade unions," and always
-referred to our trade union activities as though we
-were organised and internally managed by the
-capitalist. They were surprised to learn that we were
-the only exclusively working-class organisation in the
-world; that the officials must have worked at the trade
-whose society they managed; that we did not, like
-themselves, allow doctors, lawyers, and mere politicians
-to manage our affairs, but insisted upon having
-our trade unions in our own hands. One real old
-"Russky" engine-driver asked: "If the English
-workmen found it so advantageous to keep their
-organisations exclusively working-class, why did not
-the Germans do the same?" I answered, "When a
-movement starts wrong it is very difficult to put it
-right; that outsiders all over the world struggle for
-a place in the trade unions, and if once they get in
-they either break themselves or the union rather than
-get out, and those who can't get in hang on outside
-like limpets and refuse to be kicked off; that the
-Russian workmen in organising their trade unions
-must start right and keep them free of every element
-except the working class."
-</p>
-<p>
-We stopped at Zema, the scene of a sharp encounter
-with armed strikers a few months previous.
-The meeting in the works was a great success. It
-was remarkable to find that though in my previous
-meeting with these workmen I took the attitude of
-a military dictator, they showed no resentment and
-had rigidly observed the agreement which had been
-entered into at the point of the bayonet. They were
-delighted to find that I, too, had performed my part
-of the contract in not forgetting their interests when
-opportunity presented itself.
-</p>
-<p>
-Nesniodinsk was not on my list, but a special
-request having been presented for me to address the
-workmen there, we made the necessary arrangements
-and visited this place on Sunday, March 8. It was
-perhaps the largest meeting held up to that point.
-The official heads had caused a special platform to
-be erected in a huge engine-repairing shop, and
-themselves took the greatest interest in the whole
-proceeding. It was a very harassing business, but if
-as an outcome the seed of orderly progress was sown,
-the effort was entirely worth while.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our carriage was fastened to the rear of a slow-moving
-train going west, and we did not arrive at
-Kansk till the evening of the 10th.
-</p>
-<p>
-Kansk is the most easterly point of the area of
-revolt and a fairly large depot for the railway. Some
-interesting facts about the revolt were picked up from
-the railway officials. The revolt began suddenly on
-December 26, at the same time that it broke out in
-Omsk and Kolumsino, and at first was aimed at the
-possession of the railway. The military guard at
-Kansk consisted of one officer and fifty men. The
-officer posted his sentries at different points some
-distance away, and the soldiers who acted as his
-personal guard awoke to find their sleeping-place and
-arms in the possession of half a dozen armed men.
-The marauders shouted "Your officer is dead," and
-ordered the men to lie still while they removed the
-rifles. This done, they proceeded to the quarters of
-the officer, who, finding his men already disarmed,
-bolted without firing a shot. The total strength of
-the Bolsheviks was fifteen men, and these fifteen held
-the station and a town of over five thousand inhabitants
-up to ransom for twenty-six hours! At the end
-of that time a squadron of Cossacks approached, and
-the Bolsheviks left, taking with them about 80,000
-roubles belonging to the railway and post office.
-During their short stay they committed all sorts of
-barbarities. They murdered the railway school-mistress
-and tortured her husband by stripping him
-and pouring cold water over his naked body, finally
-driving him out into the snow, where he quickly froze
-to death. The charge against their two victims in
-this case was that they, by their calling, were teaching
-the youth of Russia to become young <i>bourgeoisie</i>,
-instead of leaving all men and women equal as nature
-intended.
-</p>
-<p>
-This garden of autocracy grows some strange
-plants. These banditti, known in England as Bolsheviks,
-are entrenched not more than 60 versts
-distant, protected from Koltchak's vengeance by the
-deep snows of the Siberian winter, which make it
-impossible to operate away from the railway.
-</p>
-<p>
-We held a splendid meeting of the workmen in
-the enormous workshop, remarkable for the quiet
-enthusiasm and the evident hope of better times. It
-was quite clear to me that the Russian workmen
-were tired of the Revolution. They were promised
-an Eldorado and realised Hell instead. They merely
-wanted to be shown a way out of the social nightmare.
-They passed a vote of thanks to me and the English
-workmen for whom I spoke.
-</p>
-<p>
-We started for Krasnoyarsk on the 12th, and
-before long found it necessary to get the machine
-guns and hospital equipment ready for instant use.
-After standing to arms all night we arrived, at midday
-on the 13th, at Klukvinah, the Russian Headquarters,
-and discovered that the Government forces
-had driven the enemy back from the railway, and
-that the remainder of our journey to Krasnoyarsk
-would be practically safe. We arrived about
-9.15 P.M. on Wednesday, the 13th.
-</p>
-<p>
-Colonel Frank, Madame Frank, myself and the
-Czech interpreter, Vladimir, were passing through
-the station on our return from the town about 12.30
-midnight, when a rather exciting incident occurred.
-The station commandant approached Colonel Frank
-and appealed to him for help to send home a party
-of Serbian soldiers who had procured drink without
-payment at the point of their swords and revolvers,
-and had stripped a young woman passenger and exposed
-her for their orgies. Other bestial things were
-alleged against them, but no one had so far dared to
-interfere to restore order. After a moment's consideration
-Colonel Frank decided to go into the buffet
-and ask them to go quietly home, and if they refused,
-to secure force to arrest and remove them. I
-naturally followed.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was a big stone-floored room with the door at
-one end and a long bar at the other. The alleged
-Serbian soldiers were seated in a cluster on the right
-in front of the bar at the far end of the room.
-Colonel Frank advanced to them and said, "Brothers,
-you have had enough to drink, you are keeping all the
-attendants from their proper rest; it is time for you
-to go home." It was like an electric shock. About
-a dozen of the ruffians sprang to their feet hurling
-every possible Slavonic epithet at this brave Russian
-officer who was merely performing a public duty.
-One dark-visaged Serb cavalryman drew his sword and
-tried a lunge at the colonel across the table, and while
-the colonel watched this infuriated aborigine a Serbian
-officer close behind Frank tore the epaulette from the
-colonel's uniform and trampled it underfoot, shouting,
-"Death to this officer of the old r&eacute;gime!"
-</p>
-<p>
-I picked up the epaulette just as the other Serb,
-sword in one hand and revolver in the other, edged
-round the tables to the centre of the room for his
-attack upon my liaison officer. I did not think of
-drawing my own weapon, and so far it was man to
-man. Colonel Frank kept his eye fixed upon his
-antagonist, and now advanced towards him, ordering
-him to put down his arms and leave the room. But
-the Serb was out for blood and made a slash at the
-<i>polkovnika's</i> head, the full force of which he evaded
-by ducking, though the sword severed the chin strap
-and button of his cap and carved its way through the
-thick band before it glanced up off the skull, helped by
-his right hand, which had been raised to turn the blow.
-At the same instant Colonel Frank fired point blank
-at the man's face; the bullet entered the open mouth
-and came out of the cheek, which merely infuriated
-the man more. Up to this moment the man had only
-used his sword, but now he began to raise his revolver.
-Before he could raise it hip high, however, the
-colonel shot him through the heart. Though the
-revolver dropped from his helpless hand, he crouched
-for one instant and sprang, clutching at the colonel's
-face, while four or five of his fellow Serbs attacked
-the colonel from behind. The foremost of these
-ruffians, a Serbian officer, fired at the back of the
-colonel's head and missed, but his second shot struck
-Colonel Frank on the left temple at the moment his
-real assailant had made his death spring, and down
-they both went, apparently dead, the Serbian on top.
-The other Serbs sprang forward to finish the Russian
-officer with the usual ugly dagger which Serbian
-robbers always carry. The body of the dead Serb,
-however, formed a complete shield, and this, coupled
-with the fact that we all thought the colonel dead,
-saved him from mutilation.
-</p>
-<p>
-I was not quite an idle spectator, but the fact
-that at the critical moment I discovered I had
-no weapon except for my cane reduced me to helplessness
-so far as dealing with this gang of murderers
-was concerned. Directly the fight began every
-Russian, including the armed militiaman who was
-supposed to keep order at the station, bolted from
-the room, leaving the women and children to look
-after themselves. Madame Frank went to the assistance
-of her husband and covered him as only a woman
-can, and as she grasped her husband's revolver the
-Serbs slunk back a pace, while I lifted his head and
-signed to the Serb officer who had fired at the colonel
-from behind to lift the dead Serb off the colonel's
-body. This he did and then proposed to the band
-surrounding us that they should kill us all three.
-Their knives glistened and a small automatic revolver
-was making a bee line for me, when a voice like the
-growl of a bear came from the direction of the door.
-The whole band instantly put up their weapons. I
-had stood up to receive my fate, and over the heads
-of our would-be murderers I saw a tall dark-bearded
-stage villain in a long black overcoat which reached
-to the floor, stalk across to the group. He looked at
-the body of the dead Serb and then at the prostrate
-Russian officer who at that instant began to show
-signs of returning consciousness. "Ah! Oh!
-Russky polkovnik," he roared, drawing his revolver.
-"Our dead brother demands blood."
-</p>
-<p>
-I could not stand and see a wounded friend
-murdered before my eyes, not even in this land of
-blood. I stepped over both bodies and placed myself
-between this monster and his victim. I raised both
-hands and pushed him back, saying, "I am Anglisky
-polkovnik, and will not allow you to murder the
-wounded Russian officer." He answered that he
-was "Serbian polkovnik," and I said "Come into
-the other room," and by strategy got him away. His
-friends, however, told him something which sent him
-back quickly to finish his job, but as he re-entered
-the buffet he encountered about a dozen British and
-Czech soldiers with fixed bayonets, and it was not so
-difficult now to convince him that it was not quite
-good form to murder a wounded man.
-</p>
-<p>
-We carried the Russian colonel to the British
-hospital, and as the leader of the Serbs had declared
-a blood feud, extra guards were placed on my wagon
-and the hospital. These ruffians were armed from
-our supplies under the direction of French officers.
-Directly the Russian military authorities began their
-investigations to bring this band to justice they,
-through the Czech commander, received orders from
-General Ganin, the French Allied commander, to
-move to Novo Nikoliosk out of Russian jurisdiction.
-</p>
-<p>
-It is not very clear at present why the French
-gave their protection to these and similar disturbing
-elements in Siberia. Perhaps the reason will show
-itself later.
-</p>
-<p>
-Krasnoyarsk is a huge railway depot with building
-and repairing shops employing about 3,000 workmen.
-To get at both shifts it was necessary to hold two
-meetings, one for the inside and the other for the
-outside staff. The first was a very silent, interested
-crowd, who listened to my address as though they
-understood its meaning and purport. The gallant
-"Russky" <i>polkovnika</i> with bandaged head and hand
-translated the first part, Madame Frank the second.
-The impression created by this brave woman, who had
-herself commanded a company in the trenches before
-Kerensky destroyed the army, was very great. There
-was no mistaking the effect of her words as these
-oil-stained workmen raised their <i>papahas</i> to the message
-from the English trade unionists which she
-delivered.
-</p>
-<p>
-This town was the centre of international intrigue.
-There was an Italian battalion about 1,500 strong,
-the Czech 12th Regiment of about 200, and the
-British Middlesex Regiment, 220. To maintain their
-prestige the French were arming the Lett revolters
-as fast as the Russian General Affinasiaff could defeat
-and disarm them. The Italian soldiers were in very
-bad favour with the inhabitants and the local Russian
-civil and military authorities. Robberies and assaults
-were of almost daily occurrence, and at last the
-authorities made definite official complaints to the
-Allied Headquarters and asked that the Italian
-soldiers should either be kept under proper discipline
-or removed from the country. The main complaint,
-however, of the Russian officials was based on the
-open hostility of the Allied officers led by the senior
-of them to everything Russian.
-</p>
-<p>
-It is such an easy matter to make friends with the
-Russian people that this attitude of her alleged helpers
-was very saddening. When I landed at "Vlady"
-my orders were to remember that we English had
-come as friends to help Russia on to her feet, and I
-always tried to keep that in mind. I often wondered
-what instructions could have been given to my Allied
-colleagues.
-</p>
-<p>
-The next call was at Bogotol, where, under
-instructions from Consul Peacock, I inquired into
-the imprisonment of an Australian subject named
-Savinoff. The authorities produced the <i>dossier</i> of his
-case, which when translated proved him to be a
-Bolshevik leader and second in command of an armed
-band that had attempted to murder the local authorities.
-His trial took place shortly after, with that of
-Titoff, his chief, who was one of the Central Committee
-of the Baltic Fleet who ordered the murder
-of hundreds of the naval officers of the old r&eacute;gime.
-</p>
-<p>
-The meeting maintained the usual standard of
-interest, and the chief of the works, whose face
-bore traces of the tortures inflicted upon him under
-Bolshevik rule, was delighted with the new hope we
-had brought to himself and his workmen.
-</p>
-<p>
-Our next meeting was at Taiga, and it was quite
-a great event. A special platform had been erected
-in the big workshop, around which swarmed nearly
-two thousand workmen. The people looked upon
-the meeting as the new birth of Russian life. No
-meeting had been held for two years, except the
-underground gatherings of conspirators. I appealed
-to the men to discard disorder and take a hand in
-the orderly reconstruction of the new Russian State,
-in which they were now guaranteed a place. Madame
-Frank's translation made a profound impression upon
-these toil-worn men and women. It was clear that
-the people were tired of the horrors of revolution and
-yearned for peace and quiet.
-</p>
-<p>
-I here interviewed General Knox, who was on
-his way to Omsk on important matters which had
-been brought to my notice.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Novo Nikoliosk on the morning of
-the 23rd, and proceeded to make arrangements for
-the meeting to be held on the same day. I visited
-the various commands, as usual, and held long consultations
-with General Zochinko, from whom I
-gathered much information as to the situation in this
-important district. It was interesting to hear some
-news of our old friend, the <i>Voidavoda</i> of the Serbian
-band. He and his gang had arrived from his excursion
-to Krasnoyarsk on the day that a banquet was
-held by the newly-formed Polish regiment. As chief
-of his band he was invited, and delivered an oration
-of a particularly patriotic character which had won
-all Polish hearts. He was in a great hurry to get
-away next morning, fearing that we were following
-behind. He said nothing about our encounter, and
-the Russian officials became suspicious of his anxiety
-to get away. They brought a squad of soldiers to
-examine his trucks, and found an enormous amount
-of loot from Krasnoyarsk, as well as contraband goods
-upon which he had to pay duty to the amount of
-130,000 roubles. Having squeezed this toll out of
-the "bounder," they gave him a free way to
-Ekaterinburg, where things are very scarce, and
-where he would be able to sell out at a good figure.
-</p>
-<p>
-General Zochinko told us some funny stories
-about the French Staff's attempt to form a powerful
-counter force to Bolshevism from the German and
-Austrian war prisoners. In Novo Nikoliosk the
-Allied Commander, General Ganin, had released
-some hundreds of Austrian and German Poles from
-the prison camps and formed them into regiments.
-In his haste to get these units complete he forgot to
-inquire into the antecedents of the officers chosen
-to command them. So careless, in fact, were the
-French that the Russian authorities awoke one morning
-to find one of their most dangerous prisoners, a
-well-known German officer spy, von Budburg, in full
-command of this alleged Allied force. Von Budburg
-had, like a true patriot, taken care to choose his subordinates
-from men of the same type as himself.
-</p>
-<p>
-Later on the French Staff became aware of the
-nature of their handiwork and sought help and advice
-from the Russian military authorities about disarming
-their new German Legion. A sudden descent on
-their quarters by another Polish unit, with some new
-Russian units standing by to render help if necessary,
-ended in these French prot&eacute;g&eacute;s being disarmed
-and got back safely to their prison camp.
-</p>
-<p>
-Allied help to Russia is like a jig-saw puzzle, a
-mystery even to the man who devised it. A straight-forward
-recognition of the Omsk Government would
-have been an honest hand for honest work, but where
-would Allied diplomacy have come in? Diplomacy
-is only necessary when there are ulterior objects than
-mere plain, unambiguous assistance to a helpless
-friend. What are these hidden objects? The Allies
-had better be cautious how they proceed in the
-diagnosis and dismemberment of this great people or
-they may find themselves on the operating table with
-this giant holding the knife. In spite of the Biblical
-legend I prefer England to be a pal with Goliath!
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Barabinsk on the morning of
-March 26, and after arrangements for the meeting
-were completed, took a walk round the market. A
-Russian market is a thing of joy and colour. There
-are no buildings: just a huge space in the centre of
-the town where thousands of shaggy, ice-covered
-horses stand each with an ice-covered sledge. The
-peasants, men and women, in huge fur coats which
-reach to the snow-covered ground, harmonise perfectly
-with the cattle they control. Their fur coats form a
-study in colour&mdash;patchwork coats from calfskins
-which combine every shade from white to rusty red;
-goatskins, from long straight black to white; curly
-bearskins from black to brown and brown to polar
-white; wealthy peasant women, with beautiful red
-fox furs hiding neck and face, their eyes glistening
-through the apertures which served the same purpose
-for the first and original tenant. The sledges contain
-everything&mdash;wheat, oats, potatoes, onions, rough
-leaf tobacco, jars of cream, frozen blocks of milk,
-scores of different types of frozen fresh-water fish
-from sturgeon to bream, frozen meats of every conceivable
-description, furs&mdash;in fact, the finest collection
-of human necessities to be found in any one place in
-the world. Prices were very high for home produce
-and simply absurd for foreign or distant productions.
-Colonel Frank was in need of a small safety pin (six
-a penny at home), and found that the price was seven
-roubles&mdash;14s. 3-1/2d. old money, and 3s. 6d. at the rate
-at which the British Army are paid. Everything else
-was in proportion.
-</p>
-<p>
-A very fine meeting was held in the works, and
-much good done in securing the confidence of the
-workmen in the efforts of the Supreme Governor,
-Admiral Koltchak, to create order out of chaos.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Omsk on the morning of the 28th,
-and on the 29th I gave a lengthy report to Admiral
-Koltchak, who expressed his hearty thanks and impressed
-upon me the necessity of continuing my
-journey to the Urals. He had received from the
-official heads of departments reports stating that the
-effect of my mission had been to improve the general
-attitude of the workmen all round. And he was most
-anxious that this effort to enlist the workmen's
-interest in an ordered State should be pushed forward
-with vigour.
-</p>
-<p>
-A further discussion upon general affairs, especially
-the policy of the French command in Siberia,
-took us through tea. I have absolute confidence in
-the character of the admiral, but the pigmies by whom
-he is surrounded are so many drags on the wheels of
-State. There is not one that I would trust to manage
-a whelk-stall. They have no idea of the duty of a
-statesman. Little pettifogging personal equations
-and jobs occupy the whole of their time, except when
-they are engaged upon the congenial task of trying to
-thwart the Supreme Governor. The patriotism of
-the front officers and soldiers, and the medieval
-chivalry of the Cossack are the only things left upon
-which to rebuild Russia. This naturally limits the
-architectural features of the new edifice, but the
-pioneer is always limited to the material at hand.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH18"><!-- CH18 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XVIII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-OMSK RE-VISITED
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-It is quite interesting to watch the oscillation of the
-Omsk mind from one orientation to another. At
-the time I left for the East the stream of favour
-flowed strongly in the English direction. General
-Knox started on a tour of Siberia in connection
-with the formation of the new Koltchak army; Sir
-Charles Eliot went to Hong-Kong; General Bowes
-was left to deputise for General Knox, and Colonel
-Robertson for Sir Charles Eliot. In three short
-weeks every sign of British influence had disappeared.
-The English were nowhere; the favour was shared
-equally by France and Japan.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Japanese had either learned how to behave
-themselves towards the Russians or they had
-received instructions from home. During the first
-three months I was in Siberia their arrogance was
-simply sublime, but after the armistice with Germany&mdash;upon
-whose power to defeat the Allies they
-banked their all&mdash;they were a changed people, so far
-as outward appearance and conduct were concerned.
-They talked about their alliance with England, their
-friendship with Russia, their love of France. When
-the Japanese try, they can make themselves very
-agreeable; indeed, so charming that it is impossible
-to resist their advances. That was their attitude then
-to all except the Chinese, whom they hold in the
-greatest contempt, and to the Americans, whom
-they fear. With a clear field their new policy made
-great headway.
-</p>
-<p>
-The French methods are quite different. Theirs
-is a drawing-room attack, and at this sort of thing
-the ordinary Britisher cuts but a sorry figure. Hence
-the field was also pretty clear for them, and they
-made full use of their opportunities. With a judicious
-word over a cup of tea an editor who refuses a bribe
-finds his or her talents a glut on the market. A
-joke around a <i>samovar</i> reduces the rank of a particularly
-Russophile general. The glorious time
-they are having reaches its climax when you hear
-the polite condolences to the victims uttered in
-exquisite French.
-</p>
-<p>
-But Colonel Robertson had gone to "Vlady,"
-and his place had been taken by a typical Britisher
-in the person of Consul Hodgson, who took a correct
-measure of the situation, and in less than forty-eight
-hours herded the whole caboose back into their own
-compounds. It is surprising that the influence of
-one virile, definite personality can be so great, and
-it proves how necessary it is that in this seemingly
-endless turmoil only the best men should be burdened
-with the responsibility of our representation. I
-started on my mission to the Urals with absolute
-confidence that, in the absence of General Knox,
-our interests in Omsk would not suffer so long as
-they were in the hands of our senior consul.
-</p>
-<p>
-After infinite trouble with Russian official
-elements, I started on my western journey on
-April 5. The mission consisted of Colonel Frank
-(liaison officer), Madame Frank (translator), Regt-Sergt.-Major
-Gordon, in charge of an escort of
-twenty-two N.C.O.s and men, with one machine
-gun. We were now entering the district behind the
-Ural front. These towns had not long been cleared
-of the Bolsheviks, so that it was interesting to discover
-how far their ideas had gained possession of
-the minds of the people. The new Russian armies
-were rapidly pushing forward. Their progress had
-been made more general and persistent since the
-end of November, 1918, the date on which the
-Czechs finally refused to take part in the great Perm
-offensive. When they read in the English papers
-of January, 1919, how the Czech, Italian, French,
-and Allied forces had inflicted defeat upon the
-Bolsheviks at Perm, it caused a grim smile to pass
-over the faces of the Russian officers who did the
-job. Not a single Czech, Italian, French, or Allied
-soldier fired a shot after Admiral Koltchak assumed
-supreme command. There is one notable exception.
-The armoured trains from H.M.S. <i>Suffolk</i>, under the
-command of Captain Wolfe Murray, continued to
-fight along the Ufa front well into January, 1919.
-Only the intense cold and the necessity of recoupment
-and re-equipment caused them to retire to
-Omsk. The British Navy fighting on the Urals was
-the only reminder the Russian soldier had that the
-Allies of his country had not entirely deserted her.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Tumen on April 7, and held a
-fine meeting of the workmen, who seemed quite
-pleased to hear that the Bolsheviks were not likely
-to return. These workmen looked upon the Bolshevik
-rule as on some horrible nightmare. They cared
-for little else so long as you could assure them on
-this point. So ghastly was the dream from which
-they had awakened compared with the flowery
-promises held out to them that I readily believe
-"Ivan the Terrible" would have been received at
-that moment as a saviour. This was a dangerous
-feeling which I tried my best to combat, for the
-excesses of the Bolshevik r&eacute;gime have prepared the
-way&mdash;and were deliberately intended so to do&mdash;for
-a return to absolutism.
-</p>
-<p>
-We arrived at Ekaterinburg at the same time
-as General Knox arrived from Chilliyabinsk. His
-first words were congratulations on my C.B., news
-of which had just arrived. I visited Consul Preston,
-and read the evidence he and his French colleague
-had collected relative to Bolshevik outrages on the
-workmen of the district. It was too sad to think
-about. This was the place where the Tsar and his
-family were imprisoned and murdered. Of them it
-could be fairly alleged that they were responsible
-for the crimes of the old r&eacute;gime; but what crimes
-have the poor workmen and peasants committed
-that the most fiendish cruelty should be reserved for
-them? I give it up! Perhaps there is some reason
-or justification; all I can say is I have not heard it,
-neither can I imagine what it can be.
-</p>
-<p>
-I held a meeting of railway workmen and officials,
-and was surprised at the attention and earnestness
-of the audience. They hungrily devoured every
-scrap of information as to our English trade union
-organisation and work, and requested that a further
-meeting should be held next day in a great carriage
-works in the centre of the town. This proved to
-be one of the most remarkable gatherings I have
-ever attended. A fine platform had been erected at
-one end of the main workshop. A sea of faces under
-huge multi-coloured <i>papahas</i> spread over the floor,
-while every carriage was covered with human ants;
-even the beams of the building carried its human
-freight. Clearly it seemed to me that the resurrection
-of Russia had begun; the destruction of Russia
-began from the head, its re-birth is from the ground.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH19"><!-- CH19 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XIX
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-IN EUROPEAN RUSSIA
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-Nevanisk is situated just over the European
-boundary of the Urals. Before the Bolshevik came
-it was a great iron centre, one firm alone employing
-three thousand workmen. When I arrived there the
-various works were practically derelict and its vast
-collection of machinery idle. The streets were
-deserted, and it was estimated that half of its inhabitants
-had been destroyed. It was, and now it
-is not. The few remaining inhabitants were valiantly
-pulling themselves together, and if order and some
-sort of law could be established, they were confident
-that they could rebuild their life again. We talked
-to them and encouraged them to continue their
-struggle against the blight that had defiled their
-homes and their country. Their hopes seemed to
-revive from our assurance of English working-class
-sympathy. I am pleased they did not know that we
-had some people mad enough to wish to inflict similar
-wounds upon our own country.
-</p>
-<p>
-A pound of sugar cost thirty-five roubles, a pair
-of 3s. 11d. goloshes two hundred and fifty roubles,
-one pound of bread seven roubles. These were the
-things we wished to buy, and so made the discovery
-of their price; we bought bread only, as the thing
-we could not do without. Typhus was raging in
-almost every house. General Knox was inoculated,
-but I decided to run the risk. Doctors had largely
-disappeared, owing to the hatred of everybody with
-a bourgeois education.
-</p>
-<p>
-I wonder what sort of jokes or fun G.B.S. could
-make out of it. There <i>is</i> fun in it somewhere. The
-contrast between the original idea of the revolution
-and the outcome of those ideas are so grotesque in
-their realisation that it looks as though some hidden
-power were indulging in a Mephistophelian laugh at
-the expense of mankind.
-</p>
-<p>
-We next arrived at Taighill, where the same
-effects had been produced, though on a smaller scale.
-It was Palm Sunday, and the great bell of the
-cathedral was booming through the surrounding pine
-forest calling the faithful to prayer. In the square
-of the town near by a statue of Alexander II lay in
-the mud, having been thrown down by the revolutionaries.
-Quite near a white figure of a woman,
-intended to represent the Enthronement of Liberty,
-had been hurled from its recently constructed base,
-and formed the roadside seat of five or six of the
-raggedest starvelings to be found in the world. An
-inscription on Alexander's statue states that it was
-raised to commemorate his emancipation of the
-peasants from serfdom. The Bolsheviks had not
-time to write <i>their</i> inscription; but it did not matter&mdash;the
-empty houses and deserted streets were quite
-enough. By means of much elbow labour they had
-smoothed out the inscription on the statue of the
-Tsar Liberator and for the time made all things equal
-again.
-</p>
-<p>
-The meeting at Taighill was a repetition of the
-others, and we passed on to Kushva. This place had
-been badly mauled. The Bolshevik Commissar was
-evidently an anarchist pure and simple. All the
-hatred of class and creed which had generated under
-the Romanoffs found expression in this man's deeds.
-The amount of venom which he put into his administration
-and work was worthy of his cause. The effect
-of his policy, however, produced results exactly
-opposite to those he hoped for. The first evidence
-of his zeal lay upon the snow in front of the railway
-office. A huge steel safe with the door wrenched off
-and the contents missing indicated the strength of
-his principles. The official who had lost the key was
-thrown into the well near by to stimulate the memory
-of other safe-owners; but this official was not alone
-in his glory, for several railway workmen who refused
-to help rob this identical safe found a watery grave
-with their superior. Altogether over seventy people
-met their death in this well, workmen, <i>bourgeoisie</i>&mdash;all
-in one holocaust. But the majority were of
-no class; their only offence seemed to be that they
-had called themselves Social Revolutionaries. They
-have been the subject of the most bitter hatred by
-the Bolshevik leaders. The Bolshevik contention is
-that for men or women to call themselves Socialists,
-and then to hesitate to take a hand in the complete
-extermination of the bourgeois ruling classes, now
-there is a chance of doing so in Russia, is to act the
-part of poltroon and traitor to the cause. The
-"treachery" is all the greater if the objector is a
-workman or a workwoman.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Bolsheviks are quite honest about their purpose&mdash;the
-transfer of power and property by murder
-and robbery from the <i>bourgeoisie</i> to the proletariat.
-If a member of the proletariat is so mad that he
-refuses or hesitates to act his part in this scheme,
-then those who have been called by the force of events
-to assume a dictatorship on his behalf are entitled to
-destroy him as an unconscious enemy to himself and
-his class. In the same way no mercy can be
-shown to the Social Revolutionaries who, while professing
-allegiance to definite proletarian domination,
-shrink from definite action now that the time for
-action has arrived.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Bolshevik Commissar of Kushva, acting on
-this principle, succeeded in a short time in raising
-a formidable opposition amongst the workmen in
-the surrounding districts. When the local school-mistress,
-a girl of seventeen, found a temporary
-grave in this sort of Black Hole of Calcutta the wells
-of Kushva and Taighill became a dreadful portent
-to the simple Russian <i>mujik</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-The opposition began at the big Watkin Works,
-where over six thousand men were employed.
-Though possessing no military organisation, the
-workmen decided to resist by force the entrance of
-the Bolshevik Terror into their midst. With the
-help of several young engineers they managed to
-regiment themselves into some kind of military
-order. They selected with great skill the strategic
-positions for fortifications, and held the whole district
-against the repeated attacks of the enemy. Once the
-Bolshevik line of the Urals west of Ekaterinburg
-struck from north to south, from Kunghure to the
-Caspian, as the crow flies, for three thousand versts,
-except for one great loop enclosing the Watkin
-Works. But in November, 1918, the Bolshevik line
-swept forward, submerging these valiant workmen
-warriors. Admiral Koltchak's Chief of Staff naturally
-concluded that the workmen had given up the
-struggle and had made terms with their hated
-enemy.
-</p>
-<p>
-This surge forward of the Bolsheviks had been
-greatly assisted by the unfortunate defection of the
-Czech forces, who had left the front at the suggestion
-of their local National Council. General Gaida had
-thrown up his Czech commission, and had been given
-command of the right wing of the new Russian
-army. The admiral proceeded at once to put his
-new army to the test by an attempt to recover the
-lost ground and, if possible, save the remnants of
-the Watkin workmen. Everybody now knows how,
-in a temperature of over "60 below," these recently
-mobilised Siberian recruits re-established the fighting
-fame of the Russian soldier by sweeping the Terrorist
-forces from their positions and entirely destroying
-them at Perm. Imagine General Galitzin's surprise
-when the advance began to find these Watkin workmen
-still holding their district and rendering valuable
-help to their relieving comrades! The Kushva Soviet
-Commissar had built better than he knew.
-</p>
-<p>
-This district is remarkable for the valuable and
-extensive deposits of iron and sulphur, which seem
-inexhaustible. One huge hill has a store of about
-800,000,000,000 tons, almost untapped except
-for uncovering work necessary to estimate its
-capacity.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Revolution in Russia may alter a few things,
-but it can scarcely effect much change in the character
-of its people. This iron mountain is an illustration
-of the mixture of mediaevalism and modernism
-to be found in Russia's industrial development. The
-summit of the mountain is capped with an Orthodox
-Greek church, and desperate efforts have been made
-to secure its removal to a less exalted and less valuable
-site. I was informed that the mere suggestion proved
-almost fatal to its originators, and by so narrow a
-margin did they escape that the proposal is not
-likely to be repeated. I made the suggestion quite
-innocently, and produced such a storm that only my
-foreign ignorance provided me with a satisfactory
-excuse. I was asked: "Would you take God from
-His place over this work?" One other thing I
-noticed everywhere. There was not one important
-workshop from Irkutsk to Perm without its altar,
-candles and all complete, and scarcely a business or
-Government office without its ikon facing you the
-moment you entered.
-</p>
-<p>
-I attended the Orthodox Easter celebration at
-Perm. The whole edifice was crowded with people
-of every walk in life. I was not merely an interested
-spectator, but one who believes that where man
-worships he appeals to the same God no matter by
-what name He is called.
-</p>
-<p>
-I watched this crowd, each holding a long lighted
-taper, stand for hours making the sign of the Cross,
-while the gorgeously-robed priest chanted the service
-and made sundry waves with his hands and gave
-certain swings with the incense-burner. The
-responses were made by a group of men with
-beautiful, well-trained voices, but the people looked
-spiritually starved. Not one took the slightest part
-in the service beyond an occasional whispered
-murmur, nor are they expected to. They stood outside
-the pale; there was no place for them. I must
-say that I contrasted this isolation of the congregation
-with the joint act of worship as performed in
-our churches, both Free and Anglican. I looked at
-these "Christian" men and women and thought of
-the butchery of Petrograd and Moscow, the wells
-of Kushva and Taighill, and the ruthless disregard
-of human life by both sides in this brutal internecine
-strife. I wondered whether I had stumbled upon
-at least one of the causes. At any rate, I did not
-forget we also had the heroes of the Watkin Works.
-</p>
-<p>
-Nadegenska is the extreme north-west point of
-the Ural system of railways, and is famous because
-of its great privately-owned steelworks. These works
-were originated by a poor peasant woman, who
-developed the whole district until it has become the
-most northerly Asiatic industrial centre in the
-Russian Empire. The contrast in treatment at these
-privately-owned works compared with those owned
-by the Government is significant. The Soviet Commissar
-knew nothing about the business himself, and
-appointed Works Commissars, still more ignorant of
-their duties, to control the establishment. The result
-was that production fell to such a point that the
-experts refused to work under such incompetents and
-gradually escaped to other outlandish districts. The
-manager stuck to his post during the battle of Perm,
-and by a judicious distribution among the Bolshevik
-Commissars of the surplus roubles of the Tsar
-remaining in his possession got them out of the works
-without damage. This was an unheard-of situation,
-for nowhere else have the Soviet Commissars left
-anything they could destroy.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was interesting to notice that nearly the whole
-of the machinery in these works was either of German
-or American make, the latter always predominating;
-there was some English and some Belgian, about an
-equal amount of each. I heard a curious statement
-at Kushva to the effect that the German firms were
-always prepared to build and fit out a big works, and
-run it for one year, without asking for a penny. Of
-course they always first carefully examined the possibilities
-of the locality, but the managers assured me
-that it was rare for German machinery to be equal,
-either for use or wear and tear, to the English, nor
-was it as cheap; but they could always get long
-credit from German firms, and that was most
-important in developing new enterprises.
-</p>
-<p>
-We set off for Perm, with a stop on our way
-at the Vackneah Turansky Works. These works
-employed from four to five thousand men, doing
-everything from smelting to the making of engines,
-carriages, shells, guns, etc., and were the best
-equipped workshops I saw in the Urals. The only
-complaint was lack of orders. The old r&eacute;gime did
-everything&mdash;nearly all this great mineral district was
-developed under the personal care of the Tsars. The
-Bolsheviks have destroyed the State control of these
-establishments, and already the <i>bourgeoisie</i> are casting
-hungry eyes upon this great industry and the Omsk
-Ministers are rubbing hands over the loot they hope to
-collect during this transfer. How vain the hopes of
-those who looked to the Revolution to develop public
-control of all natural resources! Already the State
-lands are parcelled out amongst the wealthy peasants,
-who as a result of this robbery will establish a great
-landed aristocracy, and, if I do not misread the
-signs, a similar fate is about to overtake the great
-State industries with the creation of an aristocracy
-of wealth.
-</p>
-<p>
-At Turansky we picked up Sergeant Coleman,
-of the Durham Light Infantry, the only Englishman
-who weathered the journey from Archangel with a
-party of Russians who had started from the north
-to try and get into direct touch with the Russian
-Army. They had made a circuitous route and
-avoided the districts held by the Bolshevik forces,
-and therefore had nothing of interest to report to us.
-The whole party, under a Russian officer in English
-uniform, were attached to my train and taken to
-Perm, where instructions awaited them to proceed
-at once to Omsk.
-</p>
-<p>
-While examining the damage done during the
-street fighting at Perm we encountered a mob of the
-Red Guard who had marched over their own lines at
-Glashoff and surrendered to General Gaida. They
-were drawn up four deep in the market-place for a
-roll call. I studied their faces and general appearance,
-and came to the conclusion that if the progress
-of the world depended upon such as these the world
-was in a very bad way. They were Kirghis, Mongols,
-Tartars, Chinese, mixed with a fair sprinkling of
-European-Russian peasants, workmen and others
-mostly of the lowest type, but with just enough of
-the "old soldier" element to make them formidable.
-A strange idea struck me that I would like to speak
-to these men. The proposition, made almost in jest,
-was taken up seriously by my liaison officer, Colonel
-Frank, who interviewed the commandant of the
-station, Colonel Nikolioff, upon the subject. He
-at first took up a hostile attitude, but when he
-gathered the substance of my proposed address he
-consented, and arranged the meeting at the camp
-for 6 P.M. the following evening, April 22. Of all
-the meetings it has been my privilege to hold, this
-was the most unique. The Bolshevik soldiers stood
-to attention and listened to me with great interest.
-One or two were sailors, and some others could understand
-a little English, as could be seen by the way
-they conveyed in whispers the points of the speech
-to their neighbours. Madame Frank translated, and
-in beautiful Russian drove home each point. Hers
-was a magnificent performance. As she repeated
-my word-picture of their untilled fields, destroyed
-homes, outraged women, and murdered children, not
-the ravages of an alien enemy, but the work of their
-own hands, Russian against Russian, tears trickled
-down their war-scarred faces. Clearly these men
-felt they had been deceived, and would willingly
-endeavour to rectify the injuries of the past. Some
-volunteered their services at once to help their
-Mother Country to recover from the ravages they
-had made and administer justice upon those who had
-led them into madness, but Colonel Nikolioff asked
-them to remember that their crimes had been very
-great, and nothing but time could heal the wounds
-and soften the bitterness their conduct had created.
-Some asked that it should be remembered that they
-were not Bolshevik in principle, but had been forced
-to become soldiers in the Red Army, from which
-they could not desert until their villages were
-captured by the Koltchak army, as their whole
-families, held as hostages for their good conduct,
-would have been massacred. This they asserted had
-been done in numberless cases where the families
-were in Bolshevik hands.
-</p>
-<p>
-The value of the rouble in Perm at that time
-was about one penny. My officers and men were
-paid at the rate of 40 roubles to the &pound;1. The
-prisoners' camp was about three and a half versts
-distant, and the duration of the meeting was one
-hour and five minutes; the droshky hire for the
-journey was 100 roubles per droshky. Everything
-was in proportion. For instance, common cigarettes
-were 1 rouble each. If I had smoked twenty a day
-or used them between myself and my numerous
-official visitors, half my colonel's pay would have
-gone. There must surely have been something
-wrong in fixing the rate of exchange at Harbin or
-"Vlady," 5,000 versts away, and leaving officers
-at the front in a stage of poverty not one whit
-better than the people whose all had been destroyed
-by the Revolution. I have no remedy to
-offer, but it is not very satisfactory to receive your
-rouble at 6d. and spend it at 1d. What is more!
-If I had been paid in &pound;1 notes or sovereigns, I could
-have got something approaching 200 roubles for each
-at the Perm rate! Wages had increased under
-Bolshevik rule, but prices were such that one of the
-petitions we had to forward to the Government at
-Omsk on behalf of the workmen was that the wages
-and prices should be the same as under the old
-r&eacute;gime.
-</p>
-<p>
-On April 24 the ice on the Khama started to
-move about 5 A.M. It was a very imposing sight.
-It moved first as one solid block, carrying boats,
-stacks of timber, sledge roads&mdash;everything&mdash;with it.
-The point near the bridge held for some time, until
-the weight behind forced some part down and
-crunched its way through in one irresistible push;
-the other part rose over the resistance and rolled like
-an avalanche over and over, smashing itself into huge
-blocks which were forced into a rampart fifty feet
-high, when the enormous weight broke the ice platform
-on which it was piled, and the whole moved
-majestically off towards the Volga. Then one experienced
-the peculiar illusion of gliding along the
-river; it was necessary to plant one's feet far apart
-to prevent a fall. The Khama near Perm is over
-a mile wide, and this method of Nature to herald
-spring to these snow- and ice-bound regions lacks
-nothing so far as grandeur is concerned. During
-the next few days millions of tons of derelict timber
-passed on its way to the Caspian. The careless
-Russian never thinks of hauling his spare stock off
-the ice until the ice actually begins to move. He
-tells you that the proper time for the ice to move
-is between May 1 and 5; that if it moves a week
-earlier it means good crops, which would balance the
-loss of the timber, so that he has no cause to complain.
-</p>
-<p>
-It is no part of my business to deal with
-atrocities such as have disgraced the proletarian
-dictatorship of Moscow. Where I could not avoid
-them in my narrative of events, I have done so
-without reference to the revolting details which
-everybody so hungrily devours. History shows that
-it is not possible to avoid these excesses whenever the
-safeguards of civil order are swept away by the
-passions of the mob. Our own revolutionaries should
-remember this before and not after the event. They
-should be considered not as a risk but as a certainty
-when once the foundations of order are uprooted. At
-Perm the breaking of the ice revealed some of the
-truth, and it formed quite sufficient evidence of the
-callous behaviour of the Bolshevik administrators.
-</p>
-<p>
-Below a steep bank a few yards from the
-Terrorist headquarters a small shed was erected on
-the ice. It was called a wash-house, and during the
-day washing was done there. At night the place,
-apparently, was, like the streets, deserted, but as a
-square hole was cut through the ice, it was an ideal
-place for the disposal of bodies, dead or alive. The
-people knew that after an inspection of the better-class
-homes by officers of the Soviet if there was
-evidence of valuable loot; the whole family would
-quietly disappear, and the valuables were distributed
-by sale, or otherwise, amongst the Soviet authorities.
-If a workman protested against this violence, he
-disappeared, too, in the same secret fashion.
-</p>
-<p>
-The poor women who used the shed during the
-day for its legitimate purpose told from time to time
-grim stories of blood and evidence of death struggles
-on the frozen floor as they began the morning's work.
-Several thousand people were missing by the time
-the Koltchak forces captured the town.
-</p>
-<p>
-The ice in the shelter of the bank began to thaw
-before the more exposed part of the river, which
-enabled the people whose friends and neighbours
-were missing to put a rude and ineffective screen
-below the shed in the hope of recovering the bodies
-of some of their friends. I knew about the shed but
-not about the screen, until I was informed by Regt.
-Sergeant-Major Gordon that he had seen several
-hundred bodies taken from the river. The following
-morning I walked into the crowd of anxious people
-who were watching the work. The official in charge
-told me quite simply that they had not had a very
-good morning, for three hours' work had only produced
-some forty bodies. I looked at these relics of
-the new order; they were of both sexes and belonged
-to every condition of life, from the gruff, horny-handed
-worker to the delicately-nurtured young girl.
-A miscellaneous assortment of the goods, among
-other things, revolutions are bound to deliver.
-</p>
-<p>
-We held a big meeting in the great railway works
-which created quite a sensation. The fact that the
-English were at Perm spread back to Omsk, and four
-days later Japanese and French Missions put in an
-appearance. If the French came to maintain their
-prestige it was a pity that they did not choose a better
-agent for their purpose. I had been invited to lunch
-with a very worthy representative of the town, Mr.
-Pastrokoff, and his wife. I arrived to find the good
-lady in great agitation. A French officer had called
-and informed the household that a French Mission
-had just arrived composed of three officers; they
-would require the three best rooms in the house, the
-use of the servants and kitchen; that no furniture
-must be removed from the three rooms he saw under
-pain of punishment, etc. The lady protested and
-told the French officer that even the Bolsheviks had
-not demanded part of her very small house when
-made acquainted with the requirements of her family,
-but the officer had replied that any inconvenience was
-outweighed by the great honour conferred upon her
-house by the presence of officers of the French Army.
-It would not be polite to the glorious French Army
-to repeat Madame Pastrokoff's reply. It only shows
-how stupid it is to send to foreign countries any but
-the best men to represent a great and gallant nation.
-I naturally reminded Madame that she was a Russian,
-living in her own country, under her own Government,
-and she must report the case to the Russian
-authorities, who would doubtless provide accommodation
-for the French Mission if necessary.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Pastrokoffs, coupled with the vivacious
-Madame Barbara Pastokova and her husband, were
-among the most homely and interesting people it
-was my pleasure to meet in the Urals. If you have
-never been in Russia you know nothing of hospitality;
-you only squirm around the fringe of the subject.
-The hospitality of our friends at Perm was truly
-Russian, and I was sorry when we had to leave. M.
-Pastrokoff told me of the following incident of the
-early relief of Perm from the Terrorist.
-</p>
-<p>
-General Pepelaieff's army was stretched along the
-railway from Perm towards Vatka, the junction of
-the Archangel Railway. The temperature was over
-"60 below," the men were without clothes, thousands
-had died from exposure, and other thousands
-were in a ghastly condition from frost-bite. There
-was little or no hospital accommodation, and the
-Omsk Ministers were deaf to all appeals for help,
-they being more concerned as to how they could
-shake off the Supreme Governor's control than how
-best to perform their duty. In the early days of
-February the feeding of the army became a pressing
-problem, and still the Omsk Ministers remained
-silent. On February 10 Pastrokoff received an imperative
-order to appear at General Hepoff's office.
-At 11 A.M. he arrived to find nine of the wealthiest
-citizens of Perm already collected. Looking out of
-the windows they saw a full company of Siberian
-Rifles surround the building with fixed bayonets.
-The general entered the room and sat at his table,
-they remained standing. Looking at, and <i>through</i>,
-each one separately, he delivered this cryptic speech:
-"Gentlemen, I have brought you here to tell you
-that out on the railway between you and your enemies
-lie the remains of our brave army! They have little
-clothes, but plenty of wood, so their fires may prevent
-their bodies from being frozen, but ten days
-from now there will be no food, and unless food can
-be secured, nothing can prevent their dispersal or
-starvation. I have determined that they shall neither
-disperse nor starve. The Omsk Ministers have forgotten
-us, the Supreme Governor has given his
-orders, but these paltry people who ought to assist
-him do nothing. We must do their work ourselves."
-Reading down a list of the necessities of his army he
-said: "You gentlemen will produce these things
-within ten days. If on February 21 these supplies are
-not to hand, that will be the end of everything so
-far as you ten gentlemen are concerned."
-</p>
-<p>
-"He allowed no discussion," said M. Pastrokoff,
-"and if he had we should have been discussing it
-now, and the Terrorists would have re-occupied Perm.
-I returned home and felt cold in the feet. I had a
-guard of fifteen men placed on my person, the others
-the same. I knew that some of my companions in
-distress were muddlers, but sent for my friend &mdash;&mdash; and
-drew our plans for carrying out the general's
-orders. We were greatly helped in this determination
-by witnessing the execution of a company and
-platoon commander of one of our regiments under
-General Hepoff's orders for having allowed thirty
-men of their company to desert to the enemy during
-an affair of outposts. We saw we had to deal with
-a man who never went back on his word."
-</p>
-<p>
-On February 18 the general sent his aide-de-camp
-to inform the ten that it would be necessary for them
-to put their affairs in order as they would be taken
-to the front for execution, so that the starving
-soldiers might know their immediate chiefs were not
-responsible for the condition of the army. M.
-Pastrokoff was able to prove the things were on the
-way, and only the disorganised condition of the
-railway made it necessary to ask for a few days'
-grace. The general granted four days, at the end of
-which the goods were delivered as per instructions.
-"What did the general then do?" I asked. "When
-his soldiers were fed he burst into my house and kissed
-me, and would have gone on his knees if I would
-have allowed him. He has been here several times
-since, and we have become great friends. He is a
-true Russian!" added Pastrokoff proudly.
-</p>
-<p>
-We returned to Ekaterinburg on April 29, and
-were surprised to find that General Knox and the
-Headquarters Staff had removed from Omsk and
-taken up position there. The Hampshires were about
-to move up; barrack and other accommodation had
-already been secured. The first echelon arrived the
-following morning. An Anglo-Russian brigade of
-infantry was in course of formation and seemed likely
-to prove a great success. It offered employment for
-the numerous officers and N.C.O.s who had arrived
-and for whom no proper place for work had so far
-been provided. It was truly a stroke of genius for
-our War Office to flood us with officers and men as
-instructors for the new Russian army, scarcely one
-of whom could speak a word of Russian! I feel sure
-the Russians and ourselves will get on well together,
-we are so much alike. Omsk and Whitehall are true
-to type; they each first exhaust the possibility of
-error, and when no wrong course is left, the right
-road becomes quite easy. The only difference is in
-the motive. Ours is mostly because social influence
-is always on the side of educated mediocrity, and
-theirs because self, coupled with corruption, is their
-natural incentive to all exertion. We have a different
-standard; all our theories of Government preclude
-the possibility of hidden personal advantage in the
-transaction of State business. The Russian view is
-that no competent official could be expected to conduct
-business transactions for the State unless he
-personally gains some advantage. If an official neglected
-a private opportunity so obvious, it would
-justify the suspicion that his scruples would make him
-unequal to the proper protection of the State. In
-other words, the official who is poor at the end of a
-decent term of office never should have been trusted
-with the interests of the community. It is strange to
-hear them catalogue the proved cases of corruption
-amongst officials of other countries. They never
-forget a case of this kind no matter in which country
-it occurred. They argue that they are no worse than
-others, forgetting that these exceptions only prove
-the rule, whereas in Russia the honest official is rather
-the exception. After all, public opinion decides the
-standard of conduct adopted by a country. Morals
-change with time, also with countries and peoples.
-A harem would be a nuisance in London, but stands
-as a sign of Allah's blessing in Constantinople.
-</p>
-<p>
-I returned to Omsk on May 3 to find that the
-snow and ice had given place to a storm of dust
-which crept through every crevice of one's habitation
-and flavoured everything with dirt and grit. It was,
-if anything, worse than a sandstorm in the Sudan.
-The Sudan type is fairly clean, but this Omsk variety
-is a cloud of atomic filth which carries with it every
-known quality of pollution and several that are quite
-unknown. I don't remember being able to smell a
-Sudan storm, but this monstrous production stank
-worse than a by-election missile. The service of a
-British soldier on these special trips is not exactly a
-sinecure. The people at home who pay can be sure
-their money is well earned before Tommy gets it.
-The south wind sweeps up from Mongolia and
-Turkestan, and while it brings warmth to our frozen
-bones its blessing becomes a bit mixed with other
-things before we get them. I only mention it, not
-to complain! We never do in war-time!
-</p>
-<p>
-A special dispatch from London arrived on May 5
-which delayed my starting for Vladivostok. If the
-object at which it aimed could have been secured it
-would have been a beam of light upon a very sombre
-subject. I had a lengthy conference with General
-Knox upon my tour to the Urals and the facts
-gathered as to the mineral and productive resources
-of the districts through which I had passed. The
-London dispatch also occupied our attention, and as
-the Supreme Governor had fixed the next day for
-my final farewell interview with himself, the possible
-course of our conversation was also considered. It
-was arranged that my journey to "Vlady" should
-be delayed until the matter referred to in the
-dispatch had been dealt with in accordance with
-instructions.
-</p>
-<p>
-My audience with the Supreme Governor was very
-cordial, and he especially thanked me for the help I
-had rendered himself and Russia in the dark days of
-November and December, 1918. He expressed the
-opinion that my mission to the workmen had been
-a great success, and was the first piece of definite
-work so far accomplished in the reconstruction and
-resurrection of the Russian State. He pointed out
-that his own labours were devoted to the one object
-of restoring order to the country, but that this
-work could only be performed by a powerful army.
-England had rendered him all help possible, but still
-the military problem engrossed all his thoughts and
-precluded his taking active part in the work of social
-reconstruction. He thought his Ministers and other
-assistants would have been able to help in it, but he
-had been sadly mistaken, and his experience had
-taught him that it was necessary to learn everything
-himself and therefore he was all the more grateful
-for my assistance. We took tea together, during
-which he informed me that he was about to start for
-the front to arrange for a further push along the
-northern line towards Vatka in the direction of
-Petrograd, with the chance of forming a junction
-with the forces at Archangel, and if General Knox
-would consent he wished me to remain at Omsk until
-he returned. General Knox placed the London dispatch
-before the Supreme Governor, and I remained
-to assist in settling its details.
-</p>
-<p>
-On May 7 the Chief of the British Mission,
-Major-General Knox, asked me to assist him in
-drafting the reply to the London dispatch. The
-heads having been agreed to by the Supreme
-Governor, it was necessary to consult with the
-Minister who assisted him with his foreign affairs.
-He is distinguished by a sort of cleverness which
-borders very closely to cunning. In a few years he
-will probably make a very able diplomat of the old
-type, but whether that is the sort of equipment
-which will serve under the new order, now in the
-throes of birth, remains to be seen. He is Republican,
-having lived long in America, and honestly
-believes that Russia must be directed in her orientation
-towards Republican countries rather than to the
-evidently permanently and exclusively Monarchist
-country, England. There I think I know more of
-his Russian fellow-countrymen and better understand
-their character and sentiments than he! But he is
-very young, very able, and his name is Sukin, and
-he has time to learn.
-</p>
-<p>
-In accordance with the wish of the Governor,
-the dispatch and draft were shown to him, and a
-few hours later, while dining with a Cossack general,
-I was asked if I knew anything about a dispatch from
-London that was making a great stir amongst the
-members of the French and American Missions. I
-answered that being a regimental officer, not attached
-to the English Mission, dispatches were not my
-business, though as a rule if important dispatches
-arrived, I heard about them; I had heard of no dispatch
-which could upset the French or American
-Missions.
-</p>
-<p>
-I informed Consul Hodgson, who was representing
-the High Commissioner in his absence, of this,
-and it was decided to hurry on with the construction
-and completion of the draft. It was completed in its
-final shape by General Knox and myself in his train
-at the Omsk Vatka in front of the Russian Staffka,
-9.30 A.M., May 9, 1919.
-</p>
-<p>
-Much of this Russian "Bill of Rights" had to
-be pushed down the throats of the Russian official
-elements. The Supreme Governor never wavered
-over a single point; his large democratic sympathies
-were satisfied by his signature to what he hoped
-would be the foundation of Russian liberty. How
-fortunate for Russia that she had such a man to call
-upon in her hour of need! No matter what the final
-result of his efforts may be, whether success or
-defeat, his was the mind and personality that enabled
-this great people to bridge what looked like an impossible
-gulf and turn their faces to the sun.
-</p>
-<p>
-How fortunate it was that at this critical hour in
-Russian history England was represented by Major-General
-Knox! I had never heard of him till I
-went to Siberia, yet in him we have a man combining
-the courage of the soldier with the higher qualities
-of a statesman, ready made for the special business
-in hand. The British Empire doubtless, like Topsy,
-"growed"! It is more an exhibition of race luck
-than genius. The way in which we occasionally drop
-the right man in the right place is not an act of
-Government so much as a stroke of chance. We
-make awful bloomers in these matters sometimes, but
-in this case our luck stood by us to some purpose.
-More than once, when the timidity of the "Politicals"
-had almost destroyed Russian faith in our
-honesty of purpose, the robust honesty of his personality
-turned the scale in our favour. Every
-Russian trusts him, except those who have forgotten
-they are Russians. They hate him. That is the real
-certificate of his worth. I can quite understand the
-fear of some Labour elements at home that our
-presence in Siberia may be used by reactionaries to
-re-establish the old r&eacute;gime. Had I been at home I
-might have had the same feeling. But I was there,
-and knew that it was our very presence which made
-that for the moment impossible. The excesses of
-the Bolsheviks made the people, both peasant and
-workman, hanker after the comparative security of
-the Tsars. The reactionary elements would have
-been only too pleased to see our backs; our presence
-was a safeguard against the absolutism for which
-some of them scheme. The weariness of the peasantry
-and workmen with revolutionary disorder gave the
-opportunity to reaction to establish another absolutism
-which was only restrained by outside influence.
-Major-General Knox does not write polished dispatches
-upon army movements under his command,
-but he perhaps performed greater service to humanity
-and democracy by his patient and efficient handling
-on the spot of one of the great world problems.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH20"><!-- CH20 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XX
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-MAKING AN ATAMAN
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-General Evan Pootenseiff arranged a parade of
-the 2nd Siberian Cossack Regiment outside Omsk
-on May 14 to say "Good-bye" to the "Anglisky
-Polkovnika," his officers and soldiers. Needless to
-say, we were all there, and it was an occasion that
-will be remembered by all who had the honour to
-be present. Those who look upon the Cossacks as
-a sort of untrained irregular cavalry had better revise
-their ideas at once, for fear of further future miscalculations.
-The evolutions of this force in every
-branch of cavalry work are simply superb. The
-Cossack control of his horse, either singly or in
-combination, is not approached by any army in the
-world. The parade was under the immediate command
-of the Assistant Ataman, Colonel Bezovsky,
-and the wonderful display of horsemanship was loudly
-applauded by the English Tommies, who were the
-most interested spectators.
-</p>
-<p>
-The parade over, the officers adjourned to an
-extremely artistic Kirghis tent pitched on a treeless
-plain, where lunch was served; but the viands were
-left untouched until the toast of "His Britannic
-Majesty" had been drunk in good Tsaristic vodka.
-Then it became a real military fraternisation. Officers
-inside, soldiers out. No civilian was allowed to
-approach within three versts, except the old Kirghis
-chief who, dressed in his picturesque native dress,
-had travelled over fifty versts to attend the function
-of making an English Ataman. The band of the
-Cossack regiment tried valiantly to enliven the proceedings
-with music, but the English marching
-choruses soon silenced all opposition. Then the
-Cossack commander called his men around, and
-giving time with his cowhide thong, led them through
-some of the most weird Cossack war songs it is
-possible to imagine. The difference in our mentality
-was never so well illustrated as in the songs
-of the two people. Ours were lively, happy, and
-full of frolic and fun; theirs were slow, sad wails,
-which can only come from the heart of a long
-troubled people. The songs of Ermak Tinothavitch,
-the conqueror of Siberia, were fierce and
-martial, but the strain of tragedy ran through
-them all.
-</p>
-<p>
-Then the Cossacks placed their commander upon
-two swords and tossed him while singing the song of
-Stenkarazin, the robber chief, and at the end drew
-their swords and demanded toll, which took the form
-of five bottles extra. I was then admitted to the
-fraternity and presented with the Ataman's badge,
-and after due ceremony with a Cossack sword, by
-the regiment, admitted to their circle. I went
-through the sword tossing, and gained freedom for
-100 roubles; and here my narrative of the making
-of a Cossack had better end. Sufficient to say I
-never met a freer-hearted set of men in my travels
-round the world than these dreadful guardians of
-the Tsars, and if in course of time I get tired of
-England, I shall claim my kinship with these freemen
-of forest and plain. These men so love liberty
-that not even the Tsars dared interfere with their
-rights.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH21"><!-- CH21 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XXI
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-HOMEWARD BOUND
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-On May 17 Omsk was excluded from the Vatka
-(station), and by this indirect means became aware
-that the Supreme Governor was returning from
-the front. The Cossack Guard lined up outside,
-while detachments of Russian infantry in English
-uniform occupied the platform. The Russian
-Tommies looked quite smart, and except for their
-long, narrow, triangular bayonets, might easily have
-been mistaken for English troops. While awaiting
-the train, General Knox informed me that two of
-our proposals, "Women's suffrage" and "Universal
-education," had been cut out by the reactionaries.
-Why are the churches of the world so hostile to the
-popular education of the people? The Church is
-quite prepared to allow the people to receive educational
-instruction if controlled by the priests. It
-prefers to leave them in ignorance and the easy prey
-of Bolshevik charlatanism rather than allow free play
-for intelligent thinking. Women's suffrage was
-opposed by quite a different set of men, mostly those
-who make enormous display of deference to drawing-room
-ladies, and look upon us Englishmen as wanting
-in gallantry because we do not kiss every
-feminine hand we shake. On the whole I think it
-is good to have pushed them ahead so far. Measured
-by Russian standards, it amounts to a revolution in
-ideas of government. The great thing just now is
-to fix some point beyond which the pendulum shall
-not be allowed to swing towards reaction. The
-workmen are sick of strife and would gladly go
-straight back to the old r&eacute;gime as an easy way of
-escape from Bolshevism. This is the danger from
-which English diplomacy has tried, and is trying,
-to guard the Russian people if possible.
-</p>
-<p>
-Thus, having finished my work at Omsk, I asked
-that arrangements might be made as quickly as
-possible to transport my escort and myself to Vladivostok.
-The arrangements were completed by
-May 21, when I announced myself ready to begin
-the first stage of my journey homeward. The
-Supreme Governor surprised me by proposing to
-visit me in my carriage at the Vatka to say "Good-bye."
-At 7 P.M. he came, attended by his aide-de-camp;
-he was very gracious in his thanks for my
-services to the Russian people. He said my voice,
-presence and influence had aroused the better
-elements to throw off the feeling of despair which
-had so universally settled upon them. He did not
-presume to calculate the good I had done, though
-none appreciated it better than himself, since we had
-been thrown by circumstances into personal contact
-with each other. Without attempting to form an
-estimate of his character, I considered his visit and
-words the act of a gentleman, and as such I appreciated
-it.
-</p>
-<p>
-I could but recall the last time he visited me in
-those dark, doubtful days of November, when I, who
-had no thought or place in my make-up for the word
-"Dictator," suddenly found myself in the presence
-of him who had that moment assumed such a position,
-and what was more serious for me, found myself
-forced on my own authority, unaided by one word
-of warning or counsel from others, instantly to decide
-not only my own attitude but also, to some extent,
-that of my country to this last act in the drama of
-a people grown desperate. Once having given my
-promise to help, he never found that help withheld
-at critical moments later. The British forces were
-few, but they were disciplined and knew their own
-mind, and this was what every other party, both
-Russian and Allied, lacked. Every Allied force had
-its "Politicals" at hand, and therefore were powerless
-for any purpose. The Fates had sent ours to
-Vladivostok, 5,000 versts east, at the very moment
-when their presence and general political policy
-would have paralysed correct military action. The
-month which intervened before they could exert
-direct influence upon the situation enabled us to
-consolidate the new orientation. The greater part
-of this time we were "in the air," having cut our
-own communications, and no countermanding orders
-could interrupt or confuse the nerve centre. At first
-the "Politicals" were inclined to be angry, but with
-such a tower of strength as General Knox in support
-they soon came to look upon the proceedings as a
-<i>fait accompli</i>. Later they confessed that their absence
-at the supreme moment was the act of a wise Providence.
-The very nature of their business (had they
-been present) would have created delays and difficulties
-that might have proved fatal to success.
-</p>
-<p>
-Except for some quaint fetish about the necessity
-for maintaining the usual diplomatic forms, there is
-no necessity for delay in emergencies of this description.
-If an ordinarily intelligent Englishman, with
-a fair knowledge of English history and a grasp of
-the traditions and mentality of his countrymen, cannot
-carry on, how are people miles away, with no
-opportunity to visualise the actual situation, to
-instruct him? Diplomatic methods and forms are
-all right for leisurely negotiations, but are useless in
-urgent and dangerous occasions. If my work fails,
-as even now it may, I shall be subject to severe
-criticism; but I shall get that even if it succeeds, so
-what does it matter so long as in my own mind I did
-the best in the circumstances?
-</p>
-<p>
-My journey east was broken at Krasnoyarsk to
-enable me to interview the new commander, General
-Rosanoff, who had taken in hand the suppression of
-the revolt of the Lettish peasants north of the railway.
-South of the line all hostile elements had been
-dispersed. The line cut through the centre of the
-Bolshevik field of operations. The Czechs guarded the
-actual railway, and while they prevented large forces
-from moving across it, they took but little trouble to
-prevent miscreants from tampering with the rails, as
-was evidenced by the scores of derailed trains in all
-stages of destruction strewn along the track. This
-naturally involved great material loss and, what was
-still worse, a huge toll of innocent human life. One
-train, a fast passenger, accounted for two hundred
-women and children, besides uncounted men. Fairly
-large Russian forces were now placed at General
-Rosanoff's disposal, and by a wide turning movement
-from Krasnoyarsk in a north-easterly direction,
-and with a large cavalry force operating towards the
-north-west from Irkutsk, the whole gang would, it
-was hoped, be herded towards the centre, and a few
-weeks would probably liquidate the whole disturbance.
-The Krasnoyarsk and the Ussurie movements
-of the Bolsheviks were under the direction of able
-officers appointed by the Red Guard Headquarters at
-Moscow, with whom they were in constant communication.
-</p>
-<p>
-Passing Irkutsk, we again struck the Baikal&mdash;looking
-more glorious than before. The warm south-west
-winds had cleared the snow from the western
-hills and thawed the ice from that half of the sea.
-The other half was still ice-bound. In the morning
-sunshine the snow-covered mountains in the east
-pierced the heavens with the radiance of eternal day.
-The disappearance of the sun only adds to their
-beauty; they alone seem to know no night. As we
-travelled round under the shadow of these giants the
-temperature fell many degrees below zero, and the
-cold from the water penetrated the carriages, necessitating
-fires and warm furs, in spite of the June
-sunshine.
-</p>
-<p>
-I had received intimation that it would be of
-service to the Omsk Government if I would call upon
-Colonel Semianoff and use my good offices and
-my newly-conferred honour as a Siberian Cossack
-Ataman to recall this erring son of Muscovy to the
-service of the State. I knew that British pressure
-had been applied to persuade the Japanese to cease
-their financial and moral support&mdash;both open and
-secret&mdash;to this redoubtable opponent of the Russian
-Government, and it was rumoured that British wishes
-had at last been complied with. It was common
-knowledge that the illegal floggings, murders, and
-robberies committed under the alleged authority of
-Colonel Semianoff would not have remained unpunished
-a day if he had not been under the protection
-of one of the most numerously represented
-Allied forces. Whatever faults may be alleged against
-Admiral Koltchak, cruelty or injustice cannot be
-included among them. I well remember his fury
-when it was reported to him that some eighty workmen
-had been illegally flogged by Semianoff's soldiers
-at Chita. His poor dilapidated reserves were ordered
-to move at once to their protection. Semianoff
-prepared his armoured trains and troops to receive
-them, but the same Allied Power which fed,
-clothed, and armed his troops kept at bay those
-who were ordered to avenge the wrongs of the
-Russian workmen.
-</p>
-<p>
-On another occasion I remember Admiral Koltchak's
-almost hopeless despair when some truculent
-officers had used their weapons and badges of rank to
-secure the persons of some Bolshevik prisoners, and
-anticipating the decision of the court about to try
-them, shot them in cold blood. He at once executed
-the officers and men who handed them over, as well
-as such of those who took part in the conspiracy, even
-though they claimed to be merely the avengers of
-their own murdered families. Stern, impartial justice
-is part and parcel of this remarkable man's character.
-It was this very trait which made Semianoff and the
-Supreme Governor natural enemies.
-</p>
-<p>
-The day that I arrived at Chita it was officially
-announced that Semianoff had made his submission
-to the authority of Koltchak, and had accepted an
-appointment in the Russian Army. My task therefore
-changed its character; the proposed admonishment
-became a congratulation in a very frank and
-friendly half-hour's interview, the colonel returning
-the visit to my carriage later. Colonel Semianoff is
-one of the most striking personalities I have met
-in Russia; a man of medium height, with square
-broad shoulders, an enormous head, the size of which
-is greatly enhanced by the flat, Mongol face, from
-which gleam two clear, brilliant eyes that rather
-belong to an animal than a man. The whole pose
-of the man is at first suspicious, alert, determined,
-like a tiger ready to spring, to rend and tear, but
-in repose the change is remarkable, and with a quiet
-smile upon the brown face the body relaxes. Colonel
-Semianoff is a very pleasant personality. His great
-physical strength has caused the Japanese to name
-him "Samurai," or "Brave Knight of the Field,"
-and I think that is a good description of his character.
-Relentless and brave, kindness nevertheless finds a
-part in his make-up. The princes of Mongolia have
-asked him to become their emperor, and should he
-choose this path a whirlwind will pass over the neighbouring
-lands. Perhaps underneath he is, after all,
-a good Russian&mdash;time will tell. If his conversion is
-real he will add a tower of strength to the Russian
-fighting forces.
-</p>
-<p>
-At Harbin I heard a full explanation of the reason
-for the Mongolians approaching Semianoff to become
-their emperor. Mongolia previous to the Revolution
-was considered as under a loose sort of Russian protection.
-Since the break-up of the Russian Empire
-the Japanese have cast longing eyes upon this extensive
-country, which is supposed to belong to both
-Russia and China but in reality it belongs to neither.
-The Japanese have roamed all over the country
-during these last two years, and have spent time and
-money lavishly in propaganda. They first tried to
-orientate the Mongol mind towards a direct connection
-with themselves, but their avarice and conceit
-offend all the people with whom they come into
-contact. This direct method of getting control
-of Mongolia had therefore to be abandoned in
-favour of a round-about but more dangerous policy.
-Colonel Semianoff is only half Russian, his mother
-being a Mongolian woman of high birth. He speaks
-Mongolian perfectly, and the Mongolians claim him
-for their own. Semianoff admitted to me personally
-that he had been subsidised all through by Japan. It
-was the Japanese who called the Mongolian princes
-together and prevailed upon them to offer Semianoff
-the title of Emperor of Mongolia. He had other fish
-to fry, however, but when his other schemes fail, as I
-think they must, he will be quite ready to play the
-Japanese game in Mongolia as faithfully as he did in
-Siberia. Semianoff will be the puppet, but Japan will
-pull the strings; that at least is their hope and belief.
-</p>
-<p>
-About thirty versts west of Manchuli our train
-was stopped by a red flag, and a railway workman
-informed us of a raid upon a homestead by the side
-of the railway, the robbers having decamped two
-hours before our arrival. The father had two bullets
-through his chest and one through the right side of
-his neck, and had crawled a distance of over a verst
-to give information. He was taken up on our train,
-and we went forward to the scene of the tragedy.
-In the small wooden house, covered with loose
-feathers, lay the dead body of the mother with her
-unborn baby, near by lay a girl of about ten with
-her head terribly wounded. In an outhouse was the
-body of their Chinese boy. My hospital orderly
-rendered what aid was possible to the girl, who was
-carried by Madame Frank to my carriage for conveyance
-to the hospital at Manchuli. A civilian
-doctor declared both cases hopeless, and the depositions
-of the man were taken. Briefly thus:
-</p>
-<p>
-When the Bolsheviks first occupied Manchuli a
-railway workman of anarchist tendencies was
-appointed Soviet Commissar of the district. Afterwards,
-when the Bolshevik power was destroyed and
-their forces were driven off the railway, the Bolshevik
-bands took to the forest, some engaging in running
-contraband over the Chinese frontier, others forming
-themselves into bands who not only robbed the
-isolated peasantry, but forced young men to join
-them, and afterwards levied toll upon large villages
-and small towns. About three in the morning this
-Bolshevik Commissar knocked at the cottage door
-and asked the father to let him come in, as he was
-very tired, having had a long journey with contraband.
-Believing him to be alone, the man opened the
-door. The room was immediately filled with armed
-men, who demanded his savings or his life. The
-commissar, from his knowledge of such matters,
-believing his savings to be in the feather pillow,
-ripped it open and found 4,600 roubles. Having
-collected all the other small articles of value in the
-house, these innocent children of the Revolution held
-consultation on the necessity of killing everybody
-who knew them to be Bolsheviks, so that the crime
-should be cast upon the Chinese robber gangs who
-occasionally raid Russian territory. This important
-point in the regeneration of Russia settled, they shot
-the man in the chest, the bullet coming out by the
-shoulder-blade. The wife, begging for the life of
-her husband, was bayoneted, and the aroused Chinese
-workman was dispatched with a rifle. Then these
-harmless idealists proceeded to depart. So far they
-had not touched the girl, but the father, on regaining
-consciousness, heard the closed door open again, saw
-the leader of the "comrades" re-enter and pick up
-a small axe near the fire, with which he proceeded
-to smash the head of the child. Nature in its terrible
-revolt gave the father the power to raise himself
-slightly from the floor in a vain effort to grapple with
-this representative of the new r&eacute;gime. The commissar
-shouted: "What, still alive!" and fired two more
-point-blank shots at the prostrate man.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was entirely due to the tenacity of the father
-that the object of the killing was frustrated and the
-identification of the scoundrels with the Bolshevik
-commanders operating in this neighbourhood completed.
-I had no time to pick up the trail and
-punish the murderers. What sort of punishment the
-Tommies would have decided as necessary to fit the
-crime is better imagined than described!
-</p>
-<p>
-It was June when we passed over the Hinghan
-range, a series of sand mountains of great extent
-which form the breeding-ground for numerous herds
-of horses who spread themselves over the slopes and
-plains and sometimes endanger the safety of the railway.
-Snow was falling in clouds, and banked itself
-against the rails and telegraphs in a surprising manner
-considering the time of the year. The summer of
-this wild region lasts about two months&mdash;July and
-August&mdash;during which time the sand becomes hot,
-and travelling is not comfortable. After crossing the
-summit the plains fell gradually away, enabling the
-trains to move with great rapidity, and in less than
-two days we struck Harbin, and donned our topees
-and tropical clothes.
-</p>
-<p>
-Harbin is the centre of Chinese and Russian
-political and financial intrigue. Other races take a
-fair hand in the business, but the predominance
-must be conceded to these two. There is some sort
-of national feeling amongst the worst type of Russian
-speculator, but none amongst the Chinese. The
-Harbin Chinaman is perfectly denationalised, and
-ought, therefore, according to some standards of
-political reckonings, to be the most ideal citizen in
-the world; but the world who knows him hopes that
-for ever he may be exclusively confined to Harbin.
-I had a long conversation with General Ghondati,
-one of the most level-headed living statesmen of the
-old r&eacute;gime. All his hopes are centred on the success
-of Admiral Koltchak in his efforts to secure order
-to enable the National Assembly to consider the
-question of a Constitutional Monarchy on England's
-pattern to be established at Moscow. If this cannot
-be, he fears Russia's travail will last longer and may
-be fatal to her existence. He was not himself
-opposed to a Federal Republic, but was certain
-that without a head the undisciplined semi-oriental
-elements would never accept the abolition of absolutism
-as final. The Russian people have it in their
-bones to obey a leader; their warlike nature precludes
-the possibility of their continued loyalty to a junta,
-however able. A crown on top, with a parliament
-to control and direct, would be the happiest solution
-of Russia's present difficulties. He summed his
-theory up in these words: "A properly elected
-parliament to make the law and rule, but there must
-be a monarch to issue its orders."
-</p>
-<p>
-Though this is the expressed opinion of what the
-Bolshevik would term one of the "old r&eacute;gime," it
-is nevertheless the openly-expressed opinion of the
-sensible leaders of every class of Russian society
-except two&mdash;the Bolsheviks at one end, and the
-Absolutists at the other. More than once already
-these two extremes have come close together to
-frustrate the possibility of a compromise on constitutional
-lines. They openly declare that, unless
-power is given to either one or the other, they would
-prefer that the present anarchy should continue.
-It is not the first time in revolutionary history that
-the adherents of autocracy (Royalist and otherwise)
-have preferred the ruin of their country rather than
-lose their own personal power.
-</p>
-<p>
-Ghondati is a clear-headed patriot, and I am
-surprised that his counsel has not been sought for
-in this supreme moment of his country's history.
-His ideas relating to recognition by the Powers were
-rather remarkable. He did not think that any
-country could give help to Russia without either
-asking for conditions or being suspected of doing
-so. The only exception was England. The reason
-England is not suspected is that her Empire is so
-vast and varied in character that she has all the raw
-material for her trade and all the space she requires
-for her surplus population. Her help, unlike that of
-any other State so far, has been unselfish and unconditional.
-Ghondati quite saw that "this fact was
-producing a steady and permanent orientation of
-Russian opinion towards England, which, if cultivated
-by British statesmanship, would eventually
-give my country everything she required, while those
-whose help was always surrounded with conditions
-would have great difficulty to retain the advantages
-they secured only under the pressure of circumstances."
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH22"><!-- CH22 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XXII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-AMERICAN POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-At Nikolsk my train was stopped as the No. 4 Post
-train from Vladivostok had been wrecked by Bolsheviks,
-a startling situation considering that eleven
-months previously the whole power of Bolshevism
-had been destroyed in these maritime provinces.
-The station commandant was an old friend, who had
-given me his own private official carriage at the time
-when our little yellow brother had decided to lower
-the prestige of his white Ally in Eastern eyes by
-making British officers travel in cattle-trucks. He
-came into my car and began to explain how the
-cross-purposes of the American and Japanese forces
-were producing a state of uncertainty and disorder
-as bad, if not worse, than existed under the Bolshevik
-r&eacute;gime. Our conversation was cut short by the
-receipt of a telegram from the station-master at
-Kraevesk. It was to the effect that he was using
-his own line from his house, because a few minutes
-previously a detachment of the Red Guard had
-entered the station and, in the presence of the
-American soldiers who were guarding the railway,
-had placed himself and his staff under arrest and
-taken possession of the station; that the Reds had
-sent a message to Shmakovka ordering all Russian
-railway officials and staff to leave their posts, as the
-Bolshevik army, with the sanction of the American
-forces, was about to take over the line. The Red
-Guard officer in proof of his order stated "that
-fifteen American soldiers are now standing in the
-room from which I am sending this message."
-Having issued these orders in the presence of the
-Americans, they had removed the telegraph and
-telephone apparatus, and the station-master wished
-to know what he was to do and whether any help
-could be sent him. Imagine my utter astonishment
-at this message, containing, as it undoubtedly did,
-evidence of co-operation and understanding between
-the Bolshevik forces and one of our Allies.
-</p>
-<p>
-In one of my numerous interviews with Admiral
-Koltchak at Omsk he had made some very serious
-statements regarding the American policy in the
-Far East, which he feared would result in reproducing
-the previous state of disorder. I assured him
-that the policy of the Allies was to resist disorder and
-support order, and that I could not believe America
-had come to Siberia to make his task more difficult,
-but to help him in every reasonable way. He agreed
-that such was the intention of the American people,
-but he feared that the American command was being
-used for quite other purposes. His officers had informed
-him that out of sixty liaison officers and
-translators with American Headquarters over fifty
-were Russian Jews or the relatives of Russian Jews;
-some had been exiled from Russia for political
-and other offences, and had returned as American
-citizens, capable of influencing American policy in
-a direction contrary to that desired by the American
-people. I assured him that this could not be, and
-that his people might themselves in this matter be
-under the influence of a near Eastern neighbour not
-friendly to American interference in Eastern affairs,
-and that under this influence they might greatly
-magnify the danger. My words seemed to ease the
-admiral's mind, but he regretfully replied that the
-reports were so voluminous and categorical in character
-that he thought I, as a representative of the
-people of England, as well as an officer of His
-Majesty's Army, ought to be made acquainted with
-the situation.
-</p>
-<p>
-This matter had almost disappeared from my
-mind, but the message from the station-master at
-Kraevesk revived it with the vividness of a
-sudden blow. I at once determined to make myself
-acquainted as far as possible with the policy of the
-American commanders, and with this object in view
-I interviewed many American officers and soldiers.
-I found that both officers and men were most anxious
-to render all the help possible to maintain Koltchak's
-authority and crush disorder in the Far East, and,
-as they put it, "justify their presence in Siberia."
-Many felt that at the time they were only helping
-the Bolsheviks to recover their lost hold upon the
-people by providing neutral territory for Bolshevik
-propaganda; that when they arrived in the country
-in August, 1918, the English, Czechs, and Japanese,
-with the aid of such Russian units as then existed,
-had reduced the maritime provinces to order, but that
-their own efforts had produced a state of affairs similar
-to, if not worse than, those which existed during
-the actual Bolshevik occupation. I learnt from these
-American troops that their officers and officials,
-from General Graves downwards, had been in actual
-correspondence with Red Guard officers, and that
-more than one understanding had been arrived at
-between them; that for a time the ordinary American
-soldiers thought the understanding between the two
-forces was so general and friendly in character that
-no further hostile acts were to be contemplated
-between them. It was true that this wrecking of
-trains and attacks on the line guarded by American
-soldiers made things look serious, but they felt sure
-that the confidence existing between the American
-and Red Guard Headquarters was so well established
-that these acts of brigandage could only be due to
-some misunderstanding. The Kraevesk affair appeared
-to be only a symptom of a much wider
-policy, and not the foolish act of a negligent
-subordinate officer.
-</p>
-<p>
-Following up my inquiries there fell into my
-hands a letter, dated May 24, from the American
-officer (Captain &mdash;&mdash;) commanding the American
-forces at Svagena, addressed to the officer commanding
-the Red Guard operating in that district. The
-American officer addressed the Red Guard commandant
-as a recognised officer of equal military
-standing. The American officer complained that
-after a recent fraternisation of the two forces which
-had taken place in accordance with previous arrangements
-near the "wood mill," on the departure of
-the Red troops he received reports that the Red
-Guard officer had ordered the destruction of certain
-machinery at the mill, and had also torn up two sections
-of the line at points east and west of the station
-at Svagena. The American captain enumerated
-other accusations against the Red Guard, such as
-threats to bayonet certain orderly disposed people
-who would not join the Bolshevik army, and warned
-the Red Commissar that these acts were contrary to
-the <i>agreement</i> entered into by the chiefs of the
-American and Red forces, and if such acts were repeated
-he would take steps to punish those who
-committed such breaches of <i>their joint understanding</i>.
-</p>
-<p>
-I think this letter from the American officer at
-Svagena is positive proof of some local or general
-understanding between the American authorities and
-the Red army operating in the maritime provinces,
-and further, that this understanding had existed for
-many months; that it was this understanding which
-prevented the American forces joining in the combined
-Allied expedition to relieve the besieged
-Russian garrison in the Suchan district; that under
-this American-Bolshevik agreement the small scattered
-Red Guard bands who were dispersed by the
-Allies at the battle of Dukoveskoie in August, have
-collected together and formed definite military units.
-In other words, that the American policy, unconsciously
-or otherwise, has produced a state of indecision
-amongst the Allies, and unrest and anarchy
-amongst the population of the Transbaikal and
-Ussurie Provinces, which may prove disastrous to the
-rapid establishment of order in Russia.
-</p>
-<p>
-There are other indications that the presence of
-the American forces in Siberia has been used by
-somebody for purposes not purely American. The
-business of the American command is to secure order
-in those districts which have been placed under its
-control by the Council of Allied Commanders.
-There is another self-evident and obvious duty,
-namely, to shape their conduct in such manner as to
-create friendly relations with such elements of
-Russian authority and order as are gradually appearing
-here and there, under the influence of the
-Supreme Governor, and also provide as little space
-and opportunity as possible for the collection and
-reorganisation of the elements of disorder. The
-policy of the American command, quite unintentionally
-perhaps, has been quite the reverse. Their
-policy has resulted in turning every Russian authority
-against them, or, where this has not happened, they
-have themselves turned against Russian authority.
-They have prepared plans and created opportunities
-for the reorganisation of the forces of disorder which,
-if it does not actually create a serious situation for
-themselves, will do so for those Allies who are trying
-to bring order out of chaos. The reduction of the
-whole country to order, to enable it to decide its own
-future form of Government, is as much an American
-as a British object. That some sinister underground
-influence has deflected American policy from this
-straight and honest course is quite obvious.
-</p>
-<p>
-Contrary to general Allied opinion, the American
-command declared a neutral zone in the Suchan
-district. Armed operations by Russian, i.e. Admiral
-Koltchak's or Red Guard forces, were prohibited
-within this zone. Lenin and Trotsky's officers
-jumped at this order and at once began to collect
-their scattered forces together. Within three weeks
-they raised their Bolshevik flag on their own headquarters,
-under the protection of the flag of the
-United States. From this neutral American zone
-the Bolsheviks organised their forces for attacking the
-Japanese on the Amur, for destroying British and
-other supply trains on the Ussurie Railway, and
-finally exchanged shots with the Russian sentries
-near Vladivostok itself, always bolting back to the
-American zone when attacked by the forces of the
-Supreme Governor.
-</p>
-<p>
-The other Allies and the Russians having got the
-measure of this neutral zone business, naturally took
-steps to protect their men and property, and for a
-time the operations of this very energetic Lenin
-officer were confined to robbing and destroying a few
-isolated villages in the maritime provinces; but the
-utter absurdity of American policy was at last brought
-home to the Americans themselves. The Red Guard
-commandant, chafing under the restrictions imposed
-upon him by the Russian and Japanese forces (in
-which the British also joined when Captain Edwards
-could get near with his good ship <i>Kent</i>), decided to
-attack the unsuspecting Americans themselves. The
-Red Guard were very clever in their operations. The
-American troops were guarding the Vladivostok-Suchan
-Railway; the neutral zone was situated at the
-extreme end of the line. If the Red Guard had
-attacked the end near the zone their tactics would have
-been discovered at once. They therefore usually
-marched out from the American zone, made a detour
-through villages and forest, and struck the railway at
-a point as far distant as possible. Destroying a bit
-of line&mdash;perhaps, if they had good luck, burning a
-bridge&mdash;they usually exchanged a few shots with the
-American troops, and if pressed, marched back to the
-zone under the protection of a section of the very
-forces they had been raiding. The American command
-naturally became more vigilant on the distant
-</p>
-<p>
-Instead of proceeding to root out this nest of
-pirates, someone suggested that a more comprehensive
-and binding arrangement was necessary between
-the American and Red Guard forces, to prevent such
-regrettable occurrences in future. It was common
-talk that a conference between the Red Guard commander
-and General Graves, the American G.O.C.,
-was actually arranged, but was dropped when the
-Supreme Governor's representative in the Far East
-declared to General Graves personally that his proposed
-conference with the enemies of the Russian
-Government would be considered as a hostile act. The
-breaking off of these negotiations caused great annoyance
-to the Soviet Government at Moscow, and they
-ordered their commissars in Ussurie to use the forces
-which had been organised under American protection
-to attack their protectors, which they at once proceeded
-to do. This doubtless altered the relationship
-of these two parties, though the chances are that the
-powerful influence which forced the American commanders
-into this ill-fated policy will be powerful
-enough to prevent an open American declaration
-against the Reds in the Far East.
-</p>
-<p>
-It is well at this stage to estimate the effect this
-American muddle has had, and will continue to exert,
-upon the effort of the Allies to secure some sort of
-order in the Russian Empire, and upon the position
-of the Americans themselves in their future relations
-with the Russian people. The American troops were
-spread over the whole province from Vladivostok to
-Nevsniudinsk, a point just east of the Sea of Baikal.
-They were almost entirely confined to the railway,
-but in this country the railway is the centre and heart
-of all things. American policy at Vladivostok applied
-to the whole of this area, which is really the Transbaikal
-provinces, or all Siberia east of Baikal. In the
-early days of September, 1918, when I passed with
-my battalion towards Omsk, this immense area had
-been reduced to order by the efforts of the Allies, at
-the head of which I place the gallant Czechs. The
-American forces arrived too late to take part in
-the military operations, but began to settle down
-to the work of administration with energy and ability.
-The French moved forward after myself, and the
-Italian unit followed later, leaving the American and
-Japanese, with such isolated local Russian forces as had
-called themselves into being, in absolute possession
-of Transbaikal Siberia. There was not a single band
-of Red Guards one thousand strong in the whole
-territory. After nine months of Allied occupation
-the Reds organised, largely under American protection,
-two divisions (so called) of from 5,000 to 7,000
-men, and numerous subsidiary units of a few hundred,
-who murdered and robbed in every direction, and destroyed
-every semblance of order which the Supreme
-Governor and the Allies had with so much labour
-attempted to set up. Thus this huge province in a
-short time descended from comparative order to
-sporadic disorder, simply because America had no
-Russian policy of her own, and rejected that of her
-friends.
-</p>
-<p>
-It was a major mistake of England and France
-to leave America and Japan cheek by jowl without
-a moderating influence, to wreck the good
-work they had accomplished in the Far East. The
-rivalries of these two Powers in this part of the world
-were well known and should have been provided for.
-It was too much to expect that they would forget
-their concession and trade rivalries in a disinterested
-effort to help Russia. States are not usually philanthropic
-organisations, these two least of all. The
-work has therefore to be largely done over again,
-either by us or by the Supreme Governor, Admiral
-Koltchak. Or the Allies, finding the task too great,
-may retire and allow this huge province, probably the
-wealthiest part of the world, to recede back to the
-barbarism of the Bolshevik.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH23"><!-- CH23 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XXIII
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-JAPANESE POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-The lack of Allied cohesion produced by the defection
-of American policy from that of the European
-Powers may change completely the status and future
-of American enterprise in Siberia. America has
-transformed a friendly population into at least a suspicious,
-if not a hostile, one. Japan, on the other
-hand, has steadily pursued her special interests and
-taken full advantage of every American mistake, until
-she is now looked upon as the more important of the
-two.
-</p>
-<p>
-The attitude of Japan to the Russian problem
-made a complete somersault in the course of the year
-August, 1918, to August, 1919. When Japan sent
-her 12th Division, under General Oie, to the Ussurie
-in 1918, she did so with a definite policy. Her
-ambitions were entirely territorial in character; they
-doubtless remain so. The line of her advance has,
-however, completely changed. In 1918 she had made
-up her mind that Germany was bound to win the
-war; that Russia was a conquered country; that any
-day she might be called upon to repudiate her English
-alliance and her Entente engagements, and assist
-Germany and her Bolshevik Allies in driving the
-Entente Powers from the eastern end of the Tsar's
-dominions. Provided Germany defeated the Allies
-on the Western front, as she confidently anticipated,
-this task was well within her power. So insignificant
-was the task assigned to her in this eventuality that
-she confidently expected the immediate surrender of
-such scattered Allied and American forces as would
-find themselves marooned in this back end of the
-world. Believing this to be the position, she acted
-accordingly, treating the Russians and the other
-Allied forces in the stupidly arrogant manner I have
-already described. With the <i>na&iuml;vet&eacute;</i> of a young
-Eastern prodigy she not only made demands upon
-her Allies, but at the same time made definite proposals
-to such Russian authorities as retained a precarious
-control over the territory she had already
-assigned to herself. On landing her troops at Vladivostok
-she presented, through her proper diplomatic
-agents, to the commander of that province a set of
-proposals which would have placed her in control of
-the Russian maritime provinces. The Russian commander
-asked that these demands should be put in
-writing, and the Japanese agent, after some demur,
-agreed, on the understanding that the first demands
-should not be considered as final but only as an instalment
-of others to come. The first proposal was that
-Japan should advance the commander 150,000,000
-roubles (old value) and the commander should sign
-an agreement giving Japan possession of the foreshore
-and fishing rights up to Kamchatka, a perpetual lease
-of the Engilsky mines, and the whole of the iron (less
-that belonging to the Allies) to be found in Vladivostok.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Town Commander appears to have been
-quite honest about the business, for in correspondence
-he pointed out that he was not the Government of
-Russia, neither could he sign the property or rights
-of Russia away in the manner suggested. The Japanese
-reply was simple and to the point: "Take our
-money and sign the agreement, and we will take the
-risks about the validity." The old Directorate, with
-Avkzentieff, Bolderoff &amp; Co. standing sponsors for
-the Russian Convention, were supposed to control
-Russian affairs at this time. Directly the commandant
-refused to agree to the Japanese demands
-they transferred their claims to the old Directorate.
-The Directorate sent Evanoff Renoff to "Vlady" to
-conduct the negotiations, and I suppose to collect the
-money. When I was at "Vlady," in June, 1919,
-huge stores of iron were being collected, and some of
-it had already been shipped to Japan. Avkzentieff
-was exiled and Bolderoff was living in comfort and
-safety in Japan. These were the things that were
-above and could be seen; what happened to the other
-part of the first instalment of Japanese proposals for
-"helping" Russia will doubtless be known later.
-</p>
-<p>
-At the end of August, 1918, it was decided that
-until some sort of central authority to act as the organ
-of Government was set up, it was futile to hope for
-the return of orderly government. For this purpose
-the British went forward to Omsk and asked the
-Japanese to do likewise. The Japanese would not
-move, first because they wished to consolidate their
-power in the provinces nearest Japan, and secondly
-secure as many concessions as possible before America
-arrived on the scene. When America did arrive she
-still tarried to watch American operations. The
-British moved off into the unknown with a 5,000-mile
-line of unguarded communications; the Japanese,
-true to type, opened negotiations with the Directorate
-for the absolute possession of the railway to the Urals,
-and also asked what concessions she could expect to
-receive, territorial and mineral, as compensation for
-the use of her army for the Directorate's protection.
-A convention had just been signed, or was on the
-point of signature, between the Japanese and the
-Directorate, placing the entire railway under Japanese
-hands, when the Directorate fell. The first act
-of the Supreme Governor, Admiral Koltchak, was
-to inform the Japanese that the change in the Government
-involved a change in policy with regard to the
-advance of Japanese troops and the occupation of the
-railway. The Japanese protested, but the admiral
-stood firm.
-</p>
-<p>
-This attitude of the Supreme Governor was a
-serious setback to Japanese policy, and they became
-alarmed for their position in the Far East should his
-authority extend in that direction; but it is not
-difficult as a rule to find tools for any kind of work
-in Russia. Ataman Semianoff had for some time
-been kept by the Japanese in reserve for such an
-occasion. His forces were ranged around Chita,
-and his influence and authority extended from the
-Manchurian border to Lake Baikal. On receiving
-intimation of the change in policy from Admiral
-Koltchak, the Japanese ordered Semianoff to repudiate
-the Supreme Governor's authority; they gave
-the same instructions to Kalmakoff, who occupied
-a similar position on the Ussurie Railway and so
-placed an effective barrier between themselves, their
-Eastern concessions, and the Supreme Governor.
-The Supreme Governor ordered his Staff to clear
-these two mutineers off the line, but the Japanese
-Staff informed the Supreme Governor that these two
-Russian patriots and their forces were under the
-protection of Japan, and if necessary they would
-move the Japanese Army forward to their succour.
-</p>
-<p>
-The successful resistance of Semenoff and Kalmakoff
-to the Omsk Government, backed up by the
-armed forces of one of the Allies, had a disastrous
-effect upon the situation throughout Siberia. If
-Semianoff and Kalmakoff could, with Allied help and
-encouragement, openly deride the Omsk Government's
-orders, then it was clear to the uninitiated that
-the Allies were hostile to the supreme Russian
-authority. If Semianoff and Kalmakoff can wage
-successful hired resistance to orderly government at
-the bidding of a foreign Power, why cannot we do
-so, to retain the land and property we have stolen
-and prevent the proper administration of justice for
-the crimes we have committed? It was intended as
-a deliberate attack upon authority and an incentive to
-the disorderly elements to continue the prevailing
-anarchy. A united, well organised Russia is not the
-kind of Russia Japan wishes to see established. If
-Japan is to succeed in her territorial ambitions in the
-Far East, Russia must be kept in a state of mental
-disorder and physical paralysis. Germany used the
-Russian love of conspiracy and intrigue to create
-disorder and destroy the Muscovite power; Japan
-intends, if possible, to continue that disorder for her
-own political reasons.
-</p>
-<p>
-Directly it became known that Semianoff and
-Kalmakoff had set the Omsk Government at defiance,
-numerous other would-be Semenoffs came on
-the scene until the very residence of the Supreme
-Governor and his Headquarters Staff scarcely escaped
-attack, and it became necessary to show the British
-Tommy on the side of order. This was the position
-up till the early days of December, 1918.
-</p>
-<p>
-Just about this time the fact that Germany was
-beaten began to take shape in the Japanese military
-mind, and the fact was hammered home by the terms
-of the Armistice. For some days the Japanese Mission
-at Omsk flatly refused to believe the cables; their
-national pride refused to admit that they had so far
-misunderstood the power of Britain and her Allies.
-It was a terrible awakening to the self-styled "Lords
-of the East" that all their schemes should be brought
-to nought, that British and American squadrons
-might be expected to cruise in the Sea of Japan, and
-perhaps hold the scales fair between her and her
-temporarily helpless neighbour. I do not suppose it
-will ever come to that, but such was her fear. From
-this time on, while the objects of Japan in Siberia
-were still the same, she pursued them by quite different
-methods.
-</p>
-<p>
-The first sign of change was that Japanese soldiers
-were allowed to salute British officers and were no
-longer allowed to use the butts of their rifles on
-inoffensive Russian citizens. Their military trains
-no longer conveyed contraband goods to their compatriots
-who had <i>acquired</i> the Russian business houses
-in the main trading centres along the railway. The
-Staff no longer commandeered the best buildings in
-the towns for alleged military purposes and immediately
-sub-let them to private traders. Japan at once
-re-robed herself with the thin veil of Western morals
-and conduct which she had rapturously discarded in
-1914. While Hun methods were in the ascendancy
-she adopted the worst of them as her own. She is in
-everything the imitator <i>par excellence</i>, and therefore
-apparently could not help herself.
-</p>
-<p>
-The British and French mildly protested against
-the attitude of Japan towards Semianoff and Kalmakoff,
-but it was continued until the anarchy created
-threatened to frustrate every Allied effort. Not until
-the Peace Conference had disclosed the situation did
-a change in policy take place. From this time on the
-conduct of Japan (both civil and military) became
-absolutely correct. President Wilson brought forward
-his famous, but impossible, proposal that the
-different Russian belligerents should agree to an
-armistice and hold a conference on the Turkish "Isle
-of Dogs." If patriotism is the maintenance of such
-rules of human conduct and national life as will justify
-one man in killing another, then no Russian patriot
-could meet in friendly conference those who had
-destroyed and murdered their own country and
-people. Russia during the previous two years had
-shown that there could be no compromise between
-anarchy and order, or their several adherents. This
-was, however, the policy of America, and as such
-received the blessing of every representative, Jew
-or Gentile, of the U.S.A. in Siberia. Japan saw a
-kink in the American armour and took full advantage
-of the chance to damage U.S.A. prestige. She
-rallied Russian patriotism to her side by advising that
-no notice be taken of this harebrained suggestion.
-Japan's advice received the secret blessing of both
-French and English who knew the situation, though
-in our case we had to admit that the British Premier
-had stood sponsor for this international monstrosity.
-This gave Japanese diplomacy its first clear hold upon
-Russian patriotism and enabled her to appear as a true
-friend of orderly government.
-</p>
-<p>
-American diplomacy in Russia had received its
-first great shock, but with careful handling it was still
-possible to recover the lost ground. With the utter
-failure of the "Isle of Dogs" policy, Russian rage
-quickly subsided and a normal condition soon returned.
-The Allies had received a salutary warning,
-and most of them took the hint, but America continued
-on her debatable course. Having failed diplomatically
-to effect a compromise, she tried to force
-her views by military means. The neutral zone
-system of her commanders was the natural outcome
-of President Wilson's proposal. The intention was
-excellent, that the results would be disastrous was
-never in doubt. It forced the American command to
-adopt a sort of local recognition of the Red Army
-within the zone, and enabled the Japanese to appear
-as the sole friend of Russian order. The Japanese
-were attacked by Red forces collected in these zones,
-with American soldiers standing as idle spectators of
-some of the most desperate affairs between Red and
-Allied troops. Japan was entitled to reap the kudos
-such a situation brought to her side, while America
-could not expect to escape the severest censure.
-</p>
-<p>
-Profiting by the blunders of her great antagonist,
-Japan managed in six months to recover all the
-ground she had lost while suffering under the illusion
-of a great Hun victory that was to give her the Lordship
-of the East. From a blustering bandit she has
-become a humble helper of her poor, sick, Russian
-neighbour. In which role she is most dangerous time
-will show. The world as a rule has little faith in
-sudden conversions.
-</p>
-<p>
-This, then, was the situation in the Far East in
-June, 1919. As I was leaving Vladivostok I heard
-that the Red forces that had been organised in the
-American neutral zones had at last boldly attacked
-their protectors. If this was correct, it may be the
-reason why Admiral Koltchak was able to report
-their defeat and rout over the Chinese border and we
-were back again at the point at which British and
-Czech co-operation had arrived a year previously.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="CH24"><!-- CH24 --></a>
-<h2>
- CHAPTER XXIV
-</h2>
-
-<h3>
-GENERAL CONCLUSIONS
-</h3><p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>
-Before we decide our policy as to withdrawal or
-otherwise from Russia it is necessary to know
-whether we have contracted any obligations to the
-Russian people, and what is the nature of such obligations,
-if any. Are they moral, military, or political?
-</p>
-<p>
-Towards the end of 1914, when our army had
-been driven back behind the Marne and the future
-of Europe and our Empire was in the balance, frantic
-appeals were made by British statesmen, and even
-by still more august authority, asking Russia to rush
-to our aid and save us from destruction. This appeal
-was backed by British public and Labour opinion,
-and through our Press made a profound impression
-upon the Russian people. The Russian Government,
-regardless of their best military advice, forced their
-partially mobilised legions to make a rapid flying raid
-into East Prussia, which immediately reduced the
-pressure upon our own armies and made the victory
-of the Marne possible. Hurriedly mobilised, imperfectly
-equipped, not too brilliantly led, these legions,
-constituting the chivalry of Russia, became the prey
-of Prussia's perfect military machine. The Russian
-Government never dared to tell the Russian peasant
-the number of Russian souls who were mutilated by
-high explosives and smothered in the cold Masurian
-marshes in that sublime effort to save her friends.
-Russia lost as many men in saving Paris during that
-raid as did all the other Allies in the first year of the
-war.
-</p>
-<p>
-Russia continued to fight and mobilise until 1917,
-by which time she had collected a huge army of over
-twelve million men. The Hohenzollern dynasty and
-its military advisers came to the conclusion that it
-would soon be impossible to stem this human tide by
-ordinary military means, and having a complete
-understanding of Russian psychology through its
-dynastic and administrative agents, decided to undermine
-the <i>moral</i> of the Russian people. German
-"Black Books" were not employed against British
-leaders exclusively. We need not wonder at the
-rapid spread among Russians of suspicion against
-their civil and military leaders when we remember
-that the same sort of propaganda admittedly influenced
-the administration of justice in England.
-The people of Russia were true to their friends,
-demoralisation and decomposition began at the head,
-rapidly filtering down to the lowest strata of society.
-</p>
-<p>
-If the Allied cause was deserted, it was the
-desertion of a ruling class, not of a people or its
-army. German treachery wormed its way in at the
-top, and so destroyed a great race it never could
-have conquered.
-</p>
-<p>
-Having disorganised the Russian military
-machine, Germany sent her agents to continue the
-disorder and prevent recovery. She secured the
-Brest-Litovsk Treaty, and made a levy of several
-hundred millions sterling upon her bailiffs, whom she
-put in possession of her neighbour's property. Lenin
-and Trotsky found anarchy the most effective weapon
-to further the interest of their masters and protect
-their Eastern flank. A peace which virtually extended
-German conquest to the hinterland of Tsing-Tchau
-was dangerous to every civilising influence in
-the Far East.
-</p>
-<p>
-The Bolshevik treaty was not less dangerous to
-Europe herself, since it brought a war-like population
-of one hundred and eighty millions within the sphere
-of German military influence.
-</p>
-<p>
-The British Expeditionary Force was ordered to
-Siberia in June, 1918, to assist the orderly elements
-of Russian society to reorganise themselves under a
-national Government and to resurrect and reconstruct
-the Russian front. Firstly, to enable Russia
-to resist German aggression; secondly, to weaken
-German military power on the Western front, where
-at that time she was again delivering hammer-blows
-at the gates of Paris. This expedition was approved
-by every party and patriot in Britain, and the only
-criticism offered at the time was that it should have
-been so long delayed. Soviet power under German
-and Austrian direction had released the German and
-Austrian prisoners of war, armed and organised them
-into formidable armies to perform the double task
-of maintaining their creatures in power at Moscow
-and extending their domination over a helpless
-friendly Allied Power.
-</p>
-<p>
-There was every reason for treating the Dictatorship
-of Lenin and Trotsky as a mere side-show of
-the German military party; they were, in fact, a
-branch of the military problem with which the Allies
-were bound to deal. Under Entente direction anti-Bolshevik
-Governments were established, and were
-promised the unstinted help of the Allies to recover
-their territory and expel the agents of the enemy
-who had so foully polluted their own home. It was
-on this understanding that Admiral Koltchak, by
-herculean efforts, hurled the German hirelings over
-the Urals, and awaited near Vatka the advance of
-the Allies from Archangel preparatory to a march
-on Petrograd. Alas! he waited for seven long
-months in vain; the Allies never came! After
-expending his last ounce of energy and getting so
-near to final victory, we failed him at the post.
-Why?
-</p>
-<p>
-The menace to our own armies in France had
-disappeared; there was, I suppose, no longer an
-urgent necessity to re-establish the Russian front,
-though the possibility of such re-establishment had
-kept huge German forces practically demobilised
-near the Russian and Ukrainian frontiers. Koltchak
-and his gallant comrade Denikin had served the
-Entente purpose. Lenin and Trotsky, by wholesale
-intimidation and murder, had aroused the enthusiasm
-of similarly disposed compatriots in Allied countries.
-These compatriots were becoming noisy in the constituencies.
-The establishment of order to enable
-the Russian people to establish a clean democratic
-Government, and arise from their nightmare of
-unbridled anarchy, while very desirable in itself,
-was not a good party cry in any of the Western
-democracies. I grant all these things; but what
-about honour? Has this no longer any place in the
-political curriculum of the Allied Powers?
-</p>
-<p>
-These are only some of the things it is necessary
-to remember before we finally decide to desert a
-temporarily sick friend. If I were the ruler of a
-state I should pray the gods to preserve me from
-half-hearted Allies and over-cautious friends. If I
-wished to help a fallen state or lend an honest hand
-in a great cause, whether it were to eradicate a
-hideous and fatal national malady or assert a principle
-of right and justice, first shield me from the palsy
-of Allied diplomacy! One clear-sighted, honest
-helper is worth a dozen powerful aiders whose main
-business is to put obstacles in each other's way.
-</p>
-<p>
-If we were discussing the question of Allied
-interference before the fact, I could give many
-reasons for remaining neutral; but we have to
-recognise that for their own purposes they have
-interfered, that their Military Missions and forces
-have been operating in the country for over a year,
-during which time they have made commitments and
-given pledges of a more or less binding character.
-That these commitments and pledges are not the
-irresponsible acts of subordinates on the spot, but
-have been made by Allied statesmen, both in and
-out of their several Parliaments; and in this respect
-our national leaders are no exception to the rule.
-Without filling my pages with quotations, readers
-will be able to find and tabulate such for themselves.
-So categorical are the nature of these that it is
-impossible to imagine them to have been made
-without fully understanding their import and significance
-to the orderly section of the Russian people
-who, on the faith of these pledges, gave us their
-trust.
-</p>
-<p>
-It cannot, therefore, be a discussion upon interference
-or non-interference; <i>that</i> has long since been
-disposed of by our words and acts. It is now a
-question whether we shall withdraw from Russia
-because we have thought fit to change our attitude
-to the Russian problem. It is certain that our
-decision to-day upon this subject will decide our
-future relations with this great people. If you desert
-a friend in his hour of need, you cannot expect that
-he will be particularly anxious to help you when he
-has thrown off his ill-health and is in a position to
-give valuable help to those who gave succour in his
-distress.
-</p>
-<p>
-If our desertion turns this people from us, they
-will become the prey of our recent enemies, and if
-that happens we can prate about the Treaty of Paris
-as much as we like. The Teuton will have more
-than balanced the account.
-</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<a name="IDX"><!-- IDX --></a>
-<h2>
- Index
-</h2>
-
-<pre>
-Absolutists, Russian
-Affinasiaff, General, headquarters of
-Allies, the,
- a Russian reaction against
- policy for resurrection of Russia
-All-Russian Government, the formation of
-America
- and Siberia
- and the Far East
- her "neutral zone" in the Suchan district
-American policy and its results
-Americans
- arrive at Vladivostok
- an agreement with Bolsheviks
-Anghara River
-Anglo-Russian infantry brigade, formation of
-Antonovka
- a critical position at
- Cossack position at
- Kalmakoff, surprised at
-Antonovsky, General, intrigues of
-Archangel
- an Anglo-American force at
- failure of a projected march on Petrograd from
-Argunoff exiled
-Armistice between Germany and Entente Powers
-Armoured trains, a duel between
-Avkzentieff and Chernoff
- exiled
- President of Council of Ministers
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Baikal
- a titanic struggle at
- arrival at
-Baikal Sea (<i>see</i> Lake Baikal)
-Barabinsk
- a meeting at
- the market at
-Bath, Captain
-Beloff, General, intrigues of
-Berwkoff, death of
-Bezovsky, Colonel, and a Cossack parade
-Blizzard, gales and frost in Siberia
-Bogotol, a meeting at
-Bolderoff, General
- and Japanese demands
- confers with Koltchak at Petropalovsk
- in consultation with Czech National Council in Japan
-Bolsaar, Lieutenant
-Bolshevik
- losses at Perm
- method of military organisation,
-Bolsheviks
- an agreement with Americans
- atrocities of
- author's address to
- disguised as Russian soldiers
- recognised as legitimate belligerents
- successes of
- their conception of treachery
- train-wrecking by
- utter demoralisation of
-Boulton, Quartermaster-Captain
-Bowes, General
-Brest-Litovsk Treaty, the
-British Expeditionary Force ordered to Siberia
-British Military Mission placed under arrest
-Browne, Captain
-Browne, Major
- inspects guards of honour at Krasnoyarsk
-Buckley, Lieutenant
-Budburg, von, and an alleged Allied force
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Canadians
- arrive in Siberia
- insubordination among
-Chernoff, President of Social Revolutionary party
-Chilliyabinsk, a visit to
-Chinese Eastern Railway, American control of
-Chinese
- entertain British at Harbin
- friendship for the English
- frontier, State prisoners conveyed to
- robber bands of Mongolia
-Chita
- an incident at
- Bolshevik "kultur" at
- Japanese at
- Royalist conspiracies at
-Clark, Captain, and Dukoveskoie battle
-Coleman, Sergeant, of the Durham L.I.
-Cornish-Bowden, Second Lieutenant, and the political exiles
-Cossacks, horsemanship of
-Czech National Army, the, presentation of colours to
-Czechs
- a tribute to their gunnery
- and the question of a Dictatorship
- defection of
- defensive tactics of
- frustrate a Bolshevik scheme
- mutilated by Bolsheviks
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Denikin, General
- makes submission to Koltchak
-Detriks, General
- reports on military situation
- visits the front
-Directorate and Government, members of, arrested
-Directorate of Five, the
- dissolved
-Dukoveskoie
- a new line at
- battle of
-Dust-storms, Siberian
-Dutoff, General
- reports Bolshevik treachery
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Easter at Perm
-Eastman, Captain
-Education, the Church and
-Edwards, Captain
-Ekaterinburg
- an invitation from
- meetings of railwaymen at
-Eliot, Sir Charles, British High Commissioner
-Elmsley, Brigadier-General
-European Russia, a visit to
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Frank, Colonel R. Antonivitch, author's liaison officer
- an exciting incident at Krasnoyarsk
-Frank, Madame
- acts as correspondent and translator for labour missions
- commands a company in the trenches
- conveys a Bolshevik victim to hospital
-Frazer, David, <i>Times</i> correspondent
-French, the, and General Knox's mission
- form a German Legion
- "prestige" of
- protect Serbian ruffians
- their influence in Omsk
-French-Tonquin Battalion, the
-Fugi, General, and his command
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Gaida, General
- and Pepelaieff
- arrests Czech soldiers
- author's introduction to
- captures Perm
- resigns his Czech commission.
- surrender of Red Guards to
-Galitzin, General Count
- and the Perm offensive
- personality of
-Ganin, General, a strange order from
- and his command
- decorates Allied representatives,
- releases enemy prisoners
- the Omsk Government and
-George V., King, letter to President Wilson
-German-Magyar-Chinese combination, the
-Germans, enterprise of
- sanguine of victory in world war
-"Germans of the East"
-Ghondati, General, his hopes and fears
-Glashoff, a seven months' wait at
-Golovaehoff, M., meets author
-Gordon, Regimental Sergt.-Major
-Graves, General, and the Bolsheviks
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Hachinsk, author at
-Hampshire Territorials arrive at Omsk
- move to Ekaterinburg, 222
-Harbin, author's reception at
- political and financial intrigues in
- question of travelling accommodation at
-Hazelar, a parade service at
-Hepoff, General, a story of
-Hinghan Range, the
-Hodgson, Mr., British consul
-Hong-Kong, "Die-Hards'" departure from
-"Hovart's Army"
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Imokentievskaya, a workmen's meeting at
-Inagaki, Colonel
-"Intelligenzia," the
- (<i>cf.</i> Kerensky)
-International World Workers, the
-Irkutsk, author opens his campaign at
- arrival at
- Bolshevik "kultur" in
- Japanese traders at
- much-needed rifles at
- welcome to Middlesex Regiment at
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Japan and the maritime provinces
- her attitude to Siberians
- intervention of
- policy in the Far East
-Japanese, a promise countermanded
- and "class" carriages for British officers
- and Semianoff
- and the English flag
- bugle band, a
- casualties at Dukoveskoie and Kraevesk
- changed attitude of, after the Armistice
- charge an armoured train
- propaganda in Omsk
- retire without notice
- their contempt for Russians
- their mistrust of Allies
-Johnson, Lieut.-Colonel, and his command
- introduced to Koltchak
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Kalmakoff, Ataman, Cossack commander
- a forced retirement
- dismisses his second in command
- Japanese orders to
-Kameragh, railway troubles at
-Kanaka, General, Japanese Chief of Staff
-Kansk, an address to workmen at
- revolt at
-Katanaev, Lieut.-Colonel, placed under arrest
-<i>Kent</i>
-Kerensky destroys old Russian army
-Kerensky and Korniloff
- Intelligenzia party of
- Russian opinion of
-Khama River, evidences of Terrorist atrocities in,
- moving ice on the
-King, Lieutenant T.E., of Middlesex Regiment
-Klukvinah, enemy defeat at
-Knox, General, a conference with
- a decoration for
- and the railway revolt
- at Taiga
- inoculated against typhus
- Japanese insult to
- object of his mission
- patriotic speech by
- removes to Ekaterinburg
- Siberian tour of
- tribute to
-Koltchak, Admiral, accepts supreme authority
- Allied felicitations to
- an unexpected conference with Bolderoff
- and an Allied appointment
- and the arrest of members of the Council
- and the Czech ceremony
- and the December revolt
- and the Omsk <i>coup d'&eacute;tat</i>
- assurances on the labour problem
- author's farewell interviews with
- becomes Minister for War
- impartial justice of
- intrigues against
- on American policy in the Far East
- orders arrest of Czechs
- personality of
- receives reports of author's mission
- tenders his resignation
- tribute to
- visits Ural fronts
-Korniloff, General, Kerensky's order to
-Koulomsino, Bolsheviks at
-Kraevesk, battle of
- startling news from
- "the station without a town,"
- visited by author
-Krasilnikoff, Lieut-Colonel, placed under arrest
-Krasnoyarsk, an incident at a banquet at
- an interview with Gen. Rosanoff at
- arrival at
- author's addresses at
- Bolsheviks in
- Colonel Frank wounded by Serbs at
- derelict war material at
- international intrigues at
-Kunghure front, a visit to the
-Kushva, evidences of Bolshevik rule in
- mineral deposits of
- the Bolshevik Commissar of
- the Watkin Works and its heroes
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Lake Baikal
- an autumn sunrise on
-Lebediff, Colonel (afterwards General)
- a warning to
-Ledwards, Mr., British Vice-Consul at Nikolsk
-Lenin
-Lisvin front, a visit to the
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Machinery, German <i>v</i>. English
-Malley, Major, friendly relations with
- his command
-Manchuli, a much-talked-of incident at
- Bolshevik atrocities at
- Japanese Division at
-Manchuria, plains of
-Manchurian-Chinese Eastern Railway, the
-Manchurian front, conditions on the
-Marca, author's Cossack attendant
-Matkofsky, General, welcomes author at Omsk
-Middlesex Regiment (25th Battalion) and battle of Dukoveskoie
- leaves Hong-Kong for Siberia
- machine-gun section of
- welcomed in Irkutsk
-Mitchel
- bravery of
-Moffat, Petty Officer, his Naval party surrounded,
-Mongolia, plains of
- robber bands of
- Tartars of
- the Japanese and
-Mongolians ask Semianoff to become their Emperor
-Moorman, Lance-Corporal
-Morrisy, Lieut.-Colonel, of Canadian contingent
-Mosquitoes In Siberia,
-Munro, Lieutenant, brings comforts for soldiers
-Murray, Captain Wolfe, commands armoured trains from <i>Suffolk</i>
-Muto, General, and Japanese propaganda
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Nadegenska, steelworks of
-Nash, Consul, as host
-Navy, the, artillery assistance by
-Neilson, Lieut.-Col. J.F.
-Nesniodinsk, an address to workmen at
-Nevanisk, before and after Bolshevik rule
-Nicholas II., Tsar, abolishes vodka
- his prison
- murder of
-Nikolioff, Colonel, and surrendered Bolsheviks
-Nikolsk, a courteous station-master
- arrival at
- Bolshevik "kultur" at
- Japanese headquarters at
-Niloy-ugol, the barracks at
-Novo Nikoliosk, author at
- enemy prisoners released at
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Oie, General, an urgent message from
- headquarters of
- thanks British
-Olhanka, Czech and Cossack retirement from
-Omsk, a <i>coup d'&eacute;tat</i> in
- a dust-storm in
- arrival at
- blizzard, gales and frost in
- Canadians arrive at
- comforts for the troops
- disappearance of British influence in
- friendships formed at
- terrible days in
- the political situation in
- revisited
-Otani, General, orders to author
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Paris, a bombshell from, and the effect
-Paris Council, the,
- and the pressure on French front
-Pastokova, Madame, author's meeting with
-Pastrokoff, Mr.
- relates an incident of relief of Perm
-Payne, Commodore
- a paraphrased cable from War Office
- provides artillery assistance
-Peacock, Consul, and the imprisonment of an Australian
-Pepelaieff, General, conference with
- meets General Gaida
- plight of his army
- the Perm offensive
-Perm, a French Mission arrives at
- a meeting in railway works at
- a suggested advance on
- an incident of relief of
- Bolshevik atrocities in
- capture of
- high prices and rate of exchange at
- increased wages under Bolshevik rule
- the opposing forces at battle of
- the Orthodox Easter celebration at
-Petrograd, failure of a projected march on
-Petropalovsk, an eventful conference at
-Pichon, Major, and the Japanese commander
- author's tribute to
- consultation with author
- his command
- informs author of Armistice terms
- thanked by author
-Pickford, Brigadier, and the Canadian troops
-Plisshkoff, General, and his command
-Pomerensiv, Captain, a consultation with
- a present from
-Poole, General
-Pootenseiff, General Evan, his farewell to author
-Preston, Mr., British Consul at Ekaterinburg
- evidence as to Bolshevik outrages
-Prickly heat
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Renault, Monsieur, French representative at Omsk
-Renoff, General Evanoff
- a cipher message from
- and the Japanese demands
-Roberts, Captain
-Robertson, Colonel
-Rogovsky, exile of
-Rosanoff, General, Bolderoff's Chief of Staff
- in command at Krasnoyarsk
-Royalist and Bolshevist conspiracy, a
-Runovka, an entertaining duel at
- Cossack position at
- enemy success at
-Russia, a political crisis in
- a reaction against European Allies in
- aim of Allied "politicals" in
- an unholy partnership in
- German treachery in
- hard lot of workmen in
- labour problem in
- murder of the Tsar
- peasantry of
- railway troubles in
- the herald of Spring in
- the puzzle of Allied help to
-Russian Army, the, mutiny in
- "Bill of Rights," the
- democracy: the Soviet basis of
- Headquarters, British in possession of
- political exiles conveyed to Chinese frontier
-Russians, emotionalism of
- religious instincts of
- Royalist sympathies of officers
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Sand dunes of Mongolia
-Savinoff, trial of
-Semianoff, Colonel, agent of Japanese traders
- and the political exiles
- makes submission to Koltchak
- personality of
- repudiates Koltchak's authority
- revenue from railway carriages
-Serbian soldiers, an exciting adventure with
-Sheep, Mongolian
-Shmakovka, Allies at
- armoured trains dispatched from
- enemy centre at
-Siberia, a belated expedition to
- American policy and its results
- and the Allies
- arrival of Canadians in
- derelict corn in
- Government of
- Japanese policy and its results
- mosquitoes in
- reason for British intervention in
-Siberian Cossack Regiment (2nd), parade of
-Siberian Rifles, presentation of colours to
-Sly, Mr., British Consul at Harbin
-Social Revolutionary party, the
- a fateful proclamation by
- and the new army
-Soldiers' Councils established
-Soviets and Russian democracy
-Spascoe, author's headquarters at
- British quarters at
-Stephan, Captain (now Major)
- Czech commander
- his services to Allies
-Stephani, Captain
-Stephanik, General, the Legion of Honour for
-Suchan district, a neutral zone in
-<i>Suffolk</i>
-Sukin, M.
-Sungary, River
-Surovey, General
- releases Czech prisoners
-Svagena, an American-Bolshevik agreement at
- arrival at
- Czech retirement on
- Japanese at
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Taiga, a successful meeting at
-Taighill, Bolshevik destruction at
-Tartar herdsmen, Mongolian
-Terrorists (<i>see</i> Bolsheviks)
-Teutonic penetration and Bolshevism
-Titoff, trial of
-Tomsk, the Siberian Districts Duma
-Trotsky
-Tumen, author addresses workmen at
-Typhus in European Russia
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Ufa Directorate, the
-United States (<i>see</i> America)
-Ural front, question of supplies for
-Urals, the, mineral wealth of
-Uspenkie
-Ussurie front, critical conditions on
-Ussurie operations, completion of
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Vackneah Turansky Works, the
-Vatka
-Ventris, Major-General F.
-Verzbitsky, General
- and the battle of Perm
-Vladimir
-Vladivostok, Americans arrive at
- arrival of Canadians at
- author's arrival at
- Japanese arrival at
- Japanese demands to Town Commander of
- iron shipped to Japan
-Volagodsky, President of Siberian Council
-Volkov, Colonel, placed under arrest
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Ward, Colonel John, a Bolshevik
- surrender and an object-lesson
- a guard of soldier "monks"
- addresses surrendered Red Guards
- an interview with Major Pichon
- an urgent message from Japanese commander
- and December Royalist and Bolshevist conspiracy
- and the Kraevesk affair
- and the Omsk <i>coup d'&eacute;tat</i>
- appeals to working men and women at Irkutsk
- arrives at Vladivostok
- as administrator
- at banquet in honour of All-Russian Government
- at Irkutsk
- attends Allied commanders' council
- attends an Orthodox Easter celebration
- created a C.B.
- entrains for Ussurie front
- exciting experiences at Krasnoyarsk
- experiences of the "hidden hand"
- farewell interviews with Koltchak
- homeward bound
- in European Russia
- inquires into railwaymen's grievances
- leaves Hong-Kong for Siberia
- made an Ataman
- official reports on Omsk situation
- officialdom&mdash;and a proposed attack
- on the labour problem in Russia
- ordered to Omsk
- receives the Croix de Guerre
- reports result of his mission
- requests removal of his headquarters
- revisits Omsk
- speech at Svagena
- straight talk with a Japanese officer
- the Manchuli incident and an explanation
- visits a Tartar herdsman's abode
- visits Ural fronts
- witnesses a duel between armoured trains
-Webb, Sergeant, death of
-Wilson, President, his impossible proposal
- King George's letter to
-Wolves, Mongolian
-Women's suffrage, question of
-</pre>
-<pre>
-Zema, a stop at, and the cause
- a successful meeting at
- houses searched and arms seized
-Zenzinoff and Chernoff
- exiled
-Zochinko, General
-
-
-</pre>
-<hr class="full">
-<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA***</p>
-<p>******* This file should be named 10972-h.txt or 10972-h.zip *******</p>
-<p>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:<br />
-<a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/9/7/10972">https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/9/7/10972</a></p>
-<p>Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.</p>
-
-<p>Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.</p>
-
-
-
-<pre>
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-<a href="https://gutenberg.org/license">https://gutenberg.org/license)</a>.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
-page at https://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit https://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
-donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's
-eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
-
-Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
-VERSIONS based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
-new filenames and etext numbers.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
-<a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">https://www.gutenberg.org</a>
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-EBooks posted prior to November 2003, with eBook numbers BELOW #10000,
-are filed in directories based on their release date. If you want to
-download any of these eBooks directly, rather than using the regular
-search system you may utilize the following addresses and just
-download by the etext year.
-
-<a href="http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext06">http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext06</a>
-
- (Or /etext 05, 04, 03, 02, 01, 00, 99,
- 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90)
-
-EBooks posted since November 2003, with etext numbers OVER #10000, are
-filed in a different way. The year of a release date is no longer part
-of the directory path. The path is based on the etext number (which is
-identical to the filename). The path to the file is made up of single
-digits corresponding to all but the last digit in the filename. For
-example an eBook of filename 10234 would be found at:
-
-https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/2/3/10234
-
-or filename 24689 would be found at:
-https://www.gutenberg.org/2/4/6/8/24689
-
-An alternative method of locating eBooks:
-<a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/GUTINDEX.ALL">https://www.gutenberg.org/GUTINDEX.ALL</a>
-
-*** END: FULL LICENSE ***
-</pre>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img01.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img01.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8d416c1..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img01.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img02a.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img02a.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 62bd3ea..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img02a.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img02b.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img02b.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5364436..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img02b.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img03.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img03.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bc7a15a..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img03.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img03t.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img03t.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8daa818..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img03t.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img04.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img04.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 61387fc..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img04.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img04t.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img04t.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 45dc4d4..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img04t.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img05a.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img05a.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7b38385..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img05a.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img05b.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img05b.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7bbf33c..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img05b.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972-h/images/img06.jpg b/old/10972-h/images/img06.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ac488e2..0000000
--- a/old/10972-h/images/img06.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/10972.txt b/old/10972.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index d672737..0000000
--- a/old/10972.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7793 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook, With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia, by John Ward
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-
-
-Title: With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia
-
-Author: John Ward
-
-Release Date: February 6, 2004 [eBook #10972]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: US-ASCII
-
-
-***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA***
-
-
-E-text prepared by Jonathan Ingram, Steven desJardins, and Project
-Gutenberg Distributed Proofreaders
-
-
-
-Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this
- file which includes the original illustrations.
- See 10972-h.htm or 10972-h.zip:
- (http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/1/0/9/7/10972/10972-h/10972-h.htm)
- or
- (http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/1/0/9/7/10972/10972-h.zip)
-
-
-
-
-
-With the "Die-Hards" in Siberia
-
-By Col. John Ward
-C.B., C.M.G., M.P.
-
-With Eight Plates
-
-1920
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-To MY COMRADES
-
-OFFICERS, N.C.O.s AND MEN OF THE
-18th, 19th, 25th AND 26th BATTALIONS OF
-THE MIDDLESEX REGIMENT
-
-who, on sea and land, in sunshine and snow, so
-worthily upheld the traditional gallantry and
-honour of their people and country
-
-
-
-
-FORWARD
-
-Originally written for the private use of my sons in case I did not
-return, this narrative of events connected with the expedition to
-Siberia must of necessity lack many of the necessary elements which go
-to make a history. I wrote of things as they occurred, and recorded the
-reasons and motives which prompted the participants. Many things have
-happened since which seem to show that we were not always right in our
-estimate of the forces at work around us. Things are not always what
-they seem, and this is probably more evident in the domain of Russian
-affairs than in any other. It would have been comparatively easy to
-alter the text and square it with the results, but that would have
-destroyed the main value of the story.
-
-The statesman and the soldier rarely write history; it is their
-misfortune to make it. It is quite easy to be a prophet when you know
-the result. You can, as a rule, judge what a certain set of people will
-do in a certain set of circumstances, but where you deal with State
-policy which may be influenced by events and circumstances which have
-not the remotest connection with the question involved, it is impossible
-to give any forecast of their conduct on even the most elementary
-subject.
-
-The recent tragic events played out in the vast domain of Siberia are a
-case in point. It is certain that Admiral Koltchak would never have gone
-to Siberia, nor have become the head of the constitutional movement and
-government of Russia, if he had not been advised and even urged to do so
-by the Allies. He received the most categorical promises of
-whole-hearted support and early Allied recognition before he agreed to
-take up the dangerous duty of head of the Omsk Government. Had these
-urgings and promises been ungrudgingly performed a Constituent Assembly
-would be now sitting at Moscow hammering out the details of a Federal
-Constitution for a mighty Russian Republic or a parliamentary system
-similar to our own.
-
-On the declaration of the Koltchak Government, General Denikin, General
-Dutoff, General Hovart, and the North Russian Governments made over
-their authority to Omsk. There was at once a clear issue--the Terrorist
-at Moscow, the Constitutionalist at Omsk. Had the Allies at this
-juncture translated their promises into acts, from what untold suffering
-Russia and Europe might have been saved!
-
-The mere act of recognition would have created a wonderful impression on
-the Russian mind, in addition to giving the Allies a lever by which they
-could have guided the course of events and stabilised the Baltic. It
-would have given security to Russian finance, and enabled trade
-relations to have commenced with the wealthiest part of the Russian
-dominions.
-
-The reconstruction of Russia, about which the Allies talk so glibly,
-would have gone forward with a bound by natural means, which not even
-Allied bungling could have prevented. The Omsk Government could have got
-money on better terms than any of the Allies, because, accepted within
-the comity of nations, it could have given better security than any of
-them, even including America. Europe would have been fed, Russia would
-have been clothed, and the world would have been saved from its greatest
-tragedies. All this and more would have naturally followed from the
-barest performance of our promises.
-
-We did worse than this. Breach of promise is only a negative crime. The
-Allies went to the other extreme; their help took the form of positive
-wilful obstruction. The Japanese, by bolstering up Semianoff and
-Kalmakoff, and the Americans, by protecting and organising enemies, made
-it practically impossible for the Omsk Government to maintain its
-authority or existence. The most that could be expected was that both
-would see the danger of their policy in time to avert disaster. One did;
-the other left when the evils created had got beyond control. Koltchak
-has not been destroyed so much by the acts of his enemies as by the
-stupidity and neglect of his Allied friends.
-
-As the Bolshevik rabble again sweeps over Siberia in a septic flood we
-hear again the question: "How can they do so unless they have a majority
-of the people behind them?" I answer that by asking: "How did a one-man
-government exist in Russia from 'Ivan the Terrible' to Nicholas II?"
-Both systems are autocratic; both exist by the same means--"Terror."
-There is, however, this difference. The autocracy of the Tsars was a
-natural product from an early form of human society. The Bolshevik
-autocracy is an unnatural product, and therefore carries within itself
-the seed of its own destruction. It is an abortion, and unless it
-rapidly changes its character cannot hope to exist as a permanent form
-of organised society. It is a disease which, if we cannot attack, we can
-isolate until convalescence sets in. There is, however, the possibility
-that the patient during the progress of the malady may become delirious
-and run amok; for these more dangerous symptoms it would be well for his
-neighbours to keep watch and guard. This madness can only be temporary.
-This great people are bound to recover, and become all the stronger for
-their present trials.
-
-JOHN WARD.
-
-February, 1920.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-CHAPTER
-
- 1. FROM HONG-KONG TO SIBERIA
- 2. BOLSHEVIK SUCCESSES
- 3. JAPAN INTERVENES
- 4. THE BATTLE OF DUKOVESKOIE AND KRAEVESK
- 5. JAPANESE METHODS AND ALLIED FAR-EASTERN POLICY
- 6. ADMINISTRATION
- 7. FURTHER INCIDENTS OF OUR JOURNEY
- 8. BEYOND THE BAIKAL
- 9. OMSK
-10. ALONG THE URALS
-11. WHAT HAPPENED AT OMSK
-12. THE CAPTURE OF PERM: THE CZECHS RETIRE FROM THE FIGHTING
-13. THE DECEMBER ROYALIST AND BOLSHEVIST CONSPIRACY
-14. A BOMBSHELL FROM PARIS AND THE EFFECT
-15. MORE INTRIGUES
-16. RUSSIAN LABOUR
-17. MY CAMPAIGN
-18. OMSK RE-VISITED
-19. IN EUROPEAN RUSSIA
-20. MAKING AN ATAMAN
-21. HOMEWARD BOUND
-22. AMERICAN POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-23. JAPANESE POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-24. GENERAL CONCLUSIONS
-
-
-
-
-LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
-
-COL. JOHN WARD, C.B., C.M.G., M.P. _Frontispiece_
-
-LANDING OF THE 25TH MIDDLESEX AT VLADIVOSTOK
-
-ALLIED COMMANDERS IN FRONT OF HEADQUARTERS AT VLADIVOSTOK
-
-GEN. DETRIKS (CZECH) AND COL. WARD AFTER THE ALLIED COUNCIL at
-VLADIVOSTOK
-
-A CONFERENCE OUTSIDE HEADQUARTERS WAGON.
-
-COL. WARD AND THE CZECH LEADER (COL. STEPHAN) EXAMINING THE USSURIE
-FRONT
-
-BRITISH PARADE AT OMSK
-
-RUSSIAN HEADQUARTERS "STAFFKA," OMSK
-
-BRITISH STAFF AND C.O.'s WAGON
-
-ARRIVAL OF THE BRITISH AT IRKUTSK
-
-ADMIRAL KOLTCHAK
-
-
-
-
-WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA
-
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-FROM HONG-KONG TO SIBERIA
-
-
-The 25th Battalion of the Middlesex Regiment had already such a record
-of travel and remarkable experiences to its credit that it was in quite
-a matter-of-fact way I answered a summons from Headquarters at
-Hong-Kong, one morning in November, 1917, and received the instruction
-to hold myself and my battalion in readiness to proceed to a destination
-unknown. Further conferences between the heads of departments under the
-presidency of the G.O.C., Major-General F. Ventris, revealed that the
-operations of the battalion were to be conducted in a very cold climate,
-and a private resident at tiffin that day at the Hong-Kong Club simply
-asked me "at what date I expected to leave for Vladivostok?"
-
-The preparations were practically completed when orders to cease them
-were received from the War Office at home, followed by a cable (some
-time in January, 1918) to cancel all orders relating to the proposed
-expedition. So we again settled down in Far Eastern home quietly to
-await the end of the war, when we hoped to return to the Great Old
-Country and resume the normal life of its citizens.
-
-Things remained in this condition until June, 1918, when we were
-suddenly startled by an order to call upon the half of my battalion
-stationed at Singapore to embark on the first ship available and join me
-at Hong-Kong. This seemed to suggest that the truly wonderful thing
-called "Allied Diplomacy" had at last made up its mind to do something.
-After a great deal of bustle and quite unnecessary fuss the whole
-battalion embarked on the _Ping Suie_ on a Saturday in July, 1918.
-
-It should be remembered that my men were what were called "B one-ers,"
-and were equipped for the duty of that grade; but, after our arrival at
-Hong-Kong, Headquarters had called in most of our war material to
-replenish the dwindling supplies of this most distant outpost of the
-British Empire. Very little information could be gathered as to the kind
-of duty we might expect to be called upon to perform, and the ignorance
-of the Staff as to the nature of the country through which we were to
-operate was simply sublime. Added to this, most of the new material with
-which we were fitted was quite useless for our purpose. Those things
-which had been collected on the first notice of movement in 1917 had
-been dispersed, and the difficulty of securing others at short notice
-was quite insurmountable.
-
-The voyage was not remarkable except that one typhoon crossed our track
-not ten miles astern, and for eighteen miles we travelled alongside
-another, the heavy seas striking the ship nearly abeam, and causing her
-to roll in a very alarming manner. The troops had a very uncomfortable
-time, and were glad to sight the coast of Korea and the calm waters of
-the Sea of Japan.
-
-At Hong-Kong many of the men, including myself, had suffered much from
-prickly heat, which had developed in many cases into huge heat boils. It
-was very strange how rapidly these irruptions cured themselves directly
-we reached the cool, clear atmosphere of the coast of Japan.
-
-Elaborate preparations had been made for our reception, insomuch that we
-were the first contingent of Allied troops to arrive at Vladivostok. Two
-Japanese destroyers were to have acted as our escort from the lighthouse
-outside, but they were so busy charting the whole coastline for future
-possibilities that they forgot all about us until we had arrived near
-the inner harbour, when they calmly asked for our name and business.
-Early next morning, August 3, they remembered their orders and escorted
-us to our station at the wharf, past the warships of the Allied nations
-gaily decorated for the occasion.
-
-At 10 A.M. a battalion of Czech troops, with band and a guard of honour
-from H.M.S. _Suffolk_, with Commodore Payne, R.N., Mr. Hodgson, the
-British Consul, the President of the Zemstrov Prava, and Russian and
-Allied officials, were assembled on the quay to receive me. As I
-descended the gangway ladder the Czech band struck up the National
-Anthem, and a petty officer of the _Suffolk_ unfurled the Union Jack,
-while some of the armed forces came to the present and others saluted.
-It made quite a pretty, interesting and immensely impressive scene. The
-battalion at once disembarked, and led by the Czech band and our
-splendid sailors from the _Suffolk_, and accompanied by a tremendous
-crowd of people, marched through the town to a saluting point opposite
-the Czech Headquarters, where parties of Czech, Cossack and Russian
-troops, Japanese, American and Russian sailors were drawn up, all of
-whom (except the Japanese) came to the present as we passed, while
-Commodore Payne took the salute for the Allied commanders, who were all
-present.
-
-Our barracks were outside the town at Niloy-ugol; they were very dirty,
-with sanitary arrangements of the most primitive character, though I
-believe the local British authorities had spent both time and money in
-trying to make them habitable. The officers' accommodation was no
-better, I and my Staff having to sleep on very dirty and smelly floors.
-A little later, however, even this would have been a treat to a weary
-old soldier.
-
-On August 5 I attended the Allied commanders' council. There were many
-matters of high policy discussed at this meeting, but one subject was of
-intense interest. General Detriks, the G.O.C. of the Czech troops, gave
-in reports as to the military situation on the Manchurian and Ussurie
-fronts. The conditions on the Manchurian front were none too good, but
-those on the Ussurie front could only be described as critical, and
-unless immediate help could be given a further retirement would be
-forced upon the commander, who had great difficulty with his small
-forces in holding any position. The Ussurie force had recently
-consisted of some 3,000 indifferently armed Czechs and Cossacks. The day
-I landed a battle had been fought, which had proved disastrous, and
-resulted in a hurried retirement to twelve versts to the rear of
-Kraevesk. The Allied force, now reduced to about 2,000 men, could not
-hope to hold up for long a combined Bolshevik, German and Magyar force
-of from 18,000 to 20,000 men. The Bolshevik method of military
-organisation,--namely, of "Battle Committees," which decided what
-superior commands should be carried out or rejected--had been swept away
-and replaced by the disciplined methods of the German and Austrian
-officers, who had now assumed command. Should another retirement be
-forced upon the Ussurie forces, it could be carried out only with great
-loss, both of men and material. The next position would be behind
-Spascoe, with Lake Hanka as a protection on the left flank and the
-forest on the right. If this could not be held, then the railway
-junction at Nikolsk would be endangered, with the possibility of the
-communications being cut with other forces operating along the
-Transbaikal Railway and at Irkutsk. Under these circumstances the
-council decided that there was nothing left but to ask for authority
-from the War Office to send my battalion forward at once to the Ussurie
-front to render what assistance was possible. I naturally pointed out
-that my battalion was composed of B1 men, most of whom had already done
-their "bit" on other fronts, and that a few weeks before I had had about
-250 General Service men in my ranks, but on a blundering suggestion of
-the G.O.C. at Singapore they had been taken from my unit and transferred
-to others doing garrison duty in India. I had protested against this at
-the time, but had been over-ruled by London, so that my command was
-reduced to men of the lowest category. However, after making this
-statement I informed the council that in view of the desperate
-circumstances in which the Ussurie force was placed I would render every
-assistance in my power.
-
-About 2 P.M. Commodore Payne, R.N., came to my quarters and showed me a
-paraphrased cable he had received from the War Office. The cable
-authorised the immediate dispatch of half my battalion to the front,
-subject to the approval of the commanding officer. It seems to me they
-might have plucked up courage enough to decide the matter for
-themselves, instead of putting the responsibility upon the local
-commander. As it was left to me, however, I gave the necessary orders at
-once. That very night, August 5, I marched through Vladivostok to
-entrain my detachment. It consisted of 500 fully equipped infantry and a
-machine-gun section of forty-three men with four heavy-type maxims.
-Leaving my second in command, Major F.J. Browne, in charge of the Base,
-I marched with the men with full pack. The four miles, over heavy, dirty
-roads, were covered in fair time, though many of the men became very
-exhausted, and at the end of the march I found myself carrying four
-rifles, while other officers carried packs in addition to their own kit.
-
-The train was composed of the usual hopeless-looking Russian
-cattle-trucks for the men, with tiers of planks for resting and sleeping
-on. A dirty second-class car was provided for the Commanding Officer and
-his Staff, and a well-lighted first-class bogey car of eight
-compartments for the British Military Representative, who was merely
-travelling up to see the sights. When I got to the front I found a
-first-class car retained by every little officer who commanded a dozen
-Cossacks, but I proudly raised the Union Jack, to denote the British
-Headquarters, on the dirtiest and most dilapidated second-class
-contraption that could be found on the line. But of course we meant
-business; we were not out for pleasure.
-
-I was advised before I started from Vladivostok that Nikolsk, the
-junction of the Manchurian and Central Siberian Railways, was the most
-important strategical point on the South Siberian end of the line, and
-that though the position on the Ussurie was pretty hopeless and
-retirement might take place at any moment, we were not in any
-circumstances to retire below Nikolsk. The place to which we were to
-retire and take up a new position had been already decided--a line just
-below Spascoe, with Lake Hanka on the left and a line of forest-covered
-mountains on the right.
-
-We arrived at Nikolsk in the early morning, but the platform was crowded
-with inhabitants and two guards of honour, Czech and Cossack, with band,
-which mistook "Rule Britannia" for the National Anthem. I was introduced
-to all the officers, the British Vice-Consul, Mr. Ledwards, and his
-energetic wife. Breakfast was served to the men by the other corps, and
-my officers received the hospitality of the good Consul and Mrs.
-Ledwards. Then a march through the town, to show the inhabitants that
-the long-sought-for Allied assistance had really arrived at last.
-
-It appears that a very sanguine French officer had travelled over the
-line some months previously and had made lavish promises of Allied
-support, which accounts, perhaps, for my previous orders received at
-Hong-Kong towards the end of 1917. The Allies had decided to make a much
-earlier effort to reconstruct the Russian line against their German
-enemies, but, like all Allied efforts, their effective action had been
-frustrated by divided counsels and stupid national jealousy.
-
-It was the prospect of Falkenhayn, with the huge army of half a million
-men, flushed with its recent easy victory over Rumania, being freed for
-employment on the French front, that caused our hurried over-late
-expedition to Siberia. If the effort had been made at the right time the
-Russian people and soldiery would not have become so demoralised and
-hopeless as they had when I arrived, and millions of lives would have
-been saved from untold tortures. A famous statesman once sternly
-admonished his colleagues for their fatal policy of doing nothing until
-it was too late; in this case he himself is open to the same censure.
-
-At Nikolsk had recently been fought an important battle between the
-Czechs and the Terrorists, and we were shown a series of photographs of
-horribly mutilated Czech soldiers who had fallen into the hands of the
-Bolshevik army as prisoners of war. By a section of people at home the
-Bolsheviks are thought to be a party of political and democratic
-idealists, but when one is brought face to face with their work they are
-then proved to be a disgusting gang of cut-throats, whose sole business
-in life appears to be to terrorise and rob the peasant and worker and
-make orderly government impossible.
-
-We received equally warm welcomes at many other stations, and at length
-we arrived at Svagena, which is the last fairly large town before
-Kraevesk, the station without a town, and very near the range of hostile
-artillery. Here quite a full-dress programme was gone through by the
-Czech band and the Czech and Cossack soldiers, ending with a short march
-past, and speeches by the English and Russian commanders. My speech was
-made along the lines of my instructions, which were mostly to this
-effect: We Britishers had entered the territory of Holy Russia not as
-conquerors, but as friends. The Bolshevik power had made a corrupt and
-dishonourable compact with their German masters, by which the
-territories of their Motherland, Russia, had been torn from her side,
-and a huge indemnity wrung from her people. Under German pressure the
-Bolshevik Soviet power had armed the released German and Austrian
-prisoners of war, and by means of this alien force was terrorising the
-Russian people and destroying the country. The Allies looked upon the
-Bolshevik power as a mere hireling branch of the autocratic German
-menace, and as such the enemies of British and Russian democracy alike.
-We came to help, resurrect and reconstruct the orderly elements of
-Russian life, and promised that if they would join us in this crusade,
-we would never cease our efforts till both our enemies were utterly
-defeated. And here the soldiers of the two nations made their pact, and
-though it was not an official utterance it had official sanction. My
-troops retired to quarters at Spascoe, which I had made my forward base.
-
-Next morning, August 7, with my interpreter, Lieutenant Bolsaar, I
-visited Kraevesk, and had a long consultation with the commander at the
-front, Captain Pomerensiv. I personally examined the line right up to
-the outposts, and eventually it was decided that I would send forward
-243 men with four maxims to take up a position towards what I considered
-to be the threatened part of our right flank. As I was senior officer,
-Captain Pomerensiv handed the command of this front over to me,
-promising all help.
-
-Once in the saddle I asked for intelligence reports from all directions,
-and found it impossible for the enemy to make a frontal attack down the
-narrow space of the railway, flanked as it was on both sides by
-impassable marshes. The enemy centre was at Shmakovka, the place from
-which the Czechs had been forced to retire: that day, however, he had
-been observed moving a company of about 180 men with three machine guns
-along the road towards Uspenkie, a small town situated on our extreme
-right front. After consultation with Captain Stephan, Czech commander,
-and Ataman Kalmakoff, commanding the Cossacks, I decided to take the
-necessary steps to destroy this recently formed outpost. Ataman
-Kalmakoff had that morning announced to me his intention to leave my
-front and make a wide detour on the right behind the hills, and join his
-Cossack friends at Iman. I discovered that he was dissatisfied with the
-lack of enterprise hitherto shown on this front, and had decided to make
-a raid "on his own" on the rear of the enemy. But the moment I stated my
-intention to mop up Uspenkie he fell into line, and forgot all about his
-previous ill-humour. He took up an advanced position at Olhanka,
-reconnoitred the Uspenkie position the next day, and unmasked the
-Bolshevik formation, with a loss of two horses and a Cossack badly
-wounded. I formed my plans on his observations.
-
-My scheme was to advance one company of Czech troops from Khamerovka to
-Olhanka, the Ataman's most forward post on my right front, where they
-were to prepare a small entrenched camp. I would also advance 200
-infantry with two machine guns the first night from Kraevesk to
-Khamerovka.
-
-The next day I ordered 200 men to entrain from Spascoe to Kraevesk to
-act as a reserve. They were to night march to Khamerovka, and occupy the
-place of my forward party, who would advance by night and join the
-Cossacks and Czech troops at Olhanka. I would be with the advanced group
-and make a daylight examination of the post to be attacked, and be
-joined at night by my second detachment from Khamerovka. By this means I
-should have had 400 British rifles, a machine-gun section of forty-three
-men with four maxims, a company of Czech infantry of about 200 men, and
-last, but by no means least, Ataman Kalmakoff with about 400 Cossack
-cavalry--a total of about 1,000 men. I ordered the two roads along which
-any reinforcements for the enemy post must pass to be patrolled at night
-and also closely observed during the day.
-
-I had drawn up my plan of attack and the first stage of the operation
-had actually been executed, when I was brought to a sudden standstill by
-a piece of fussy interference.
-
-There was no linguist in my battalion capable of speaking Russian
-sufficiently well for my purpose, hence I had to seek the services of an
-agent of the British Military Representative at "Vlady." This agent
-returned to "Vlady" directly the necessary arrangements for the attack
-had been completed. I ought to have compelled him to remain with me, but
-as he appeared to favour the proposed forward movement I did not scent
-any danger to my purely defensive policy. He did not wait until he had
-reported to the Military Representative, but when only half way
-telegraphed from Nikolsk warning me that in his opinion this forward
-movement should not take place, as he had already received important
-information which altered the entire situation. I ignored this
-interference of an understraper, but a few hours later received definite
-instructions from the Political Representative, that I was to stand
-purely on the defensive, and not move an inch beyond my position. I was
-compelled to accept the instruction, but was disgusted with the
-decision. It proved to me in a forcible way what I had never realised
-before, how impossible it is for a man at a distance, however clever he
-may be, to decide a military problem, limited in locality and isolated,
-as was this case, from questions of public policy. When the one purpose
-of a force is the protection or maintenance of a limited front, only the
-man on the spot can be the judge of what is necessary to accomplish that
-purpose.
-
-My actual plan of operations was very simple. Having assembled my force
-at Olhanka, I should at dusk have occupied the roads leading from
-Shmakovka to Uspenkie, and from Uspenkie to the monastery by cavalry,
-thus making it impossible for enemy reinforcements to reach the post to
-be attacked under the cover of night. My own troops, together with the
-Czech company, would have approached the position from the south, and
-during the hours of darkness have taken up a line within rifle- and
-machine-gun range. At daybreak fire would have been opened from such
-cover as could be obtained, and while our eight machine-gunners barraged
-the post, the infantry would have advanced rapidly on the south front at
-the same time as the Cossacks charged in from the rear. The result would
-have been as certain as anything in war could be, and, as since then I
-have met the Bolsheviks in open fight, I am convinced that this small
-effort might have had decisive political and military influence in
-Eastern Siberia. But the "politicals" in uniform are not always noted
-for daring, and in this case were very timid indeed, and our position
-grew worse from day to day.
-
-I made the best dispositions possible in view of my cautious
-instructions, and soon every man, British, Czech and Cossack, was imbued
-with a determination to baulk the enemy's eastward ambitions at all
-costs. The numbers I had brought to their assistance were nothing
-compared to the influence of the sight of the poor, frayed and dirty
-Union Jack that floated from my Headquarters, and the songs of the
-Tommies round the mosquito fires in the bivouac at night. These two
-factors together changed the whole atmosphere surrounding the valiant,
-ill-fed and ill-equipped Czech soldiers.
-
-The day following the night I had fixed for the destruction of the enemy
-outpost two companies of enemy infantry and three guns marched out of
-Shmakovka as a reinforcement to the debatable position. I watched
-through my binoculars their slow movement along the dusty road. I judged
-what the enemy's intentions were, and knew also that I was powerless to
-prevent them. He quickly placed his guns in position, and the following
-day sent a few trial shots at Kalmakoff's position at Olhanka; after
-getting the range he ceased fire. About 11 P.M. the flash of guns was
-observed on our right, which continued until midnight. At 12.30 the
-field telephone informed me that the Czech company I had pushed forward,
-together with Kalmakoff's Cossacks, had been shelled out of their
-positions at Olhanka and were retreating along the Khamerovka and
-Runovka roads. I disregarded the imperative instructions I had received
-from "Vlady" not to move, and advanced my detachment by a midnight march
-to occupy a position where I could protect the bridges and cover the
-retreat of our friends. Had I failed to perform this simple soldierly
-duty we should have placed ourselves in a ridiculous position in the
-eyes of our Russian and Czech comrades. But though I acted against
-orders, I think in the circumstances I was fully justified in doing so.
-
-The Czech company retired safely behind the river at Khamerovka, and
-Kalmakoff's Cossacks took up a new position at Runovka, where he could
-still hang on to the skirts of the enemy and keep constant observation
-upon his movements. I retired to a bivouac of branches and marsh grass
-behind "Lookout Hill," where for a fortnight I carried on constant
-warfare against infected waters and millions of mosquitoes, without
-transport, tents, nets, or any of the ordinary equipment required by
-such an expedition. I admit that my ignorance of the conditions which
-might be expected to prevail in Siberia was colossal, but so also was
-that of those whose duty it was to have made themselves acquainted with
-the situation.
-
-At Hong-Kong I had suggested that we might find tents useful, but the
-proposal was turned down, either because there was none or because they
-were considered quite unnecessary. I asked timidly whether I should
-require mosquito nets, and well remember the scorn with which the Chief
-of Staff greeted my question. "Who ever heard of mosquitoes in Siberia?"
-Well, the fact is that while there are a few in the tropics, there are
-swarms of these pests all over Siberia. In the tropics their size
-prevents them from doing much damage, except as malaria carriers. In
-Siberia they take the shape of big, ugly winged spiders, which will suck
-your blood through a thick blanket as easily as if you had nothing on.
-They have a knack of fixing themselves in one's hair below the cap and
-raising swollen ridges round one's head until it is painful to wear any
-headgear at all. In my case my wrists were puffed out level with my
-hands. After sleeping, one woke unable to open one's eyes. The absence
-of any protection wore out the patience and nerves of the men, and the
-searching Bolshevik shells were accepted as a welcome diversion.
-
-No blame was attached to my chiefs; I was fully equipped as a B1
-Garrison battalion, and as such I was dispatched to Vladivostok. I was
-sent there to perform a certain duty, but on arrival was at once called
-upon to perform another of quite a different character. I had to carry
-out the duties of a first-line service battalion with the personnel and
-equipment of second grade garrison troops. Whether those with whom the
-order originated in London were aware of the nature of the duty I was
-expected to perform I do not know; but it is obviously dangerous to send
-British troops of any category to an actual scene of operations and
-expect them to stand idle, uninterested spectators of the struggles of
-their friends. They should either be kept away or sent ready for all
-emergencies.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-BOLSHEVIK SUCCESSES
-
-
-The outflanking movement by the enemy which I had anticipated from the
-day I first took over the command, and which I had made my plans to
-counteract, was now in full swing, but so far no damage to our main
-position had been effected.
-
-General Detriks visited the front and informed me that the Allied
-Council had chosen Major Pichon, of the French detachment which was
-timed to arrive next day, to take over the command of this front. After
-a personal inspection he expressed himself as satisfied with my
-dispositions and suggested that I should still retain the command, and
-that he would see that the decision relating to Major Pichon's
-appointment was reconsidered in view of the changed conditions he now
-found. But I could see that a revision of the Allied Council's
-resolution might affect French _amour propre_, and place both Council
-and commander in an anomalous position. I therefore requested General
-Detriks to take no steps to alter the resolution of the Allied Council,
-and stated that I would gladly serve under Major Pichon or any other
-commander elected by the Council. British prestige, I added, was too
-well established for such trifles to be considered when the only reason
-for our presence was to help our Czech and Russian friends. He,
-however, pointed out that it was impossible to allow a British colonel
-to serve under a French major, and that my command must be considered
-quite an independent one.
-
-Major Pichon arrived on August 18, 1918, and I formally handed over the
-command. He asked me to consider myself as jointly responsible for the
-operations on that front, and said that we would from time to time
-consult together as to any action that might be necessary. I found him
-both polite and considerate and most anxious to meet the wishes of the
-several parts of his command; in fact, he was a gentleman whom it was a
-pleasure to meet and work with. His battalion-commander, Major Malley,
-was equally urbane, and together I think we made a very happy
-combination.
-
-The great outstanding personality of this front was Captain Stephan, the
-commander of the 8th Czech Battalion. Originally a brewer of Prague, he
-had been compelled on the outbreak of war to join the Austrian Army. He
-had done his duty as a soldier of that effete Monarchy, been captured by
-the Russians, and while a prisoner of war had been liberated by the
-Revolution; he was one of the men who had organised their fellow exiles
-and offered their services to France and the Allied cause, believing
-that in the success of England's arms was to be found the liberation of
-their beloved Bohemia. I asked him why he had offered his services to
-France, and his answer and his compatriots' answer was always the same:
-"It is to great England we always look to as our saviour, but the German
-armies are in France, and to meet our enemies on the field of battle
-was, and always will be, the first ambition of every Czech soldier, for
-if England says we are a nation, we know we shall be."
-
-I must say I felt flattered by the almost childlike confidence which
-Pole, Czech and Russian had in the name and honour of England. We were
-undoubtedly the only nation represented on this front and in Siberia
-generally against whom not one word of suspicion was directed. I
-naturally expected that the prestige of France, in view of her pre-war
-alliance with Russia, would be very great, but from the closest
-observation of all ranks of Russian society I think it would be
-impossible to say which was most suspected in the Russian mind, France,
-America or Japan. The presence, however, of French soldiers, and the
-politeness of the French officers, may do much to generate a warmer
-feeling in Russia towards France. The presence of the soldiers of the
-Rising Sun, and the manners and general attitude of her officers towards
-the Siberian population, will, if persisted in, certainly result in
-changing fear to universal hate.
-
-On the afternoon of his arrival an important movement of enemy forces on
-our right front caused Major Pichon to ride through my bivouac, when he
-was formally introduced to the officers and men under my command. Later
-he informed me that he did not consider the movement sufficiently
-important to make any change in our dispositions necessary. Towards dusk
-Captain Stephan, accompanied by his adjutant, rode up and reported an
-important movement of enemy forces towards Runovka, our solitary
-remaining position on the opposite side of the river, which formed the
-natural defence and limit of our right flank. Again I was asked to move
-forward to render such assistance as might be necessary in case our
-right were forced to retire across the river. We marched forward in the
-darkness with the flash of the Bolshevik guns lighting up the way, but
-as their attention was entirely directed to our outpost at Runovka, we
-were as safe as if we had been in Hyde Park. The Czechs have a fatal
-preference for woods as a site for defensive works, and they selected a
-wood on the left flank of the road for my position. I rejected their
-plan, and chose a position about two hundred yards in front of the wood
-at a point where the roads cross, and a fold in the ground, aided by the
-tall marsh grass, almost entirely hid us from the observation-post of
-the enemy. Millions of mosquitoes, against which we had no protection
-whatever, attacked us as we began to entrench, but officers and men all
-worked with a will, and by dawn we had almost completed what was
-probably the best system of field-works so far constructed on this
-front. How we wished we might see the enemy advance over the river and
-attempt to deploy within range of our rifles! He had by vigorous
-artillery fire driven our remaining Czech company across the river, and
-so had become complete master of the other side.
-
-It was here that a second chance came to deal effectively with this
-attempt to outflank our entire position. A sudden dash across the bend
-of the river in the north-eastern corner at Khamerovka on to the
-unprotected line of enemy communications would have resulted in a
-complete frustration of the enemy plans, with a fair prospect of his
-decisive defeat. I even suggested this, but had to confess that I had
-moved forward twice, contrary to my imperative orders, and that unless I
-chose to run the risk of court-martial, if not dismissal, I could not
-join in the attack, though I would come to the rescue. This was too
-ambiguous for the other leaders, and the opportunity was allowed to
-pass.
-
-Shortly after, I met an old tramp with his pack, and handed him over to
-my liaison officer. We could not very well detain him as he had already
-in his possession a Czech and a French passport, but afterwards I much
-regretted that I had not perforated his papers with a bullet as they
-rested in his breast pocket. He tramped along the road, and my sentries
-deflected his course away from the trenches, but he saw my men scattered
-about in the wood behind, and at daybreak the enemy artillery began to
-spatter the wood with a plentiful supply of shrapnel and shells. One
-dropped within twenty yards of myself and officers whilst at breakfast;
-pitching just under a tree, it lifted it into the air in a truly
-surprising manner. The number of shells--some of which were German
-make--the enemy wasted on that wood proclaimed an abundant supply of
-ammunition. To this persistent shelling we had nothing to reply, and at
-last from sheer exhaustion the enemy fire died down. With darkness he
-began again, and the feeble reply of three small mountain guns, which
-we knew were with the Runovka Cossack outpost, indicated that an attack
-was developing in that direction.
-
-The unequal duel continued intermittently until 2 A.M., when a field
-telephone message informed me that Runovka had been abandoned, that the
-Czech company was retiring across our front, and that Kalmakoff's
-Cossacks were retiring over the river lower down and taking up a
-position at Antonovka on our extreme right rear. This meant that our
-whole defensive positions were completely turned, and the next enemy
-move would place him near our lines of communication.
-
-This, however, was not our only difficulty. Until two days previous we
-had been able to give an occasional shot in return for the many sent
-towards us; then the Bolshevik gunners found the mark on the two guns
-whose duty it was to prevent an advance along the railway, and our two
-and only field guns were called in to fill the gap, leaving the infantry
-without any artillery protection. I cabled to Commodore Payne, R.N., who
-commanded H.M.S. _Suffolk_, at Vladivostok, informing him of our
-critical position and asked him to send such artillery assistance as was
-possible. The commodore was as prompt as is expected of the Navy. In an
-incredibly short space of time he fitted up an armoured train with two
-12-pounder Naval guns and two machine guns, and dispatched it at express
-speed to my assistance, with a second similar train following behind,
-the whole being under the command of Captain Bath, R.M.L.I. It is
-scarcely possible to describe the feeling of relief with which our
-exhausted and attenuated forces welcomed this timely aid from our
-ever-ready Navy. It enabled us to bring the two Czech guns into position
-to keep down the fire of the enemy, and gave us a sense of security in
-that our rear was safe in case retirement should be forced upon us. It
-put new heart into the men, though they never showed the slightest sign
-of depression in spite of their many discomforts. The British soldier
-certainly offers the most stolid indifference to the most unfavourable
-situations.
-
-The Bolshevik leaders were not long in showing their hand. They remained
-silent during the following day, but at night they began to shell us
-from their new position in Runovka itself, selecting as the site for
-their two batteries the hill on which the Orthodox church stood, and
-using the Greek tower as their post of observation.
-
-About 9.30 A.M. an enemy armoured train moved slowly forward from
-Shmakovka, followed by four others, which directed a flank fire at my
-position. The shells all plunked into the marsh about four hundred yards
-short, affording much amusement and causing many caustic Cockney
-comments. Next came a troop train which gave us great hopes of a real
-attack developing on our front, but our Naval 12-pounders on the
-_Suffolk's_ armoured train began to do good practice, and a shot
-registered on the front enemy engine caused volumes of steam to burst
-from her sides, and great consternation suddenly appeared amongst the
-trains' personnel. The Naval gunners did not seem inclined to lose the
-mark, and so the whole attempt fizzled out, and the trains steamed back
-to shelter.
-
-The two old Czech field guns, which had been repaired by H.M.S.
-_Suffolk's_ artificers at "Vlady," wheeled into position behind a fold
-in the ground on our right rear and began a duel with the two enemy
-batteries at Runovka. This duel was most entertaining. The enemy
-artillery searched our wood and works, and the line of trees occupied by
-the French was plentifully sprayed with shrapnel, but they failed to
-locate our guns, or get anywhere near them, or indeed to cause a single
-casualty either to man or horse. During the night a peasant gave the
-guns' position away, and in the early morning exchanges one gun came to
-grief. The remaining gun changed position, and the duel became still
-more interesting. By skilful manoeuvring the gun was got much nearer,
-and at once the range was obtained to a nicety. Every shot was placed so
-near the mark as to rouse the infantry's obvious excitement to fever
-heat, and finally a shell was planted right into the enemy observation
-tower, setting it on fire and burning it to the ground. By placing four
-shells near to hand, and working like Trojans, the Czech gunners fired
-four shots so rapidly as to deceive the enemy into the belief that four
-guns were now opposing them, and after about two hours of this relay
-work the enemy batteries were beaten to a frazzle, and retired from the
-unequal contest with two guns out of action. It was simply magnificent
-as a display of real efficient gunnery. There is no doubt the enemy had
-intended to make an effort to cross the river at Runovka and that his
-artillery had been placed with a view to protecting the passage of his
-troops. The young Czech gunnery lieutenant by his stratagem with one
-solitary field-piece had made this plan appear impossible to the enemy
-commander. Never was deception more complete.
-
-Having felt our right flank and found it too strong, the enemy continued
-his movement towards our right rear. He could only do this with safety
-by correctly anticipating our strategy. He took our measure to a
-military fraction. He saw that, though he offered the most tempting
-bait, we made no effort to move forward to snap it up, and doubtless
-came to the conclusion that we were chained to our positions by either
-dearth of numbers or military incapacity. In the last stage of his
-movement his communications stretched for twenty-three miles along our
-flank, with three posts of just over one hundred men to protect his
-supply trains. If the commander of that force is still alive he probably
-has a poor opinion of the ability of his opponents. We were ready to
-deal him a death-blow at any moment from the day he occupied Uspenkie
-until he crossed the river before Antonovka. He and his column were only
-saved by orders from Vladivostok.
-
-For two days no movement was observable in the enemy lines, and it began
-to look as though he would or could not take full advantage of his
-extremely favourable position.
-
-I had waged an unequal contest with millions of mosquitoes while trying
-to sleep in a field telephone hut made of rough branches and marsh
-grass. The Czech soldier who acted as operator had helped me as much as
-possible, but at last in desperation I got up and walked about until the
-wonderful colouring in the East heralded another glorious Siberian
-summer day. The bluey-purple pall had given place to a beautiful
-orange-tinted yellow such as I had never seen before. The sentry prodded
-a sleeping Tommy who had a huge black frog sitting on the highest point
-of his damp, dewy blanket, and a bugle glistening by his side. The
-sleeper awoke, and after washing his lips at the tank, sounded the
-soldiers' clarion call, the "Reveille." Instantly the whole bivouac was
-alive, but scarcely had the bugle notes died away when the telephone
-buzzer began to give forth a series of sharp, staccato sounds. The Czech
-operator gave a sharp ejaculation, like "Dar! Dar! Dar!" looking more
-serious as the sounds proceeded. He then calmly hung up the
-speaking-tube on the tree that supported our home and began to explain
-to my interpreter, Lieutenant Bolsaar, the message just received. It was
-that Major Pichon wished to see me at his headquarters at once in
-reference to the serious position of Antonovka. I mounted my horse,
-"Nero," which was a beautiful present from Captain Pomerensiv on handing
-over his command, and soon arrived at Kraevesk and heard the full story
-of the surprise at Antonovka.
-
-From Major Pichon I gathered that Ataman Kalmakoff with his Cossacks had
-taken up a position on the high ground in the village of Antonovka,
-keeping touch with the French on his left, and a company of the 5th
-Battalion of Czechs on his right, who guarded the road to Svagena, and
-that though he posted sentries in the usual way during the night, the
-enemy in large numbers crept between them, and when the alarm was given
-and Kalmakoff mounted his horse he found some thirty of his men already
-wounded or dead and his machine guns in enemy hands. Most of his troops
-were in a cul-de-sac, and had to charge a high fence and by the sheer
-weight of their horses break a way out. Kalmakoff with a few Cossacks
-tried to retake the guns with a superb charge, but though he got through
-himself he lost more men, amongst whom was a splendid fellow, his second
-in command, named Berwkoff, who was greatly loved by us all. A Magyar
-soldier seeing Kalmakoff with his Ataman banner borne by his side, took
-a point-blank shot at his head, but he forgot the high trajectory of the
-old Russian rifle, and the bullet merely grazed the top of the Cossack
-leader's head and sent his _papaha_ into the mud. His banner-bearer
-could not see his leader's cap so left, and jumped off his horse to
-rescue it. Raising the cap from the ground, he found himself challenged
-with the bayonet by the same Magyar soldier. He had no time to draw, but
-with a mighty sweep, sword in scabbard, he felled the Magyar to the
-ground; he had no time to dispatch him, and was barely able to get away.
-
-The Czech company was retiring slowly towards Svagena, and the Cossacks,
-while keeping in touch with the enemy, were retiring towards the railway
-on our rear. This was a very startling situation, and required immediate
-action if we were not to be caught in a trap.
-
-We both decided that a retirement was the only alternative to being
-completely surrounded.
-
-We there and then drew up the orders necessary to secure that the
-retreat should be both methodical and orderly. The Czechs were to retire
-first, past my lines, and entrain at Kraevesk, followed by the English
-and the French, who were to bring up the rear, which was to be covered
-by the English armoured train, assisted by the machine-gun section of
-the Middlesex Regiment under Lieutenant King. So the evacuation of our
-splendid position regretfully began.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-JAPAN INTERVENES
-
-
-It should be remembered that directly it was decided by the Paris
-Council that a diversion through Russia was the surest way of relieving
-pressure on the French front, the English apparently decided to be first
-in. Though Japan was unquestionably in the most favourable position to
-send help quickly, she was known to have German commitments of such a
-character as precluded her from taking the lead in what was, at that
-time, more an anti-Teutonic than pro-Russian expedition. Her Press was,
-and had been all through the war, violently pro-German, and however much
-the Tokio Cabinet might wish to remain true to the Anglo-Japanese
-Treaty, it was forced to make a seeming obeisance to popular feeling in
-Japan. If it had been only an English expedition, Japan's hand would not
-have been forced; but the American cables began to describe the rapid
-organisation by the U.S.A. of a powerful Siberian expedition, which gave
-the Japanese Government ample justification--even in the eyes of her
-pro-German propagandists--to prepare a still larger force to enable her
-to shadow the Americans, and do a bit of business on her own. Several
-months earlier Japanese suspicions had been aroused by the dispatch to
-Siberia of an alleged civilian railway engineering force to help Russia
-reorganise her railways, and the immense benefit that this force had
-admittedly conferred on the Far Eastern populations was acknowledged on
-all sides. But the very success of American enterprise in this
-beneficent direction had created in the minds of the Japanese a doubt as
-to the wisdom of allowing free play to American penetration.
-
-Japan consequently hurried forward her preparations, and a few days
-after I had taken over the Ussurie command her 12th Division, under the
-command of General Oie, landed at Vladivostok. He at once established
-his headquarters at Nikolsk, and his Chief of Staff, General Kanaka,
-took up his position behind our lines at Svagena, using us as a screen
-for the deployment of his command, which had already begun.
-
-Major Pichon informed me that he had telephoned the Japanese general at
-Nikolsk describing the new situation on our front, and asking him to
-move up sufficient forces from Svagena to protect our right. I went to
-my wagon to get breakfast. A little later Major Pichon informed me that
-the Japanese commander had asked us to suspend our retirement as he was
-moving up from Svagena a battery of artillery and one battalion of
-infantry, who would re-establish the position at Antonovka on our right
-rear, from which we need not fear any further danger. In consequence of
-this message I ordered my men to re-occupy their old positions, and by
-9.30 we had carried out the orders of the Japanese commander.
-
-Having got back into our old position, we inquired the direction of the
-Japanese advance that we might, if necessary, co-operate with their
-movement, and to our utter consternation were informed that the Japanese
-had not started, had no intention of doing so, and that we must take
-what steps were necessary for our own safety, but if we retired at all
-we were to fall back behind their lines and, we suppose, take no further
-part in the operations.
-
-The first promise of help and its countermanding had placed us in an
-extremely dangerous situation. We had left our positions once, and
-nothing but the lack of vigilance on the part of the enemy had enabled
-us to reoccupy them without fighting. Our movements must have been seen,
-and though he had not understood them till too late to take full
-advantage the first time, that he would allow us to get away so easily
-again seemed to us to be very unlikely. In fact, it appeared as though
-we had been sacrificed to give a clear field for some manoeuvre or
-purpose which we could not understand.
-
-Our conference was a very urgent one, and for a time Major Pichon
-thought it best to hang on to our positions and trust to someone making
-an effort for our relief. Had British or American troops been collecting
-in our rear, we would not have hesitated a moment to remain, for we
-should have been certain of immediate help.
-
-We knew that a battalion of Czech infantry had been moved up from
-Svagena towards Antonovka to threaten the enemy's outflanking columns,
-and that this battalion had made it a dangerous proceeding for the enemy
-to close in on our rear. Hence we decided to withdraw certain units to
-Svagena, and for the remainder to retire to a position at Dukoveskoie
-and make a new line from the railway through that village, thus linking
-up with the Czech troops who had marched to our assistance; they would
-thus become the extreme right of our new line.
-
-This movement would enable the Japanese 12th Division at Svagena to
-continue their deployment behind our screen, and if the enemy continued
-his outflanking tactics would involve the Japanese in the fighting
-whether they willed it or not.
-
-The retirement was carried out as arranged in perfect order, with the
-loss of very little material and not more than a dozen men taken
-prisoners. The French were the last to entrain. The whole movement was
-covered by the two armoured trains under the command of Captain Bath,
-R.M.L.I. Before retiring the bluejackets blew up the bridge on our front
-and otherwise destroyed the line in a very workmanlike manner. If we had
-been supported, the retirement would have been quite unnecessary; it was
-the result of lack of confidence in our Allies after the first let-down.
-
-The new line was held as follows: On the left of the railway one company
-of Czech infantry; the two British armoured trains occupied the railway,
-and a Middlesex machine-gun battery of four maxims occupied the right,
-while the wooded slope leading to Dukoveskoie was held by the French,
-and a battalion of Japanese infantry extended beyond the village. The
-right of the village was very sparsely held by a reduced battalion of
-the 5th Czech Regiment and Kalmakoff's Cossacks. The whole force was
-under the personal command of Major Pichon.
-
-The enemy quickly repaired the bridges and the line, and within
-forty-eight hours his armoured trains were observed moving cautiously
-into Kraevesk, my old headquarters. Simultaneously his patrols advanced
-from Antonovka and came into touch with Kalmakoff's scouts on the right,
-and three days from our retirement his advanced elements were testing
-our line from end to end.
-
-On the morning of August 22 the Japanese 12th Division began to move up
-from Svagena to Dukoveskoie and deploy immediately behind the new line.
-As is usual in all Japanese tactics, they pushed their right out far
-beyond the enemy positions, and early in the evening began to envelop
-his left with their usual wide turning movement. Their right was
-supported by two heavy batteries, and from the centre, near Dukoveskoie
-church, their units, now acting as a reserve, were in position before
-sunset. Large bodies of Japanese troops were in bivouac immediately
-behind the centre of the village near their headquarters ready to deploy
-in either direction.
-
-On the evening of August 22 orders were received to push forward the
-observation post of our armoured trains to a spot indicated, which
-proved to be six hundred yards ahead of our positions and near enough to
-be easily raided from the enemy lines. Lieutenant T.E. King, my
-machine-gun officer, was at the same time ordered to move forward two
-maxims, with a reduced company of Czech infantry in support to protect
-this advanced post. The night was enlivened by constant skirmishes
-between British and Terrorist patrols until about 8.30 A.M., when it was
-observed that the Japanese patrols on the right had quietly retired
-without giving any notice of their intention, and that the enemy were in
-position on the plain for an attack and had already advanced along a
-ridge to within a hundred yards of the outpost. The movements of the
-enemy were observable only from the main look-out, from which orders
-were already on the way gradually to withdraw the party to a position
-nearer the lines. Before the order could be delivered the enemy
-attacked. Lieutenant King proceeded to withdraw the guns alternately,
-working the foremost gun himself, but defective ammunition frustrated
-his effort. He gallantly tried to restart the gun, but the enemy were
-now upon him, and he had no alternative but to retire without the gun.
-The small Naval party in the advanced look-out were practically
-surrounded, but under Petty Officer Moffat, who was in charge, they
-managed to get out, with the enemy on their heels. This party was saved
-by a marine named Mitchel, who, seeing Petty Officer Moffat in
-difficulties, turned on his knee and faced his pursuers. Their fire was
-erratic, but his was cool and accurate, and after three or four rounds
-the Magyars kept their heads well down in the long marsh grass, which
-permitted the party to escape. The result of this skirmish, however,
-allowed the enemy armoured train to advance to a point dangerously near
-our defensive works, which, with a little more enterprise and
-determination, he might easily have enfiladed. But though the enemy
-train had mounted a 6-inch gun our 12-pounder Navals were too smartly
-handled to allow any liberties to be taken. This was the situation on
-the morning that the Japanese 12th Division began to deploy behind the
-new Allied line at Dukoveskoie.
-
-About 3 P.M. on August 23 I asked my liaison officer, Colonel R.
-Antonivitch Frank, of the Russian Army, to accompany me towards the
-front line, as I had heard rumours of large concentrations of the enemy,
-who, elated with this small initial success, seemed determined to
-dispute our possession of the village of Dukoveskoie. I arrived in time
-to witness a duel between one of our armoured trains and a rather
-spirited fellow of the same sort on the other side. The Bolshevik shells
-would persist in dropping to the right of our train on a road on which
-Colonel Frank and I were sitting our horses, so we decided to dismount
-and send the animals out of range, while we boarded the train and
-enjoyed the contest. One of our 12-pounders went groggy and obliged us
-to retire slightly, but we dared not go back far, as the Terrorist train
-had all the appearance of following, and would soon have made short work
-of our infantry, which were occupying very indifferent trenches near the
-railway, Captain Bath saw the danger and steamed forward, firing
-rapidly; shells burst all round his target, and so bewildered his
-opponent that he soon turned tail and retired to safety. I applied to
-the Japanese commander, General Oie, through Major Pichon that our
-trains, directly it was dark, might be allowed to return to Svagena to
-shunt the injured gun to the rear train. About 7 P.M., while preparing
-to return for this purpose, a few sharp rifle-cracks were heard near the
-centre of the line. These reports grew rapidly in volume, and now became
-mixed up with the bass "pop-pop" of machine guns. The rolling sound of
-conflict spread from the centre along the whole right front. Till now it
-had been exclusively a small-arm fight. At this point the Bolshevik
-artillery began to chime in, followed by the Japanese and Czech
-batteries. The lovely Siberian summer night became one huge booming,
-flashing inferno, terrible but intensely attractive. The silent
-tree-clad mountains to right and left vibrated with the music of battle,
-while shell and shrapnel screeched like frightened ghouls over the
-valley below, where white and yellow men were proving that there is no
-colour bar to bravery. This din lasted about two hours, and then died
-away almost as rapidly as it began.
-
-Our trains which had remained to take a hand in the business if
-necessary steamed slowly back to Svagena, and I turned into my wagon for
-the night. After the usual battle with the mosquitoes, I fell asleep,
-but it seemed as though I had only slept a few minutes, when a banging
-at the door announced a visitor, who turned out to be a Staff captain
-from the Japanese Headquarters with an urgent message for the Commander
-of the Reserves at Svagena, who with great ceremony handed me the
-following order of the day:
-
-"To COLONEL WARD,
- Officer Commanding Reserves.
- Operation Order by
-LIEUT.-GENERAL S. OIE,
- Commanding 12th Division,
- Svagena.
-
-"_August 23, 1918._
-
-"1. All enemy attacks were driven back to-day. We gained two
- machine guns and five captives.
-
-"2. The Allied troops will attack the enemy, inflicting upon
-them an annihilating disaster, to-morrow, August 24.
-
-"3. The Japanese troops will attack the enemy, starting the
-present line, at 3 o'clock, the 24th, morning.
-
-"4. The reserve British, French, Kalmakoff's forces, and a few
-Japanese companies will be under the command of Japanese. Colonel
-Inagaki will arrive at the north-western side of Dukoveskoie at
-2 o'clock to-morrow morning.
-
-"(Signed) S. OIE,
- Lieut.-General,
- Commanding 12th Division."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-THE BATTLE OF DUKOVESKOIE AND KRAEVESK
-
-
-I Looked at my watch, and called the Japanese officer's attention to the
-fact that the time was 1.45 A.M., and that Dukoveskoie was four miles
-distant. Although he could speak perfect English, he held out his hand
-and with a profound bow pretended not to understand the point of my
-observation. It was in point of time simply impossible to arouse the
-British, Czech, Cossack and Japanese detachments and march four miles in
-the middle of the night in fifteen minutes; but I had lived long enough
-in the East to know that the Oriental never sets a European impossible
-tasks without a good reason from his own point of view. I dispatched
-orderlies to each detachment with definite instructions to be ready to
-move at once. The Japanese refused to move or even get out of their
-tents. The Czechs were enjoying a much-needed rest, and refused to
-budge, while Kalmakoff's Cossacks remained asleep beside their horses.
-Ataman Kalmakoff was at Vladivostok, and his second in command was
-dismissed on his return for refusing to obey my orders, as the Ataman
-was most anxious that his men should be always in the fighting line
-wherever it might be. Captain Clark, M.C., reported the 25th Middlesex
-as ready to march, transport and all complete, twenty-five minutes
-after receiving the order.
-
-To make doubly sure there was no mistake, I called personally upon the
-Japanese officer, who point-blank refused either to arouse or move his
-men in accordance with his own Headquarters' order. I am bound to admit
-that from that moment I had a suspicion that the order of General Oie
-was so much Japanese camouflage, and that it was not intended that we
-should take any part in the immediate operations. I also determined to
-frustrate this attempt to exclude the Allies from participation, and
-gave the order to my own men to move.
-
-Our road for about two miles lay alongside the railway, after which the
-soddened nature of the ground and the danger of losing direction in the
-darkness forced me to take to the railway. About a mile and a half along
-the track brought us to our armoured trains, where we were to pick up
-our Machine-Gun Section, which was to act with us if necessary, or
-remain as a reserve or rallying-point in case of need. Except for the
-sentries, the train crews were asleep, and almost within rifle range of
-our place of assembly. I halted my men and roused Captain Bath to
-inquire if he had received instructions as to his part in the coming
-battle. He informed me that he had received a telephone message from
-General Oie (through Major Pichon) which he could not understand and had
-asked for it to be repeated. He thereupon produced the message, which
-was to the effect that a battle would commence at 3 A.M., but that the
-British armoured trains and the British troops were not to be allowed
-to take any part in the impending engagement. On the production of the
-actual message I began to understand why the order of battle had been
-given to me too late for me to be at the rendezvous with Colonel
-Inagaki, and the refusal of the units of my command to march with me.
-These instructions to Captain Bath from the Japanese Headquarters
-explained the riddle. I gave Captain Bath instructions to move forward
-in my support in case of need and to watch the proceedings generally, to
-render aid to any Allied detachment which might be in difficulties, and
-otherwise to obey General Oie's orders. This duty he performed with
-complete satisfaction to the commanders of the French and Czech
-detachments.
-
-Having arranged my rear, the men of the 25th were ordered to move
-forward in file on each side of the railway track to the point selected
-for our rendezvous. The time was now 3.25 A.M., the dull light of
-dawning day enabling us to distinguish moving objects four hundred yards
-away. A scout came back to report the presence of cavalry on the left,
-but in the early morning haze we could not make out whether it was
-friendly or enemy. I moved my troops to the opposite side of the railway
-embankment and prepared to receive their charge. I then dispatched my
-liaison officer, Colonel Frank, forward to discover their strength and
-character. He quickly returned with the information that the cavalry was
-Japanese, moving into position on our extreme left. I re-formed my men
-and advanced towards my position as ordered, ninety minutes behind
-time. I halted and examined the ground, but saw nothing of Colonel
-Inagaki or any of the detachments on the spot selected for our assembly.
-Standing on the line, I saw the foremost enemy armoured train about four
-hundred yards ahead, and their outpost giving the alarm. No shot had so
-far been fired, but I gave the order to load. At this stage an incident
-happened which put an end to the hitherto silent advance of the
-attacking army. In the act of loading a rifle went off accidentally. The
-soldier to whom it belonged was standing just behind me, and I ordered
-Captain Browne to examine and report. In doing so the rifle again went
-off; it saved the man from punishment, but it began the battle. There
-was a puff of white smoke, and an instant later a 5-inch shell burst
-over our heads. The men opened out into the corn and scrub, and I
-dismounted while the advance continued. Taking my servant's rifle, I led
-the way.
-
-The enemy must have anticipated our rendezvous, for the place was
-ploughed with shells from end to end. The first pitched just under the
-centre of a peasant's cottage, and in a moment cottage and peasant were
-no more. The heavy purple pall hung on the ground, and had we been on
-the spot selected, this description would have been written by other
-hands than mine. By the increasing light and the aid of my glasses I was
-able to make out the entire scheme of the advance, which was a
-continuous line from one mile on the left of the railway, extending to
-about ten miles on our right. A space of about one hundred yards on each
-side of the line was unoccupied--for the reason, as I afterwards
-learnt, that it was considered too exposed and dangerous for the purpose
-of an advance. Unable to find anyone to direct my movements, on my own
-initiative I decided to fill this vacant space, so making the line
-continuous, and move forward with the Japanese to the attack. Disposing
-my men in the shelter of the scrub on either side of the railway, I
-directed their movements from the centre of the track. There was an ugly
-moment when a maxim situated in a cornfield began to fire point-blank at
-a range of one hundred yards, but a Czech outpost entrenched quite near
-made it so hot for the gunner that after firing about 150 rounds he
-scooted, leaving a well-placed gun and 5,000 rounds, all belted, behind.
-We now advanced over the Czech and French trenches, for these forces,
-like our armoured trains, had been ordered to take no part in the
-advance. It was while near these trenches that a grey-coated Magyar,
-four hundred yards away, took deliberate standing aim at myself. It was
-a most difficult shot, and I felt quite safe, but though the Magyar
-missed me, he killed a Czech soldier five yards to the left, the bullet
-entering the centre of his forehead just over the nose. About sixty
-shots answered his, and he sank across the rails. When we reached him he
-lay, with many others, quite dead. Captain Clark picked up his rifle and
-bandolier, and used it with good effect upon the retreating enemy.
-
-There is no doubt that if we had failed to get into position under the
-cover of darkness we should have had the greatest difficulty in making
-any headway along the railway except with very heavy casualties. As I
-have stated previously, the end car of the enemy armoured train had a
-6-inch gun, but it was mounted so high that the whole platform could be
-swept with rifle-fire. The reason for the high mounting was to enable
-two machine guns to be worked along the track from the bed of the car
-under the heavy gun. If our advance had been observed the enemy would
-easily have smashed it, but we got within 400 yards before they knew we
-were there. By concentrating all our fire on the end of the car we swept
-the platform clear, perforated the body underneath with a hail of
-bullets so that nothing could live, and put every gun which could be
-brought to bear along the track out of action. By this means the
-apparently most dangerous point of our advancing line became the safest,
-and we accomplished our purpose without a single casualty. Five enemy
-armoured trains were on the line disputing every inch of the way, but
-their shrapnel was either too high or exploded so far behind the front
-line that, though it made havoc amongst the laggards, it had but little
-effect upon those who kept well to the front. The battle was now joined
-at all points and reaching the decisive moment.
-
-In the centre by skilful manoeuvring, a Japanese 5-inch battery had
-taken up a position actually in front of the general infantry advance.
-Such daring deserved to succeed, and in this case it did so beyond all
-expectations. The point selected was a thin group of trees, which gave a
-view of the railway from the left, across the plain to Kraevesk, and
-enabled the leading enemy trains to be shelled almost from the flank.
-The infantry, while still going methodically forward, were receiving far
-too much attention to feel comfortable, and Japanese soldiers were
-putting tufts of grass and leaves in front of their caps to hide the red
-band, which made an excellent target for riflemen and machine-gunners.
-Occasionally one would rub a handful of mud around the tell-tale band;
-experience soon taught the Japanese soldiers the dangers of a little
-colour. It was just ding-dong open fighting, wonderfully spectacular in
-character. Then a shell burst plunk under the line behind the two
-foremost enemy trains, which made retreat for them impossible. Desperate
-efforts were made to repair the line, but well-directed rifle and light
-machine-gun fire made this impracticable. Another well-placed shell
-dropped just under the gunners' quarters on the front train, and
-instantly the car was enveloped in flames. In turn the fire spread to
-the gun-carriage, which had become untenable from rifle-fire. This
-proved a complete catastrophe for the enemy, who from positions on our
-extreme left and centre had a full view of the slaughter around the
-doomed trains. Their nerves were completely shattered, their fire became
-spasmodic and erratic, and then among the trees on a hill to the left
-appeared a white flag.
-
-That flag was too late. The Japanese cavalry shot out in file as a
-straight extension of our left. Having come parallel with the farthest
-group of resistance, they right turned, and instantly swept up the slope
-in a beautiful line and forward over all resistance, white flag and
-all. They took no prisoners.
-
-My men were only "B one-ers," and the pace was beginning to tell; still
-they were leading, owing to the fact that our advance was along the
-railway and the usual tracks at the side, while the Japanese had to
-contend with the marshes and woods farther away. I therefore ordered a
-rally, and advanced only with such troops as could be reasonably
-expected to keep the line. This party numbered about sixty, and included
-Captain Clark, the Padre (Captain Roberts), Lieutenant Buckley, my Czech
-interpreter (Vladimir), Regimental Sergt.-Major Gordon, Sergeant Webb
-(who, I am sorry to say, died a few days later at Spascoe), Colonel
-Frank (my liaison officer), and rank and file. With this party we
-advanced within fifty yards of part of the burning train, amid a shower
-of debris from the exploding shells stored in its magazine. The second
-train looked quite deserted, and therefore, beyond examining the
-ammunition cart of a 5-inch gun left derelict on the road and counting
-ten rounds of unfired ammunition, we passed without molestation up the
-railway embankment on the way to Kraevesk.
-
-We had passed the trains and left them about two hundred yards in our
-rear when we were startled by rapid rifle-fire behind us. On looking
-round, we were astonished to see spiteful jets of rifle-fire issuing
-from both sides of the uninjured train directed against thick bunches of
-Japanese troops who were passing along the track over which we had just
-advanced. Even the Eastern temperament has limits to its serenity. For
-a moment the Japs were completely off their guard, but they soon
-recovered, and dropping flat in the grass, they opened a brisk
-fusillade. The Magyars were protected by the plated sides of their
-wagons, and were making sad havoc amongst the soldiers of the Rising
-Sun. Taking in the situation at a glance, a Japanese officer gave the
-order to charge. Every man instantly bounded forward, and, like a
-disturbed nest of ants, they swarmed all over the train, stabbing,
-clubbing and bayoneting every Bolshevik they could get at, tossing their
-dead enemies out of the carriages off their bayonets with the same
-motion as if they were shovelling coal. Then they posted a sentry on the
-highest part of each train, and the gun in the road, and called them
-their "trophies of war." My great regret was that no Bolshevik was left
-alive to tell us the reason why they allowed about sixty English
-officers and soldiers to pass unmolested at point-blank range of about
-forty yards, and only began to fire when the Japanese soldiers came
-under their rifles. Many explanations were given at the time, none of
-which seemed to be quite satisfactory, so the mystery remains.
-
-It was here that a polite request was made that the British detachment
-should not keep so far ahead of the other troops, but I was anxious to
-keep well ahead for an important reason. The Bolsheviks had ravaged and
-tortured both young and old, rich and poor, male and female throughout
-the country till their very name stank in the nostrils of the common
-people. Their blood lust had been so great that when they had no
-Russian peasant to torture they fell back on the poor unfortunate Czech
-soldiers who had fallen into their hands as prisoners of war. Many
-authentic cases of this kind are so revolting in character that it is
-better to keep them in the dark rather than advertise how fiendishly
-cruel men can be to one another. I knew that the Czechs had threatened
-to retaliate. The incident of the white flag previously recorded may
-have had something to do with the same sentiment, though I can scarcely
-think it had. I decided, however, that the more humane rules of war
-should apply so far as I was concerned, and I soon had a chance of
-making a demonstration of my views before the whole army. A fugitive
-Bolshevik soldier had escaped from the Japanese cavalry, and started to
-make his way across our left front in an attempt to join the retreating
-Bolshevik trains. Exhausted by the heavy going of the marsh, he had
-dropped for cover and rest. The Japanese line was fast approaching the
-spot where he had taken shelter, so he raised himself from the grass and
-began to run. I levelled my servant's rifle, but misjudged the distance,
-and he took no notice. I took aim at a point over his head, and he
-dropped in the grass so suddenly that Colonel Frank thought I had killed
-him. As we approached the spot his black hair showed up above the green,
-and I took aim again, but did not fire. I informed Colonel Frank I
-wanted the man, if he would surrender, to be an example of how a
-prisoner of war should be treated. Colonel Frank shouted to the man to
-surrender. The man shouted back that the Japanese killed all prisoners.
-He was then informed that I was an English officer, and if he would
-surrender I guaranteed his life unless he had committed some greater
-crime than merely fighting as a Bolshevik soldier. He made no further
-parley, but almost ran to me as for protection. I was standing on the
-embankment, in full view for miles, and it was easy for the whole
-incident to be seen. I took his rifle, with fixed bayonet, and bandolier
-and fifty rounds from him. His papers showed him to be a demobilised
-Russian soldier. I placed him under a guard of two men with orders to
-see him safely to the rear. Time after time demands were made to his
-guards to allow the murder of the prisoner. But those two British
-bayonets made his life as safe as though he had been in Trafalgar
-Square. I could tell by the atmosphere which the incident created that
-our Allies thought this regular conduct wholly out of place on a
-battlefield, but it fulfilled its purpose, and surrenders were accepted
-during the further operations.
-
-Our progress was now very rapid, and except for a few bursts of shrapnel
-which continued to fly harmlessly over the front ranks and injure such
-as were far behind, we approached our old station, Kraevesk, easily. As
-to the method from the military point of view of approaching this place,
-the less said about it the better. A single company of British troops
-would have held up the whole show and inflicted losses on the attackers
-out of all proportion to the object gained. The stuffing, however, was
-completely knocked out of the Bolshevik army, and the advance took more
-the form of beaters driving big game. Having previously reconnoitred the
-whole ground, I again chose the railway for my party. The Japanese
-swarmed up through the wooded slope on the right. I chose the railway
-because I knew the shallow cutting had a slight curve which would give a
-safe line of approach to the station, situated about three hundred yards
-behind this low-lying hill. The Japs advanced through the wood in
-masses, huge bunches of men without regular formation. On rounding the
-curve, I saw an enemy armoured train about four hundred yards distant. A
-Bolshevik officer walked leisurely out of our old headquarters and put
-one foot on the step of the engine, looking straight at myself standing
-on the line. I drew a bead on him with Lance-Corporal's Moorman's rifle.
-I do not believe I hit him, but I was near enough to make him skip
-quickly into the engine shelter. A flash from the leading gun, and a
-2-inch shell passed so close to my head that I fell into the four-foot
-way, and felt the top of my skull to find out if it was still there.
-This shell exploded about one hundred yards behind me and mortally
-wounded two Japanese and injured several others. The machine guns on the
-train now swept the wood, where the Japs were advancing, with such
-effect that for a few moments there was a regular stampede back over the
-brow of the hill. My party had taken cover in the scrub on the left, and
-I crawled on hands and knees in their direction. I found a deep dyke at
-the foot of the cutting covered with high weeds, and into this I rolled.
-Gradually raising my head over the thistles, I potted rapidly at the
-gunner, and my party did the same.
-
-The Japs by this time had recovered from their first shock, and began to
-open fire on the train, which steamed slowly back to the far end of the
-station, when it came to a standstill and pumped shrapnel along our
-front. We had got far ahead of our artillery, so it became a contest of
-rifle versus armoured train. On the left of the station was a thick log
-store, and keeping that between ourselves and the armoured train, we
-crept into the station and began to fire at close range at the gunners,
-whose heads appeared above the sides of the armoured carriages. The
-Japanese used a red brick cottage for a similar purpose on the other
-side, while others tried to outflank the train and cut off its retreat.
-The officer in charge detected this manoeuvre, and, using all his guns,
-he retired behind the hill, and later was reported as steaming towards
-Shmakovka. We took possession of the station, and near our old
-headquarters found a hut in which was the Bolshevik officers' breakfast,
-with potatoes cooked to a nicety on the fire. These were looted by
-Colonel Frank and Sergeant-Major Gordon. The sun was very hot--the time
-was about 8.30 A.M.--we had fought over very difficult country for
-twelve miles, and as we sat on the crossing of the railway the potatoes
-were very good. By some hopeless blunder the Japanese cavalry had been
-ordered to close in from the flank on this station instead of the next,
-so we lost the huge bag of prisoners which was waiting to be captured.
-The Jap cavalry commander sat down and sampled my potatoes, but he lost
-the culminating stroke of the whole movement. This small minor action
-proved to be one of the most decisive of the war, as it destroyed the
-whole Terrorist army east of the Urals.
-
-I was ordered by General Otani to remain in reserve, and returned to my
-base at Svagena to find the proverbial luck of my battalion had been
-maintained. The Japs had over six hundred casualties, some of which
-occurred close to my men, but not a man of the 25th was hit. We had many
-cases of complete prostration, but, in view of the category of my unit,
-not more than was to be expected considering the strenuous month's work
-they had undergone. One and all behaved like Englishmen--the highest
-eulogy that can be passed upon the conduct of men.
-
-General Oie sent a letter of special thanks to the Commanding Officer of
-the British unit for their great services in the engagement. At 4.25
-P.M., August 28, I received the following communication from the General
-Headquarters:
-
-"1. On August 26 the Division had occupied the heights situated at the
-north of Shmakovka. The inhabitants reported the enemy had left there
-between nine and twelve on the night of August 24 by eleven trains,
-strength of which was about 5,000 men; 2,000 men retired by road from
-Uspenkie. The Division bivouacked at Shmakovka.
-
-"2. On the 27th the enemy continued their retreat to the north of the
-River Ussurie, and no enemy could be seen to the south of it, though
-nine railway bridges out of ten between Shmakovka and Ussurie had been
-destroyed. Damage done is some ten metres each, and a few days would be
-required to repair them. The Ussurie railway bridge is not damaged, and
-on the night of the 26th, after a small detachment had occupied it, one
-company of infantry reinforced. Against the enemy on Lake Hanka, which
-was known to have gone down the river with gunboats, one company of
-infantry has been dispatched to the right bank of Ussurie east of
-Shmakovka.
-
-"3. The Division remains at the present position, and prepares to move
-forward on the 28th."
-
-This completed the Ussurie operations, for the battle was absolutely
-decisive. The enemy were entirely demoralised, and never made another
-stand east of Lake Baikal.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-JAPANESE METHODS AND ALLIED FAR-EASTERN POLICY
-
-
-The Japanese, for their own peculiar reasons, as will have already
-appeared, had decided in the early stages of the operations that the
-maritime provinces were their special preserve. They looked with the
-greatest suspicion upon the forces and efforts of the other Allies,
-especially British and American, and by their orders tried deliberately
-to exclude them from their counsels and as far as possible from the
-administration of the territory recovered from the Terrorists. The 27th
-Battalion of American Infantry had landed at Vladivostok a few days
-before the battle of Dukoveskoie, and promises were made that they
-should be hurried forward to take a share in the fighting; but the
-Japanese, who controlled the railway, saw to it that they arrived a day
-late. Instead of pushing them ahead, they were detrained at Svagena, and
-then entrained again from day to day, always about fifty versts behind
-the Japanese front. In addition the Japanese never trusted their Allies.
-No order to the Japanese Army was ever given to the Allied commanders
-until the operation had been carried out or had got to such a stage as
-to make it impossible for them to take part or offer suggestions.
-
-Captain Stephan (now Major), of the Czech Army, and myself knew every
-road and track from Shmakovka to Svagena, and were certain that with
-proper care the whole enemy force on the Ussurie front could have been
-destroyed or captured. The Japanese would neither consult nor inform any
-of their Allies about any movement until it had taken place. They
-treated the Czech commanders with the most scant courtesy; the English
-officers' carriages were invaded by their private soldiers, who would
-insolently ask what business we had in Siberia and when did we propose
-to go home; but they reserved their most supreme contempt for the
-Russian people. These poor wretches they drove off the railway
-platforms, using the butts of their rifles upon the women as well as the
-men, just as though they were dealing with a tribe of conquered
-Hottentots. I did not understand this behaviour on the part of our
-Eastern Ally, and felt it could only be the irresponsible bullying of a
-few individual men and officers. Later on I found it to be the general
-policy of the Japanese Army to treat everybody as inferior to
-themselves; they had learnt this Hun lesson to a nicety.
-
-I give two instances which are neither glaring nor isolated, but of
-which no doubt official record remains. I was standing on Nikolsk
-platform waiting for a train; there was a crowd of Russian people, and a
-Japanese sentry was standing near. This man quite suddenly darted
-forward and jammed the butt of his rifle in the centre of a Russian
-officer's back; the force of the blow knocked him flat on the floor in
-such pain that he rolled about for a few minutes, while the Jap,
-grinning, held his bayonet at the "On guard!" Though there were many
-standing near, not one Russian had the pluck to shoot him, and not
-wishing to mix myself up in the affair, I took no action, but watched
-further developments. Ten minutes later another Jap sentry repeated the
-performance, but this time the victim was a well-dressed Russian lady.
-So cowed were the Russian people that even her friends were afraid to
-help her. I stepped forward to offer assistance, with the Jap standing
-over me; when, however, he saw my revolver he put up his bayonet, but
-continued to laugh as though it was a huge joke. A few Tommies were
-attracted to the spot, and the Jap saw that things were beginning to
-take a serious turn. I proceeded to the Japanese Headquarters, situated
-in a carriage near by, and reported the occurrence. The officer seemed
-astonished that I should interfere on behalf of mere Russians, who he
-said may have been Bolsheviks for all he knew, and inquired whether the
-sentry had ever treated me so. I answered that "the first Japanese that
-touches an English officer or soldier in my presence will be a dead
-man." This seemed to surprise the Japanese officer, who pointed out that
-the Japanese were in occupation of Siberia, and were entitled to do what
-they liked. I had to inform him that the Japanese were acting in
-alliance with the other Powers, including Russia; that we were here as
-the friends of the Russian people, and not as their conquerors. This he
-would or could not understand. I ended the interview by warning him that
-if his sentries were not instructed to behave a little less like
-savages, there would be an end to those sentries' careers. I later
-heard that the interview did good, but could not in the case of Japanese
-troops do more than slightly mitigate their behaviour to the defenceless
-Russian inhabitants.
-
-That is merely a type of their conduct towards ordinary people. There
-is, however, one excuse for them: given the right circumstances, they
-treat all alike. A battalion commander was not quite the sort of
-material to operate upon, for the simple reason that he was usually
-surrounded with sufficient force to secure proper respect, but a general
-without a powerful escort was always fair sport for their gentle
-attentions. Not even the chief of the British Military Mission could
-hope to escape from the most insulting behaviour. An incident placed my
-unit in charge of a part of the telegraph system, which enabled me to
-handle personally the sort of message which entered the Japanese
-Headquarters relative to a special train that was approaching their
-station. I handled the message myself. It ran as follows:
-
-"A special train, No. ........., will enter your section at .........
-time; it conveys the chief of the British Military Mission, General
-........., and Staff from Vladivostok to Ufa for important conference
-with General Surovey, the Commander-in-Chief of the Czech and Russian
-Armies. You will please give 'line clear' throughout the journey." Did
-the Japanese give "line clear" throughout? That will never be the way
-that this highly efficient and interesting little people will do
-anything, if their army is a sample of the whole. They stopped the
-train, and boarded it with a squad of men with fixed bayonets. They
-insulted the chief of the British Mission by placing him and his Staff
-under arrest, and then proceeded to make elaborate inquiries to find out
-whether they were not German emissaries in disguise. The impudence of
-the whole proceeding was so remarkable and yet characteristic that when
-the Staff of the General reported the occurrence to me I did not for a
-moment know whether I should die with rage or laughter.
-
-I went to Siberia entirely biassed in favour of this admittedly
-wonderful people. I took care to instruct my soldiers to salute every
-Japanese officer and to be most polite to every Japanese soldier, and
-they carried out my instructions to the letter; but my attention was
-called to the fact that only on rare occasions did a Japanese officer
-take the trouble to return the salute of my men, and still more rarely
-did a Japanese soldier salute an English officer. He was much more
-likely to give an insulting grimace. I say quite frankly that I admire
-the workmanlike way the Japanese go about their soldierly duties, but it
-is impossible to ignore their stupidly studied arrogance towards those
-who are anxious to be on terms of peace and amity with them. It is
-unfortunately true that they were misled into believing that Germany was
-ordained to dominate the world, and, believing this, they shaped their
-conduct upon this awful example. They quite openly boast that they are
-the Germans of the East. Let us hope that they will read aright the
-recent lesson of history.
-
-During my stay in the maritime provinces I never saw or heard of a
-single act or order from the Japanese Headquarters which would help in
-the slightest degree in the administrative reorganisation of the
-country. On the contrary I saw many things which convinced me that the
-Land of the Rising Sun was at that time more concerned in maintaining
-disorder as the surest way of fostering her own ambitious designs.
-
-At this stage the other Allies were without a Far-Eastern policy. Their
-sole object was to push back as far as possible the German-Magyar
-forces, which were carrying out the sinister policy of Teutonic
-penetration under the guise of Bolshevism. Bolshevism in the Far East at
-this date was an attempt to reduce to a system the operations of the
-Chinese robber bands of the Mongolian border. Mixed with and led by
-released German and Magyar prisoners of war, they became a formidable
-force for destroying all attempts at order in Russia and resisting the
-possible reconstruction of the Russian front against the Central Powers.
-Previous to the Bolshevist regime these Chinese bands had lived by
-murder and loot; it was their trade, though hitherto considered illegal,
-and sometimes severely punished. No wonder they joined the Soviet
-crusade when it declared robbery and murder to be the basis upon which
-the new Russian democracy must rest. This German-Magyar-Chinese
-combination was bound to meet with remarkable initial success. The
-Chinese got his blood and loot in a legal way without much danger, and
-the German prisoner played an important part in the defence of the
-Fatherland and the destruction of its enemies.
-
-If Germany lost on the Western Front, and by means of this unnatural
-combination still retained her hold upon the potential wealth of the
-late Tsar's dominions, she had indeed won the war. This was the reason
-for our presence in Siberia, but it was not the reason for the presence
-of Japan.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-ADMINISTRATION
-
-
-Shortly after the incidents referred to in Chapter IV, I received
-General Otani's orders to take over the command of the railway and the
-districts for fifty versts on either side, from Spascoe to Ussurie
-inclusive. My duty was to guard the railway and administer the district,
-taking all measures necessary to keep open this section of the line of
-communications. I was instructed to fix my headquarters at Spascoe, and
-make all arrangements to winter there. In accordance therewith I
-proceeded to get into touch with what remained of the old Russian
-authorities, civil and military, and the new ones wherever such had been
-created. So far as the men's comfort was concerned, new roads were
-constructed and old ones repaired, broken windows and dilapidated walls
-and woodwork were either replaced or renovated. Electrical appliances
-were discovered and fixed, and what had previously been a dull, dark
-block of brickwork suddenly blossomed out into a brilliantly lighted
-building and became at night a landmark for miles around.
-
-We also began painfully to piece together the broken structure of human
-society. For over a year no law but force had been known in these
-regions, and many old wrongs and private wounds demanded liquidation. I
-made many journeys to outlandish villages and settlements, with a small
-personal escort, fixed a table in the centre of the street, and with the
-aid of the parish priest and the president of the local council, heard
-and decided disputes, public and private, from threats and injury to the
-person to the possession and occupation of a farm. There was no
-appeal--the stolid Tommies who stood behind me with fixed bayonets put
-my judgments beyond question. I remitted one or two points of property
-law to legal decision, but all parties in each case protested that they
-would have preferred my instant judgment. Three murderers I remitted to
-a court which I called together with an old Russian officer to preside,
-but he was so terrified at the prospect of having to order their
-execution for fear they might be Bolsheviks--whose name was a terror to
-everybody--that I had to send them to another district to enable the law
-to be carried out. The report of these proceedings spread with such
-rapidity that it became quite embarrassing, if not impossible, to deal
-effectively and thoroughly with the daily increasing number of
-litigants. I began to understand the reason why in more civilised
-communities legal proceedings are made so expensive. Either the Russian
-peasant is a most litigious person, or else he mistook a free system of
-justice as a healthy English pastime which he thoroughly enjoyed.
-
-It was extremely flattering to be told that these people preferred that
-the "Anglisky Polkovnika Boorpg" should decide their disputes than that
-they should be reserved for a Russian tribunal. It was the most
-interesting work I had so far done in the country. The trial of even the
-simplest case gave me many insights to Russian institutions and
-character that only years of book study could otherwise have
-accomplished. I learnt the difference between the right of the peasant
-holder as compared with that of the Cossack circle. The law of the
-forest afforded an education in itself. The intimate relationship of
-Russian family life, from the highest to the lowest, was constantly laid
-bare before me with all its romance and mediaeval trappings and its
-sordid substratum of violence and superstition. In fact, I became so
-interested in this work that it was with the greatest regret that I
-relinquished it for a more urgent and important call.
-
-The Allied forces in the Transbaikal had now accomplished their task of
-dispersing the forces of lawlessness, and had made some progress in the
-work of administration, but if this work was to be consolidated and made
-of permanent value it must be given a centre, other than the Allied
-command, around which it could rally and to which it might reasonably
-look for guidance and support. The Siberian Government had been
-established by the alive elements of the old regime and the more showy
-members of the Social Revolutionary party, but their authority was
-ignored and their orders were not often conspicuous for their wisdom.
-This great people can do almost anything, but even they cannot live
-without a head, and the question was, how was some sort of head to be
-provided? The Allies had taken control of the far-eastern provinces,
-but, if their object was to be carried through and German designs
-frustrated, it was necessary to push at once their control to the Urals
-and, if possible, beyond. The brilliant feats of the Czechs had
-temporarily thrown the Terrorist forces into confusion, but with
-wealthy, helpless Russia as their prize cupidity alone would be
-sufficient to excite them to renewed effort. To be effective, Allied
-help and activity must be transferred nearer to the scene of actual
-conflict, and Ekaterinburg or Omsk appeared to be the only possible
-centres which could provide the proper accommodation and surroundings
-for this next step in the Allied programme. This much as a general
-proposition was conceded by all, but everybody held differing views as
-to the way in which it should be carried out.
-
-Japan, having firmly planted her feet in the much-coveted maritime
-provinces, did not look with enthusiasm upon the suggestion that she
-should leave what she most wanted in order to lessen the pressure upon a
-front in which she had no interest. That Paris should fall under German
-blows was of no importance compared with American control of the Chinese
-Eastern Railway or the presence of the _Brooklyn_ at Vladivostok.
-
-America had not exactly made up her mind what particular part of the Far
-East was most precious in her eyes, but wished to be friendly with
-everybody and get as much as possible out of all. Her armies were on the
-Western front, but her eyes were on the Eastern Pacific, and was it not
-better after all to remain where you could keep an eye on the other
-fellow?
-
-Who would think of taking a military force over six thousand miles from
-its base through a partially hostile country? Would it get through the
-many dangers and difficulties it was certain to encounter on the way?
-And if it did, who could guarantee a friendly reception? and if not, how
-could a ghastly disaster be avoided? These were some of the problems
-which called for decision, and once decided could never be recalled.
-
-The Americans and the Japanese were otherwise occupied and therefore not
-available, and though it may seem mere national egotism to make such a
-statement, there was only one force in which moderate Russians of all
-parties had absolute confidence--without which anything might happen.
-All eyes turned to the old "Die-Hard" Battalion which had now proved its
-mettle on land and sea.
-
-Russian society had been ripped up by the roots, and the whole country
-reduced to a huge human jungle. Human life was at a discount, in fact
-was the cheapest thing in the country. If a centre of order was to be
-created anywhere, force must be provided for its initial protection.
-Statecraft cannot work with violence ever threatening its very life. The
-risks were great, a big force would create suspicion, a small force must
-rely upon something more than mere bayonets for its safety. It was with
-due regard to its dangers, but with a certainty that it was worth it,
-that I accepted the task which the fates had forced upon me.
-
-We had settled down for a winter in Spascoe, when I received the
-necessary orders to proceed to Omsk, with the suggestion that before
-executing them I had better visit Headquarters at Vladivostok for a
-conference with General Knox. I tried to get a carriage suitable for the
-journey for my Staff from the railway authorities, but failed, and ended
-by purloining a cattle-truck. In this contraption we got as far as
-Nikolsk, where our truck was to have been hung on to the Harbin Express;
-but the station-master, the best type of Russian public official,
-thought it a disgrace that the Commander and Staff of their most trusted
-Ally should travel so. He placed his private car at my disposal on my
-promise to return the same if and when I could find another. We arrived
-at "Vlady," and in four days had completed the arrangements for the move
-and secured verbal and documentary instructions as to the general policy
-to be pursued. The means to be employed to worm my way towards the Urals
-were left entirely to myself.
-
-I had already formed a very high opinion of the Russian character. Much
-can be done by sympathy and persuasion, but if they fail, then the "big
-stick" of Peter the Great, used sparingly, is the only method which is
-certain to secure obedience to orders.
-
-On the return journey I was hung up at Nikolsk for several days. Heavy
-rains had caused the valleys and marshes to become flooded, and a
-haystack which had been carried off its bed by the water had lodged
-against the temporary sleeper buttress and swept the bridge away. The
-hay had held the torrent back till it became so high that it rushed
-over about two miles of the railway, destroying that also. The Japs
-would not repair the damage, nor for some time would they give a chance
-for the Russians to do so. I managed to get orders through to Major
-Browne so that no time was actually lost. It was estimated that it would
-take seven days to get on the move, but by a general hustle all round in
-three days we began our 5,000 miles journey. Starting from Spascoe we
-travelled to Nikolsk, and then turned back up the Manchurian-Chinese
-Eastern Railway. On arriving at Nikolsk we were informed that the French
-Tonquin Battalion had also received orders to move west some seven days
-prior to us, but were not yet ready, nor were they likely to be for two
-or three days. We had arrived at "Vlady," and gone thence to the Ussurie
-front before the French; so now again we led the way towards the sinking
-sun.
-
-This French unit was under the command of Major Malley, who from his
-appearance ought never to have dropped the "O" before his surname. He
-and his officers were some of the best; but the atmosphere of South
-China had robbed them of some of their native energy. He informed me
-that his destination was a point on the railway near the borders of
-North-West Manchuria, and by consulting my own instructions I guessed
-the object of his move. In case of need I should at least have the
-border open. In addition to which the move was an indication that so far
-as this venture was concerned English and French policy ran parallel.
-
-The first part of the journey was through hundreds of miles of uncarted
-corn. As far as the eye could see, to right or left, one vast sea of
-derelict corn, left uncared for on the land to rot in the Siberian
-winter. The entire absence of labour, and the complete breakdown of
-internal administration and communication had produced stark want in the
-presence of plenty. It made one feel quite sad to look day after day
-upon this waste of human food and remember the food rations and
-regulations at home. All along the line there was a continuous stream of
-refugees of all nations and races--poor, hunted creatures who had
-horrible stories to tell of the ravages of the Bulgar and the atrocities
-of the Bolsheviki. At one place the Serbian women and children got the
-breakfast of my men, the Tommies refusing to eat until the kiddies had
-been satisfied. And the pathetic homage they paid to our flag when they
-discovered it was the flag of England! I shall never forget some of the
-scenes which showed us also the wonderful trust the struggling
-nationalities of the world have in the power, humanity and honour of our
-country. It is a priceless possession for the world which Englishmen
-must for ever jealously guard.
-
-Through apparently never-ending uplands we entered the great range which
-forms the natural boundary between China and Siberia. On and on, through
-mountain gorge and fertile valley, we broke at length out on to the wide
-open plains of Manchuria. Perhaps it could be best described as a
-combination of all the most wonderful scenery in the world. It is
-somewhat difficult to keep three huge trains of over forty trucks each
-together on a single line. This, however, had to be done, first for
-purposes of safety, and secondly for defence in the then lawless state
-of the country. The next difficulty was transport. Horses had to be
-watered, and if they were to be ready for use the train must stop and
-the animals be exercised every fourth day. Hence much scheming and
-management had to be exercised for the journey to be successfully
-carried through.
-
-I saw much about the "hidden hand" in the newspapers we received from
-home, but our experiences of the same character were sometimes amusing
-and sometimes serious. The railway was under a sort of joint control,
-Russian, American and Japanese, and it soon became clear that one or the
-other of these groups was unfriendly to our western advance. It may have
-been all, but of that I have no proof. The first incident was a stop of
-four hours. After the first two hours a train passed us that had been
-following behind; after another two hours, when slightly more vigorous
-inquiries were being made as to the cause of delay, we were quite
-naively informed that the station-master did not think we ought to risk
-going farther. We soon informed him to the contrary, and again started
-forward. The next stop of this character was at a fairly big station
-about twenty hours from Harbin. This station-master held us up for seven
-hours. This I thought the limit. At last he showed my interpreter a
-telegram asking him to prevent us going any farther. It was not signed,
-and when I demanded that we should be allowed to proceed, he said that
-there were no engines. I had seen two standing idle outside. I rushed
-on to the platform just in time to prevent the engines disappearing.
-While the station-master had been parleying with me he had ordered the
-engines to put on steam. I gave orders for my guard to form up across
-the line at each end of the station and either bayonet or shoot anyone
-who tried to take the engines away. I then forced the operator to tell
-me if the line ahead was clear, and threatened to take the
-station-master under military arrest for trial at Harbin unless he
-announced my intention to start in that direction and cleared the way
-ahead. I put a soldier with fixed bayonet on the footplate to see that
-the driver held to his post and did not play tricks with the train, and
-started on our journey. We made every inquiry possible, but no one could
-give us the slightest reason for our stoppage, but seemed to think that
-there was something wrong with the works which had allowed us to get so
-far. From then on I took no risks.
-
-There are no special features about Harbin. It is just a conglomeration
-of houses of a more or less Chinese character thrown together in three
-heaps, the first two attempts of the thrower not getting quite near
-enough to the target, which was the junction of the Chinese Eastern
-Railway. Elaborate preparations had been made by an Allied Committee for
-our reception, and when we drew into the station about 4 P.M. it was
-crowded with about as cosmopolitan a crowd of Far Eastern races as we
-had so far met with--the Mayor, the Chinese Governor and all the
-notabilities, foremost amongst them being the British Consul, Mr. Sly;
-but most important of all was General Plisshkoff, the commander of the
-local forces known as "Hovart's Army." Speeches were delivered, and a
-reply given which elicited from a Cossack band the most astounding
-rendering of the British National Anthem that was ever heard around the
-seven seas. The gem of the proceedings was a presentation of two lovely
-bouquets by the English ladies of Harbin. I never felt so much the
-necessity for adopting the Eastern custom of kissing all the ladies you
-are introduced to as at this one supreme moment of the journey; it was a
-real test of the power of restraint. But the ladies' husbands were
-there, and everything passed off quietly, even though some wretched
-fellows took snapshots of the presentation for home production. I
-inspected the several guards of honour, and General Plisshkoff returned
-the compliment, while the famous "25th" band discoursed what was
-declared to be the sweetest music that had been heard in Harbin since
-its history began. Tea was served in a specially decorated marquee on
-the platform and all the men were given presents of one sort or another,
-and the town gave itself over to tumultuous enjoyment, happy in the
-thought that at last one of the Allies had appeared on the scene, a
-faint indication that a desperate effort was about to be made by the
-oldest and most trusted nation in Europe to conjure order out of chaos.
-The officers were entertained by the British Consul, and preparations
-were made for a ceremonial march through the town next day. This turned
-out a great success and greatly impressed the inhabitants.
-
-The day following we were entertained by the Chinese Governor, a very
-courtly old gentleman, and the local Chinese general at the headquarters
-of the Chinese administration. The band was in attendance, and during
-the meal dealt with some of the British military choruses which have
-spread themselves round the world. Of course we all joined in, as only
-Englishmen can, and this became so infectious that even the staid
-mandarins unbent and added their quota to the noise. It is surprising to
-note the resemblance between the solemn Chinese and the self-centred
-Englishmen. The solemnity of the one reacts upon the other, and both
-become what neither is in reality nor can be separately. After our hard
-work and harder fare on the Ussurie this gorgeous banquet was equal to a
-month's leave, and we let go with a vengeance. What the Chinamen thought
-about it next morning I do not know; for myself, I only remembered the
-kindness of this act of friendship and the _camaraderie_ of the whole
-affair. How strange that we should feel more at home with these pukka
-Chinamen than with others we have met who are supposed to have much
-closer affinity.
-
-Immediately after leaving Harbin we crossed the finest bridge of the
-whole journey to Omsk. It carries the railway over the River Sungary,
-which meanders about over the enormous yet fairly well cultivated plains
-of Northern Manchuria. It is not my intention to describe either the
-peoples or the countries through which we passed, but no study of the
-blending and dovetailing of totally different races into the different
-types that we particularise under the names of Chinese, Mongol, Tartar
-and Russian, would be complete without a journey along the Siberian and
-Eastern Chinese Railway. The same remark applies to their dress,
-habitations and customs. It is an education in itself, especially if,
-like us, one had to stop occasionally to drive bargains, negotiate help,
-and have the closest and most intimate intercourse with the common
-people. None of them had even seen the British flag, few of them had the
-slightest idea where the "Anglisky" lived, and one old Kirghis explained
-to his wondering tribemen that we were a strange tribe that had broken
-away from "Americanski" and gone to live on a great island in the middle
-of the lakes, where no one could touch us unless they risked their lives
-on great wooden rafts. I thought the amount of inverted truth in this
-charming description very pleasing if not very flattering to our
-national vanity.
-
-After climbing the great Hinghan Range the plains of Mongolia came as a
-wonder to me. Imagine if you can a perfectly flat land through which
-your train glides hour after hour, day after day. The whole is covered
-with rough grass and a growth somewhat like a huge horse daisy or
-marguerite. At the time we passed these plants had dried, and a terrific
-wind sweeping over the plains had broken countless numbers of the dry
-herb off near the ground. They fell on their round sides. Directly the
-plants had lost their anchorage away they bounded like catherine wheels
-over the plains. It does not require much imagination to picture
-hundreds of thousands of these rounded tufts of dried grass bounding
-along over immense distances. It is quite a fascinating pastime to
-select a few of the larger and better formed ones coming over the
-horizon and calculate how long they take to arrive opposite your
-position. Calculations made in this way convinced me that a small
-coloured message properly fastened to these moving objects might have
-been carried five hundred miles in twenty-four hours. If, instead of
-looking at one, you look at the whole, the impression is of the solid
-earth passing rapidly from west to east. There are occasional
-obstructions in the shape of a huge flock of sheep which would cover
-half of Rutlandshire. These are herded by quaintly dressed Mongolian
-Tartars, on wonderful shaggy-haired horses, who ride at a furious pace
-around their flocks and guard them from attack by the wolves which
-infest this part of the world. It is worth recording how they do so. The
-wolf is a very cunning animal who has numerous methods of attack, and,
-like a hare, is very difficult to locate if in his form and practically
-level with the ground. But his very cunning is often his undoing. On no
-account will the wolf allow a string on which there are little coloured
-rags fluttering to pass over him, nor will he willingly get near it. The
-Tartar herdsmen go forward in line over the plain in the direction their
-flocks are feeding with a small strong string with little coloured flags
-fluttering along it, fastened from horse to horse. This effectively
-sweeps the whole space as the trawler sweeps the sea. No wolf can hope
-to escape the trained eye of the Tartar near the horse where the strain
-of the line lifts it high off the ground, and no wolf will allow the
-line to pass near him, hence the herdsman gets both sport and profit
-out of his occupation. Having fed off the grass and herbs in one place,
-the whole Tartar tribe moves forward at regular periods on what appears
-to be an endless crawl across the world, but what is really an appointed
-round, settled and definite, within the territorial lands of the race to
-which it belongs. Their women and children journey with them and hunt
-and ride with the men, free as the plains over which they travel. In
-spite of this community of interests the men seem to place but very
-little value upon their women except as a sort of communist coolie
-attachment for carrying the camp from one place to another, for
-preparing the rude meals, and for the care of the boys, of whom the
-tribe is very proud.
-
-Over this featureless wilderness we progressed day after day, each
-stopping-place marked by a few aspen trees mixed up with a few others
-that look very much like mountain ash but are not. The winter houses of
-the people are single-roomed, square, wooden structures, very strangely
-built, with flat roofs consisting of about two feet of earth. Against
-and over these structures in winter the frozen snow piles itself until
-they have the appearance of mere mounds, impossible to locate except for
-the smoke which escapes from a few long crevices left open under the
-eaves of what is intended to be the front of the house. These
-smoke-escapes perform the double duty of chimneys and also keep clear
-the way by which the inhabitants go in and out. Their herds are either
-disposed of before the winter begins or are housed in grass-covered
-dug-outs, which in winter, when the snow is piled over them, take the
-form of immense underground caverns, and are quite warm and habitable by
-both man and beast. The one I entered had over two hundred beautiful
-little foals housed in it, and others similar in character had cows and
-sheep and poultry all as snug as you please. The entrance was lighted
-with a quaint old shepherd's lantern, not unlike those I had seen used
-by shepherds in Hampshire when I was a boy. The entrance was guarded all
-night by a number of dogs, and curled up in a special nook was the
-herdsman, with a gun of a kind long since discarded in Europe. Such are
-the conditions under which these people live half the year, but they
-make up for this underground life when in April they start their cattle
-on the move by first allowing them to eat their shelters.
-
-Near the edge of this plain we began to encounter a few sand dunes with
-outcrops, very similar to those on the coast line of our own country.
-Over these we gently ran day after day until we could see vast fields of
-sand and scrub that it must have taken thousands of years of gale and
-hurricane to deposit in the quaint pyramidal fashion in which they stand
-to-day. Even yet they are not fixed; occasionally a tree falls exposing
-the naked sand to the action of the wind, which swirls around the hole
-and moves the sand into a spiral whirlpool, lifting and carrying it away
-to be deposited again on the lea side of a distant valley, choking the
-pines and silver birch and sometimes destroying large woods and forests.
-It is surprising that though we travelled for hundreds of miles along
-the edge of this huge sand plateau we did not see a single rivulet or
-stream coming from its direction, though there were the traces of a
-river far out on the plain. Sunset on these sand-hills was quite
-entrancing. The occasional break in these conical formations, when the
-sun was low down, gave one the impression of a vast collection of human
-habitations, with gable ends to the highest of the buildings. The fact
-is, however, that, so far as we saw or could make out, no human
-habitation exists over the whole face of this sea of sand, though men
-live quite calmly around the craters of volcanoes and other equally
-dangerous and impossible places. The fear created by legends of human
-disaster attaching to the local history of these sands is of such a
-character that even the daring of the Tartar is for once mastered. The
-sands themselves when on the move are dangerous enough, but their
-cup-like formation would hide armies until the traveller was in their
-midst, when retreat would be impossible. The same applies with greater
-force to the banditti or beasts of the desert; hence the gloomy history
-and legends of the Mongolian sands.
-
-We arrived at Hazelar on a Saturday evening, and collected our echelons
-during the night. On Sunday morning I made application to the priest for
-permission to hold our parade service in the grounds of the Greek
-church. This was granted, and the parade was a huge success. The
-spectacle of the padre (Captain Roberts) in his surplice conducting the
-English service under the shadow of the church our help had rescued
-from the violence of the Terrorists was very impressive. The service was
-watched with intense interest by hundreds of Russian men and women and
-by crowds of Chinese, Korean and Tartar plainsmen. Some of the Russian
-ladies joined in the responses, and many women's voices joined in the
-old English hymns. These were the first religious services that had been
-held for a year, and seemed to give assurance to the people that their
-troubles were nearly over, that peace had come again. The huge padlock
-and chain upon the church door had been removed, and general
-thankfulness seemed to be the predominant feeling. The scene was
-doubtless very strange to those unaccustomed to united worship by both
-priest and people. In these small matters I was extremely punctilious,
-as I saw what an impressionable people I had to deal with. I further
-calculated that once we had joined in public service together the edge
-of hostility would lose its sharpness. I did not leave it at this, but
-entered the markets without a guard and held conferences with both
-peasant and workman, stating our reasons for coming and the friendly
-service we wished to perform. It was clear from the beginning that my
-safety depended upon our securing the confidence of the majority of the
-people. A mere military parade would have failed, but with a thorough
-understanding of our object in entering so far into their country we
-gained their confidence and enlisted their help. On the other hand,
-there is a small proportion of disgruntled and abnormal people in all
-communities who cannot be controlled by reason, and for whom force is
-the only argument, and for these we also made ample provision.
-
-There was not much interest in the remainder of the Manchurian and
-Mongolian part of the journey until we arrived at Manchulli. This was
-occupied by the Japanese Division under the command of General Fugi.
-Here it was necessary to get a supply of fresh bread and exercise the
-transport. I paid my respects to the Chinese general, who had just lost
-part of his barracks, forcibly taken from him for the occupation of
-Japanese troops. I also paid an official visit to General Fugi and Staff
-and the Russian commandant of the station.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-FURTHER INCIDENTS OF OUR JOURNEY
-
-
-It was at Manchulli that an incident happened which was much talked
-about at the time and was given many strange versions. It is quite
-easily explained when all the facts are known. It was impossible to
-secure proper travelling accommodation for my officers, either at
-Spascoe or Nikolsk, but I was informed that such would be provided at
-Harbin. In company with the British Consul (Mr. Sly) I called upon the
-manager of the railway at Harbin to secure such accommodation. He was
-very polite and promised to do all he could to help, but next morning
-informed me that no carriage was available, but if I could find one
-empty I could take it. I failed, and reported the fact to him. He could
-do nothing, but said there were plenty at Manchulli held up by Colonel
-Semianoff and the Japanese, who laid hold of every carriage that tried
-to get through this station, and that Colonel Semianoff collected a
-great revenue by refusing to part with these carriages unless the user
-was prepared to pay very high prices for the same. If I was prepared to
-take the risk, and would use force if necessary to secure carriages, I
-should be able to get them there, and so far as the railway authorities
-at Harbin were concerned, I could take any two empty carriages I might
-find.
-
-The weather was beginning to get very cold, and each mile added to our
-discomfort, and the only accommodation for officers on two of the three
-trains were cattle trucks. After my official visit I made request for
-two carriages. The station commandant pretended to consult the Russian
-and Japanese officials, and then informed me that there was not one
-available. I told him it was untrue. He agreed that if I could point out
-any carriages unoccupied I could have them. He went with his register to
-the carriages I indicated, and he admitted they were idle and empty and
-I would be allowed to take them. I put a guard on the carriages and
-thought the incident settled, but nothing is settled for long in the Far
-East. I made request for these carriages to be shunted on to my trains,
-and after a two hours' wait went to the station about the shunting and
-was calmly informed that they knew nothing about the carriages. The
-commandant, with whom I arranged the matter, had gone home (an old
-dodge!), and would not be on duty till to-morrow, and that nothing else
-could be done.
-
-It was reported to me that the reason the carriages could not be secured
-was that the railway officials of a certain Power had given instructions
-that no "class" carriages were to be provided for British officers, as
-it was necessary that the population along the route should understand
-that we were not considered representatives of a first-class Power.
-Englishmen who have not travelled much in the Far East will scarcely
-understand the working of the Oriental mind in these matters. An officer
-of any Power who travels in a cattle truck will not only lose the
-respect of the Oriental for his own person, but will lower the standard
-of the country he represents, irrespective of its position in the comity
-of nations. The representative of the Isle of Man, if he travelled in
-the best style, would stand before the representative of His Majesty the
-King if his means of transit were that of a coolie. It is doubtless very
-stupid, but it is true. Your means of locomotion fixes your place in the
-estimation of the East, because it is visible to them, while your
-credentials are not.
-
-I there and then made up my mind to act, and if necessary go "the whole
-hog." I informed the authorities that nothing should be shunted in that
-station until those two carriages were joined to my trains, and
-proceeded to occupy the whole station. Up to this point I had neither
-seen nor heard anything of the Japanese in relation to this matter, but
-they now came on the scene, and I soon discovered that it was they who
-had engineered the whole opposition to the British officers getting
-suitable accommodation, and had spirited away the old commandant who had
-registered the carriages to me. At first they did not know the correct
-line to adopt, but made a request that the guard should be taken off the
-station. My answer was, "Yes, instantly, if it is understood that these
-carriages are to be shunted to my trains." They agreed to this, and my
-guards were taken off, having held the station for twenty-three minutes.
-I had my evening meal, and was expecting to start when I was informed
-that the Japanese had now placed guards upon my carriages and refused
-to allow them to be shunted on to my train. I thought this was just
-about the limit, and before taking action decided I had better discover
-the reason, if any, for what seemed a definite breach of faith. I
-visited the Japanese station officer, and he said that they had just
-discovered that these two carriages were set aside to convey General
-Fugi to Harbin a few days hence. I refused to believe that such a
-discovery could have only just been made, and I would take the carriages
-by force if necessary.
-
-It looked very awkward, and a Japanese Staff officer was sent for. I
-sent my liaison officer (Colonel Frank) to find the absent station
-commandant who had allocated the cars to me. The Japanese Staff officer
-was expressing his sorrow for my not being able to get any carriages for
-my officers and pointing out how impossible it would be for the train of
-General Fugi to be broken up by the loss of the two carriages I had
-claimed, when in stalked the old Russian commandant and blew these
-apologies sky high by declaring that these carriages had nothing to do
-with General Fugi's train; that they were unemployed, and they were
-mine. I decided to strengthen the guard to eighteen men on each
-carriage, and offered protection to the railwaymen who shunted them to
-my train. The Japanese soldiers followed the carriages on to my train,
-so that we had the strange sight of a row of Tommies with fixed bayonets
-on the cars, and a row of Japanese soldiers on the ground guarding the
-same carriages. No officer came to give them open instructions, but the
-Jap soldiers disappeared one at a time until the Tommies were left in
-undisputed possession.
-
-We returned to my car to find it guarded by Chinese soldiers. I asked
-the reason, and was informed that at an earlier stage of this incident a
-Chinese officer had been to my car with a note to inform me that the
-great friendship which the Chinese always bore to the great English
-nation made it impossible for them to stand by and allow their friends
-to be attacked while passing through Chinese territory. I thanked them
-for their friendship, and suggested that Englishmen were always capable
-of protecting themselves in any part of the world, wherever their duty
-took them; but they would listen to nothing, and remained on guard until
-my train moved out of the station.
-
-I do not suppose there was at any time real danger of a collision
-between the different forces at Manchulli, but it had the appearance of
-a very ugly episode that might have developed into one of international
-importance. I took my stand for the sole purpose of maintaining the
-dignity of the British Army. Other incidents connected with this small
-dispute about officer accommodation, yet having nothing to do with it,
-made me determined to carry my point.
-
-During these proceedings I noticed my liaison officer in angry dispute
-with two Japanese officers against a truck carrying the Union Jack as an
-indication of the nationality of the train. They were pointing to the
-flag in such a manner that I saw at once the dispute was about this
-offending emblem. When the Japanese officers had moved away I called
-Colonel Frank to me and inquired the cause of dispute. He said: "I can
-understand the contempt of the Japanese for our Russia; she is down and
-is sick, but why they should wish to insult their Ally, England, I
-cannot understand. The Japanese officers who have just left me inquired
-where the English commander got his authority to carry an English flag
-on his train. I answered it was an English train carrying an English
-battalion to Omsk, and no authority was necessary. The Japanese officers
-replied that they considered the flying of any other flag than theirs in
-Manchuria or Siberia an insult to Japan. I told them they were fools,
-that if the English commander had heard their conversation (they both
-spoke in Russian) he would demand an apology. At which they grinned and
-departed." We tried every means to find the two officers, but were
-unable to do so. This was the atmosphere in which we discussed the
-smaller subject, and may explain the obstinacy of both sides; at any
-rate, it had something to do with my determination.
-
-We arrived at Chita without further incident of importance. Bread and
-horse exercise delayed us one whole day, and inability to secure engines
-part of another, until in desperation I went with a squad of men to the
-sheds and forced an engine-driver to take out his engine, I myself
-riding on the tender, where I nearly lost my sight with hot debris from
-the funnel, while Major Browne, who stood sentinel beside the driver,
-had holes scorched in his uniform. This act of violence secured not only
-an engine for my train, but for the others also.
-
-I had broken my glasses, and it was necessary to secure others. I walked
-to the town and called at the shop of a jeweller and optician, with whom
-we conversed. Other customers joined in the talk, and we were here
-informed of the murder of the present owner's mother during the
-Bolshevik occupation of the town. The Soviet Commisar, with Red
-soldiers, visited the shop one day to loot the stock. The mother, an old
-lady over sixty years of age who was then looking after the business,
-protested against the robbery of her property. The commisar ordered one
-of the Red Guard to bayonet her, which he did. They then proceeded to
-remove everything of value, locked up the premises with the dead woman
-still lying on the shop floor, and for several days refused permission
-to her neighbours to give her decent burial on the plea that she was a
-counter-revolutionist. It was evident from the appearance of the place
-that the Red soldiers were pretty expert at this sort of business; but
-stories like this are so numerous that it is nauseating to repeat them.
-
-The next point of interest was Lake Baikal, or as it is more correctly
-described by the Russians, the "Baikal Sea." We approached this famous
-lake on a very cold Sunday evening, and long before we reached its
-shores the clear cold depths of the water gave evidence of its presence
-in the changed atmosphere. A furious gale was blowing across the lake
-from the west, which lashed huge waves into fury and foam as they beat
-in endless confusion on the rockbound shore. Blinding snow mixed with
-the spray gave the inky blackness of the night a weird and sombre
-appearance. Our Cossack attendant, Marca, droned a folk-song about the
-wonders of the Baikal, which, when interpreted by my liaison officer,
-fitted the scene to a fraction. We put up the double windows, listed the
-doors and turned in for the night. I was fearful that we should leave
-the lake before morning and so fail to get a daylight view of this most
-interesting part of our journey. We all awoke early to find the scene so
-changed as to appear almost miraculous.
-
-The strange light of these northern zones was gently stealing over an
-immense sea of clear, perfectly calm, glassy water, which enabled us to
-locate the whiter coloured rocks at enormous depths. A fleecy line of
-cloud hung lazily over the snow-capped mountains. The Great Bear nearly
-stood on his head, and the Pole Star seemed to be almost over us. The
-other stars shone with icy cold brilliance and refused to vanish, though
-the sun had begun to rise. And such a rising! We could not see that
-welcome giver of warmth and life, but the beautiful orange and purple
-halo embraced half the world. From its centre shot upwards huge, long
-yellow streamers which penetrated the darkness surrounding the stars and
-passed beyond into never-ending space. Gradually these streamers took a
-more slanting angle until they touched the highest peaks and drove the
-cloud lower and lower down the side of the mountains. I have been on
-the Rigi under similar conditions, but there is nothing in the world
-like an autumn sunrise on Lake Baikal. I stopped the train ostensibly to
-allow water to be obtained for breakfast, but really to allow the men to
-enjoy what was in my opinion the greatest sight in the world. Some of
-the men were as entranced as myself, while others (including officers)
-saw nothing but plenty of clean fresh water for the morning ablutions.
-We all have our several tastes even in His Majesty's Army.
-
-Rumour says there are exactly the same fish to be found in Lake Baikal
-as in the sea, with other varieties which represent ordinary fresh-water
-types. I do not believe there is any authority for these statements. Sea
-gulls of every known category are certainly to be found there, and wild
-duck in variety and numbers to satisfy the most exacting sportsman.
-
-Passing along this wonderful panorama for some hours we arrived at
-Baikal. The maps supplied to me show the railway as making a bee line
-from the south of the lake to Irkutsk. This is not so; the line does not
-deviate an inch from the western shores of the lake until it touches the
-station. Baikal is reached nearly opposite the point at which the
-railway strikes the lake on the eastern side. The lake is fed by the
-River Selengha, which drains the northern mountains and plains of
-Mongolia. No river of importance enters it on the north except the
-short, high Anghara; in fact, the rivers Armur and Lenha start from
-quite near its northern and eastern extremities. It is drained on the
-west by the famous River Anghara, which rises near Baikal, and enters
-the Polar Sea at a spot so far north as to be uninhabitable, except for
-the white bears who fight for the possession of icebergs.
-
-Baikal had been the scene of a titanic struggle between the
-Czecho-Slovak forces and the Bolsheviks, who had in case of defeat
-planned the complete and effective destruction of the line by blowing up
-the numerous tunnels alongside the lake, which it must have taken at
-least two years to repair. The Czechs moved so rapidly, however, that
-the enemy were obliged to concentrate at Baikal for the defence of their
-own line of communication. Before they had made up their minds that they
-were already defeated a lucky Czech shot struck their store of dynamite
-and blew the station, their trains, and about three hundred of their men
-to smithereens. The remainder retreated off the line in a southerly
-direction, and after many days' pursuit were lost in the forests which
-form the chief barrier between Siberia and Mongolia, to emerge later on
-an important point on the railway near Omsk.
-
-We stopped at Baikal for water and fuel, and examined the damage done by
-the explosion. The great iron steamer which used to be employed to
-convey the train from one side of the lake to the other was almost
-destroyed, its funnels and upper works being wrenched and twisted beyond
-repair. But out from every crevice of her hull and from every broken
-carriage came German and Austrian prisoners of war dressed in every
-conceivable style of uniform. There was no guard of any description, but
-they all appeared to be under the direction of a young German officer,
-who saluted very stiffly as we passed. No doubt existed amongst these
-Germans (so I heard from our men later) that we were tramping towards
-Germany and certain death. Not one would believe but that Germany would
-win the war, and destroy not only England, but also America. They had no
-feelings about France, nor would they consider her as other than an
-already half-digested morsel. Quartermaster-Captain Boulton put it to
-one prisoner: "But suppose Germany were defeated?" "Then," said the
-prisoner, "I would never return to Germany again." We fell in with
-thousands of German prisoners who all held a most perplexing view of
-ourselves. They described us as the only real and bitter enemy of their
-country. But the same men would volunteer to work for us rather than for
-any other Ally, because they said we treated them fairly and behaved to
-them like men, and listened to their grievances. That is something at
-any rate.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-BEYOND THE BAIKAL
-
-
-From Baikal to Irkutsk is a short run down the left bank of the Anghara.
-We arrived at Irkutsk about the same time as a small detachment of
-Japanese troops, who were acting as a guard to their traders and their
-stores, who usually travel with the army. The Japs have very pretty
-bugle calls for different military purposes, mostly in the same key,
-with a sort of Morse code for the different orders, but a Japanese bugle
-band is the most terrible thing in the world of sound. It makes one
-either swear or laugh, according to one's taste. They gave us an
-exhibition in moving off from the station, which everyone who heard will
-never forget. I was rather surprised to find that the Jap traders had
-established themselves at Irkutsk, as their headquarters were at Chita,
-which was also the centre of their agent, Semianoff. Why they came to
-Irkutsk at all is a problem. It was generally understood that some of
-the Allies were prepared to concede them only the fairest part of
-Siberia up to Lake Baikal. Perhaps they had heard whispers of the
-mineral wealth of the Urals.
-
-Irkutsk, situated on the right bank of the Anghara, is a rather fine old
-town for Siberia. Its Greek cathedral has a commanding position, and
-contests successfully with the Cadet School for supremacy as the
-outstanding architectural feature first to catch the eye. The town is
-approached by a quaint, low wooden bridge which spans the swiftly
-running river. When we saw it the battered remnants of human society
-were grimly collecting themselves together after some months of
-Bolshevik anarchy and murder. Whole streets were merely blackened ruins,
-and trade, which had been at a complete standstill, was just beginning
-to show a return to life. Putting out its feelers, it had taken upon
-itself a precarious life not yet free from danger. The 25th Battalion
-Middlesex Regiment was the only British unit in the country; it had
-spread itself out in a remarkable manner, and shown the flag on a front
-of 5,000 miles. In spite of its category it had brought confidence and
-hope to a helpless people out of all proportion to its strength or
-ability.
-
-A public banquet (the first since the Revolution) was held ostensibly to
-welcome Volagodsky, the Social Revolutionary President of the Siberian
-Council, but really to welcome the first British regiment that had ever
-entered and fought in Siberia. It was a great occasion, and the first
-real evidence I had seen of possible national regeneration. Even here it
-was decidedly Separatist, and therefore Japanese in character; a
-glorification of Siberia and Siberian efforts, completely ignoring the
-efforts of other Russians in the different parts of their Empire.
-Evanoff Renoff, the Cossack Ataman, led the panegyric of Siberia, and
-the President and the Secretary for Foreign Affairs, a long, watery-eyed
-young man, joined in the chorus. They were doubtless all well pleased
-with themselves, and thoroughly enjoying a partial return to the old
-conditions. Colonel Frank translated in a whisper all that was said, so
-that I got a good hang to the mental atmosphere of this unique
-gathering. The toast of their Ally, Great Britain, was the occasion
-which brought me to my feet. The band played "Rule Britannia" as a
-substitute for "God Save the King," for the simple reason that though
-mostly Social Revolutionaries they dared not play a Royalist hymn until
-they had tested the feelings of their audience. This gave me my cue. I
-laughed at their fears, and informed them that whatever happened, our
-anthem, which for the time represented the unity of our race, would be
-played by my band at the ceremonial to-morrow, and all the Bolsheviks in
-Russia would not be powerful enough to prevent it. From this I led to
-the flag, another great emblem of racial unity. I called attention to
-the entire absence of a Russian flag from Vladivostok to Irkutsk, and
-asked, "Is this the country of the once great and mighty Russia that a
-stranger travels over without knowing what country it is?" I suggested
-that though we had twenty revolutions I could never imagine Englishmen
-being ashamed of the English flag or afraid to call themselves
-Englishmen. The translation of my remarks ended in a wonderful ovation,
-and I thought the band would never play anything else but the National
-Anthem, which it repeated again and again.
-
-My list of telegrams and messages of every kind and character from every
-part of Russia and the outside world, together with constant repetition
-of the speech in the Press, indicates plainly that from this day began
-the resurrection of the Russian soul. Another sign of renewed vigour and
-life was the fact that from that day the Russian flag (minus the Crown)
-flew from the flagpost over every big station we passed, and on all
-public buildings. The Russians are extremely emotional, and I had
-managed to strike the right chord the first time.
-
-The day following we marched to the square space surrounding the
-cathedral, and I inspected the newly-formed units of the army. Splendid
-men with good physique, but slow and stilted in movement. The remnant of
-the cadets who had escaped the general massacre was there, a wonderfully
-smart set of beautiful boys, who at a distance, looking at their faces
-only, I took for girls, much to the disgust of the colonel in charge. It
-was altogether a fine and impressive sight, with big crowds and the fine
-cathedral as a background. With the "Present" and "The King" at the end,
-every man present uncovered, and an old Russian lady knelt and kissed my
-adjutant's hand and blessed us as "saviours," while the commandant asked
-for cheers for "the only country which came to our help without
-conditions." I wonder how that will pan out?
-
-We were entertained at the British Consul's, followed by a concert at
-night. It was terribly cold, and no droshkies were to be had. We had to
-walk to the theatre in a blinding snowstorm. At 2 A.M. we started on our
-last lap.
-
-The sentiments of the people changed completely every few hundred
-miles. After leaving Irkutsk we soon discovered that we were in enemy
-territory, and the few weeks, and in some cases days, that had elapsed
-since the retirement of the Bolshevik Commissars had left the country
-the prey of the desperado. Let there be no mistake, Bolshevism lived by
-the grace of the old regime. The peasant had his land, but the Russian
-workman had nothing. Not one in a thousand could tell one letter of the
-alphabet from another. He was entirely neglected by the State; there was
-not a single effective State law dealing with the labour conditions or
-the life of the worker in the whole Russian code. His condition was, and
-will remain, in spite of the Revolution, utterly neglected and hopeless.
-He has not the power to think or act for himself, and is consequently
-the prey of every faddist scamp who can string a dozen words together
-intelligently. There are no trade unions, because there is no one
-amongst them sufficiently intelligent either to organise or manage them.
-All the alleged representatives of Labour who have from time to time
-visited England pretending to represent the Russian workmen are so many
-deputational frauds. There cannot be such a delegate from the very
-nature of things, as will be seen if the facts are studied on the spot.
-The lower middle classes, especially the professional teacher class,
-have invented the figment of organised Russian labour for their own
-purpose.
-
-The condition of the Russian workman is such that he can only formulate
-his grievances by employing others to do it for him. Hence there has
-come into existence numerous professional councils, who for a
-consideration visit the workers in their homes and wherever they
-congregate, and compile their complaints and grievances. But these
-professionals always point out that the rectification of small points
-like rates of wages and working hours are a waste of time and energy;
-that the real work is to leave the conditions so bad that, in sheer
-despair, the worker will rise and destroy capitalism in a night, and
-have a perfect millennium made ready for the next morning.
-
-The poor, ignorant, uneducated, neglected Russian workman is perfect and
-well-prepared soil for such propaganda. He found himself bound hand and
-foot in the meshes of this professional element, who did not belong to
-his class and, except in theory, knew nothing of his difficulties. When
-this professional element had misled, bamboozled and deserted him, in a
-frenzy of despair he determined to destroy this thing called education,
-and made the ability to read and write one of the proofs of enmity to
-his class on the same principle that our uneducated workmen of the first
-half of the nineteenth century destroyed machinery and other progressive
-innovations, whose purpose they did not understand. There would be less
-chatter about revolution if our people could only understand what it
-means to go through the horrors that have destroyed Russia and her
-people more effectively than the most ruthless invasion.
-
-We stopped at a station near a mining village largely peopled with
-emigrant Chinese workmen. We removed the Bolshevik flag from the
-flag-post, and insisted upon the Russian flag being run up in its stead.
-A Russian woman told us to go back, and when we asked her why, she said,
-"Well, it does not matter; our men will soon find enough earth to bury
-you." But another Russian woman thanked us for coming, and hoped we were
-not too late to save a country that was sick unto death.
-
-That night we ran into Zema station, where we came to a sudden stop. I
-sent my liaison officer to find the cause, and he informed me that a
-body of men were beside the engine and threatening to shoot the driver
-if he moved another foot. I ordered the "Alarm" to be sounded, and
-instantly 400 British soldiers tumbled out of the trucks. Taking their
-prearranged positions, they fixed bayonets and awaited orders. My
-carriage was the last vehicle of the train. I walked forward to find the
-cause of our enforced stoppage, and was just in time to see in the
-darkness a squad of armed men leaving the station. I took possession of
-the station and telegraphs, and then heard from the officials that
-Bolshevik agents had come to the town and had persuaded the workmen to
-leave work, to take arms and cut the line to prevent the Allies moving
-forward, and await the arrival of the Bolshevik force which had retired
-from Baikal. This force had worked its way along the Mongolian frontier,
-and was now feeling its way towards the line to destroy the bridge which
-carries the railway over the River Ocka at a point about three versts
-from Zema. I placed guards around and in the railway works, engine
-sheds, and approaches, and discovering telegrams still passing between
-the Bolsheviks and the inhabitants, I occupied by force the post and
-telegraph office in the town. Orders were issued that all men must
-pledge themselves not to interfere with the trains, and return to work
-by 6 A.M., or they would be dealt with under martial law. Two hours
-elapsed, during which time my other trains arrived, with machine-gun
-section complete, and the whole force were disposed to receive attack.
-
-The troops surrounded the house of the leader of the movement, but the
-bird had flown. I found some Bolshevik literature advocating the
-wholesale destruction of the _bourgeoisie_ and _intelligenzia_ (I forget
-which they put first), also 3,600 roubles, which I gave back to the
-wife, saying, "That is a gift from me to you." This act disgusted the
-local chief of the gendarmerie, who assured me that it was German money
-and ought to be confiscated. I had no doubt it was, but then I was
-English, and a Hampshire man at that. Then the usual teacher arrived and
-asked if he would be allowed to speak to the "Anglisky Polkovnika."
-Receiving an affirmative, he entered and began the conversation. He
-naively confessed that if he had known it was an "Anglisky" train he
-would have allowed it to pass. They had read my order as to their pledge
-to return to work, and wanted to know what I proposed to do if they did
-not do so. I answered that after having taken up arms against us they
-could expect no mercy, and that if they did not obey my orders every
-leader I could find I would shoot. The teacher inquired if I would
-allow the men to be called together for consultation by their
-prearranged signal at the works. I agreed, if they came without arms.
-Soon after, the most awful sound came from a huge buzzer. It was now
-midnight, and the air was rent by a wailing sound that grew in volume,
-to die away into a world sob. Every Britisher there was affected in some
-peculiar fashion; to myself it was like nothing so much as a mighty
-groan from a nation in distress. Colonel Frank, my Russian guide,
-philosopher and friend, ran from the table when the sound began, and
-paced the car in evident anguish, and as it died away exclaimed, "Poor
-Russia!" and I had felt the same thought running through my mind. All my
-men expressed themselves in similar sentiments and as never wanting to
-hear it again.
-
-My business was to get out of the place as quickly as possible, but to
-leave the line safe. The small militia force was quite inadequate to
-deal with a population fully armed. Hence I ordered the surrender of all
-arms by the inhabitants, and allowed twelve hours in which this was to
-be done.
-
-Six A.M. arrived, and my officers reported all men at work except eight,
-and these reported later and asked forgiveness, which was readily
-granted. I then informed the management that I intended to call a
-meeting of the men and hear their grievances. The management tried to
-dissuade me from my purpose, but I at once ordered their attendance in
-the headquarters of the works at 10 A.M., when I would hear the men's
-complaints. Promptly to time the work finished, and the men crowded to
-the spot selected. A British sentry with fixed bayonet and loaded rifle
-stood on either side as I sat at the table, while others were placed in
-selected positions about the building. I called the managers and heads
-of all the departments first, and warned them that I had been forced to
-take this trouble into my own hands, that I intended to settle it, and
-that if they interfered with the men in any way, either by harsh
-measures or victimisation, I would place them under court-martial just
-the same as I would any workman who prevented the smooth working of the
-railway; in fact, they being presumably more intelligent, would find no
-mercy. This information caused quite a commotion amongst all concerned.
-I asked the men to state their grievances. The first workman said he had
-no economic grievance; his was political. He had been told the Allies
-were counter-revolutionists, and as such should be destroyed. Two or
-three protested against this, and said they came out on economic
-grounds. They said their objection was to piece-work. I tried to get a
-statement from them that their wages were low, but they would not
-consent to this, admitting that their pay for the same work was five
-times what it was in 1917.
-
-I came to the conclusion that it was more of a military movement on the
-part of the Bolshevik leaders than a strike such as we understand it in
-England. I gave my decision that the men's leaders were to be tried by
-General Field Court-Martial. The men's committee then said that they had
-never had the chance to meet anyone in authority before, that they were
-anxious not to appear as enemies to the great English people, that if I
-would carry out no further repressive action against them, they would
-continue to work until the end of the war. They heard that Bolsheviks
-were approaching their town, and knew the tortures in store for them if
-they were found continuing to help the Allies in their advance to the
-Urals. If I would secure protection for them they would sign an
-agreement never to strike until the war in Russia had ended. I believed
-them, and the agreement was signed, but I insisted upon disarmament.
-
-That evening the time limit in which the arms were to be handed in
-expired. We were informed by the local militia that some arms were
-handed in voluntarily, but many more remained.
-
-The following morning a train with General Knox and his Staff pulled
-into the station. I reported the whole occurrence to the general, and
-how I had received and sent forward notice of his coming and the object
-of his journey. It was here that he informed me of the outrage which the
-Japanese officers had perpetrated upon him, in spite of the fact that a
-big Union Jack was painted on the side of each carriage of his train.
-
-The inhabitants of Zema were just congratulating themselves on having
-got rid of the "Anglisky" when they suddenly found machine guns in
-position ready to spray all their main thoroughfares with lead should
-the occasion arise. Sections of the town were searched, house by house,
-until the piles of arms necessitated transport to remove them. Real
-sporting guns which could be used for no other purpose, and the owner
-of which was guaranteed by the local police, were returned. In some
-houses dumps of looted fabrics from other towns were taken possession
-of, and altogether work for the courts was found for the next two
-months.
-
-The echo of Zema travelled far and wide, and gave the authorities an
-object-lesson how to tackle a cancer as deadly as it was devilish. When
-Kerensky destroyed the old Russian army sixteen million ignorant and
-uneducated soldiers took their rifles and ammunition home. This was the
-insoluble problem of every attempt to re-establish order in the Russian
-dominions. The Middlesex Regiment made the first plunge at Zema, and
-others soon followed along the path indicated. We re-armed the local
-militia, and we took the remainder of the confiscated arms to Omsk,
-where they were taken over by the Russian authorities for the new
-Russian army. I wired to Irkutsk for reinforcements for the local
-militia, as I did not think them strong enough to deal with the
-possibilities of the situation. The commandant at Irkutsk wired that he
-had information which proved there was no truth in the rumoured approach
-of Bolshevik forces, which reply I knew from the experience I had gained
-in Russian ways merely indicated his determination not to weaken his own
-guard.
-
-At midnight I started on my further journey. About a fortnight later I
-received a despairing message from the local militia chief at Zema for
-help; he said he was nearly surrounded by the Baikal Bolshevik
-contingent, which had suddenly appeared. I took the message to Russian
-Headquarters at Omsk, and called attention to my wire to Irkutsk and the
-refusal to protect this part of the line. Later I received a report from
-the commander of the Russian force sent to deal with the situation. He
-said that the Bolshevik leader had come into Zema expecting to receive
-material and military help from the people. He found them disarmed and
-unfriendly, and determined to take no part in further outrages against
-established order. He wreaked vengeance upon some of his false friends,
-and was then surprised by Government troops, who dispersed his forces,
-killing 180 and capturing 800, together with ten machine guns and 150
-horses.
-
-As a rule, Bolshevik contingents were easily disposed of in a town. They
-usually looted everything and everybody. Officers were elected from day
-to day, with the result that such a thing as discipline did not exist.
-Still, had that party arrived when I was in Zema we should have had a
-pitched battle worth a lifetime, for as it turned out they had many
-machine guns, while we had only four; but there would never have been
-any doubt about the result, for though we were only a "garrison
-battalion," the steadiness of my men under fire had hitherto been
-excellent.
-
-We had been passing through hundreds of miles of wonderful virgin
-forests for the last two weeks, with only an occasional opening for
-village cultivation and an occasional log town of more or less
-importance. The hills and valleys as we approached Krasnoyarsk, covered
-with pine trees and frozen rivers, looked like a huge never-ending
-Christmas card. At last we arrived at Krasnoyarsk, a large, straggling
-town of great importance on the River Yenisei. As we approached we
-passed miles of derelict war material--tractors, wagons, guns of every
-kind and calibre all cast aside as useless, there being no place where
-minor defects could be repaired. Some had no apparent defects, but there
-they lay, useful and useless, a monument to the entire absence of
-organisation in everything Russian.
-
-I had suffered a slight indisposition, so Major Browne deputised for me,
-and inspected the Russian and Czech guards of honour drawn up to welcome
-the troops on their arrival. I found the town in a very disturbed
-condition, and as it was necessary to guard the great bridge, I accepted
-the suggestion to quarter a company under the command of Captain
-Eastman, O.B.E., in the excellent barracks which had been prepared for
-my unit. This place had been originally fixed upon as the station for
-the whole battalion, but important events were happening in Omsk. Our
-High Commissioner, Sir Charles Eliot, and the Chief of the British
-Military Mission, General Knox, had already arrived there, and required
-a guard, hence I was ordered to proceed with the remainder of my
-battalion. We remained in Krasnoyarsk for two days, and marched through
-the town and saluted the British Consulate. On the last evening the
-usual banquet was held in our honour, and is worth a few words because
-of an incident which created great interest at the time. The guests were
-made up of many officers and others in uniform, and also civilian
-representatives of the Town Council, the district Zemstvo, and other
-public organisations. The usual fraternal speeches and toasts were
-given, and not more than the usual six speakers attempted to deliver an
-address at one time. A number of dark-featured, glowering civilians sat
-at a table almost opposite to myself, men who by their attire and sombre
-looks appeared to be unsuited to the banquet atmosphere, and out of
-place amongst the gorgeous uniforms of Cossack Atamans and Russian
-generals. They seemed to take not the slightest interest in the
-proceedings except for a few moments when certain of my words were being
-translated. All seemed bent on the business of the evening and a good
-dinner, indicating a return to normal conditions. A Social Revolutionary
-representative of the town delivered a furious tirade, which I could get
-my officer to translate only in part, but even that part showed me the
-world-wide division of opinion amongst my Russian hosts.
-
-The orchestra, composed of German and Austrian prisoners, discoursed
-sweet music during the evening, alternately listening to the fiery
-eloquence of Cossack and Tartar. A Cossack officer, who had drunk a
-little vodka, rose and gave an order to the band, but the prisoners only
-got out about three notes. What was in those notes, Heaven only knows!
-Instantly the whole banqueting hall was a scene of indescribable
-confusion. Tartar and Cossack shouted with glee; older Russian officers
-ordered the band to stop, and vainly tried to silence the disorder. The
-dark-visaged and apparently unemotional civilians threw off their
-armour of unconcern, and hurled epithets and shook clenched fists and
-defiance at their military fellow-countrymen. Then they all rushed out
-of the building in a body, hissing and spluttering like a badly
-constructed fuse in a powder trail. It was like the explosion of a small
-magazine. I had no idea what had happened, but took in the full
-significance of the scene I had witnessed when told that the notes which
-had acted like a bomb formed the first bar of "God Save the Tsar." A few
-miles farther on the Autocrat of All the Russias had already met an
-ignominious death by being thrown down a disused pit near the line
-dividing Asia and Europe. In death, as in life, he remained the divider
-of his people.
-
-The trains started off during the night, and on the evening of the next
-day we arrived at Hachinsk, where a Russian guard did the usual military
-honours, and a sad-faced, deep-eyed priest presented me with bread and
-salt, as becomes a Tartar who welcomes a friend. It was lucky for me
-that I had some little training in public speaking, and that "Polkovnika
-Franka" could make such excellent translations, or we might not have
-made such a good impression as I flatter myself we did on some
-occasions.
-
-At last we arrived at Omsk, the end of our journey, having passed in a
-zigzag direction almost round the world. A few miles to the Urals and
-Europe again--so near and yet so far!
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-OMSK
-
-
-As Omsk, unlike so many other towns of Siberia, did not care to pay the
-usual toll demanded by the railway prospectors, it is situated several
-versts from the main trunk line. To overcome this inconvenience a branch
-line was afterwards run up to the town itself. The date of our arrival
-was October 18, and a right royal welcome awaited us. The station was
-decorated with the flags of all nations, the Russian for the first time
-predominating. We were met by General Matkofsky, the commander of the
-district, and his Staff, who welcomed us on behalf of the new Russian
-army, by M. Golovaehoff, Assistant Minister for Foreign Affairs, and the
-representatives of the municipal authorities and the co-operative
-societies. The women of Russia presented us with bread and salt, and,
-generally speaking, the people of Omsk gave us a real Russian welcome.
-The ceremonial over, the men were taken to the Cadet School for tea and
-entertainment, while the Russian officers regaled the Middlesex officers
-at a feast in the Officers' Club. We were introduced to all and sundry,
-and began to mix wonderfully well. If we had laid ourselves out for it,
-we might have visited every decent Russian home in Omsk. As it was, we
-soon became so much in demand that most of us had in a short time
-formed lasting friendships with a very charming set of people. Their
-welcome was doubtless tinged with relief at the security afforded by the
-presence of well-disciplined troops. The wife of a Russian general told
-me that she felt as though for the first time she could sleep peacefully
-in her bed. The little cadet son of another officer gave permission for
-his loaded rifle to be taken from the side of his bed, where it had
-rested every night since the Bolshevik Revolution and the cadet
-massacres had commenced. If I understand the Russian character denials
-of this may be expected, but it is a fact that the presence of those 800
-English soldiers gave a sense of confidence and security to the people
-of Omsk that was pathetic in its simplicity and warmth. However
-suspicious of each other as a rule the Russians may be, there is no
-question that when their confidence is given, it is given generously and
-without reservation. As to its lasting qualities, that has to be proved,
-but at the time it is something real and tangible, and no amount of
-trouble taken for one's comfort is too great.
-
-On the date of arrival I had only a few moments for conversation with
-Sir Charles Eliot, our High Commissioner, on the political situation. I
-gathered from him and his Staff that a desperate effort was being made
-to join the forces of the Directorate of Five, which stood as the
-All-Russian Government and received its authority from the Constituent
-Assembly at Ufa--largely Social Revolutionary in character--and the
-Siberian Government, the outcome of the Siberian Districts Duma, which
-met at Tomsk and was largely reactionary, with a small mixture of
-Socialist opinion. The English and French representatives were genuinely
-anxious that a workable compromise should be made between these two
-groups and a Cabinet formed that would give confidence to moderate
-Russian opinion, and so command Allied recognition with reasonable
-prospects of success. This very desirable ambition of the Allied
-"politicals" had the sympathy of every friend of Russia, but advice is
-one thing, accomplishment another. It was impossible to expect that the
-effects of hundreds of years of tyranny and bad government could be
-swept away by the waving of a diplomatic wand. The Siberian Government
-was largely composed of the "old gang," Revolutionary and Royalist, and
-derived its support almost exclusively from the desire of the people to
-escape further bloodshed; it was guarded by the Royalist Cossack clans,
-as lawless as they are brave. The Ufa Directorate derived its authority
-from the moderate Social Revolutionary party composed of the
-"Intelligenzia"--republican, visionary, and impractical. Kerensky was,
-from all accounts, a perfect representative of this class, verbose and
-useless so far as practical reconstructive work was concerned. This
-class blamed the unswerving loyalty of the Cossacks and the old army
-officers for all the crimes of which the Tsars were guilty, and had
-hunted them like rats in cellars and streets during the worst days of
-the Second Revolution. The officer and Cossack class cursed Kerensky and
-the Social Revolutionaries for destroying the old army and letting free
-the forces of anarchy and Bolshevism, which had destroyed the State and
-had massacred the manhood of Russia in an orgy of violence and hate.
-
-There should be no mistake made as to the apportionment of blame.
-Kerensky is considered by all classes of Russian society as the cause of
-all their calamities. They think, rightly or wrongly, that at the
-supreme moment when the destiny of his race and country was placed in
-his hands he proved traitor to the trust; that had he possessed
-one-tenth of the courage of either Lenin or Trotsky millions of Russians
-would have been saved from worse than death.
-
-To combine these hostile and divergent elements into a united party for
-the resurrection of Russia seemed impossible to me, as it did to one
-other Britisher, Mr. David Frazer, the _Times_ Pekin correspondent; but
-the "politicals" thought otherwise. That they were guided by the highest
-motives and that they gave of their very best in the interest of the
-Russian people no one who has the slightest knowledge of the high
-personal character of our representatives could doubt for a moment, but
-they tried to accomplish the unattainable. The most that could be said
-of their policy is that it was worth attempting. Try they did, and under
-the influence of the Bolshevik guns booming along the Urals and of
-Royalist conspiracies at Chita a piece of paper was produced with a
-number of names upon it which seemed to bear the resemblance of a
-working arrangement between these two opposites.
-
-I am writing this within three weeks of the occurrence, and may modify
-my views later, but for the life of me I cannot understand the
-satisfaction of our "politicals" with their work. They "downed tools" at
-once and disappeared from the scene of their triumph as though the few
-names on a piece of paper had solved the whole problem of the future of
-Russia. It would be mighty interesting to know the nature of their
-communications to their respective Governments. One thing, however, had
-been done which was fated to have important after-effects. Vice-Admiral
-Koltchak had been brought into the new Council of Ministers with the
-title of Minister for War. I had never met the officer, and knew nothing
-about him or his reputation, and merely lumped him in with the rest as
-an additional unit in an overcrowded menagerie. Frazer and I had many
-talks about these events, but we could fasten on to nothing real in the
-situation except danger.
-
-On November 6, 1918, we were all invited to a banquet in honour of this
-new All-Russian Government. It was to be the climax of all our efforts
-and a tangible evidence of the successful accomplishment of a great
-diplomatic task. I was rather late, and the ante-rooms were already
-filled with soldiers and diplomats in grand uniforms with glittering
-swords and decorations.
-
-I watched this peculiar and intensely highly-strung crowd with the
-greatest interest, and except for one figure--a sort of cross between a
-Methodist parson and a Plymouth Brother--was struck by the complete
-absence of personality amongst the people present. The parsonified
-person referred to turned out to be the Social Revolutionary,
-Volagodsky, President of the Siberian Council, who had now transferred
-his love from Siberia to the whole of Russia. But as my liaison officer
-was repeating the names of those present a smart little energetic figure
-entered the room. With eagle eyes he took in the whole scene at a
-glance. The other officers had bowed gracefully to all their friends and
-gallantly kissed the ladies' hands, while around them buzzed the
-conversation. For an instant the buzz ceased, during which the brown
-figure with the dark, clear-cut face shook hands with an officer friend
-and departed. The impression on my mind was that I had seen a small,
-vagrant, lonely, troubled soul without a friend enter unbidden to a
-feast.
-
-The new President of the Council of Ministers, Avkzentieff, presided at
-the banquet, and as we sat down I found myself at the end of the head
-table, which gave me a good view of the stranger I had seen in the
-vestibule sitting second round the corner. The dinner was good, the
-vodka gave warmth to the blood and made a very pleasant contrast to the
-"60 below" outside. Avkzentieff led the speeches. Immediately my mind
-flew to Hyde Park Corner, and then to the Lyceum stage with Irving in
-"The Bells." He spoke with assumed sincerity, cutting the air with his
-hands in the manner that a Cossack sweeps off a head with his blade. He
-sank his voice and hissed his words in a hoarse stage whisper, while
-pointing to the ceiling with a dramatic forefinger. In other words, he
-was the best actor it had been my pleasure to see for a long time--a
-second edition of his more famous colleague, the futile Kerensky.
-Little did I dream that within a few days I would beg for this man's
-life and that the Middlesex Regiment would shield him from eternity.
-
-Then followed a speech by General Knox (Chief of the British Military
-Mission), who implored all classes of Russian thought to pull together
-to establish an Army and a Government capable of supporting law and
-public order, a speech full of patriotism and very much to the point.
-Then came General Bolderoff, Commander-in-Chief of the new Russian army
-and military member of the Ufa Directorate. He had the appearance of a
-big, brave, blundering Russian officer. Not too much brain, cunning, but
-not clever. I should, however, give him credit for more than ordinary
-honesty. Later Admiral Koltchak spoke--just a few short definite
-sentences. Very few cheers or shouts greeted this orator. He seemed more
-lonely than ever, but presented a personality that dominated the whole
-gathering. There was the usual passing round and signing of menus. I
-sent mine direct to the admiral for his signature, and when he
-automatically passed it to General Bolderoff I said "Neat," and it was
-returned with the solitary name of this solitary man. I was now
-absolutely satisfied that the new Government was a combination that
-refused to mix, and took the most stringent precautions to see that my
-unit did not become involved in its impending overthrow. I, however,
-made an important discovery at this congratulatory banquet, namely, that
-Russia still had one man who was able to rescue her from anarchy.
-
-The business of Omsk went on much as usual, but Omsk society became
-more subdued in its whisperings. Clique countered clique, and
-conspirators undermined conspirators, while a peculiar tension hung over
-all.
-
-During the negotiations connected with the formation of this Government
-a very serious hitch occurred which at one time threatened the whole
-project with disaster. General Bolderoff was known as a Social
-Revolutionary in politics. Through him the Social Revolutionaries had
-practically supreme control of the new army. Avkzentieff and Co., aiming
-at Social Revolutionary control of all the forces of the new Government,
-demanded that a Social Revolutionary should also control the
-newly-organised militia, which were to act as a sort of military police
-under the new regime. This was resented by the more moderate members of
-both groups, as it would have practically placed all power in the hands
-of one group, and that not distinguished for administrative ability or
-caution. In addition to which, the very claim made the moderates
-suspicious as to the use for which such power was to be employed. The
-presence of the Allies and the determination to form some sort of
-administration overcame these suspicions, and the moderates gave way and
-left both forces under the command of the Social Revolutionary group.
-
-The Allies were pushing forward supplies intended for the new armies
-facing the Terrorists along the Ural front, but it was soon discovered
-that such arms were being deflected from their proper destination. The
-front line was kept denuded of arms and equipment of which it was in
-greatest need, while the militia in the rear, and under the Social
-Revolutionary control, were being regimented and fitted out with
-everything they required. The appeals of the front-line generals to
-Bolderoff, the Social Revolutionary Commander-in-Chief, fell on deaf
-ears, and things were getting into a serious condition. Admiral
-Koltchak, as Minister for War, presented the appeals to General
-Bolderoff, and backed them in a very determined manner. Bolderoff was
-equally outspoken, declaring that the appeals from the front were
-fictitious, and concluded one of these wrangles by informing the admiral
-that it was not his business; that the Social Revolutionary group had
-been forced by one of the Allies to accept the admiral as a member of
-the Government; that they had done so merely to secure Allied support
-and recognition, but he would remain a member of the Government only so
-long as he did not interfere in business from which, by a resolution of
-the Directorate, he was expressly excluded. Admiral Koltchak thereupon
-tendered his resignation, but was later prevailed upon to withdraw it so
-as to keep up a resemblance of harmony before the Allied Powers. He,
-however, insisted upon making a personal inspection of the front, for
-which permission was granted, as much to get him out of Omsk as for the
-proper performance of his ministerial duties.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-ALONG THE URALS
-
-
-On November 4 I received a telegram from Mr. Preston, British Consul at
-Ekaterinburg, asking that a detachment might be sent to attend on
-November 9 at the inauguration of Czech national life and the ceremonial
-presentation of colours to four Czech battalions of the Czech National
-Army. I consulted General Knox, and he having received a similar request
-from General Gaida, commanding at Ekaterinburg, that a detachment should
-visit the several fronts over the Urals for the purpose of giving moral
-support to the war-weary veterans of our Allies, it was decided that I
-should take the regimental band and a guard of one hundred picked men
-for this purpose. Both Czech and Russian were sad at the long weary wait
-between the promised help of England and the appearance of the first
-khaki-clad soldier on the scene.
-
-All preparations had been made for my journey, and I was timed to start
-from Omsk at 3 P.M. on Friday. Early on Friday I was informed that
-Admiral Koltchak, the Minister for War, was also travelling to the Czech
-ceremony, and, as engines were very scarce, would I allow his carriage
-to be attached to my train? I readily consented. About midday a further
-note informed me that the admiral's own car was found to be full of the
-wives and children of his old naval officers, that there were no other
-cars, but they hoped to be able to get another by 7 P.M. The result was
-that we did not turn out of the town station till that hour. We had only
-got to the lower station, less than a mile on our journey, when the
-officials informed me that something had broken on the admiral's
-carriage which would take two hours to repair. I felt there was a
-deliberate attempt being made by someone to prevent either the admiral
-or myself from performing our journey. At 11 P.M. I walked out to the
-workshops where the repairs were being effected, and sat on an anvil
-until 4 A.M., through a horrible Siberian night, while a good-tempered
-"Russky" blacksmith accomplished his part of the task.
-
-No Russian official would dream of doing a straight thing if a crooked
-one would accomplish his purpose. So "Polkovnika" Frank telegraphed in
-my name to all the railway section commandants ordering them under pain
-of summary execution to clear their part of the line and prepare express
-engines at each stopping-place ready to haul on to the admiral's train
-the moment it came in. We bribed an old Russian _provodnik_ to get us a
-Russian flag to fasten on the admiral's carriage, which he did, and we
-became the first Russian train that had dared to carry a Russian flag
-for nearly a year. We also had two Union Jacks, and altogether the
-Russian officials became suspicious that here at any rate was a
-combination of colour to which the greatest respect must be paid.
-
-The result was that we finally started on our journey at 7 A.M. instead
-of 7 P.M., just twelve hours late, and arrived at our destination one
-hour in front of time. Guards of honour awaited us, and breakfast of a
-more or less scanty character. A presentation of bread and salt, on a
-fine wooden dish on which the ladies had painted a picture of the old
-monastery under whose walls the great Czech national ceremony was to
-take place. We marched past the building in which the Tsar Nicholas II
-and his family had been imprisoned and from which they were taken to
-die. I am anxious not to believe the untold horrors alleged to have been
-inflicted on the female members of his family, but they are told
-categorically. It is best to believe nothing one hears in Russia, and
-what one actually sees is not always what it seems.
-
-We saluted the flag at the Consulate, where our great good comrade and
-fellow-countryman, Consul Preston, gave warmth and good cheer to man and
-beast. Suddenly we turned to the right and entered a huge square,
-already surrounded by Czech troops, infantry, artillery and cavalry. It
-was indeed a great sight. On the highest corner of the square a platform
-was erected, on the right of which we were given the post of honour, and
-for some strange reason which I could not understand were asked to play
-the British National Anthem, when the whole Czech Army came to the
-"Present!" as General Gaida and his Staff, with the colours, entered the
-square. I felt that we were celebrating the birth of a nation. The scene
-had that peculiar solemnity about it that makes the moment feel
-pregnant with world events. One of the units was my old Ussurie
-battalion, and our old chum, Captain (now Colonel) Stephan, was the
-proudest man there, as he bore from the hands of the priest the
-newly-consecrated colours of his country. What quantities of beer we
-shall drink together if I ever see him in his dear Prague, thinking of
-our thirsty days in Eastern Siberia!
-
-It was my first introduction to the dashing young Czech officer, General
-Gaida, who by sheer pluck had played such an important part in cutting a
-way for his army from west to east. We had the usual banquet, at which
-Admiral Koltchak delivered the first important speech since his
-appointment as Minister for War. I gave expression to the delight of my
-own country at the birth of new nations and the resurrection of freedom
-amongst the subject people of the world. I also gave expression to my
-pleasure that the first act of the new Russian Minister for War was to
-visit his army at the front and make himself personally acquainted with
-the conditions of the Russian soldiers who were so gallantly fighting to
-protect the people and the State from violence and anarchy.
-
-The ceremony over, we started at once for the Kunghure front, and the
-early morning found us sliding rapidly down the European side of the
-Urals. Huge forests, all loaded with snow, covered the mountain sides,
-and there was a temperature quite impossible for British military
-operations. We arrived about 11 A.M. at the headquarters of the army
-under the command of General Count Galitzin. We held long conferences
-and then lunched in his mess, which was quartered in an eight-wheeled
-American truck. An occasional shell exploded first to right and then to
-left, but none came very near, and by 2 P.M. the firing died away
-altogether. It was decided to march to the advanced outpost and take the
-band to give both friend and foe an opportunity to judge a sample of
-British music. We got to the extreme point near which a cutting in the
-railway gave excellent protection for the band, while the admiral's
-Staff and my Middlesex guard went forward to have a look at the enemy.
-The band started "Colonel Bogey," then went on to something which I do
-not remember, but while we were groping about through machine-gun pits,
-etc., the band behind began "Tipperary." That just put the finishing
-touch to Bolshevik patience! This famous war tune got on their gunners'
-nerves and they began to shell the tune for all they were worth.
-Needless to say not a single shell went anywhere near the mark. All
-shrieked over our heads and exploded harmlessly among the forest trees;
-one, however, dropped near the railway bridge and went off like a
-Hampstead squib on a wet bonfire night. It shows an utter lack of
-culture among the Bolshevik officers that they could not appreciate good
-music after we had taken so much trouble to bring it within their reach.
-The band finished and the shelling ended. I expect they fancied they had
-frightened my bandsmen, but the fact was they enjoyed the unique
-experience immensely.
-
-General Count Galitzin is a very fine type of the officer of the old
-regime; an aristocrat to his finger tips, but a fine leader of men, born
-to command. I should think there is a big strain of Tartar blood in his
-make-up, but he is altogether the sort of man one would prefer to meet
-as friend rather than foe. We discussed the possibility of an offensive
-in the direction of Perm, from where I humorously suggested we might be
-able to rescue the forces of General Poole, which had gone into winter
-quarters somewhere in the direction of Archangel. We returned to
-Ekaterinburg, and without stopping, proceeded towards the Lisvin front
-to meet General Pepelaieff.
-
-We arrived on the Lisvin front about 10 A.M. next day, but did not see
-the enemy or hear his guns. This army had been compelled to retire some
-60 versts the very day we were discussing an advance on Perm, and its
-present position was none too secure. Pepelaieff is a young general, not
-more than thirty, but looked a real hard-working soldier. His uniform
-was as dirty and worn, though not quite so dilapidated, as the majority
-of his soldiers. He had absolute confidence that he could beat the enemy
-if his men had rifles and ammunition, which many had not. Half his men
-were waiting for the rifles of comrades who might be killed or frozen in
-the snow. The conferences were quite businesslike, and Admiral
-Koltchak's presence seemed to galvanise the whole army into life and
-energy. The "Russky soldat," whose boots had long since disappeared and
-whose feet were bound up in bags to protect them from the snow, felt
-almost certain that proper boots and clothes would follow from the War
-Minister's visit. Pepelaieff came back in my carriage to meet General
-Gaida, and the admiral also relished a British soldier's ration as we
-discussed things generally, including the proposed advance and the
-necessary measures to make it into a victory.
-
-We were to have gone next to the extreme right, where General Verzbitsky
-operated on the flank, but the admiral said the condition of the
-soldiers was very sad, and his immediate business was to organise the
-rear and so secure the means by which the soldier at the front could do
-his duty. We saw the ceremonial of the presentation of colours to the
-11th Siberian Rifles, a fine proceeding greatly enhanced by the fact
-that three officers of the regiment had rescued the colours (originally
-presented by Peter the Great) from the Bolshevik Revolutionaries, and as
-pedlars and peasants had tramped for months through the Bolshevik lines
-and brought them safely to the new regiment.
-
-It was necessary for the admiral to see General Surovey and General
-Detriks and their Staffs at Chilliyabinsk, and also to have a look at
-the Ufa front. Travelling all night, we arrived at Chilliyabinsk next
-morning, and after quite a formal inspection of guards, we adjourned for
-lunch. The date I do not remember, but my old friend Colonel Pichon
-burst through all etiquette to inform me of the terms of armistice
-between Germany and the Entente, and brought out a bottle of champagne
-he had preserved for the occasion; we swore by all the powers above and
-below that we were the greatest people the world had ever seen in all
-its ages and intended to remain so.
-
-Lunch over, I left the admiral to his generals and walked a little
-through this straggling, snow-swept town, firmly believing that we were
-about to start for Ufa. At 5 P.M. I was informed that the conferences
-were over and there were urgent reasons for an immediate return to Omsk.
-I did not object as I was not anxious to see more of this army of
-ill-fed, half-clad soldiers struggling to save the State under
-intolerable conditions. We started on our return journey and travelled
-till 11 A.M. next day, by which time we had arrived at Petropalovsk.
-Here the station commandant informed us that General Bolderoff wished
-our train to wait for his, as it was most essential that he should have
-a conference with the Minister for War. This was the first intimation I
-had received that General Bolderoff had left Omsk and was on his way to
-visit the Ufa front. The admiral invited me to his carriage and
-explained the critical situation at Omsk, but could give no reason for
-the sudden decision of the Commander-in-Chief to leave Omsk and meet him
-on the way. I had my suspicions that the two groups of the Government
-had come to grips, and that each had decided to destroy the other; that
-Admiral Koltchak was to be sounded as to which of these groups had his
-favour, and that his life, and perhaps that of his British escort, would
-depend upon his answer. Bolderoff and the people at Omsk were unaware of
-the presence of the British escort or its numbers, and while they may
-have discovered our joint appearance at the Ekaterinburg function, there
-had been no original decision to accompany the admiral to Chilliyabinsk.
-That was only arranged the previous day. In revolutions you can never be
-too careful, hence I gave orders to my men to load and be ready for
-instant action if necessary. Orders were also issued to patrol the
-platform and allow no people, uniformed or otherwise, to collect near
-the trains, and in no circumstances were the two soldiers who were to
-accompany the admiral to lose sight of him for one instant without
-reporting it to me. Two others stood guard at the entrance to General
-Bolderoff's carriage. When I saw the look on the face of the
-Commander-in-Chief's attendants I was satisfied that my precautions were
-no more than necessary.
-
-The general's train drew into the station and Admiral Koltchak entered
-Bolderoff's carriage at exactly 12 noon on November 6, 1918. I asked my
-servant, Moorman, to take a "snap" of the two trains, as I felt that
-this conference was full of big events for Russia. While taking the snap
-a returned emigrant workman spoke to Moorman in good English. He asked
-who all these officers were and what they were all talking about, and
-when my servant informed him he did not know, the emigrant said: "It is
-all right so long as they do not want to bring back the old regime, but
-if that is their object I can tell them that Russia will never submit to
-live under the old regime again." I thought, and think now, that in that
-workman's words I heard the voice of Russia. The conference between the
-admiral and the general broke up at five o'clock; it had lasted five
-hours.
-
-The admiral was hungry and came into my carriage for something to eat;
-his servants had nothing ready as it is the Russian custom never to
-begin to prepare a meal till you are ready to eat it. After the meal we
-talked, and from the conversation I gathered the nature of the questions
-discussed at his conference with the Commander-in-Chief. He asked me
-whether in England our Minister for War had any responsibilities placed
-upon him for the supply of clothing, equipment and general condition of
-the British Army? I replied that in England the Minister for War was
-responsible to the Cabinet and, through Parliament, to the country for
-the general efficiency of the British Army in every detail. He answered:
-"What would you think in England if the Commander-in-Chief told the
-Minister for War that these matters had nothing to do with him, that he
-would be allowed to keep a small office with two clerks but no staff, as
-it was the Minister for War's name only that was of any use to the
-Directorate (or in your case Cabinet), and the less he interfered with
-the affairs of his department the better for all concerned?" I answered:
-"If I were the Minister I should claim to have absolute control of my
-department, or resign." He thought a minute and said: "That is what I
-have done," or "what I intend to do," I forget which. From what followed
-I think it must have been the former, because I asked him what General
-Bolderoff said in answer to his claim, to which he replied: "General
-Bolderoff is a very good man, and though he does not see everything as
-I wish, I think he understands the situation, and will himself ask that
-greater power should be given to enable me to save the new Russian army,
-that it may be able to resurrect the Russian State." I well remember
-that word "resurrect"; it was so pregnant with truth. The State _was_
-dead, Russia was no more; resurrection was necessary.
-
-We arrived at Omsk town station at 5.30 on the evening of November 17,
-1918. The admiral thanked me for my help and my guard and for the
-kindness and protection I had afforded him. I promised him my continued
-help and sympathy in his patriotic attempt to revive the spirit of his
-people. He went straight to his lodgings and remained there.
-
-The _Times_ correspondent in a message to his newspaper has suggested
-that the admiral had prior knowledge of what was to happen that night in
-Omsk. I do not think that was the case. He may have guessed that
-something very unpleasant was in the wind--the least sensitive amongst
-those behind the scenes knew that--but what it was, from which direction
-it would come or on whom it would fall was a secret known to but very
-few, and I am convinced that the admiral, except in a second degree, was
-not one of them. Colonel (soon to be General) Lebediff could tell the
-whole story, though his name was not even mentioned during the _coup
-d'etat_. A young and able Cossack officer, he was on the Staff of
-Korniloff when Kerensky invited the great Cossack general to march his
-army to Petrograd to save the newly-elected National Assembly. It is
-well known how, when Korniloff obeyed Kerensky's order, he
-treacherously turned and rent to pieces the only force which was moving
-at his own request and could have saved Russia. He, in turn, became the
-victim of the ghouls who urged him to this act of destruction. Lebediff
-escaped, but one can be certain that he retained a lasting hate towards
-the Social Revolutionaries who had betrayed his great leader.
-
-The comrades of Kerensky, and in some cases the actual betrayers, had
-found refuge in the Directorate of Five and the Council of Ministers,
-and were continuing to play the same double game which had brought ruin
-on the first National Assembly and disaster upon the Russian people.
-They were members of the same futile crowd of useless charlatans who by
-their pusillanimity had made their country a byword and the Treaty of
-Brest-Litovsk possible. I was in a position to judge. I was certain that
-this young man was the wrong sort to allow the execution of his chief to
-pass without attempting punishment.
-
-He had drifted down to Southern Russia and joined General Denikin in his
-first efforts against the Bolsheviks. Sent from Denikin with dispatches
-to Omsk, he became the centre of a group of desperadoes who were in want
-of a cool brain to make them formidable. The state of Omsk at this time
-was simply indescribable. Every night as soon as darkness set in rifle
-and revolver shots and shouts could be heard in all directions. The
-morning sanitary carts picked up from five to twenty dead officers.
-There were no police, no courts, no law, no anything. In desperation
-the officers grouped themselves together and hit back indiscriminately
-at the people they thought responsible for the murder of their comrades.
-So a fair proportion of civilian bodies became mixed up with those
-wearing uniforms. That the officers got home at last on the right people
-is proved by the fact that these nightly murders became fewer and then
-practically ceased altogether.
-
-It was into this scene of blood that we were hurled, and this was the
-condition which had become quite normal in the capital under the rule of
-the five-pointed Directorate. Its members were the most unmitigated
-failures that even poor distracted Russia had so far produced, and the
-people waited, hoping and longing, for their speedy removal. I was not
-at all surprised when, next morning, my liaison officer, Colonel Frank,
-returned from the Russian Headquarters in great perturbation and with
-great excitement informed me that Russia was doomed never to rise out of
-her troubles. I asked why. He answered that during the night some
-villains had arrested the Social Revolutionary members of the
-Directorate and Government, that no one at Headquarters knew the persons
-who had again upset the whole government of the country, and he had no
-doubt that the members of the late Government were already murdered. I
-took the necessary precautions for the safety of my command and awaited
-developments. I knew that the telegraph to the east was cut and that a
-_coup d'etat_ was in course of execution.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-WHAT HAPPENED AT OMSK
-
-
-At 11 A.M. on November 18 I was officially informed that the Council of
-Ministers had met at 9 A.M., and were now in session, having met to
-consider the situation produced by the arrest of the Directorate. They
-had already asked Admiral Koltchak to accept supreme authority, that he
-had refused, but the Ministers had great hope that for the sake of
-Russia the admiral could be prevailed upon to take the burden of
-Government upon himself, as it appeared to be the only means of getting
-the country out of her desperate situation. The wildest rumours were in
-circulation: that my carriage would be attacked by bombs, that the
-British would at any time be obliged to fight for their lives. I told my
-informants that they need not worry about us; we were well able to take
-care of ourselves. They could not understand our indifference. The fact
-was that not a man or officer in my battalion had the slightest inkling
-of the position. Then the tune changed. Would I defend the Ministers who
-were still in session if they were attacked? My answer was that any
-political refugee who sought asylum in my lines would be protected, but
-he must give up every idea of again taking any part in Russian affairs.
-"But what would you do if the Russian troops revolted and sought to
-murder those who had come into your lines. Would you give them up?"
-"Never!" "What if the Czech commanders made the demand?" "Still never;
-besides which the Czechs are too honourable ever to make a demand such
-as no soldier could accept." The last question was the most important of
-all, and was doubtless the kernel of the whole series, the others being
-mere camouflage.
-
-The Czechs had just inaugurated their National Republican Government,
-and were naturally obsessed with the usual "Liberty, Equality, and
-Fraternity" business, and could not be expected to view the
-establishment of a Dictatorship within their sphere of operations with
-entire unconcern or without serious misgivings. The hostile attitude of
-the Russian branch of their National Council at Ekaterinburg and
-Chilliyabinsk, directly they heard of Koltchak's acceptance of the
-supreme authority, is proof of the danger which might evolve from that
-quarter.
-
-The Council of Ministers, and perhaps Koltchak himself, were unable to
-take the final plunge until they had a thorough understanding of the
-British attitude. The position of the Czech forces at Omsk made it
-impossible for them to approach the place where the Ministers were in
-session without passing the British, and my machine guns commanded every
-avenue leading to or from the Russian Headquarters.
-
-Things were now in such a state of tension that for the safety of my
-command I informed both the Russian and Czech authorities that I should
-not allow bodies of troops or citizens either to approach or collect
-near my cantonment; that such approach or collection would be treated as
-hostile, and dealt with accordingly. That these arrangements gave the
-Ministers greater confidence to proceed with their policy I have no
-doubt. That was one of the inevitable consequences of the preparations
-for our own defence, but not the inspiration of their policy, which was
-entirely their own; but it did steady the situation.
-
-I place these facts on record that those who are interested may be able
-to give them their proper order of value and importance. I afterwards
-learnt that more than one highly-placed official's wife had all
-preparations made for a rapid descent upon the Middlesex quarters.
-
-About 2.30 P.M., November 18, I was informed that Admiral Koltchak had
-assumed absolute power under the title of "Supreme Governor," with a
-Council of Ministers who would be responsible to him for the proper
-performance of their duties; that he proposed to call on the French
-representative, Monsieur Renault, to present himself in the evening;
-that he would then call on me, as the senior British officer in Omsk,
-and in my case he would answer any questions I chose to put to him. He
-called, and it is as well to place here the report I made upon the
-subject at the time:
-
- From Lieutenant-Colonel John Ward, M.P., C.M.G., Omsk, Siberia.
-
-To G.O.C. China Command. Through B.M.M. H.Q.
-
-Headquarters B.M.M., Vladivostok.
-
-SIR,--For State reasons I deem it necessary to give the following
-information that it may be forwarded home to the proper authorities.
-
-About 2.30 P.M. on November 18, 1918, my liaison officer (Colonel Frank,
-of the Russian Army) informed me that at a meeting of the Council of
-Ministers, just held, the Council had offered to place supreme sovereign
-power in the hands of Admiral Alexander Koltchak. The admiral had first
-refused to accept, but that such pressure had been applied to force him
-to accept that he had at last reluctantly consented.
-
-Further, that Admiral Koltchak had assumed the title of "Supreme
-Governor of all Russia," and was calling upon the French Ambassador in
-the evening, after which he would call on me as the Senior British
-Officer holding official position in Omsk.
-
-About 9 P.M. Admiral Koltchak called at my headquarters. The following
-gentlemen were present to receive him: Lieutenant-Colonel J.F. Neilson,
-Captain Stephani, Colonel R. Frank (Russian Army), and Mr. Frazer
-(_Times_ correspondent). He wore the full dress of a Russian admiral.
-
-The admiral, who speaks fair English, informed me of the circumstances
-and reasons for his assumption of supreme authority in all Russia.
-
-An attempt had been made to combine all parties in the Government of
-the country to reduce it to a state of order, so that the people might
-be able to decide the future Government of Russia. The Council chosen by
-the Ufa Assembly had tried to work together for this purpose, but had
-failed. The final dissolution had been brought about by a proclamation
-issued by the Central Committee of the Social Revolutionary party, which
-was intended to produce in the new army the same conditions that had
-destroyed the old army. The proclamation had been signed by the Social
-Revolutionary President, Chernoff, and when it was proposed to take
-action against those who were destroying the discipline of the army, two
-Social Revolutionary members of the Council, Avkzentieff and Zenzinoff,
-could see nothing wrong in Chernoff's subversive propaganda. It later
-transpired that both were members of the Social Revolutionary Committee
-which had issued the literature in question, and refused to either leave
-the Social Revolutionary Committee or repudiate the anti-discipline
-propaganda of their friends.
-
-This brought the new Government to a complete standstill, and, faced
-with absolute anarchy, the Council of Ministers had no alternative but
-to dissolve the old Directorate of Five and centre the supreme power in
-one person, to whom the Council of Ministers would be responsible for
-the administration of their several departments.
-
-I answered that the reasons, coupled with my own knowledge, appeared to
-justify the action, but I had heard that the Social Revolutionary
-members of the Directorate and others had been arrested, and that if
-this action supposed their execution it would make the whole proceeding
-look like an attempt on the part of the old army officers to destroy the
-present arrangements in favour of a return to the old regime. Further,
-if the people of England thought this was the policy of the admiral and
-his friends, they would not only lose the friendly sympathy of the
-English people but also of America and France.
-
-Admiral Koltchak replied that at the moment he did not know the
-whereabouts of the prisoners, but he would make inquiries and inform me
-later. That his sole object in burdening himself with the overwhelming
-responsibilities of Supreme Governor of Russia in this sad hour of her
-history was to prevent the extremists on either side continuing the
-anarchy which made the establishment of a free constitution impossible.
-That if his action at any future time was not in harmony with the
-establishment of free political institutions as understood by the
-Democracy of England, he would be convinced that he had failed.
-
-I thanked him for his good opinion of my country, and called his
-attention to the letter of His Majesty the King to President Wilson,
-received at Omsk on November 14, 1918, in which the principles of
-democracy and freedom were exalted, and warned him that the free peoples
-of the world would resist any attempt to force the Russian people back
-under a system of tyranny and despair.
-
-Admiral Koltchak replied that he had read the letter of His Majesty the
-King of England, and his one hope was that soon Russia might enjoy the
-blessing of equally free institutions.
-
-Omsk, Siberia, _November_, 20, 1918.
-
-
-From Lieutenant-Colonel John Ward, M.P., C.M.G., Omsk, Siberia.
-
-To G.O.C. China Command. Through B.M.M.
-
-Headquarters B.M.M., Vladivostok.
-
-_Further Report on Political Crisis in Russia_.
-
-Following my report of the assumption by Admiral Koltchak of the supreme
-Governorship of Russia, I wish to add:
-
-As I was unable to secure any official information relative to the
-whereabouts of the members of the Directorate who had been made
-prisoners during the night of November 17, I wrote to the Russian
-authorities (through Lieutenant-Colonel J. F. Neilson) on the night of
-the 18th requesting information upon the subject. On November 19, in the
-absence of information, I sent the following letter direct to Admiral
-Koltchak, the Supreme Governor:
-
-
-OMSK, 19.11.18. 3 P.M.
-
-From Colonel Ward.
-To Admiral Koltchak.
-
-After our interview last evening I sent you a note (through
-Lieutenant-Colonel J. F. Neilson) asking for information and some
-guarantee for the imprisoned members of the Council.
-
-So far I have received no information upon the subject.
-
-I have already told you that I am sure my country would look with grave
-concern upon any injury inflicted without proper trial upon these
-prisoners of State, and I should esteem it as a favour if you can supply
-me with information upon this subject.--Yours sincerely,
-
-(Signed) JOHN WARD (Lt.-Col.).
-
-
-Colonel Frank, my liaison officer, took the letter to Russian
-Headquarters, and on his return informed me that the admiral thanked me
-for my letter and that he was pleased to be able to allay my fears.
-
-Three officers, named Lieutenant-Colonel Krasilnikoff, Colonel Volkov,
-and Lieutenant-Colonel Katanaev, had presented themselves at
-Headquarters and reported that they took upon themselves the entire
-responsibility for the arrest of the members of the old Russian
-Government, that they had not injured them in any way, that they were
-prepared to hand their prisoners over to the authorities, together with
-several millions of roubles, believed to be loot, and papers which they
-had found in their possession. That the admiral had placed the prisoners
-under a strong guard of his own, and had placed the three officers under
-arrest to be tried by court-martial.
-
-He further promised that no harm should come to them, and that he
-proposed to convey them out of the country at the earliest opportunity.
-
- _November 20_. 1 P.M.
-
-Admiral Koltchak, hearing that a supply guard of my battalion was
-returning to Vladivostok, has made request that I would allow the
-railway cars conveying the State prisoners to some unknown point on the
-Chinese frontier to be attached to my train for purposes of secrecy and
-additional safety. I have consented, and have strengthened the guard for
-this purpose.
-
-Omsk, Siberia, _November_, 21, 1918.
-
-
-[COPY.]
-
-From Second-Lieutenant P.C. Cornish-Bowden, 25th Battalion Middlesex
-Regiment.
-
-To The Adjutant, 25th Battalion Middlesex Regiment.
-
-Sir,--I have the honour to report for the information of the Commanding
-Officer:
-
-1. The train conveying the four Russian political exiles (Messrs.
-Avkzentieff, Argunoff, Rogovsky, and Zenzinoff) and the Russian guard,
-together with a detachment of British troops under my command, left Omsk
-about 2 A.M. on November 21, and arrived at Harbin on November 27. The
-journey was quiet. Most of the larger towns, where trouble was
-anticipated, were passed at night.
-
-2. I have since been informed by the officer commanding the Russian
-guard that all traffic between Irkutsk and Chita was stopped by order of
-General Semianoff, and that the trains were searched for the exiles
-after we had passed, but I have no evidence in support of this.
-
-3. The exiles expressed the greatest possible gratitude for the presence
-of British troops, and said that they mistrusted their own Russian
-guard, though I saw nothing whatever at any time to lead me to believe
-their suspicions were well founded.
-
-4. On arrival at Harbin the exiles strongly petitioned me to accompany
-the train to Chang-Chun, and the officers in charge of the Russian guard
-being quite willing, I decided to accompany the train to the
-Chinese-Manchurian frontier. We reached Chang-Chun about 2 A.M. on
-November 28, and the exiles left that place by themselves by train on
-the evening of the same day.
-
-5. We reached Harbin again on the 29th inst., where I parted company
-with the Russian guard. We reached Vladivostok on the morning of
-December 2. I immediately reported to the O.C. Detachment, and I
-reported the before-mentioned facts verbally to General Knox.
-
-6. The conduct of the N.C.O. and men of my detachment on the journey was
-very good, and no increase of sickness took place amongst them.--I have
-the honour to be, sir, your obedient servant,
-
-(Signed) P.C. CORNISH-BOWDEN
-(Second-Lieutenant).
-
-Vladivostok, Siberia, _December_ 2, 1918.
-
-
-I had already gained enough experience of revolutions to know that if I
-did not press my point vigorously Avkzentieff and Co. were as dead as
-mutton. I also knew that my countrymen have a rooted dread of
-dictatorships, and that if Admiral Koltchak's assumption of power was
-either connected with or promoted by the execution of his opponents
-without trial, assistance or eventual recognition by the British
-Government would be made almost impossible. My own agents had discovered
-the place where the prisoners were detained, also that they were to be
-quietly bayoneted in the night, as shooting would attract attention. I
-was also certain that Koltchak knew nothing about this. The whole
-business was in the hands of an Officers' Revenge Society, a body who
-had sworn an oath to kill just the number of Bolshevik Revolutionaries
-as there had been officers murdered by Trotsky's and Avkzentieff's
-people. Both parties had similar combinations which left the marks of
-their foul deeds on the streets every night.
-
-The state of affairs was such that only by a dictatorship could the most
-rudimentary order be maintained. I, a democrat, believing in government
-of the people by the people, thought I saw in the dictator the one hope
-of saving the remnants of Russian civilisation and culture. Words and
-names have never frightened me. If circumstances force on me a problem
-for solution, I never allow preconceived notions and ideas formed in the
-abstract, without the experience of the actual then existing facts, to
-warp my judgment in deciding the issue; and I am vain enough to believe
-that, had the same situation presented itself to Englishmen generally,
-nine out of ten would act as I did. I merely "carried on." The
-traditions of our race and country did the rest.
-
-Having, in my talk with the admiral and the report I made, accepted his
-position of Supreme Governor, I did not mean that he should be left to
-fight his way unaided against the enemies who surrounded him. In other
-words, while outwardly remaining neutral, I constantly made
-representations and gave advice, when asked, about everything, both
-internal and external; and here it may be interesting to our own people
-to know some of the problems which confronted the Supreme Governor. The
-Japanese question was the first. General Rosanoff was Bolderoff's Chief
-of Staff, and it was important to the Supreme Governor that he should
-get the hang of outstanding matters and also make himself fairly
-acquainted with the policy of the deposed Directorate. He interviewed
-General Rosanoff and the Staff generally, and discovered that after the
-fall of Samara the Bolshevik army moved rapidly towards Ufa, and the
-Directorate became so alarmed that they demanded some definite policy
-from the Commander-in-Chief as to how he proposed to deal with this
-menace. Bolderoff never thought of effectively organising the new
-Russian army, but suggested that things were so critical, and that
-England, France, and America were so slow, that the only alternative was
-to invite the Japanese to push their army forward to the Urals. This was
-exactly what Japan wanted, but the Japanese Staff demanded as a _quid
-pro quo_ to their advance to Ekaterinburg and Chilliyabinsk that they
-should be placed in absolute possession of the railway and telegraph
-lines to those points. Bolderoff and the Directorate boggled at this for
-a time, but as the Bolsheviks began to get close to Ufa, and also
-concentrated an army of about one hundred thousand men for an offensive
-towards Ekaterinburg, the situation became so pressing that the
-Directorate gave way, and a few days before the _coup d'etat_ Bolderoff
-had sent word to the Japanese that their terms were accepted.
-
-The Japanese had made all preparations to move when Koltchak took the
-reins in his own hands. He asked my advice. I advised him to say to the
-Japanese that the change of Government had also involved a change of
-policy, and that it would be inadvisable for the Japanese to advance
-beyond their position at Chita until the subject had been further
-discussed. They made him many tempting offers of help, both arms and
-money, but he refused them all, and they were unable to move him from
-the position he had taken up.
-
-A subject that led to unfortunate bickerings between Admiral Koltchak
-and the French was the appointment by the Allied Council of Paris of
-General Ganin as the Commander of the Allied and Russian Forces in
-Siberia.
-
-It is too important an item in the general failure of Allied policy to
-pass over without mention. From the very nature of the case the main
-Allied effort was the formation and organisation of a new Russian army.
-Our policy was not to prop Russia on her feet, but to enable her to
-stand by herself. Major-General Knox had been sent out by the War
-Office to accomplish this purpose, and no more able or competent officer
-could have been appointed for the task.
-
-General Knox had hardly begun to perform this duty when the French
-agents in Siberia became alarmed for their own position. Cables were
-dispatched to Europe pointing out the danger to French prestige which
-General Knox's mission entailed. If the English were to be made
-responsible for the reorganisation of the Russian Army, and were
-successful, this would tend to make New Russia rely more upon the
-English than the French, as had been the case hitherto; that it would be
-better to leave Russia without an army than have it organised under such
-influence. These senseless fears of our French friends found willing
-listeners in Paris. General Knox had already made some selections of
-officers and the business was well under way when a message from the
-Allied Council in Paris put an extinguisher on all his work. His orders
-were cancelled, and he was told to do nothing until a French commander
-had been appointed, whose name would be forwarded later.
-
-By this uninformed Allied interference a well-thought-out scheme of army
-reorganisation was hung up for four of the most precious months to
-Russia. By the time General Ganin arrived the time for the project had
-passed and the whole business had been taken out of Allied hands.
-
-The Russian situation at that time was such that four days' delay would
-have been fatal, and if nothing had been done for four months we should
-have been hunted out of the country.
-
-Finding Allied jealousy so great as to render all their efforts
-impotent, first General Bolderoff and then his successor, the Supreme
-Governor, began to organise armies on their own for the protection of
-the people and their property. These armies were ill-equipped and badly
-disciplined--not the kind of armies which would have been raised had
-General Knox's plans been allowed to develop--but they performed their
-duty, they captured Perm, and had increased to over 200,000 before
-General Ganin appeared on the scene.
-
-When General Ganin reported himself to the Supreme Governor with the
-Allied Council's orders to take over the command of the Allied and
-Russian forces in Siberia, he was met with a blank refusal from the Omsk
-Government.
-
-I was consulted upon the question, and I am therefore able to give the
-reasons for their objection. The Omsk Government's position was a very
-simple one: "Had General Knox or any other Allied commander organised,
-paid, and equipped the new Russian army he would have naturally
-controlled it until such time as a Russian Government could have been
-established strong enough to have taken over the responsibility. The
-French would not allow this to be done, and we ourselves therefore
-undertook the duty. Having formed our own army in our own country, it is
-an unheard of proposal that we should be forced to place it under the
-command of a non-Russian officer. It would be derogatory to the
-influence and dignity of the Russian Government and lower the Government
-in the estimation of the people."
-
-From this position they never retreated, but Allied bungling had landed
-General Ganin, who is himself an able and excellent officer, in a not
-very dignified position.
-
-Bolderoff, as I have stated, was at the Ufa front when Koltchak assumed
-supreme power. He remained there in consultation with the Czech National
-Council and the members of the old Constituent Assembly for five or six
-days without a word as to his intentions. It was a critical position for
-Koltchak, who did not know what he was doing or intended to do.
-Hot-heads advised immediate action, but I suggested caution. The
-subject-matter of Bolderoff's conferences or whether he had any we do
-not know, but we do know this: General Dutoff, who commanded the Russian
-armies south of Ufa, had some proposals from Ufa put before him, and
-replied advising caution, as he had it on unimpeachable authority that
-the English were behind Admiral Koltchak. This statement, I was told,
-fell like a bombshell among the conspirators at Ufa, and soon after
-General Bolderoff returned to Omsk. There he interviewed Koltchak as
-Supreme Governor, and made satisfactory statement relative to his
-absence. He was offered a post, which he refused, stating that he wished
-to leave the country, as he did not believe that a dictatorship could
-help Russia out of her difficulties. His request was granted, and so
-ended a very different interview between these two men from that at
-Petropalovsk a few days before.
-
-Some time after this the Japanese representative at Omsk made a request
-to be informed whether General Bolderoff had been forced to leave the
-country, or had left voluntarily. This was answered in a definite way in
-accordance with the facts. In the same note the Japanese also demanded
-to be informed whether the British Army had supplied the train and guard
-which had taken the exiled Social Revolutionary Members of the
-Directorate to Chang-Chun, on the Chinese frontier. This question was
-not answered quite so definitely, but the interest of the Japanese in
-these men shows how far the _coup d'etat_ had upset their plans relative
-to the occupation of the Urals.
-
-The Supreme Governor issued definite orders to the different isolated
-sections of the Russian forces. All commanders obeyed these orders more
-or less except one, General Semianoff, whose headquarters were alongside
-that of the Japanese at Chita, from which he sent insolent refusals to
-recognise Koltchak's authority. Koltchak prepared to deal with this
-mutinous and buccaneering officer. The Japanese at once plainly informed
-the Omsk Government that General Semianoff was under their protection,
-and they would not allow the Russian Government to interfere with him.
-
-Under Japanese protection this fellow continued to carry out
-indiscriminate executions and flogging of workmen until the whole
-district became depopulated, and the Allies were forced to demand an
-explanation from Japan for their extraordinary conduct. So fearful were
-they that their tool was about to be dealt with, that when the 1/9th
-Battalion of the Hampshire Territorial Regiment started from
-Vladivostok, the Japanese asked the Omsk Government whether these
-British troops were coming forward to attack General Semianoff. The
-answer we gave was that all movements of British troops were conducted
-by the British Military Mission, to whom they must apply for
-information. I never heard any more of their inquiries.
-
-About this time a party of Cossacks, with a high officer at their head,
-called at the prison one night and produced to the governor an alleged
-order for the release of nine political prisoners. The [perhaps]
-unsuspecting governor handed his prisoners over; they were taken away,
-and next morning their friends found them shot. Someone ought to have
-been hanged, but Koltchak could find no one to hang. His Chief of Staff
-must have discovered some facts about the crime, but he refused to act.
-In fact, he did not acquaint the admiral about the crime until four days
-later when it had become public property. Koltchak was quite overcome,
-first with rage at the crime itself, and secondly at his impotence in
-being unable to prevent it. But Omsk went on the even tenor of its way:
-it is remarkable what horrors people can face without a tremor when they
-get used to them, as they must in revolutions.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-THE CAPTURE OF PERM: THE CZECHS RETIRE FROM THE FIGHTING
-
-
-The _coup d'etat_ had thrown the proposed Perm offensive completely into
-the background. The Czechs, under the influence of their Political
-Council, who had joined the Social Revolutionary Committee, and their
-leader Chernoff, retired to the rear. Each unit elected a committee and
-established a Soldiers' Council on the strictest Bolshevik plan, and
-ceased to be of further use either to the Russians or their own cause.
-The officers of the new Russian army became greatly concerned for the
-integrity of their own young troops with such a shocking example of lack
-of discipline before their eyes, and begged Admiral Koltchak to order
-these hostile political bodies out of Ekaterinburg. The admiral offered
-them a town in the rear where they might discuss politics to their
-hearts' content, without danger to his army. This, however, did not suit
-their plans, for their obvious object was to destroy the integrity of
-the new Russian army. Admiral Koltchak in desperation ordered the
-leaders to be arrested and the conspiracy to be broken up. General
-Gaida, though a Czech officer, put the admiral's order into effect, and
-handed the prisoners over to the Commander-in-Chief, General Surovey, at
-Chilliyabinsk. General Surovey, under pressure of the Czech Council and
-Chernoff's Committee, released the prisoners, and began to hunt the
-famous young General Gaida out of their hitherto equally famous army. To
-save himself from disgrace at the hands of his political enemies, the
-general resigned his commission in the Czech Army, and by joining the
-Russian Army was instantly re-established in his position as Commander
-of the Russian armies on the right. Thus fell the glorious Czech legions
-from their high pinnacle of fame, killed as all armies must be the
-moment they join in party strife.
-
-From the point of view of purely Russian tactics, it was necessary to
-strike south from Ufa, with the object of effecting a junction with the
-Orenburg Cossacks under General Dutoff, and if possible linking up with
-the forces of General Denikin in South Russia. But no exact or reliable
-information could be secured as to the strength and equipment of Dutoff
-or Denikin.
-
-On the other hand, it was known that an Anglo-American force had landed
-at Archangel, which it was presumed would be well supplied with winter
-equipment, and if once a junction could be effected with this force, a
-channel for European supplies could soon be opened. Every cartridge,
-gun, rifle, and article of clothing had now to be shipped almost round
-the world, and brought over about six thousand miles of more or less
-disorganised railway communication. Koltchak had men, but no means for
-making them into fighters unless supplied from outside. It was felt
-certain that if his armies could smash their way through to Perm, and
-hold a point somewhere between there and Vatka, the junction of the
-Archangel and Petrograd Railway, the slightest movement of the Archangel
-expedition would result in a combination which could and would move
-straight forward to Petrograd, and free north Russia from the
-Terrorists.
-
-Originally I was to have operated in the centre with a detachment of the
-25th Middlesex Battalion and four machine guns, and authority had been
-given for my part in the advance. The complete defection of the Czechs,
-however, threw the time-table out of joint, and not even the restless
-energy of the Supreme Governor could make up this loss for nearly four
-weeks. In the meantime the cold became so intense that the British
-contingent, being only B1 men, had to drop out. General Gaida, with his
-divisional generals, Galitzin, Pepelaieff, and Verzbitzky, pressed
-forward their preparations, and after a splendid series of movements
-captured Perm with 31,000 prisoners and an enormous booty of war
-material. The losses of the Russians were about 6,000 killed, of the
-Bolsheviks about 16,000. There were practically no wounded, for any man
-who sank in the snow was dead in an hour. Thus did the admiral
-consolidate the power that had been entrusted to him.
-
-The Terrorists were completely demoralised, so that the army advanced to
-Glasoff, 80 miles east of Vatka and 60 miles south of Koltass. We were
-now only about 300 miles east of Petrograd, and there we waited for
-seven months for the Archangel move, which never came off. For some
-time the country was so absolutely clear of enemy forces that small
-parties of men passed unmolested from Glasoff to Archangel and from
-Archangel to Glasoff. Eventually the Terrorists got the correct measure
-of this Northern expedition, contained it with a slight screen, and
-concentrated huge forces to press us back over the Urals once more.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-THE DECEMBER ROYALIST AND BOLSHEVIST CONSPIRACY
-
-
-The tenure of a dictator's office is very uncertain. He issues his
-orders, but if the army chiefs can escape from executing them they do
-so, on one pretext or another. The Russian character is most peculiar in
-this respect. It will obey one thing only--force. Patriotism and public
-spirit, as we know them, do not exist to any great extent. Every man
-looks at every order from the personal point of view--"How will this
-affect me?"--rarely, if ever, "How will it affect the country?"
-
-It is remarkable how much Koltchak had already accomplished, but it
-seemed that his career might end at any moment, in spite of every
-precaution of his friends. Of these he had not many; no real dictator
-should expect to have any. No man will have many friends in Russia who
-puts personal questions second to the public welfare.
-
-The preparations for the Perm offensive were well under way, when a
-dispatch came from General Dutoff, stating, "That in view of the
-pressure by our forces on their left the Bolshevik leaders had decided
-to, what they called, 'organise their enemies' rear.' That seventy of
-their best propagandist and most capable agents and officers had passed
-between his columns and were now distributed somewhere in our midst."
-All we could do was to wait, and see where this treacherous movement
-would show itself first.
-
-The fact that Koltchak had declared for the calling of a National
-Assembly, elected by universal suffrage, to decide the future government
-of Russia, so soon as order was restored, had shattered completely the
-vision of the old army officers of a quick return to absolutism. His
-declaration against extremists on either side had driven Bolshevik and
-Tsarist into practically one camp. He was well known as a student of
-English customs and institutions and a pre-revolution advocate of
-constitutionalism. The Tsarist section hoped that his assumption of
-supreme authority was proof that he had discarded his democratic
-principles, but gradually his official declarations to the
-representative of the British Government leaked out and spread
-consternation in the ranks of both sections of the Absolutists. The
-Bolshevik leaders have never made any bones about their fear and dread
-of democracy as understood in England, and have declared they would
-prefer a return to the old regime rather than have a Constitution like
-that of England or America forced upon them. Hence there is no real
-difference of principle between the Bolshevik and the supporters of the
-old regime, only a difference as to who should wield the power. For the
-moment they let this minor point slip into the background, and combined
-for the destruction of the man who was the enemy of both.
-
-About midnight, December 23, Russian Headquarters gave me the alarm.
-Shots were being fired in all directions, and a spent bullet struck my
-carriage while I was getting into my clothes. Horsemen in little groups
-were surrounding the Staffka without much sign of order. Having
-inspected my battalion at their emergency quarters, I called for a
-personal guard to escort me to Headquarters. I regret there was no
-impressionist artist with us to record the weird procession my guard
-made. When sheepskin coats were provided for my men for use in a cold,
-snowbound country, it is a real English touch that they should have been
-black in colour, making my men a perfect target both night and day.
-Their fur caps were a dark brown of the well-known Nansen type, the
-half-moon peak making the head of the wearer a good mark at midnight up
-to 300 yards. The cap is pointed, and has much the appearance at night
-of a small mitre. What with huge fur boots, black pointed caps, and long
-black coats, there was nothing to indicate the British Tommy in the line
-of black monks that moved silently forward over the frozen snow. The
-temperature was such that as the slight wind brought the water to one's
-eyes the drops froze to hard white spots of ice at the corners. Breath
-from the nostrils froze before it could leave the nose, and from each
-nostril hung icicles, in some cases 2 inches long, which again froze to
-the moustache. The eyebrows and eyelashes and the protruding fur edge
-which enclosed the faces of the men carried a wonderful display of hoar
-frost, and gave the appearance of white lace frills, such as are seen on
-"granny's" caps.
-
-As we entered the Russian Headquarters, which were crowded with more or
-less excited officers and men, my guard lined up on each side of the
-vestibule, and without a word proceeded to unsling rifles and fix
-bayonets. The Russians, who were even now debating on which side they
-were going to slide down, looked at my soldier monks, and at once
-themselves fell into line. There was no longer any hesitation. "Anglisky
-soldats" were in possession of Russian Headquarters, and the reputation
-of English soldiers in emergencies like this is known all over the
-world. I interviewed the Chief-of-Staff, General Lebediff, as to his
-orders for suppressing the revolters and went downstairs to find the
-vestibule empty except for my "monks." No one who was not there could
-believe the absolute transformation that the mere presence of a few
-English soldiers had on this critical situation. In revolutions every
-rule and safeguard of society is uprooted; the people feel as in an
-earthquake, nothing is secure, everyone doubts his neighbour. If those
-who are prepared to support authority can only discover at the right
-moment one little group round whom they can rally, and who they know
-will think nothing of death in performance of duty, the danger is over
-at once. Hesitancy disappears, and the normal is instantly produced. We
-filed out to find the infantry in their ranks, and the horsemen mounted
-in line, under their officers, awaiting orders.
-
-I proceeded through the town to the residence of the Supreme Governor.
-On our way we passed parties of soldiers and Cossacks hurrying to their
-posts, who eyed us suspiciously, but on seeing me at the head in the
-uniform of a British officer, ejaculated loudly to their command the
-magic word "Anglisky," until like a talisman the word passed from sentry
-to sentry and street to street, and "Anglisky" became the password which
-held the whole town for law and order. We passed towards the admiral's
-house without challenge until the Cossack and Serbian guard at the
-actual entrance called us to halt pending the governor's orders. The
-order soon came for us to enter. The admiral was ill, very ill with
-inflammation of the lungs, but as brave as ever. My "monks" lined up in
-the vestibule in the same manner as at Headquarters, and even the
-personal Serbian guard had to make way for these queer-looking visitors.
-I got the information required. The revolt was very serious, but I was
-able to inform the admiral that effective measures had now been taken to
-provide for all eventualities. I begged leave to depart, which was
-granted, but not before my men had been given food and a taste of
-Russian vodka, which appears to be the only effective antidote to the
-cold of a real Siberian winter. I returned, to find that the fact that
-the English soldiers were out was known in every house in Omsk, and
-numerous requests from the highest to the lowest for protection had been
-received on the telephone. I give no names, but the fact shows what a
-remarkable influence the presence of a few British soldiers had in
-steadying the situation.
-
-My orders were to take no part in the internal affairs of Russia, but it
-is the duty of every commanding officer to take all possible means to
-protect his command. If I had remained in my quarters and made no sign
-until these Royalist and Bolshevik enemies had obtained possession of
-the town, I should have presented a dainty morsel which they could have
-masticated at leisure. I had to show my hand early enough to make sure
-it did not go against me. It turned out that I marched from my barracks
-just when news had been brought of the mutiny, under Royalist and
-Bolshevik leadership, of two companies of the 8th Regiment of the new
-Russian army. A body of Bolsheviks at Koulomsino, on the other side of
-the river, had taken up arms and were bent on the destruction of the
-bridge over the Irtish, which formed the means of communication with the
-armoured trains of H.M.S. _Suffolk_, and our naval detachments at Ufa.
-The Czechs (our Allies), who had the same orders as myself, on learning
-that the Tsarists were also in the conspiracy, frustrated this scheme by
-instantly moving forward a company for the protection of the bridge,
-which arrived just in the nick of time. Had we acted strictly to orders,
-Heaven only knows what the result would have been. British and Czech
-both had to act on our own judgment, and while, technically, we
-disobeyed orders, we fulfilled the policy of each country and protected
-our commands.
-
-It cost nearly a thousand lives to restore order, but the lawless
-elements, top and bottom, were taught a lesson they are not likely to
-forget. This happened in the middle of the Perm offensive. It did
-nothing to assist the Bolshevik cause, but it did much to embitter the
-struggle.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-A BOMBSHELL FROM PARIS AND THE EFFECT
-
-
-The foregoing incidents gave place to more personal matters. About
-December 28 the Staff of the Canadian contingent under Lieutenant-
-Colonel Morrisy arrived, and, as one might expect, revolutionary plans
-in connection with the distribution of my battalion, and other matters,
-were instantly proposed. Some of them were actually carried out, with
-the result that a strained feeling became manifest in the British camp
-at Omsk, which caused me to propose to Brigadier-General Elmsley that
-my headquarters should be transferred to Vladivostok. Luckily the
-arrival of the 1/9th Hampshire Territorial Battalion on January 5,
-1919, under the Command of Lieutenant-Colonel Johnson, led to an
-improved condition of things all round us. This officer gripped
-the situation at once, and took such steps, in conjunction with
-the High Commissioner, Sir Charles Eliot, that I was prevailed upon
-to withdraw my request for the removal of my headquarters. Colonel
-Johnson was a great accession of strength to those who held the
-purely English point of view, and his battalion, recruited as it
-was from my home county, helped to make all our relations wonderfully
-cordial. General Elmsley replied later refusing my request, so that
-everything fitted in just right.
-
-On January 8 a parade was called to present General Stephanik with the
-Legion of Honour and Major-General Knox, the Chief of the British
-Military Mission, and myself with the Croix de Guerre. It was a real
-Siberian day, "62 below," and in five minutes ten men had frost-bitten
-ears. General Ganin, the French Commander-in-Chief of the Allied forces,
-made the presentations on behalf of the French Republic, uttering a few
-words to each recipient. I received the hearty congratulations of all
-our friends, which kept me warm the whole day. I thanked Colonel Pichon,
-who took over from me the command of the Ussurie front, and with whom I
-acted for some time, for this great honour. I felt sure that my
-decoration was the result of his reports upon myself while acting
-together under very awkward circumstances.
-
-Towards the middle of January the British High Commissioner conveyed to
-Admiral Koltchak an extremely sympathetic message from the British
-Government. The French High Commissioner followed next day with a
-similar message from the French Government, except that it distinctly
-referred to the possibility of help and recognition. The Allied
-representatives felt more happy and secure as a result of these
-felicitations than they had done for some time, and the Russian
-authorities began to feel it possible to press on with the work of
-"resurrection." A new page in the history of a great recovery had been
-added to Russian records. Exactly four days later a wireless message
-came through from Paris to say that the Allied Council had declared that
-it could give no help or recognise either side; that the different
-parties and Governments existing in Russia must bring about an
-armistice, and send representatives to the Turkish "Isle of Dogs," near
-Constantinople, and arrange a compromise with each other. In other
-words, that the Bolsheviks were to be recognised as legitimate
-belligerents, with whom it was quite possible to shake hands and sit
-down to draw up an agreement as to the proper method of conducting a
-policy of rapine, robbery, and murder. Needless to say, every Britisher
-was disgusted, and every genuine Russian patriot simply amazed. At one
-swoop down went all our hopes! We were crushed as much or more than the
-Russians, because we had the honour of our countries to defend, and
-defence seemed impossible.
-
-A sudden reaction against the European Allies set in at once, and became
-so violent that a Russian gentleman made an abusive speech to the Allied
-officers as they sipped tea in a well-known restaurant, and the public
-refused to allow the guard which was called to arrest him to carry out
-the order. This feeling was undoubtedly exploited by the Japanese for
-their own purposes.
-
-A very tense condition of affairs existed, when on January 31 I asked
-for a special interview with Admiral Koltchak that I might introduce my
-colleague and comrade, Colonel Johnson, and talk over the situation. The
-admiral was out walking by the river, quite unattended, but in full view
-of the guard at his residence near the river bank. It was his first walk
-since his illness, and he looked quite recovered. The talk naturally
-veered round to the Allied declaration in favour of the Bolsheviks and
-the situation it had created in Omsk. The admiral's attitude was quite
-simple. "We can talk and make compact with every party and Government in
-the different districts of Russia, but to compromise with Bolshevism, or
-shake the hand, or sit down and treat as equals the men who are
-outraging and murdering the Russian people--never! No decent Allied
-Government acquainted with the facts would ever expect it."
-
-I asked him to consider the question as in no way decided by the Paris
-message, that I felt sure there must be some points connected with the
-decision that required further elucidation. "Yes!" said the admiral.
-"There must be some facts with which we are not acquainted, for while
-the British Government advise an arrangement with the Bolsheviks they
-continue to furnish me with generous supplies for the Russian Army." I
-left quite satisfied that he still retained his faith in the friendship
-of England.
-
-There was one queer point which needs to be placed on record. Admiral
-Koltchak observed that the Japanese were still causing him much trouble.
-They had been unable to approach him personally but had been "getting
-at" his officers, whose business caused them to make frequent visits to
-the Ural front. They made statements to the effect that the only state
-which was in a position to help Russia was Japan. The other armies were
-war-weary and clamouring for demobilisation and therefore unwilling to
-fight the Bolsheviks. If Admiral Koltchak was compelled to make a
-reasonable arrangement with Japan, their army would guarantee to
-liquidate the Bolshevik forces in two months and establish a monarchy
-satisfactory to the Russian officers. This propaganda had reached the
-front, and had been referred to as assuming very serious importance by
-his front-line generals in their dispatches. To counteract this
-pernicious influence, he was proposing to visit the front himself to
-point out the impossibility of Japan, as one of the Entente Allies,
-being able herself to execute such a programme. I asked him how this
-propaganda began and who engineered it. He answered: "General Muto and a
-staff of twenty-six officers and intelligence assistants are working
-hard here in Omsk to influence Russian opinion in their direction."
-Finally the Supreme Governor said, "I make no complaint against these
-very excellent Japanese officers, they are only carrying out the orders
-of their political and military chiefs, but it makes my work of
-restoring order much more difficult."
-
-There were other little rifts within the lute. The Russian officers are
-Royalist almost to a man, and will remain so, for they are all most
-childlike in their adherence to this principle. Some gossip informs one
-of them that Prince Kuropotkin is still alive and has been seen on the
-Russian frontier. "Oh!" he exclaims. "Then the admiral will be handing
-over his power to Kuropotkin directly he hears the prince is alive!"
-Next day he may be told that the prince is not a soldier and his
-enthusiasm at once oozes out of his finger tips. The next day some
-British supplies arrive, and then he is all for reliance upon the
-Allies. A few days later, the Government not having been recognised by
-the Powers according to his wish, he curses the Powers and becomes
-morose. The day following he hears in a restaurant that
-Demitri-Pavlovitch is hiding as a peasant in Siberia, and he is
-immediately in about the same ecstatic condition as the shepherds who
-beheld the Star over Bethlehem. Every possible--or impossible--person
-under the sun becomes to him a potential saviour of his country; never
-does he think how he and his comrades themselves might save her. The
-Russian officer, indeed, is "just a great, big, brave, lovable baby, and
-nothing else." "Gulliver's Travels" ought to have an immense circulation
-should it ever be translated into the Russian language. The "Arabian
-Nights" appears as an unimaginative narrative of humdrum events compared
-with the stories in current circulation in Omsk and Siberia generally.
-
-The two following extracts from my diary record incidents which occurred
-at this time.
-
-"February 1, 1919. Last night three Bolshevik conspirators entered the
-officers' quarters of the 1st and 2nd Siberian Regiment disguised as
-Russian soldiers. The first intimation outside that anything was wrong
-was rapid revolver shots inside. The sentry captured one of the
-imitation soldiers as he tried to escape from the building. In less than
-two minutes the conspirators had shot five officers, two of whom were
-mortally wounded in the stomach. One conspirator was shot dead, one was
-captured, one got away. The knout was applied to the prisoner, and at
-the hundredth stroke he gave the whole conspiracy away. Over fifty
-arrests followed his confession, with the result that all is again quiet
-in Omsk."
-
-"February 3, 1919. Lieutenant Munro has just arrived at Omsk from
-Vladivostok with comforts from the ladies at Shanghai, Hong-Kong and
-Singapore. Words fail to describe the feelings of both officers and men
-as they received these tokens of love and remembrance from their own
-countrywomen in this cold inhospitable climate. It is a beautiful
-feeling, and though the actual work performed is the effort of a few,
-the whole sex receives a crude sort of deification from these womanly
-acts. The way one of the commonest Tommies looked at a small
-wash-flannel that had evidently been hemmed by hands unused to work of
-any description, and asked me if I would give the lady his thanks, would
-have gone to the heart of the fair but unknown worker could she have
-witnessed it.
-
-"I heard news of general insubordination among the Canadian troops that
-had just arrived at Vladivostok. If all the information received could
-be relied upon, the sooner they were shipped back to Canada the better.
-There is enough anarchy here now without the British Government dumping
-more upon us. I can see that it is a great mistake to mix Canadians and
-British troops in one Brigade. Naturally, British soldiers carry out
-orders; if other troops do not, then the British troops have to do all
-the work. The situation produced is that the highest paid soldier does
-no work and the lowest paid all the work. It soon percolates to the
-slowest Sussex brain that discipline does not pay. Nothing but the
-wonderful sense of order in the make-up of the average Englishman has
-prevented us from becoming an Anglo-Canadian rabble, dangerous to
-Bolshevik and Russian alike. I am told that Brigadier Pickford had done
-his best to maintain order and discipline in his ranks; that he had been
-compelled to make very awkward promises to his troops which having been
-made had to be fulfilled. In all the circumstances it was generally
-agreed that the proper thing to have done was to send the Canadians home
-to their farms, and leave the few Britishers who were there to carry on.
-We had established excellent relations with the Russians which it would
-have been a thousand pities to spoil."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-MORE INTRIGUES
-
-
-While the loyal Russian officers were being murdered in their beds,
-other events not less important were happening. When Admiral Koltchak
-assumed supreme authority the Directorate was surrounded by a party of
-Royalist officers as turbulent and lawless as Trotsky himself. Private
-code messages passed between these officers as freely as if they already
-had the power in their own hands. The first intimation that Koltchak had
-of these conspiracies was a code message from General Evanoff Renoff to
-General Beloff, General Bolderoff's Chief of Staff, which unfolded many
-of the aspirations of these men, and showed their objects to be
-exclusively personal. I read these messages with great interest, as they
-gave me an excellent insight into the mainsprings of the revolution and
-incidentally into the character of the average Russian officer. General
-Antonovsky, of the old Russian Military Academy, who also assisted in
-the drafting of the Brest-Litovsk Treaty with the Germans, was a
-participant in the scheme, and was within an ace of becoming the
-admiral's Chief of Staff. Everything was working splendidly, when the
-cipher message from Renoff opened the ball. Beloff was sent to the east,
-and Antonovsky to the south, and the Absolutists became broken up.
-
-On February 1 my liaison officer informed me that as he waited in the
-corridor of headquarters, General Beloff came out of General Lebediff's
-room. A little later General Antonovsky came out of another room, and
-then these two were suddenly joined by a certain Cossack general of a
-very truculent type. I knew that this boded badly for order, and I
-warned Koltchak's young aide-de-camp. Shortly after it was reported to
-me that an attempt had been made to exchange a sham guard for the real
-one at the Supreme Governor's residence. That night I held our direct
-wire from Colonel Johnson to my ear till 12.30 A.M., and found that it
-was tapped by Russian Headquarters. General Knox had got to know things,
-and took certain action, with the result that I sent my officer to
-Russian Headquarters with instructions to inform General Lebediff we
-were anxious for the Supreme Governor's safety; that if any harm was
-contemplated against him we should hold him responsible unless he made
-us acquainted with the danger in time to avert it; further, that if the
-Absolutist officers thought they could murder Admiral Koltchak and
-proclaim an absolute Monarchy without the sanction of the people of
-Russia they were mistaken; that whoever, whether high or low, attempted
-to destroy the present Government and throw Russia back into violence
-and anarchy would be treated as enemies by the British soldiers. General
-Lebediff answered that he knew of no special danger threatening Admiral
-Koltchak at the moment, but he thanked Colonel Ward for his offer to
-help protect the Government in case of necessity.
-
-The conspirators broke up at once, but the cunningest of the lot
-remained to weave again by social strategy the continuous web of Russian
-disorder. We knew that there were elements at work for a
-counter-revolution quite uncontrolled by, but acting with, the
-cognisance of officials of the Koltchak Administration. In revolutions
-sudden outbursts on the part of even a small party may soon jeopardise
-the whole organisation of State. Colonel Johnson and myself agreed that
-it was necessary to concentrate our forces, and in approaching the
-Russian authorities on this subject, we added further to the
-demoralisation of those who were in the conspiracy. We protested that it
-was our own safety that we had in view, but the conspirators did not
-believe us. I knew that the admiral's train had been for some days
-standing ready to take him to the front. On February 3 Omsk was informed
-that the important Japanese Mission (previously referred to) had started
-from Irkutsk on the last stage of its journey to the Supreme Governor.
-The governor's aide-de-camp informed me at the same time that the
-admiral was starting for the front at 5 P.M. on February 7.
-
-General Knox was anxious that there should be no evidence of weakening
-in our support of the Omsk Government, as in case of disorder our
-position was by no means secure. After consultation it was decided to
-offer the admiral a personal guard for his journey, to consist of fifty
-men and one officer from the Hampshire Regiment. This was accepted and
-referred to the Chief of Staff for confirmation. It was then reported to
-General Ganin and the French Staff. They at once protested that to have
-a purely English guard would lower French prestige in the eyes of the
-Russians. They quite agreed that there ought to be a guard, but it must
-be half English and half French, and to this we at once agreed. We
-therefore reduced our number to twenty-five. Then, however, the French
-Staff pointed out that they had no troops in Omsk, and they could not
-leave the Staff without a cook. The greatest number of orderlies they
-could spare was nine, so it was suggested that the guard should consist
-of forty-one English and nine French soldiers. This took the
-negotiators' breath away entirely; the first proposal was destructive of
-French prestige, the second was enough to destroy France altogether!
-Really France is much too beautiful and gallant a country to have this
-sort of stuff put forward on her behalf, but there it was. So the
-admiral's guard consisted of nine soldiers with one officer of each
-nationality--twenty all told.
-
-One point we did get home on. At the time appointed for the admiral's
-departure, an English guard of honour miraculously appeared on the
-scene, together with Russian and Czech guards. There _could_ be no
-French--yet French prestige continued to stand just as high as ever it
-did. I give these facts in the most friendly spirit, but with a hope
-that English officers will always understand that, however much we smile
-at the peculiar gyrations of the word "prestige" as understood by our
-Continental neighbours, it is very real to them, and strange exhibitions
-of it are seen on occasions.
-
-The Supreme Governor had arrived and shaken hands with the Russian,
-English and Czech representatives, including Sir Charles Eliot, the
-British High Commissioner, and General Bowes, the Chief of the British
-Military Mission to the Czecho-Slovaks. The French representative was
-late. When the ceremonial was nearly complete, a French officer (not
-above the rank of captain) elbowed his way to the front and vigorously
-brushed aside the British High Commissioner and general, and stood with
-his back towards them as though they were mere outside spectators who
-had no business there. The same evening the incident was being discussed
-amongst a group of Russian and English officers, when a Russian officer
-of the highest position observed, "You English have the queerest notion
-of national prestige of all the countries I have been so far acquainted
-with. Any ordinary Russian, Kirghis, Tartar, or Mongolian officer seeing
-a French captain brush aside the representatives and generals of another
-state would instantly decide that he only did so not because of want of
-politeness, which one-half the world does not understand, but because
-the nation to which he belongs was so great and powerful there was no
-need to be deferential to any of the others, and especially so to the
-state whose representatives allowed themselves to be so easily brushed
-aside."
-
-We had many conferences upon the condition of the Russian workman, and
-whether it was possible for the Allies to do anything to help them.
-British officers were making desperate efforts to organise and equip
-forces capable of dealing a death-blow to the Bolsheviks in the early
-spring. General Knox worked like a Trojan, and gave more inspiration to
-the Russian Government than all the other Allied representatives put
-together. In fact, without his sagacity and determination we should have
-been better employed at home. He travelled from "Vlady" to Omsk, from
-Omsk to "Vlady," as though the 5,000-mile journey was just a run from
-London to Birmingham. His great strength was that he made up his mind on
-a certain course, and stuck to it, while everyone around him could never
-decide upon anything for long. If you want anything done, don't have
-Allies. Allies are all right when a powerful enemy is striking you or
-them; it is then quite simple; mere self-preservation is sufficient to
-hold you together for common protection. Let the danger pass, let the
-roar of conflict recede in the distance, and Allies become impotent for
-any purpose except spying on each other and obstructing the work in
-hand. There was no evidence that anyone, except the English, was doing
-anything to smooth the way for the new Russian Government, but by sheer
-energy General Knox had brought together personnel and stores sufficient
-to justify belief in the early success of his plans. Then there suddenly
-arose another sinister figure which threatened to upset all our
-calculations--namely, a well-timed revolt of the railway workmen,
-calculated to cripple our communications and make the movement of troops
-and supplies impossible.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-RUSSIAN LABOUR
-
-
-General Dutoff, as I have previously recorded, had informed us that
-Bolshevist agitators had passed through our lines on this treacherous
-mission, and for months nothing had been heard of these emissaries of
-mischief. Now that we were approaching the critical point of the 1919
-operations rumblings of an unmistakable character were heard in all
-directions. The necessary military measures had been taken, but in our
-English eyes suppression was not enough. We have learnt in our country
-that the workmen are the backbone of the State, and that when labour is
-badly paid the heart of the State is diseased. Russia has no ideas about
-labour at all. The autocracy never gave it a moment's consideration. The
-last Tsar's idea of labour reform was to abolish good vodka, and he lost
-his life. The officer class, that forms so large a proportion of Russian
-life, never gave the subject five minutes' consideration. There is not a
-single general labour law upon the statute book of Russia, and the
-horror of it is that those who have hitherto pretended to lead the
-Russian workman refuse to demand laws to protect their labour. They
-believe that "law" is the last thing that a workman robbed of the most
-elemental rights should think about; that the only way for a workman to
-obtain rights is to abolish all "law." And this they have done with a
-vengeance! The professional Russian labour leader is an anarchist and
-nothing else, and in Bolshevism he has given a glimpse of his policy in
-practice.
-
-This, then, was the problem with which we had to deal, and with only a
-few weeks at our disposal. To the Russian workman it was a social
-question; to us it was both social and military. Finally, General Knox
-asked me to undertake a pacific propaganda along the railway to see if
-it were possible to persuade the workmen to keep at work and give the
-best service possible to their country to secure the restoration of
-order. I came to the conclusion that if anything could be done to give a
-more staple and practical outlook to the Russian labour mind it was well
-worth trying to accomplish it.
-
-At the outset I was faced with the difficulty of not being in a position
-to offer anything definite to the workmen in return for their
-willingness to assist the combatant branch of the Russian service in its
-new crusade against anarchy. With nothing to offer it seemed hopeless to
-ask for so much. The only man who could pledge the Government was the
-Supreme Governor himself, so I wrote to him as follows:
-
-
-[Copy.]
-
-OMSK, SIBERIA.
-
-_4th February_, 1919.
-
-To His High Excellency, Admiral Koltchak, Supreme Governor.
-
-Sir,--I have been requested by Major-General Knox, Chief of the British
-Military Mission, Siberia, to undertake a tour of the railway works
-along the Siberian Railway to address the workmen, and appeal to them
-as a British Labour representative to give their best service to the
-Russian State during the present and coming military operations, and to
-join no strike movement, or do anything to hamper the transport of men
-and supplies until the military operations against the enemy are
-completed.
-
-I have pointed out to General Knox that, while I am quite willing to
-undertake this mission to the railway workmen, I fear it will be quite
-useless unless I can promise, on behalf of the Russian Government, some
-improvement in their condition.
-
-1. For instance, I am informed that some of the railway and other
-Government workmen have not received any wages upon which to keep
-themselves and their families, for in some cases many weeks, and in
-other cases months. If this is true, it is impossible to expect workmen
-to be satisfied, and the wonder would be that they agree to work as well
-as they do.
-
-It would be necessary for me to be able to promise that such things
-would be rectified, and wages paid regularly in future.
-
-2. There are many things absent in Russia which industrial communities
-like England find necessary elements for industrial peace. I admit that
-very little constructional reform work can be executed during the
-present disturbed condition of the country, but it would help immensely
-if I could tell the workmen that I had the authority of the Russian
-Government that directly order had been restored, laws for the
-protection and help of the Russian workmen and their organisations, on
-the lines of those already working so effectively in England, would be
-adopted by the Russian Government.
-
-If I could get something definite from Your High Excellency upon these
-points, I believe it would do much to help in the work for the
-pacification of the labouring classes of Russia, and greatly strengthen
-Your Excellency's hold upon the hearts of the Russian people.
-
-(Signed) JOHN WARD.
-
-(_Lt.-Colonel, M.P., C.M.G., Commanding 25th Bn. Middlesex Regiment_.)
-
-
-
-[COPY.]
-
-OMSK.
-
-_February 5th_, 1919.
-
-SIR,--In reply to your letter of February 4th, I wish to inform you that
-I have learned with the greatest satisfaction that you are willing to
-undertake the important mission of addressing the workmen of our
-railways and calling them to give their best service to the cause of
-Russia in this crucial moment of our national existence.
-
-The two questions which you have raised in your letter should not be
-left without a prompt answer, and I therefore would like to bring to
-your knowledge the following:--
-
-1. The imperative necessity of orderly and regular payment of wages to
-the workmen has been the object of my personal anxiety, and pressing
-measures in that direction have been urged by the Government. The
-railways being considered by us just as important as the army, you will
-understand that everything in its power will be done by our Government
-to help the threatening situation in that respect.
-
-2. As for the second question which you have mentioned in your letter, I
-venture to assure you that the Government has already stated in its
-official programme that the workmen will find protection and help in the
-laws which shall be enforced and have to secure their organisation on
-lines similar to those of democratic states in Europe. The Government
-has actually a special Department of Labour which is preparing the
-future legislation on this question, following the general course of
-constructive reform work which I hope to be able to pursue with all the
-energy and vigour that the military situation will permit.
-
-I take this opportunity to renew the expression of my profound
-appreciation of the interest you take in our situation and of the
-valuable assistance you so generously offer in this most important
-matter of pacification of the labouring classes in Russia.
-
-Yours sincerely,
-
-(Signed) A. KOLTCHAK.
-
-Lt.-Colonel JOHN WARD, M.P., C.M.G.,
-_Commanding 25th Bn. Middlesex Regiment_.
-
-
-This is believed to be the first correspondence ever conducted by the
-head of any Russian Government upon a purely labour subject. It shows
-that in supporting Admiral Koltchak we had at least this fact to
-recommend our policy: that he was a democrat, and anxious that his
-country should be in labour matters amongst the first flight of nations.
-
-The question now to be solved was: What attitude would the anarchist
-adopt to this new evangelism?
-
-I was ready to start on my journey when there began such a blizzard as
-is occasionally described in the literature of Polar exploration. For
-forty-eight hours from the south came a furious gale. It was not too
-cold, only about twenty degrees of actual frost, but with the wind came
-blinding snow--not snow such as we see in England, but fine snow, like
-white dust. It beat on your face, found its way between the flaps of
-your head-covers, where it thawed and ran down your neck and chest and
-saturated your underwear. It smashed straight on to your eyeballs, and
-froze in cakes to your eyelashes and cheeks, so that in five or ten
-minutes you were blind and unable to find your way or move in any
-direction. All sentries had to be withdrawn and sent to the nearest
-shelter, for it was impossible to locate oneself or see a building till
-you blundered up against it. A note in my diary records that "a guard of
-eighteen Russians and one officer walked away from their post and have
-not been seen since, and six days have passed." Roofs were torn off the
-houses, and the strongest buildings rocked in a most alarming manner.
-The snow piled itself up against the houses till it covered the windows
-on the ground floors and half-way up those of the second. This southern
-gale took twenty-four hours in which to blow itself out, and a four
-days' calm followed, during which the snow was cleared from the railway
-and traffic resumed. The next startler was a message from Irkutsk
-stating that a terrific gale was breaking down from the north--a recoil
-from the one just described--accompanied with sixty degrees of actual
-frost, making it impossible to live out of doors. This storm struck Omsk
-on February 20, and no words can describe the complete obliteration of
-man and all his works accomplished by such a gale. Nothing can live in
-the intense cold created by such a wind. Hence movement and life cease,
-and King Frost has the whole field to himself. In a few hours the earth
-is levelled; all the indications remaining of the ordinary log dwellings
-are a few snow-banks with a row of dark posts from which smoke is
-emitted, showing that there are human habitations underneath. By
-February 22 this storm had worked itself out and we were able to
-proceed.
-
-The influence of the Koltchak Government could be seen in the orderly
-management of affairs connected with the railway and supplies generally.
-Not till we reached Kameragh could we observe any sign that there still
-remained unextinguished embers of the social inferno through which the
-country had passed. At this point the line was guarded by a strong
-detachment of troops quartered in trucks on the siding. The officer in
-command informed me that an attack by revolters had been made on the
-line at this point, who had held up the traffic for some hours, but had
-been driven off before any permanent injury was accomplished. The
-revolters did not wait after the attack, but set fire to the station and
-departed. He suggested that it might be as well to be ready for sniping,
-and for worse things, should accident force the train to come to a
-standstill between here and Krasnoyarsk. We arrived at the latter place,
-however, without incident on February 25.
-
-Krasnoyarsk is a fairly large town on the River Yenesei. The fine bridge
-over the river is the point to which the eyes of the revolters are
-constantly directed. The garrison was composed of one company of the
-25th Middlesex Regiment, an Italian battalion recently formed from
-amongst the Italian prisoners of war and armed by the British, about
-four hundred Cossacks, and a company of Czechs belonging to the 10th
-Regiment, who arrived that morning. There were numbers of Bolsheviks
-inhabiting an elevated part of the town. These met on the old Russian
-New Year's Day and passed a resolution that it was necessary to execute
-all army officers wherever they might be found isolated from their
-comrades. The army chiefs replied by ordering all guns to be trained on
-the Bolshevik part of the town and one round of shell from each of the
-eight guns to be planted in the Bolshevik quarters for every officer
-murdered. No officers had been murdered up to that time. A party of
-Serbians who had been armed to assist in protecting the inhabitants were
-caught selling arms and ammunition to the Bolsheviks; they were
-surrounded in the middle of the night and disarmed, one Cossack being
-killed. The 25th were "standing to" during this operation in case their
-assistance was required.
-
-We started for Irkutsk on the 25th, having been warned that the road to
-Kansk was practically dominated by the revolters. About 8 P.M. we
-arrived at the headquarters of General Affinasiaff, who came into my car
-and gave a minute description of the situation. The enemy forces
-numbered about 8,000, and those of the Russian Government about 3,000.
-For about one hundred versts the Russian forces, in small detachments,
-were allowing themselves to be pinned to the railway.
-
-It was very interesting to hear a clear statement as to the cause of
-the revolt and to find that the chief point of the grievances set forth
-in the revolters' own proclamations. In great part these opponents of
-the Government consist of rich peasants, who already possessing land
-which in many cases was equal in extent to the County of Rutland, had in
-1917, under the order of Lenin and Trotsky, taken forcible possession of
-the furniture, horses, farmhouses, carts, carriages, land, etc., of the
-big landholders, who with their families had been massacred by these
-same rich peasants.
-
-The next important element among the revolters were the escaped
-prisoners of the old regime, who, being released by the Bolsheviks, had
-taken to the forest to avoid recapture--probably the wildest and most
-savage set of men in the world. They were illicitly fed and protected by
-the aforementioned wealthy peasants with a view, firstly, to buy off
-their hostility to themselves, and, secondly, to secure their help to
-resist the civil officers of the new Government who were appointed to
-inquire into the methods by which these wealthy peasants became
-possessed of their dead neighbours' lands and properties; thirdly, to
-enable these wealthy peasants to resist the payment of taxes, not only
-those that were in arrears, but any that would become due in the future.
-This was the point dealt with in their proclamation, wherein it was
-stated that inasmuch as it was the people who lived in the towns that
-forced the revolution, therefore it was unjust to ask the peasants to
-pay for the damage done by those in the towns; further, that it was the
-people in the towns who kept on fighting one another, and until they
-had finished their quarrelling the peasants would not pay any taxes or
-do anything to help the Government; fourthly, this unholy partnership
-enabled the wealthy peasants to resist the mobilisation ordered by the
-Koltchak Government for the same reasons.
-
-As I have already pointed out, every minor Government and general,
-including General Denikin, made haste to show their submission to Omsk
-when Admiral Koltchak assumed authority, the only exception being
-Colonel Semianoff. He, it was known, was accepting a regular subsidy
-from the Japanese to enable them to resist the extension of the
-admiral's power towards Vladivostok, and it was under their instructions
-and protection Semianoff refused to recognise the authority of the Omsk
-Government and issued insolent manifestos against the Supreme Governor.
-The peasants inhabiting the western side of the Baikal seized upon this
-fact and said in their proclamations that inasmuch as Colonel Semianoff
-had refused to allow Koltchak's orders to operate on the east side, and
-was supported therein by one of the Allies, there was every reason why
-they should do the same on the west side of the lake. It shows what a
-tremendous influence Japan had either to create order or to make order
-impossible. She and Semianoff between them provided these revolters with
-just the argument they needed. By so acting Japan created and extended
-the area of anarchy and made the task of her Allies and Koltchak more
-difficult than it might otherwise have been.
-
-This may not be a very logical position for the peasants to have taken
-up, but anyone who knows anything about Russia will see that it fitted
-their psychology to a fraction. These people are more ignorant than our
-worst educated agricultural labourers. They own and live on huge tracts
-of land, in most cases as large as a great English estate. Their method
-of living is many stages below that of our landless farm labourer. Their
-ignorance is colossal, their cupidity and cunning the envy of the
-Armenians, who openly confess that in a bargain the Russian peasant
-beats the Jew to a frazzle. The order of the Soviet Government to the
-peasants to take possession of the landowners' estates and property was
-the trump card which Lenin and Trotsky played to secure immunity in the
-provinces while they massacred and robbed the property owners in the
-towns. These men, who are the natural enemies of all political progress
-and social reform, and who should have exercised a steadying effect upon
-the empty idealism of the professional classes, were too busy robbing
-their neighbours to be able to exert any influence upon the major events
-of the revolution. While perfectly willing to use the revolution--whose
-principles they abhorred--for their own personal aggrandisement, this
-wealthy peasantry are now equally unwilling to render the slightest help
-in the restoration of order.
-
-It was with profound interest that I read these documents, which
-entirely exploded the English legend of the landless Russian peasant
-pining for a few acres of land.
-
-We arrived at Irkutsk and proceeded to investigate the situation. When
-we passed here four months before it was the centre of Siberian life;
-official indolence had, however, again reduced its status to that of a
-third- or fourth-rate town.
-
-I was anxious to know how the new Rumanian Division under French
-auspices was progressing. Fourteen thousand rifles that could be ill
-afforded from the front had been left here some six weeks previous by
-one of our British supply trains. I found that the local Russian
-military authorities knew nothing, nor had they ever been consulted
-about it. They knew that not more than three thousand Rumanians lived in
-the district, and these had mostly embraced the opinions of the
-Bolsheviks. I made inquiries through the usual English channels, but
-they were equally uninformed. A visit to the Russian railway department
-elicited the fact that a French officer had signed the necessary orders
-for the trucks containing the rifles to remain at Irkutsk, that three
-thousand rifles had so far been unloaded, and that there was a French
-proposal to send the remainder to Tomsk, where it was hoped they might
-be got rid of amongst some Serbian bands with Bolshevik tendencies. This
-may or may not represent all the facts, but it indicates the
-unmistakable necessity that English help shall be given only by English
-hands.
-
-Russian officers were beginning to recover their old characteristics,
-and nightly filled the entertainment halls and restaurants and led the
-gaieties of the town. Very little thought was given to the grim
-struggle their half-clad comrades were waging with the forces of anarchy
-along the Ural mountains.
-
-British Consul Nash kindly entertained Colonel and Madame Frank and
-myself, and generally helped me in the organisation of this end of my
-campaign. He did not think much of my objective, but he helped all the
-same.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-MY CAMPAIGN
-
-
-I held my first meeting in the repairing shop at Irkutsk at 3 P.M.,
-March 4. It was a big crowd of working men and women. The Russian women
-work on the railways in such employments as carriage and wagon cleaners,
-snow and ice shovellers, and even repairing gangs on different sections
-of the line have a sprinkling of the fair sex.
-
-This audience listened to an explanation of the rise of the trade union
-movement in England with the greatest attention. The large majority
-accepted the proposition I tried to expound, that no question could be
-settled by the disputants merely killing each other off; but there were
-present about half a dozen members of the International World Workers,
-slouch-hatted, unshaven, and exactly true to type as seen at meetings in
-East London, Liverpool or Glasgow. These were not workmen employed on
-the railway; one kept a barber's shop, one was a teacher, one a Russian
-doctor, and one a Russian solicitor; but they were the officials of the
-only form of union that exists in Russian Siberia, a revolutionary
-circle composed of the very worst elements in the towns, bound together
-by one common purpose, the spoliation and assassination of every decent
-man, whether bourgeois or workman, who refuses to support a policy of
-anarchy. These five or six determined ruffians formed a kind of Blood
-Brotherhood, and behind a veil of anonymity issued mandates to, and in
-the name of, the Russian workmen, which, backed up by a system of
-murderous terrorism, the workmen were powerless to resist. It was quite
-a usual thing to find each morning dead men of all classes in the
-streets who had been murdered during the night by members of these
-circles. There was no system of law or police; every vestige of justice
-was uprooted, and these crimes went unpunished. The irony of it was that
-these acts were avowedly done in the interest of progress and reform and
-in the sacred name of Labour!
-
-The Irkutsk Circle asked questions which were not calculated to elicit a
-single fact connected with labour, either in Russia or England, but were
-just the usual clap-trap monkey business, such as:
-
-"Why should we be satisfied with half, when we have the bourgeoisie down
-and can take all?"
-
-"Why should we allow law to be re-established, which was always used by
-the few to rob the many?"
-
-"Surely it is less unjust to allow the many to continue to rob the few?"
-
-"In destroying the landlord and capitalist are not the Russian
-proletariat merely taking back its own property?"
-
-"Is it not a fact that the more systematically and effectively we
-annihilate the bourgeois and landlord class, and all the institutions
-belonging to them, the easier it will be to erect the new order?"
-
-These are all very subtle and difficult to answer briefly at a meeting
-of Russian workmen, not one of whom can read or write. It was wonderful
-foresight which placed Madame Frank, the editress of the _Russian Army_,
-as correspondent for this labour mission. She fastened on to each
-question in turn and gave instance after instance of how the suggestions
-they contained had worked out in practice, to the total destruction of
-all that was good and honourable in Russia. Then with magnificent play
-on the words "the new order" in the last question, she drew a picture of
-this _new order_ as exhibited in practice in that part of Russia under
-Bolshevik control. The influence of this little lady upon these simple
-Russian workmen was really remarkable. It was quite evident that the
-workmen would prefer the old regime to the new if Bolshevik tyranny is
-the only possible outcome of the new order.
-
-Our next stop was Imokentievskaya, where the head of the works looked as
-though he would have preferred execution rather than take part in a
-workmen's meeting. The professionals had been left behind, and the
-audience was composed entirely of the railway workers. They presented
-many characteristics of the average English workmen and hungrily
-received information relating to the methods of the best organised
-English trade unions. They had no idea of the things we had done and the
-progress we had made in bettering the working conditions of labour
-generally. Their professional leaders had disposed of the British
-movement by describing our organisation as "bourgeois trade unions," and
-always referred to our trade union activities as though we were
-organised and internally managed by the capitalist. They were surprised
-to learn that we were the only exclusively working-class organisation in
-the world; that the officials must have worked at the trade whose
-society they managed; that we did not, like themselves, allow doctors,
-lawyers, and mere politicians to manage our affairs, but insisted upon
-having our trade unions in our own hands. One real old "Russky"
-engine-driver asked: "If the English workmen found it so advantageous to
-keep their organisations exclusively working-class, why did not the
-Germans do the same?" I answered, "When a movement starts wrong it is
-very difficult to put it right; that outsiders all over the world
-struggle for a place in the trade unions, and if once they get in they
-either break themselves or the union rather than get out, and those who
-can't get in hang on outside like limpets and refuse to be kicked off;
-that the Russian workmen in organising their trade unions must start
-right and keep them free of every element except the working class."
-
-We stopped at Zema, the scene of a sharp encounter with armed strikers a
-few months previous. The meeting in the works was a great success. It
-was remarkable to find that though in my previous meeting with these
-workmen I took the attitude of a military dictator, they showed no
-resentment and had rigidly observed the agreement which had been entered
-into at the point of the bayonet. They were delighted to find that I,
-too, had performed my part of the contract in not forgetting their
-interests when opportunity presented itself.
-
-Nesniodinsk was not on my list, but a special request having been
-presented for me to address the workmen there, we made the necessary
-arrangements and visited this place on Sunday, March 8. It was perhaps
-the largest meeting held up to that point. The official heads had caused
-a special platform to be erected in a huge engine-repairing shop, and
-themselves took the greatest interest in the whole proceeding. It was a
-very harassing business, but if as an outcome the seed of orderly
-progress was sown, the effort was entirely worth while.
-
-Our carriage was fastened to the rear of a slow-moving train going west,
-and we did not arrive at Kansk till the evening of the 10th.
-
-Kansk is the most easterly point of the area of revolt and a fairly
-large depot for the railway. Some interesting facts about the revolt
-were picked up from the railway officials. The revolt began suddenly on
-December 26, at the same time that it broke out in Omsk and Kolumsino,
-and at first was aimed at the possession of the railway. The military
-guard at Kansk consisted of one officer and fifty men. The officer
-posted his sentries at different points some distance away, and the
-soldiers who acted as his personal guard awoke to find their
-sleeping-place and arms in the possession of half a dozen armed men. The
-marauders shouted "Your officer is dead," and ordered the men to lie
-still while they removed the rifles. This done, they proceeded to the
-quarters of the officer, who, finding his men already disarmed, bolted
-without firing a shot. The total strength of the Bolsheviks was fifteen
-men, and these fifteen held the station and a town of over five
-thousand inhabitants up to ransom for twenty-six hours! At the end of
-that time a squadron of Cossacks approached, and the Bolsheviks left,
-taking with them about 80,000 roubles belonging to the railway and post
-office. During their short stay they committed all sorts of barbarities.
-They murdered the railway school-mistress and tortured her husband by
-stripping him and pouring cold water over his naked body, finally
-driving him out into the snow, where he quickly froze to death. The
-charge against their two victims in this case was that they, by their
-calling, were teaching the youth of Russia to become young
-_bourgeoisie_, instead of leaving all men and women equal as nature
-intended.
-
-This garden of autocracy grows some strange plants. These banditti,
-known in England as Bolsheviks, are entrenched not more than 60 versts
-distant, protected from Koltchak's vengeance by the deep snows of the
-Siberian winter, which make it impossible to operate away from the
-railway.
-
-We held a splendid meeting of the workmen in the enormous workshop,
-remarkable for the quiet enthusiasm and the evident hope of better
-times. It was quite clear to me that the Russian workmen were tired of
-the Revolution. They were promised an Eldorado and realised Hell
-instead. They merely wanted to be shown a way out of the social
-nightmare. They passed a vote of thanks to me and the English workmen
-for whom I spoke.
-
-We started for Krasnoyarsk on the 12th, and before long found it
-necessary to get the machine guns and hospital equipment ready for
-instant use. After standing to arms all night we arrived, at midday on
-the 13th, at Klukvinah, the Russian Headquarters, and discovered that
-the Government forces had driven the enemy back from the railway, and
-that the remainder of our journey to Krasnoyarsk would be practically
-safe. We arrived about 9.15 P.M. on Wednesday, the 13th.
-
-Colonel Frank, Madame Frank, myself and the Czech interpreter, Vladimir,
-were passing through the station on our return from the town about 12.30
-midnight, when a rather exciting incident occurred. The station
-commandant approached Colonel Frank and appealed to him for help to send
-home a party of Serbian soldiers who had procured drink without payment
-at the point of their swords and revolvers, and had stripped a young
-woman passenger and exposed her for their orgies. Other bestial things
-were alleged against them, but no one had so far dared to interfere to
-restore order. After a moment's consideration Colonel Frank decided to
-go into the buffet and ask them to go quietly home, and if they refused,
-to secure force to arrest and remove them. I naturally followed.
-
-It was a big stone-floored room with the door at one end and a long bar
-at the other. The alleged Serbian soldiers were seated in a cluster on
-the right in front of the bar at the far end of the room. Colonel Frank
-advanced to them and said, "Brothers, you have had enough to drink, you
-are keeping all the attendants from their proper rest; it is time for
-you to go home." It was like an electric shock. About a dozen of the
-ruffians sprang to their feet hurling every possible Slavonic epithet at
-this brave Russian officer who was merely performing a public duty. One
-dark-visaged Serb cavalryman drew his sword and tried a lunge at the
-colonel across the table, and while the colonel watched this infuriated
-aborigine a Serbian officer close behind Frank tore the epaulette from
-the colonel's uniform and trampled it underfoot, shouting, "Death to
-this officer of the old regime!"
-
-I picked up the epaulette just as the other Serb, sword in one hand and
-revolver in the other, edged round the tables to the centre of the room
-for his attack upon my liaison officer. I did not think of drawing my
-own weapon, and so far it was man to man. Colonel Frank kept his eye
-fixed upon his antagonist, and now advanced towards him, ordering him to
-put down his arms and leave the room. But the Serb was out for blood and
-made a slash at the _polkovnika's_ head, the full force of which he
-evaded by ducking, though the sword severed the chin strap and button of
-his cap and carved its way through the thick band before it glanced up
-off the skull, helped by his right hand, which had been raised to turn
-the blow. At the same instant Colonel Frank fired point blank at the
-man's face; the bullet entered the open mouth and came out of the cheek,
-which merely infuriated the man more. Up to this moment the man had only
-used his sword, but now he began to raise his revolver. Before he could
-raise it hip high, however, the colonel shot him through the heart.
-Though the revolver dropped from his helpless hand, he crouched for one
-instant and sprang, clutching at the colonel's face, while four or five
-of his fellow Serbs attacked the colonel from behind. The foremost of
-these ruffians, a Serbian officer, fired at the back of the colonel's
-head and missed, but his second shot struck Colonel Frank on the left
-temple at the moment his real assailant had made his death spring, and
-down they both went, apparently dead, the Serbian on top. The other
-Serbs sprang forward to finish the Russian officer with the usual ugly
-dagger which Serbian robbers always carry. The body of the dead Serb,
-however, formed a complete shield, and this, coupled with the fact that
-we all thought the colonel dead, saved him from mutilation.
-
-I was not quite an idle spectator, but the fact that at the critical
-moment I discovered I had no weapon except for my cane reduced me to
-helplessness so far as dealing with this gang of murderers was
-concerned. Directly the fight began every Russian, including the armed
-militiaman who was supposed to keep order at the station, bolted from
-the room, leaving the women and children to look after themselves.
-Madame Frank went to the assistance of her husband and covered him as
-only a woman can, and as she grasped her husband's revolver the Serbs
-slunk back a pace, while I lifted his head and signed to the Serb
-officer who had fired at the colonel from behind to lift the dead Serb
-off the colonel's body. This he did and then proposed to the band
-surrounding us that they should kill us all three. Their knives
-glistened and a small automatic revolver was making a bee line for me,
-when a voice like the growl of a bear came from the direction of the
-door. The whole band instantly put up their weapons. I had stood up to
-receive my fate, and over the heads of our would-be murderers I saw a
-tall dark-bearded stage villain in a long black overcoat which reached
-to the floor, stalk across to the group. He looked at the body of the
-dead Serb and then at the prostrate Russian officer who at that instant
-began to show signs of returning consciousness. "Ah! Oh! Russky
-polkovnik," he roared, drawing his revolver. "Our dead brother demands
-blood."
-
-I could not stand and see a wounded friend murdered before my eyes, not
-even in this land of blood. I stepped over both bodies and placed myself
-between this monster and his victim. I raised both hands and pushed him
-back, saying, "I am Anglisky polkovnik, and will not allow you to murder
-the wounded Russian officer." He answered that he was "Serbian
-polkovnik," and I said "Come into the other room," and by strategy got
-him away. His friends, however, told him something which sent him back
-quickly to finish his job, but as he re-entered the buffet he
-encountered about a dozen British and Czech soldiers with fixed
-bayonets, and it was not so difficult now to convince him that it was
-not quite good form to murder a wounded man.
-
-We carried the Russian colonel to the British hospital, and as the
-leader of the Serbs had declared a blood feud, extra guards were placed
-on my wagon and the hospital. These ruffians were armed from our
-supplies under the direction of French officers. Directly the Russian
-military authorities began their investigations to bring this band to
-justice they, through the Czech commander, received orders from General
-Ganin, the French Allied commander, to move to Novo Nikoliosk out of
-Russian jurisdiction.
-
-It is not very clear at present why the French gave their protection to
-these and similar disturbing elements in Siberia. Perhaps the reason
-will show itself later.
-
-Krasnoyarsk is a huge railway depot with building and repairing shops
-employing about 3,000 workmen. To get at both shifts it was necessary to
-hold two meetings, one for the inside and the other for the outside
-staff. The first was a very silent, interested crowd, who listened to my
-address as though they understood its meaning and purport. The gallant
-"Russky" _polkovnika_ with bandaged head and hand translated the first
-part, Madame Frank the second. The impression created by this brave
-woman, who had herself commanded a company in the trenches before
-Kerensky destroyed the army, was very great. There was no mistaking the
-effect of her words as these oil-stained workmen raised their _papahas_
-to the message from the English trade unionists which she delivered.
-
-This town was the centre of international intrigue. There was an Italian
-battalion about 1,500 strong, the Czech 12th Regiment of about 200, and
-the British Middlesex Regiment, 220. To maintain their prestige the
-French were arming the Lett revolters as fast as the Russian General
-Affinasiaff could defeat and disarm them. The Italian soldiers were in
-very bad favour with the inhabitants and the local Russian civil and
-military authorities. Robberies and assaults were of almost daily
-occurrence, and at last the authorities made definite official
-complaints to the Allied Headquarters and asked that the Italian
-soldiers should either be kept under proper discipline or removed from
-the country. The main complaint, however, of the Russian officials was
-based on the open hostility of the Allied officers led by the senior of
-them to everything Russian.
-
-It is such an easy matter to make friends with the Russian people that
-this attitude of her alleged helpers was very saddening. When I landed
-at "Vlady" my orders were to remember that we English had come as
-friends to help Russia on to her feet, and I always tried to keep that
-in mind. I often wondered what instructions could have been given to my
-Allied colleagues.
-
-The next call was at Bogotol, where, under instructions from Consul
-Peacock, I inquired into the imprisonment of an Australian subject named
-Savinoff. The authorities produced the _dossier_ of his case, which when
-translated proved him to be a Bolshevik leader and second in command of
-an armed band that had attempted to murder the local authorities. His
-trial took place shortly after, with that of Titoff, his chief, who was
-one of the Central Committee of the Baltic Fleet who ordered the murder
-of hundreds of the naval officers of the old regime.
-
-The meeting maintained the usual standard of interest, and the chief of
-the works, whose face bore traces of the tortures inflicted upon him
-under Bolshevik rule, was delighted with the new hope we had brought to
-himself and his workmen.
-
-Our next meeting was at Taiga, and it was quite a great event. A
-special platform had been erected in the big workshop, around which
-swarmed nearly two thousand workmen. The people looked upon the meeting
-as the new birth of Russian life. No meeting had been held for two
-years, except the underground gatherings of conspirators. I appealed to
-the men to discard disorder and take a hand in the orderly
-reconstruction of the new Russian State, in which they were now
-guaranteed a place. Madame Frank's translation made a profound
-impression upon these toil-worn men and women. It was clear that the
-people were tired of the horrors of revolution and yearned for peace and
-quiet.
-
-I here interviewed General Knox, who was on his way to Omsk on important
-matters which had been brought to my notice.
-
-We arrived at Novo Nikoliosk on the morning of the 23rd, and proceeded
-to make arrangements for the meeting to be held on the same day. I
-visited the various commands, as usual, and held long consultations with
-General Zochinko, from whom I gathered much information as to the
-situation in this important district. It was interesting to hear some
-news of our old friend, the _Voidavoda_ of the Serbian band. He and his
-gang had arrived from his excursion to Krasnoyarsk on the day that a
-banquet was held by the newly-formed Polish regiment. As chief of his
-band he was invited, and delivered an oration of a particularly
-patriotic character which had won all Polish hearts. He was in a great
-hurry to get away next morning, fearing that we were following behind.
-He said nothing about our encounter, and the Russian officials became
-suspicious of his anxiety to get away. They brought a squad of soldiers
-to examine his trucks, and found an enormous amount of loot from
-Krasnoyarsk, as well as contraband goods upon which he had to pay duty
-to the amount of 130,000 roubles. Having squeezed this toll out of the
-"bounder," they gave him a free way to Ekaterinburg, where things are
-very scarce, and where he would be able to sell out at a good figure.
-
-General Zochinko told us some funny stories about the French Staff's
-attempt to form a powerful counter force to Bolshevism from the German
-and Austrian war prisoners. In Novo Nikoliosk the Allied Commander,
-General Ganin, had released some hundreds of Austrian and German Poles
-from the prison camps and formed them into regiments. In his haste to
-get these units complete he forgot to inquire into the antecedents of
-the officers chosen to command them. So careless, in fact, were the
-French that the Russian authorities awoke one morning to find one of
-their most dangerous prisoners, a well-known German officer spy, von
-Budburg, in full command of this alleged Allied force. Von Budburg had,
-like a true patriot, taken care to choose his subordinates from men of
-the same type as himself.
-
-Later on the French Staff became aware of the nature of their handiwork
-and sought help and advice from the Russian military authorities about
-disarming their new German Legion. A sudden descent on their quarters by
-another Polish unit, with some new Russian units standing by to render
-help if necessary, ended in these French proteges being disarmed and
-got back safely to their prison camp.
-
-Allied help to Russia is like a jig-saw puzzle, a mystery even to the
-man who devised it. A straight-forward recognition of the Omsk
-Government would have been an honest hand for honest work, but where
-would Allied diplomacy have come in? Diplomacy is only necessary when
-there are ulterior objects than mere plain, unambiguous assistance to a
-helpless friend. What are these hidden objects? The Allies had better be
-cautious how they proceed in the diagnosis and dismemberment of this
-great people or they may find themselves on the operating table with
-this giant holding the knife. In spite of the Biblical legend I prefer
-England to be a pal with Goliath!
-
-We arrived at Barabinsk on the morning of March 26, and after
-arrangements for the meeting were completed, took a walk round the
-market. A Russian market is a thing of joy and colour. There are no
-buildings: just a huge space in the centre of the town where thousands
-of shaggy, ice-covered horses stand each with an ice-covered sledge. The
-peasants, men and women, in huge fur coats which reach to the
-snow-covered ground, harmonise perfectly with the cattle they control.
-Their fur coats form a study in colour--patchwork coats from calfskins
-which combine every shade from white to rusty red; goatskins, from long
-straight black to white; curly bearskins from black to brown and brown
-to polar white; wealthy peasant women, with beautiful red fox furs
-hiding neck and face, their eyes glistening through the apertures which
-served the same purpose for the first and original tenant. The sledges
-contain everything--wheat, oats, potatoes, onions, rough leaf tobacco,
-jars of cream, frozen blocks of milk, scores of different types of
-frozen fresh-water fish from sturgeon to bream, frozen meats of every
-conceivable description, furs--in fact, the finest collection of human
-necessities to be found in any one place in the world. Prices were very
-high for home produce and simply absurd for foreign or distant
-productions. Colonel Frank was in need of a small safety pin (six a
-penny at home), and found that the price was seven roubles--14s. 3-1/2d.
-old money, and 3s. 6d. at the rate at which the British Army are paid.
-Everything else was in proportion.
-
-A very fine meeting was held in the works, and much good done in
-securing the confidence of the workmen in the efforts of the Supreme
-Governor, Admiral Koltchak, to create order out of chaos.
-
-We arrived at Omsk on the morning of the 28th, and on the 29th I gave a
-lengthy report to Admiral Koltchak, who expressed his hearty thanks and
-impressed upon me the necessity of continuing my journey to the Urals.
-He had received from the official heads of departments reports stating
-that the effect of my mission had been to improve the general attitude
-of the workmen all round. And he was most anxious that this effort to
-enlist the workmen's interest in an ordered State should be pushed
-forward with vigour.
-
-A further discussion upon general affairs, especially the policy of the
-French command in Siberia, took us through tea. I have absolute
-confidence in the character of the admiral, but the pigmies by whom he
-is surrounded are so many drags on the wheels of State. There is not one
-that I would trust to manage a whelk-stall. They have no idea of the
-duty of a statesman. Little pettifogging personal equations and jobs
-occupy the whole of their time, except when they are engaged upon the
-congenial task of trying to thwart the Supreme Governor. The patriotism
-of the front officers and soldiers, and the medieval chivalry of the
-Cossack are the only things left upon which to rebuild Russia. This
-naturally limits the architectural features of the new edifice, but the
-pioneer is always limited to the material at hand.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-OMSK RE-VISITED
-
-
-It is quite interesting to watch the oscillation of the Omsk mind from
-one orientation to another. At the time I left for the East the stream
-of favour flowed strongly in the English direction. General Knox started
-on a tour of Siberia in connection with the formation of the new
-Koltchak army; Sir Charles Eliot went to Hong-Kong; General Bowes was
-left to deputise for General Knox, and Colonel Robertson for Sir Charles
-Eliot. In three short weeks every sign of British influence had
-disappeared. The English were nowhere; the favour was shared equally by
-France and Japan.
-
-The Japanese had either learned how to behave themselves towards the
-Russians or they had received instructions from home. During the first
-three months I was in Siberia their arrogance was simply sublime, but
-after the armistice with Germany--upon whose power to defeat the Allies
-they banked their all--they were a changed people, so far as outward
-appearance and conduct were concerned. They talked about their alliance
-with England, their friendship with Russia, their love of France. When
-the Japanese try, they can make themselves very agreeable; indeed, so
-charming that it is impossible to resist their advances. That was their
-attitude then to all except the Chinese, whom they hold in the greatest
-contempt, and to the Americans, whom they fear. With a clear field their
-new policy made great headway.
-
-The French methods are quite different. Theirs is a drawing-room attack,
-and at this sort of thing the ordinary Britisher cuts but a sorry
-figure. Hence the field was also pretty clear for them, and they made
-full use of their opportunities. With a judicious word over a cup of tea
-an editor who refuses a bribe finds his or her talents a glut on the
-market. A joke around a _samovar_ reduces the rank of a particularly
-Russophile general. The glorious time they are having reaches its climax
-when you hear the polite condolences to the victims uttered in exquisite
-French.
-
-But Colonel Robertson had gone to "Vlady," and his place had been taken
-by a typical Britisher in the person of Consul Hodgson, who took a
-correct measure of the situation, and in less than forty-eight hours
-herded the whole caboose back into their own compounds. It is surprising
-that the influence of one virile, definite personality can be so great,
-and it proves how necessary it is that in this seemingly endless turmoil
-only the best men should be burdened with the responsibility of our
-representation. I started on my mission to the Urals with absolute
-confidence that, in the absence of General Knox, our interests in Omsk
-would not suffer so long as they were in the hands of our senior consul.
-
-After infinite trouble with Russian official elements, I started on my
-western journey on April 5. The mission consisted of Colonel Frank
-(liaison officer), Madame Frank (translator), Regt-Sergt.-Major Gordon,
-in charge of an escort of twenty-two N.C.O.s and men, with one machine
-gun. We were now entering the district behind the Ural front. These
-towns had not long been cleared of the Bolsheviks, so that it was
-interesting to discover how far their ideas had gained possession of the
-minds of the people. The new Russian armies were rapidly pushing
-forward. Their progress had been made more general and persistent since
-the end of November, 1918, the date on which the Czechs finally refused
-to take part in the great Perm offensive. When they read in the English
-papers of January, 1919, how the Czech, Italian, French, and Allied
-forces had inflicted defeat upon the Bolsheviks at Perm, it caused a
-grim smile to pass over the faces of the Russian officers who did the
-job. Not a single Czech, Italian, French, or Allied soldier fired a shot
-after Admiral Koltchak assumed supreme command. There is one notable
-exception. The armoured trains from H.M.S. _Suffolk_, under the command
-of Captain Wolfe Murray, continued to fight along the Ufa front well
-into January, 1919. Only the intense cold and the necessity of
-recoupment and re-equipment caused them to retire to Omsk. The British
-Navy fighting on the Urals was the only reminder the Russian soldier had
-that the Allies of his country had not entirely deserted her.
-
-We arrived at Tumen on April 7, and held a fine meeting of the workmen,
-who seemed quite pleased to hear that the Bolsheviks were not likely to
-return. These workmen looked upon the Bolshevik rule as on some horrible
-nightmare. They cared for little else so long as you could assure them
-on this point. So ghastly was the dream from which they had awakened
-compared with the flowery promises held out to them that I readily
-believe "Ivan the Terrible" would have been received at that moment as a
-saviour. This was a dangerous feeling which I tried my best to combat,
-for the excesses of the Bolshevik regime have prepared the way--and were
-deliberately intended so to do--for a return to absolutism.
-
-We arrived at Ekaterinburg at the same time as General Knox arrived from
-Chilliyabinsk. His first words were congratulations on my C.B., news of
-which had just arrived. I visited Consul Preston, and read the evidence
-he and his French colleague had collected relative to Bolshevik outrages
-on the workmen of the district. It was too sad to think about. This was
-the place where the Tsar and his family were imprisoned and murdered. Of
-them it could be fairly alleged that they were responsible for the
-crimes of the old regime; but what crimes have the poor workmen and
-peasants committed that the most fiendish cruelty should be reserved for
-them? I give it up! Perhaps there is some reason or justification; all I
-can say is I have not heard it, neither can I imagine what it can be.
-
-I held a meeting of railway workmen and officials, and was surprised at
-the attention and earnestness of the audience. They hungrily devoured
-every scrap of information as to our English trade union organisation
-and work, and requested that a further meeting should be held next day
-in a great carriage works in the centre of the town. This proved to be
-one of the most remarkable gatherings I have ever attended. A fine
-platform had been erected at one end of the main workshop. A sea of
-faces under huge multi-coloured _papahas_ spread over the floor, while
-every carriage was covered with human ants; even the beams of the
-building carried its human freight. Clearly it seemed to me that the
-resurrection of Russia had begun; the destruction of Russia began from
-the head, its re-birth is from the ground.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-IN EUROPEAN RUSSIA
-
-
-Nevanisk is situated just over the European boundary of the Urals.
-Before the Bolshevik came it was a great iron centre, one firm alone
-employing three thousand workmen. When I arrived there the various works
-were practically derelict and its vast collection of machinery idle. The
-streets were deserted, and it was estimated that half of its inhabitants
-had been destroyed. It was, and now it is not. The few remaining
-inhabitants were valiantly pulling themselves together, and if order and
-some sort of law could be established, they were confident that they
-could rebuild their life again. We talked to them and encouraged them to
-continue their struggle against the blight that had defiled their homes
-and their country. Their hopes seemed to revive from our assurance of
-English working-class sympathy. I am pleased they did not know that we
-had some people mad enough to wish to inflict similar wounds upon our
-own country.
-
-A pound of sugar cost thirty-five roubles, a pair of 3s. 11d. goloshes
-two hundred and fifty roubles, one pound of bread seven roubles. These
-were the things we wished to buy, and so made the discovery of their
-price; we bought bread only, as the thing we could not do without.
-Typhus was raging in almost every house. General Knox was inoculated,
-but I decided to run the risk. Doctors had largely disappeared, owing to
-the hatred of everybody with a bourgeois education.
-
-I wonder what sort of jokes or fun G.B.S. could make out of it. There
-_is_ fun in it somewhere. The contrast between the original idea of the
-revolution and the outcome of those ideas are so grotesque in their
-realisation that it looks as though some hidden power were indulging in
-a Mephistophelian laugh at the expense of mankind.
-
-We next arrived at Taighill, where the same effects had been produced,
-though on a smaller scale. It was Palm Sunday, and the great bell of the
-cathedral was booming through the surrounding pine forest calling the
-faithful to prayer. In the square of the town near by a statue of
-Alexander II lay in the mud, having been thrown down by the
-revolutionaries. Quite near a white figure of a woman, intended to
-represent the Enthronement of Liberty, had been hurled from its recently
-constructed base, and formed the roadside seat of five or six of the
-raggedest starvelings to be found in the world. An inscription on
-Alexander's statue states that it was raised to commemorate his
-emancipation of the peasants from serfdom. The Bolsheviks had not time
-to write _their_ inscription; but it did not matter--the empty houses
-and deserted streets were quite enough. By means of much elbow labour
-they had smoothed out the inscription on the statue of the Tsar
-Liberator and for the time made all things equal again.
-
-The meeting at Taighill was a repetition of the others, and we passed
-on to Kushva. This place had been badly mauled. The Bolshevik Commissar
-was evidently an anarchist pure and simple. All the hatred of class and
-creed which had generated under the Romanoffs found expression in this
-man's deeds. The amount of venom which he put into his administration
-and work was worthy of his cause. The effect of his policy, however,
-produced results exactly opposite to those he hoped for. The first
-evidence of his zeal lay upon the snow in front of the railway office. A
-huge steel safe with the door wrenched off and the contents missing
-indicated the strength of his principles. The official who had lost the
-key was thrown into the well near by to stimulate the memory of other
-safe-owners; but this official was not alone in his glory, for several
-railway workmen who refused to help rob this identical safe found a
-watery grave with their superior. Altogether over seventy people met
-their death in this well, workmen, _bourgeoisie_--all in one holocaust.
-But the majority were of no class; their only offence seemed to be that
-they had called themselves Social Revolutionaries. They have been the
-subject of the most bitter hatred by the Bolshevik leaders. The
-Bolshevik contention is that for men or women to call themselves
-Socialists, and then to hesitate to take a hand in the complete
-extermination of the bourgeois ruling classes, now there is a chance of
-doing so in Russia, is to act the part of poltroon and traitor to the
-cause. The "treachery" is all the greater if the objector is a workman
-or a workwoman.
-
-The Bolsheviks are quite honest about their purpose--the transfer of
-power and property by murder and robbery from the _bourgeoisie_ to the
-proletariat. If a member of the proletariat is so mad that he refuses or
-hesitates to act his part in this scheme, then those who have been
-called by the force of events to assume a dictatorship on his behalf are
-entitled to destroy him as an unconscious enemy to himself and his
-class. In the same way no mercy can be shown to the Social
-Revolutionaries who, while professing allegiance to definite proletarian
-domination, shrink from definite action now that the time for action has
-arrived.
-
-The Bolshevik Commissar of Kushva, acting on this principle, succeeded
-in a short time in raising a formidable opposition amongst the workmen
-in the surrounding districts. When the local school-mistress, a girl of
-seventeen, found a temporary grave in this sort of Black Hole of
-Calcutta the wells of Kushva and Taighill became a dreadful portent to
-the simple Russian _mujik_.
-
-The opposition began at the big Watkin Works, where over six thousand
-men were employed. Though possessing no military organisation, the
-workmen decided to resist by force the entrance of the Bolshevik Terror
-into their midst. With the help of several young engineers they managed
-to regiment themselves into some kind of military order. They selected
-with great skill the strategic positions for fortifications, and held
-the whole district against the repeated attacks of the enemy. Once the
-Bolshevik line of the Urals west of Ekaterinburg struck from north to
-south, from Kunghure to the Caspian, as the crow flies, for three
-thousand versts, except for one great loop enclosing the Watkin Works.
-But in November, 1918, the Bolshevik line swept forward, submerging
-these valiant workmen warriors. Admiral Koltchak's Chief of Staff
-naturally concluded that the workmen had given up the struggle and had
-made terms with their hated enemy.
-
-This surge forward of the Bolsheviks had been greatly assisted by the
-unfortunate defection of the Czech forces, who had left the front at the
-suggestion of their local National Council. General Gaida had thrown up
-his Czech commission, and had been given command of the right wing of
-the new Russian army. The admiral proceeded at once to put his new army
-to the test by an attempt to recover the lost ground and, if possible,
-save the remnants of the Watkin workmen. Everybody now knows how, in a
-temperature of over "60 below," these recently mobilised Siberian
-recruits re-established the fighting fame of the Russian soldier by
-sweeping the Terrorist forces from their positions and entirely
-destroying them at Perm. Imagine General Galitzin's surprise when the
-advance began to find these Watkin workmen still holding their district
-and rendering valuable help to their relieving comrades! The Kushva
-Soviet Commissar had built better than he knew.
-
-This district is remarkable for the valuable and extensive deposits of
-iron and sulphur, which seem inexhaustible. One huge hill has a store of
-about 800,000,000,000 tons, almost untapped except for uncovering work
-necessary to estimate its capacity.
-
-The Revolution in Russia may alter a few things, but it can scarcely
-effect much change in the character of its people. This iron mountain is
-an illustration of the mixture of mediaevalism and modernism to be found
-in Russia's industrial development. The summit of the mountain is capped
-with an Orthodox Greek church, and desperate efforts have been made to
-secure its removal to a less exalted and less valuable site. I was
-informed that the mere suggestion proved almost fatal to its
-originators, and by so narrow a margin did they escape that the proposal
-is not likely to be repeated. I made the suggestion quite innocently,
-and produced such a storm that only my foreign ignorance provided me
-with a satisfactory excuse. I was asked: "Would you take God from His
-place over this work?" One other thing I noticed everywhere. There was
-not one important workshop from Irkutsk to Perm without its altar,
-candles and all complete, and scarcely a business or Government office
-without its ikon facing you the moment you entered.
-
-I attended the Orthodox Easter celebration at Perm. The whole edifice
-was crowded with people of every walk in life. I was not merely an
-interested spectator, but one who believes that where man worships he
-appeals to the same God no matter by what name He is called.
-
-I watched this crowd, each holding a long lighted taper, stand for hours
-making the sign of the Cross, while the gorgeously-robed priest chanted
-the service and made sundry waves with his hands and gave certain
-swings with the incense-burner. The responses were made by a group of
-men with beautiful, well-trained voices, but the people looked
-spiritually starved. Not one took the slightest part in the service
-beyond an occasional whispered murmur, nor are they expected to. They
-stood outside the pale; there was no place for them. I must say that I
-contrasted this isolation of the congregation with the joint act of
-worship as performed in our churches, both Free and Anglican. I looked
-at these "Christian" men and women and thought of the butchery of
-Petrograd and Moscow, the wells of Kushva and Taighill, and the ruthless
-disregard of human life by both sides in this brutal internecine strife.
-I wondered whether I had stumbled upon at least one of the causes. At
-any rate, I did not forget we also had the heroes of the Watkin Works.
-
-Nadegenska is the extreme north-west point of the Ural system of
-railways, and is famous because of its great privately-owned steelworks.
-These works were originated by a poor peasant woman, who developed the
-whole district until it has become the most northerly Asiatic industrial
-centre in the Russian Empire. The contrast in treatment at these
-privately-owned works compared with those owned by the Government is
-significant. The Soviet Commissar knew nothing about the business
-himself, and appointed Works Commissars, still more ignorant of their
-duties, to control the establishment. The result was that production
-fell to such a point that the experts refused to work under such
-incompetents and gradually escaped to other outlandish districts. The
-manager stuck to his post during the battle of Perm, and by a judicious
-distribution among the Bolshevik Commissars of the surplus roubles of
-the Tsar remaining in his possession got them out of the works without
-damage. This was an unheard-of situation, for nowhere else have the
-Soviet Commissars left anything they could destroy.
-
-It was interesting to notice that nearly the whole of the machinery in
-these works was either of German or American make, the latter always
-predominating; there was some English and some Belgian, about an equal
-amount of each. I heard a curious statement at Kushva to the effect that
-the German firms were always prepared to build and fit out a big works,
-and run it for one year, without asking for a penny. Of course they
-always first carefully examined the possibilities of the locality, but
-the managers assured me that it was rare for German machinery to be
-equal, either for use or wear and tear, to the English, nor was it as
-cheap; but they could always get long credit from German firms, and that
-was most important in developing new enterprises.
-
-We set off for Perm, with a stop on our way at the Vackneah Turansky
-Works. These works employed from four to five thousand men, doing
-everything from smelting to the making of engines, carriages, shells,
-guns, etc., and were the best equipped workshops I saw in the Urals. The
-only complaint was lack of orders. The old regime did everything--nearly
-all this great mineral district was developed under the personal care of
-the Tsars. The Bolsheviks have destroyed the State control of these
-establishments, and already the _bourgeoisie_ are casting hungry eyes
-upon this great industry and the Omsk Ministers are rubbing hands over
-the loot they hope to collect during this transfer. How vain the hopes
-of those who looked to the Revolution to develop public control of all
-natural resources! Already the State lands are parcelled out amongst the
-wealthy peasants, who as a result of this robbery will establish a great
-landed aristocracy, and, if I do not misread the signs, a similar fate
-is about to overtake the great State industries with the creation of an
-aristocracy of wealth.
-
-At Turansky we picked up Sergeant Coleman, of the Durham Light Infantry,
-the only Englishman who weathered the journey from Archangel with a
-party of Russians who had started from the north to try and get into
-direct touch with the Russian Army. They had made a circuitous route and
-avoided the districts held by the Bolshevik forces, and therefore had
-nothing of interest to report to us. The whole party, under a Russian
-officer in English uniform, were attached to my train and taken to Perm,
-where instructions awaited them to proceed at once to Omsk.
-
-While examining the damage done during the street fighting at Perm we
-encountered a mob of the Red Guard who had marched over their own lines
-at Glashoff and surrendered to General Gaida. They were drawn up four
-deep in the market-place for a roll call. I studied their faces and
-general appearance, and came to the conclusion that if the progress of
-the world depended upon such as these the world was in a very bad way.
-They were Kirghis, Mongols, Tartars, Chinese, mixed with a fair
-sprinkling of European-Russian peasants, workmen and others mostly of
-the lowest type, but with just enough of the "old soldier" element to
-make them formidable. A strange idea struck me that I would like to
-speak to these men. The proposition, made almost in jest, was taken up
-seriously by my liaison officer, Colonel Frank, who interviewed the
-commandant of the station, Colonel Nikolioff, upon the subject. He at
-first took up a hostile attitude, but when he gathered the substance of
-my proposed address he consented, and arranged the meeting at the camp
-for 6 P.M. the following evening, April 22. Of all the meetings it has
-been my privilege to hold, this was the most unique. The Bolshevik
-soldiers stood to attention and listened to me with great interest. One
-or two were sailors, and some others could understand a little English,
-as could be seen by the way they conveyed in whispers the points of the
-speech to their neighbours. Madame Frank translated, and in beautiful
-Russian drove home each point. Hers was a magnificent performance. As
-she repeated my word-picture of their untilled fields, destroyed homes,
-outraged women, and murdered children, not the ravages of an alien
-enemy, but the work of their own hands, Russian against Russian, tears
-trickled down their war-scarred faces. Clearly these men felt they had
-been deceived, and would willingly endeavour to rectify the injuries of
-the past. Some volunteered their services at once to help their Mother
-Country to recover from the ravages they had made and administer justice
-upon those who had led them into madness, but Colonel Nikolioff asked
-them to remember that their crimes had been very great, and nothing but
-time could heal the wounds and soften the bitterness their conduct had
-created. Some asked that it should be remembered that they were not
-Bolshevik in principle, but had been forced to become soldiers in the
-Red Army, from which they could not desert until their villages were
-captured by the Koltchak army, as their whole families, held as hostages
-for their good conduct, would have been massacred. This they asserted
-had been done in numberless cases where the families were in Bolshevik
-hands.
-
-The value of the rouble in Perm at that time was about one penny. My
-officers and men were paid at the rate of 40 roubles to the L1. The
-prisoners' camp was about three and a half versts distant, and the
-duration of the meeting was one hour and five minutes; the droshky hire
-for the journey was 100 roubles per droshky. Everything was in
-proportion. For instance, common cigarettes were 1 rouble each. If I had
-smoked twenty a day or used them between myself and my numerous official
-visitors, half my colonel's pay would have gone. There must surely have
-been something wrong in fixing the rate of exchange at Harbin or
-"Vlady," 5,000 versts away, and leaving officers at the front in a stage
-of poverty not one whit better than the people whose all had been
-destroyed by the Revolution. I have no remedy to offer, but it is not
-very satisfactory to receive your rouble at 6d. and spend it at 1d. What
-is more! If I had been paid in L1 notes or sovereigns, I could have got
-something approaching 200 roubles for each at the Perm rate! Wages had
-increased under Bolshevik rule, but prices were such that one of the
-petitions we had to forward to the Government at Omsk on behalf of the
-workmen was that the wages and prices should be the same as under the
-old regime.
-
-On April 24 the ice on the Khama started to move about 5 A.M. It was a
-very imposing sight. It moved first as one solid block, carrying boats,
-stacks of timber, sledge roads--everything--with it. The point near the
-bridge held for some time, until the weight behind forced some part down
-and crunched its way through in one irresistible push; the other part
-rose over the resistance and rolled like an avalanche over and over,
-smashing itself into huge blocks which were forced into a rampart fifty
-feet high, when the enormous weight broke the ice platform on which it
-was piled, and the whole moved majestically off towards the Volga. Then
-one experienced the peculiar illusion of gliding along the river; it was
-necessary to plant one's feet far apart to prevent a fall. The Khama
-near Perm is over a mile wide, and this method of Nature to herald
-spring to these snow- and ice-bound regions lacks nothing so far as
-grandeur is concerned. During the next few days millions of tons of
-derelict timber passed on its way to the Caspian. The careless Russian
-never thinks of hauling his spare stock off the ice until the ice
-actually begins to move. He tells you that the proper time for the ice
-to move is between May 1 and 5; that if it moves a week earlier it means
-good crops, which would balance the loss of the timber, so that he has
-no cause to complain.
-
-It is no part of my business to deal with atrocities such as have
-disgraced the proletarian dictatorship of Moscow. Where I could not
-avoid them in my narrative of events, I have done so without reference
-to the revolting details which everybody so hungrily devours. History
-shows that it is not possible to avoid these excesses whenever the
-safeguards of civil order are swept away by the passions of the mob. Our
-own revolutionaries should remember this before and not after the event.
-They should be considered not as a risk but as a certainty when once the
-foundations of order are uprooted. At Perm the breaking of the ice
-revealed some of the truth, and it formed quite sufficient evidence of
-the callous behaviour of the Bolshevik administrators.
-
-Below a steep bank a few yards from the Terrorist headquarters a small
-shed was erected on the ice. It was called a wash-house, and during the
-day washing was done there. At night the place, apparently, was, like
-the streets, deserted, but as a square hole was cut through the ice, it
-was an ideal place for the disposal of bodies, dead or alive. The people
-knew that after an inspection of the better-class homes by officers of
-the Soviet if there was evidence of valuable loot; the whole family
-would quietly disappear, and the valuables were distributed by sale, or
-otherwise, amongst the Soviet authorities. If a workman protested
-against this violence, he disappeared, too, in the same secret fashion.
-
-The poor women who used the shed during the day for its legitimate
-purpose told from time to time grim stories of blood and evidence of
-death struggles on the frozen floor as they began the morning's work.
-Several thousand people were missing by the time the Koltchak forces
-captured the town.
-
-The ice in the shelter of the bank began to thaw before the more exposed
-part of the river, which enabled the people whose friends and neighbours
-were missing to put a rude and ineffective screen below the shed in the
-hope of recovering the bodies of some of their friends. I knew about the
-shed but not about the screen, until I was informed by Regt.
-Sergeant-Major Gordon that he had seen several hundred bodies taken from
-the river. The following morning I walked into the crowd of anxious
-people who were watching the work. The official in charge told me quite
-simply that they had not had a very good morning, for three hours' work
-had only produced some forty bodies. I looked at these relics of the new
-order; they were of both sexes and belonged to every condition of life,
-from the gruff, horny-handed worker to the delicately-nurtured young
-girl. A miscellaneous assortment of the goods, among other things,
-revolutions are bound to deliver.
-
-We held a big meeting in the great railway works which created quite a
-sensation. The fact that the English were at Perm spread back to Omsk,
-and four days later Japanese and French Missions put in an appearance.
-If the French came to maintain their prestige it was a pity that they
-did not choose a better agent for their purpose. I had been invited to
-lunch with a very worthy representative of the town, Mr. Pastrokoff, and
-his wife. I arrived to find the good lady in great agitation. A French
-officer had called and informed the household that a French Mission had
-just arrived composed of three officers; they would require the three
-best rooms in the house, the use of the servants and kitchen; that no
-furniture must be removed from the three rooms he saw under pain of
-punishment, etc. The lady protested and told the French officer that
-even the Bolsheviks had not demanded part of her very small house when
-made acquainted with the requirements of her family, but the officer had
-replied that any inconvenience was outweighed by the great honour
-conferred upon her house by the presence of officers of the French Army.
-It would not be polite to the glorious French Army to repeat Madame
-Pastrokoff's reply. It only shows how stupid it is to send to foreign
-countries any but the best men to represent a great and gallant nation.
-I naturally reminded Madame that she was a Russian, living in her own
-country, under her own Government, and she must report the case to the
-Russian authorities, who would doubtless provide accommodation for the
-French Mission if necessary.
-
-The Pastrokoffs, coupled with the vivacious Madame Barbara Pastokova and
-her husband, were among the most homely and interesting people it was my
-pleasure to meet in the Urals. If you have never been in Russia you know
-nothing of hospitality; you only squirm around the fringe of the
-subject. The hospitality of our friends at Perm was truly Russian, and
-I was sorry when we had to leave. M. Pastrokoff told me of the following
-incident of the early relief of Perm from the Terrorist.
-
-General Pepelaieff's army was stretched along the railway from Perm
-towards Vatka, the junction of the Archangel Railway. The temperature
-was over "60 below," the men were without clothes, thousands had died
-from exposure, and other thousands were in a ghastly condition from
-frost-bite. There was little or no hospital accommodation, and the Omsk
-Ministers were deaf to all appeals for help, they being more concerned
-as to how they could shake off the Supreme Governor's control than how
-best to perform their duty. In the early days of February the feeding of
-the army became a pressing problem, and still the Omsk Ministers
-remained silent. On February 10 Pastrokoff received an imperative order
-to appear at General Hepoff's office. At 11 A.M. he arrived to find nine
-of the wealthiest citizens of Perm already collected. Looking out of the
-windows they saw a full company of Siberian Rifles surround the building
-with fixed bayonets. The general entered the room and sat at his table,
-they remained standing. Looking at, and _through_, each one separately,
-he delivered this cryptic speech: "Gentlemen, I have brought you here to
-tell you that out on the railway between you and your enemies lie the
-remains of our brave army! They have little clothes, but plenty of wood,
-so their fires may prevent their bodies from being frozen, but ten days
-from now there will be no food, and unless food can be secured, nothing
-can prevent their dispersal or starvation. I have determined that they
-shall neither disperse nor starve. The Omsk Ministers have forgotten us,
-the Supreme Governor has given his orders, but these paltry people who
-ought to assist him do nothing. We must do their work ourselves."
-Reading down a list of the necessities of his army he said: "You
-gentlemen will produce these things within ten days. If on February 21
-these supplies are not to hand, that will be the end of everything so
-far as you ten gentlemen are concerned."
-
-"He allowed no discussion," said M. Pastrokoff, "and if he had we should
-have been discussing it now, and the Terrorists would have re-occupied
-Perm. I returned home and felt cold in the feet. I had a guard of
-fifteen men placed on my person, the others the same. I knew that some
-of my companions in distress were muddlers, but sent for my friend ----
-and drew our plans for carrying out the general's orders. We were
-greatly helped in this determination by witnessing the execution of a
-company and platoon commander of one of our regiments under General
-Hepoff's orders for having allowed thirty men of their company to desert
-to the enemy during an affair of outposts. We saw we had to deal with a
-man who never went back on his word."
-
-On February 18 the general sent his aide-de-camp to inform the ten that
-it would be necessary for them to put their affairs in order as they
-would be taken to the front for execution, so that the starving soldiers
-might know their immediate chiefs were not responsible for the condition
-of the army. M. Pastrokoff was able to prove the things were on the
-way, and only the disorganised condition of the railway made it
-necessary to ask for a few days' grace. The general granted four days,
-at the end of which the goods were delivered as per instructions. "What
-did the general then do?" I asked. "When his soldiers were fed he burst
-into my house and kissed me, and would have gone on his knees if I would
-have allowed him. He has been here several times since, and we have
-become great friends. He is a true Russian!" added Pastrokoff proudly.
-
-We returned to Ekaterinburg on April 29, and were surprised to find that
-General Knox and the Headquarters Staff had removed from Omsk and taken
-up position there. The Hampshires were about to move up; barrack and
-other accommodation had already been secured. The first echelon arrived
-the following morning. An Anglo-Russian brigade of infantry was in
-course of formation and seemed likely to prove a great success. It
-offered employment for the numerous officers and N.C.O.s who had arrived
-and for whom no proper place for work had so far been provided. It was
-truly a stroke of genius for our War Office to flood us with officers
-and men as instructors for the new Russian army, scarcely one of whom
-could speak a word of Russian! I feel sure the Russians and ourselves
-will get on well together, we are so much alike. Omsk and Whitehall are
-true to type; they each first exhaust the possibility of error, and when
-no wrong course is left, the right road becomes quite easy. The only
-difference is in the motive. Ours is mostly because social influence is
-always on the side of educated mediocrity, and theirs because self,
-coupled with corruption, is their natural incentive to all exertion. We
-have a different standard; all our theories of Government preclude the
-possibility of hidden personal advantage in the transaction of State
-business. The Russian view is that no competent official could be
-expected to conduct business transactions for the State unless he
-personally gains some advantage. If an official neglected a private
-opportunity so obvious, it would justify the suspicion that his scruples
-would make him unequal to the proper protection of the State. In other
-words, the official who is poor at the end of a decent term of office
-never should have been trusted with the interests of the community. It
-is strange to hear them catalogue the proved cases of corruption amongst
-officials of other countries. They never forget a case of this kind no
-matter in which country it occurred. They argue that they are no worse
-than others, forgetting that these exceptions only prove the rule,
-whereas in Russia the honest official is rather the exception. After
-all, public opinion decides the standard of conduct adopted by a
-country. Morals change with time, also with countries and peoples. A
-harem would be a nuisance in London, but stands as a sign of Allah's
-blessing in Constantinople.
-
-I returned to Omsk on May 3 to find that the snow and ice had given
-place to a storm of dust which crept through every crevice of one's
-habitation and flavoured everything with dirt and grit. It was, if
-anything, worse than a sandstorm in the Sudan. The Sudan type is fairly
-clean, but this Omsk variety is a cloud of atomic filth which carries
-with it every known quality of pollution and several that are quite
-unknown. I don't remember being able to smell a Sudan storm, but this
-monstrous production stank worse than a by-election missile. The service
-of a British soldier on these special trips is not exactly a sinecure.
-The people at home who pay can be sure their money is well earned before
-Tommy gets it. The south wind sweeps up from Mongolia and Turkestan, and
-while it brings warmth to our frozen bones its blessing becomes a bit
-mixed with other things before we get them. I only mention it, not to
-complain! We never do in war-time!
-
-A special dispatch from London arrived on May 5 which delayed my
-starting for Vladivostok. If the object at which it aimed could have
-been secured it would have been a beam of light upon a very sombre
-subject. I had a lengthy conference with General Knox upon my tour to
-the Urals and the facts gathered as to the mineral and productive
-resources of the districts through which I had passed. The London
-dispatch also occupied our attention, and as the Supreme Governor had
-fixed the next day for my final farewell interview with himself, the
-possible course of our conversation was also considered. It was arranged
-that my journey to "Vlady" should be delayed until the matter referred
-to in the dispatch had been dealt with in accordance with instructions.
-
-My audience with the Supreme Governor was very cordial, and he
-especially thanked me for the help I had rendered himself and Russia in
-the dark days of November and December, 1918. He expressed the opinion
-that my mission to the workmen had been a great success, and was the
-first piece of definite work so far accomplished in the reconstruction
-and resurrection of the Russian State. He pointed out that his own
-labours were devoted to the one object of restoring order to the
-country, but that this work could only be performed by a powerful army.
-England had rendered him all help possible, but still the military
-problem engrossed all his thoughts and precluded his taking active part
-in the work of social reconstruction. He thought his Ministers and other
-assistants would have been able to help in it, but he had been sadly
-mistaken, and his experience had taught him that it was necessary to
-learn everything himself and therefore he was all the more grateful for
-my assistance. We took tea together, during which he informed me that he
-was about to start for the front to arrange for a further push along the
-northern line towards Vatka in the direction of Petrograd, with the
-chance of forming a junction with the forces at Archangel, and if
-General Knox would consent he wished me to remain at Omsk until he
-returned. General Knox placed the London dispatch before the Supreme
-Governor, and I remained to assist in settling its details.
-
-On May 7 the Chief of the British Mission, Major-General Knox, asked me
-to assist him in drafting the reply to the London dispatch. The heads
-having been agreed to by the Supreme Governor, it was necessary to
-consult with the Minister who assisted him with his foreign affairs. He
-is distinguished by a sort of cleverness which borders very closely to
-cunning. In a few years he will probably make a very able diplomat of
-the old type, but whether that is the sort of equipment which will serve
-under the new order, now in the throes of birth, remains to be seen. He
-is Republican, having lived long in America, and honestly believes that
-Russia must be directed in her orientation towards Republican countries
-rather than to the evidently permanently and exclusively Monarchist
-country, England. There I think I know more of his Russian
-fellow-countrymen and better understand their character and sentiments
-than he! But he is very young, very able, and his name is Sukin, and he
-has time to learn.
-
-In accordance with the wish of the Governor, the dispatch and draft were
-shown to him, and a few hours later, while dining with a Cossack
-general, I was asked if I knew anything about a dispatch from London
-that was making a great stir amongst the members of the French and
-American Missions. I answered that being a regimental officer, not
-attached to the English Mission, dispatches were not my business, though
-as a rule if important dispatches arrived, I heard about them; I had
-heard of no dispatch which could upset the French or American Missions.
-
-I informed Consul Hodgson, who was representing the High Commissioner in
-his absence, of this, and it was decided to hurry on with the
-construction and completion of the draft. It was completed in its final
-shape by General Knox and myself in his train at the Omsk Vatka in
-front of the Russian Staffka, 9.30 A.M., May 9, 1919.
-
-Much of this Russian "Bill of Rights" had to be pushed down the throats
-of the Russian official elements. The Supreme Governor never wavered
-over a single point; his large democratic sympathies were satisfied by
-his signature to what he hoped would be the foundation of Russian
-liberty. How fortunate for Russia that she had such a man to call upon
-in her hour of need! No matter what the final result of his efforts may
-be, whether success or defeat, his was the mind and personality that
-enabled this great people to bridge what looked like an impossible gulf
-and turn their faces to the sun.
-
-How fortunate it was that at this critical hour in Russian history
-England was represented by Major-General Knox! I had never heard of him
-till I went to Siberia, yet in him we have a man combining the courage
-of the soldier with the higher qualities of a statesman, ready made for
-the special business in hand. The British Empire doubtless, like Topsy,
-"growed"! It is more an exhibition of race luck than genius. The way in
-which we occasionally drop the right man in the right place is not an
-act of Government so much as a stroke of chance. We make awful bloomers
-in these matters sometimes, but in this case our luck stood by us to
-some purpose. More than once, when the timidity of the "Politicals" had
-almost destroyed Russian faith in our honesty of purpose, the robust
-honesty of his personality turned the scale in our favour. Every Russian
-trusts him, except those who have forgotten they are Russians. They
-hate him. That is the real certificate of his worth. I can quite
-understand the fear of some Labour elements at home that our presence in
-Siberia may be used by reactionaries to re-establish the old regime. Had
-I been at home I might have had the same feeling. But I was there, and
-knew that it was our very presence which made that for the moment
-impossible. The excesses of the Bolsheviks made the people, both peasant
-and workman, hanker after the comparative security of the Tsars. The
-reactionary elements would have been only too pleased to see our backs;
-our presence was a safeguard against the absolutism for which some of
-them scheme. The weariness of the peasantry and workmen with
-revolutionary disorder gave the opportunity to reaction to establish
-another absolutism which was only restrained by outside influence.
-Major-General Knox does not write polished dispatches upon army
-movements under his command, but he perhaps performed greater service to
-humanity and democracy by his patient and efficient handling on the spot
-of one of the great world problems.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-MAKING AN ATAMAN
-
-
-General Evan Pootenseiff arranged a parade of the 2nd Siberian Cossack
-Regiment outside Omsk on May 14 to say "Good-bye" to the "Anglisky
-Polkovnika," his officers and soldiers. Needless to say, we were all
-there, and it was an occasion that will be remembered by all who had the
-honour to be present. Those who look upon the Cossacks as a sort of
-untrained irregular cavalry had better revise their ideas at once, for
-fear of further future miscalculations. The evolutions of this force in
-every branch of cavalry work are simply superb. The Cossack control of
-his horse, either singly or in combination, is not approached by any
-army in the world. The parade was under the immediate command of the
-Assistant Ataman, Colonel Bezovsky, and the wonderful display of
-horsemanship was loudly applauded by the English Tommies, who were the
-most interested spectators.
-
-The parade over, the officers adjourned to an extremely artistic Kirghis
-tent pitched on a treeless plain, where lunch was served; but the viands
-were left untouched until the toast of "His Britannic Majesty" had been
-drunk in good Tsaristic vodka. Then it became a real military
-fraternisation. Officers inside, soldiers out. No civilian was allowed
-to approach within three versts, except the old Kirghis chief who,
-dressed in his picturesque native dress, had travelled over fifty versts
-to attend the function of making an English Ataman. The band of the
-Cossack regiment tried valiantly to enliven the proceedings with music,
-but the English marching choruses soon silenced all opposition. Then the
-Cossack commander called his men around, and giving time with his
-cowhide thong, led them through some of the most weird Cossack war songs
-it is possible to imagine. The difference in our mentality was never so
-well illustrated as in the songs of the two people. Ours were lively,
-happy, and full of frolic and fun; theirs were slow, sad wails, which
-can only come from the heart of a long troubled people. The songs of
-Ermak Tinothavitch, the conqueror of Siberia, were fierce and martial,
-but the strain of tragedy ran through them all.
-
-Then the Cossacks placed their commander upon two swords and tossed him
-while singing the song of Stenkarazin, the robber chief, and at the end
-drew their swords and demanded toll, which took the form of five bottles
-extra. I was then admitted to the fraternity and presented with the
-Ataman's badge, and after due ceremony with a Cossack sword, by the
-regiment, admitted to their circle. I went through the sword tossing,
-and gained freedom for 100 roubles; and here my narrative of the making
-of a Cossack had better end. Sufficient to say I never met a
-freer-hearted set of men in my travels round the world than these
-dreadful guardians of the Tsars, and if in course of time I get tired of
-England, I shall claim my kinship with these freemen of forest and
-plain. These men so love liberty that not even the Tsars dared interfere
-with their rights.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI
-
-HOMEWARD BOUND
-
-
-On May 17 Omsk was excluded from the Vatka (station), and by this
-indirect means became aware that the Supreme Governor was returning from
-the front. The Cossack Guard lined up outside, while detachments of
-Russian infantry in English uniform occupied the platform. The Russian
-Tommies looked quite smart, and except for their long, narrow,
-triangular bayonets, might easily have been mistaken for English troops.
-While awaiting the train, General Knox informed me that two of our
-proposals, "Women's suffrage" and "Universal education," had been cut
-out by the reactionaries. Why are the churches of the world so hostile
-to the popular education of the people? The Church is quite prepared to
-allow the people to receive educational instruction if controlled by the
-priests. It prefers to leave them in ignorance and the easy prey of
-Bolshevik charlatanism rather than allow free play for intelligent
-thinking. Women's suffrage was opposed by quite a different set of men,
-mostly those who make enormous display of deference to drawing-room
-ladies, and look upon us Englishmen as wanting in gallantry because we
-do not kiss every feminine hand we shake. On the whole I think it is
-good to have pushed them ahead so far. Measured by Russian standards, it
-amounts to a revolution in ideas of government. The great thing just now
-is to fix some point beyond which the pendulum shall not be allowed to
-swing towards reaction. The workmen are sick of strife and would gladly
-go straight back to the old regime as an easy way of escape from
-Bolshevism. This is the danger from which English diplomacy has tried,
-and is trying, to guard the Russian people if possible.
-
-Thus, having finished my work at Omsk, I asked that arrangements might
-be made as quickly as possible to transport my escort and myself to
-Vladivostok. The arrangements were completed by May 21, when I announced
-myself ready to begin the first stage of my journey homeward. The
-Supreme Governor surprised me by proposing to visit me in my carriage at
-the Vatka to say "Good-bye." At 7 P.M. he came, attended by his
-aide-de-camp; he was very gracious in his thanks for my services to the
-Russian people. He said my voice, presence and influence had aroused the
-better elements to throw off the feeling of despair which had so
-universally settled upon them. He did not presume to calculate the good
-I had done, though none appreciated it better than himself, since we had
-been thrown by circumstances into personal contact with each other.
-Without attempting to form an estimate of his character, I considered
-his visit and words the act of a gentleman, and as such I appreciated
-it.
-
-I could but recall the last time he visited me in those dark, doubtful
-days of November, when I, who had no thought or place in my make-up for
-the word "Dictator," suddenly found myself in the presence of him who
-had that moment assumed such a position, and what was more serious for
-me, found myself forced on my own authority, unaided by one word of
-warning or counsel from others, instantly to decide not only my own
-attitude but also, to some extent, that of my country to this last act
-in the drama of a people grown desperate. Once having given my promise
-to help, he never found that help withheld at critical moments later.
-The British forces were few, but they were disciplined and knew their
-own mind, and this was what every other party, both Russian and Allied,
-lacked. Every Allied force had its "Politicals" at hand, and therefore
-were powerless for any purpose. The Fates had sent ours to Vladivostok,
-5,000 versts east, at the very moment when their presence and general
-political policy would have paralysed correct military action. The month
-which intervened before they could exert direct influence upon the
-situation enabled us to consolidate the new orientation. The greater
-part of this time we were "in the air," having cut our own
-communications, and no countermanding orders could interrupt or confuse
-the nerve centre. At first the "Politicals" were inclined to be angry,
-but with such a tower of strength as General Knox in support they soon
-came to look upon the proceedings as a _fait accompli_. Later they
-confessed that their absence at the supreme moment was the act of a wise
-Providence. The very nature of their business (had they been present)
-would have created delays and difficulties that might have proved fatal
-to success.
-
-Except for some quaint fetish about the necessity for maintaining the
-usual diplomatic forms, there is no necessity for delay in emergencies
-of this description. If an ordinarily intelligent Englishman, with a
-fair knowledge of English history and a grasp of the traditions and
-mentality of his countrymen, cannot carry on, how are people miles away,
-with no opportunity to visualise the actual situation, to instruct him?
-Diplomatic methods and forms are all right for leisurely negotiations,
-but are useless in urgent and dangerous occasions. If my work fails, as
-even now it may, I shall be subject to severe criticism; but I shall get
-that even if it succeeds, so what does it matter so long as in my own
-mind I did the best in the circumstances?
-
-My journey east was broken at Krasnoyarsk to enable me to interview the
-new commander, General Rosanoff, who had taken in hand the suppression
-of the revolt of the Lettish peasants north of the railway. South of the
-line all hostile elements had been dispersed. The line cut through the
-centre of the Bolshevik field of operations. The Czechs guarded the
-actual railway, and while they prevented large forces from moving across
-it, they took but little trouble to prevent miscreants from tampering
-with the rails, as was evidenced by the scores of derailed trains in all
-stages of destruction strewn along the track. This naturally involved
-great material loss and, what was still worse, a huge toll of innocent
-human life. One train, a fast passenger, accounted for two hundred
-women and children, besides uncounted men. Fairly large Russian forces
-were now placed at General Rosanoff's disposal, and by a wide turning
-movement from Krasnoyarsk in a north-easterly direction, and with a
-large cavalry force operating towards the north-west from Irkutsk, the
-whole gang would, it was hoped, be herded towards the centre, and a few
-weeks would probably liquidate the whole disturbance. The Krasnoyarsk
-and the Ussurie movements of the Bolsheviks were under the direction of
-able officers appointed by the Red Guard Headquarters at Moscow, with
-whom they were in constant communication.
-
-Passing Irkutsk, we again struck the Baikal--looking more glorious than
-before. The warm south-west winds had cleared the snow from the western
-hills and thawed the ice from that half of the sea. The other half was
-still ice-bound. In the morning sunshine the snow-covered mountains in
-the east pierced the heavens with the radiance of eternal day. The
-disappearance of the sun only adds to their beauty; they alone seem to
-know no night. As we travelled round under the shadow of these giants
-the temperature fell many degrees below zero, and the cold from the
-water penetrated the carriages, necessitating fires and warm furs, in
-spite of the June sunshine.
-
-I had received intimation that it would be of service to the Omsk
-Government if I would call upon Colonel Semianoff and use my good
-offices and my newly-conferred honour as a Siberian Cossack Ataman to
-recall this erring son of Muscovy to the service of the State. I knew
-that British pressure had been applied to persuade the Japanese to cease
-their financial and moral support--both open and secret--to this
-redoubtable opponent of the Russian Government, and it was rumoured that
-British wishes had at last been complied with. It was common knowledge
-that the illegal floggings, murders, and robberies committed under the
-alleged authority of Colonel Semianoff would not have remained
-unpunished a day if he had not been under the protection of one of the
-most numerously represented Allied forces. Whatever faults may be
-alleged against Admiral Koltchak, cruelty or injustice cannot be
-included among them. I well remember his fury when it was reported to
-him that some eighty workmen had been illegally flogged by Semianoff's
-soldiers at Chita. His poor dilapidated reserves were ordered to move at
-once to their protection. Semianoff prepared his armoured trains and
-troops to receive them, but the same Allied Power which fed, clothed,
-and armed his troops kept at bay those who were ordered to avenge the
-wrongs of the Russian workmen.
-
-On another occasion I remember Admiral Koltchak's almost hopeless
-despair when some truculent officers had used their weapons and badges
-of rank to secure the persons of some Bolshevik prisoners, and
-anticipating the decision of the court about to try them, shot them in
-cold blood. He at once executed the officers and men who handed them
-over, as well as such of those who took part in the conspiracy, even
-though they claimed to be merely the avengers of their own murdered
-families. Stern, impartial justice is part and parcel of this remarkable
-man's character. It was this very trait which made Semianoff and the
-Supreme Governor natural enemies.
-
-The day that I arrived at Chita it was officially announced that
-Semianoff had made his submission to the authority of Koltchak, and had
-accepted an appointment in the Russian Army. My task therefore changed
-its character; the proposed admonishment became a congratulation in a
-very frank and friendly half-hour's interview, the colonel returning the
-visit to my carriage later. Colonel Semianoff is one of the most
-striking personalities I have met in Russia; a man of medium height,
-with square broad shoulders, an enormous head, the size of which is
-greatly enhanced by the flat, Mongol face, from which gleam two clear,
-brilliant eyes that rather belong to an animal than a man. The whole
-pose of the man is at first suspicious, alert, determined, like a tiger
-ready to spring, to rend and tear, but in repose the change is
-remarkable, and with a quiet smile upon the brown face the body relaxes.
-Colonel Semianoff is a very pleasant personality. His great physical
-strength has caused the Japanese to name him "Samurai," or "Brave Knight
-of the Field," and I think that is a good description of his character.
-Relentless and brave, kindness nevertheless finds a part in his make-up.
-The princes of Mongolia have asked him to become their emperor, and
-should he choose this path a whirlwind will pass over the neighbouring
-lands. Perhaps underneath he is, after all, a good Russian--time will
-tell. If his conversion is real he will add a tower of strength to the
-Russian fighting forces.
-
-At Harbin I heard a full explanation of the reason for the Mongolians
-approaching Semianoff to become their emperor. Mongolia previous to the
-Revolution was considered as under a loose sort of Russian protection.
-Since the break-up of the Russian Empire the Japanese have cast longing
-eyes upon this extensive country, which is supposed to belong to both
-Russia and China but in reality it belongs to neither. The Japanese have
-roamed all over the country during these last two years, and have spent
-time and money lavishly in propaganda. They first tried to orientate the
-Mongol mind towards a direct connection with themselves, but their
-avarice and conceit offend all the people with whom they come into
-contact. This direct method of getting control of Mongolia had therefore
-to be abandoned in favour of a round-about but more dangerous policy.
-Colonel Semianoff is only half Russian, his mother being a Mongolian
-woman of high birth. He speaks Mongolian perfectly, and the Mongolians
-claim him for their own. Semianoff admitted to me personally that he had
-been subsidised all through by Japan. It was the Japanese who called the
-Mongolian princes together and prevailed upon them to offer Semianoff
-the title of Emperor of Mongolia. He had other fish to fry, however, but
-when his other schemes fail, as I think they must, he will be quite
-ready to play the Japanese game in Mongolia as faithfully as he did in
-Siberia. Semianoff will be the puppet, but Japan will pull the strings;
-that at least is their hope and belief.
-
-About thirty versts west of Manchuli our train was stopped by a red
-flag, and a railway workman informed us of a raid upon a homestead by
-the side of the railway, the robbers having decamped two hours before
-our arrival. The father had two bullets through his chest and one
-through the right side of his neck, and had crawled a distance of over a
-verst to give information. He was taken up on our train, and we went
-forward to the scene of the tragedy. In the small wooden house, covered
-with loose feathers, lay the dead body of the mother with her unborn
-baby, near by lay a girl of about ten with her head terribly wounded. In
-an outhouse was the body of their Chinese boy. My hospital orderly
-rendered what aid was possible to the girl, who was carried by Madame
-Frank to my carriage for conveyance to the hospital at Manchuli. A
-civilian doctor declared both cases hopeless, and the depositions of the
-man were taken. Briefly thus:
-
-When the Bolsheviks first occupied Manchuli a railway workman of
-anarchist tendencies was appointed Soviet Commissar of the district.
-Afterwards, when the Bolshevik power was destroyed and their forces were
-driven off the railway, the Bolshevik bands took to the forest, some
-engaging in running contraband over the Chinese frontier, others forming
-themselves into bands who not only robbed the isolated peasantry, but
-forced young men to join them, and afterwards levied toll upon large
-villages and small towns. About three in the morning this Bolshevik
-Commissar knocked at the cottage door and asked the father to let him
-come in, as he was very tired, having had a long journey with
-contraband. Believing him to be alone, the man opened the door. The room
-was immediately filled with armed men, who demanded his savings or his
-life. The commissar, from his knowledge of such matters, believing his
-savings to be in the feather pillow, ripped it open and found 4,600
-roubles. Having collected all the other small articles of value in the
-house, these innocent children of the Revolution held consultation on
-the necessity of killing everybody who knew them to be Bolsheviks, so
-that the crime should be cast upon the Chinese robber gangs who
-occasionally raid Russian territory. This important point in the
-regeneration of Russia settled, they shot the man in the chest, the
-bullet coming out by the shoulder-blade. The wife, begging for the life
-of her husband, was bayoneted, and the aroused Chinese workman was
-dispatched with a rifle. Then these harmless idealists proceeded to
-depart. So far they had not touched the girl, but the father, on
-regaining consciousness, heard the closed door open again, saw the
-leader of the "comrades" re-enter and pick up a small axe near the fire,
-with which he proceeded to smash the head of the child. Nature in its
-terrible revolt gave the father the power to raise himself slightly from
-the floor in a vain effort to grapple with this representative of the
-new regime. The commissar shouted: "What, still alive!" and fired two
-more point-blank shots at the prostrate man.
-
-It was entirely due to the tenacity of the father that the object of the
-killing was frustrated and the identification of the scoundrels with the
-Bolshevik commanders operating in this neighbourhood completed. I had
-no time to pick up the trail and punish the murderers. What sort of
-punishment the Tommies would have decided as necessary to fit the crime
-is better imagined than described!
-
-It was June when we passed over the Hinghan range, a series of sand
-mountains of great extent which form the breeding-ground for numerous
-herds of horses who spread themselves over the slopes and plains and
-sometimes endanger the safety of the railway. Snow was falling in
-clouds, and banked itself against the rails and telegraphs in a
-surprising manner considering the time of the year. The summer of this
-wild region lasts about two months--July and August--during which time
-the sand becomes hot, and travelling is not comfortable. After crossing
-the summit the plains fell gradually away, enabling the trains to move
-with great rapidity, and in less than two days we struck Harbin, and
-donned our topees and tropical clothes.
-
-Harbin is the centre of Chinese and Russian political and financial
-intrigue. Other races take a fair hand in the business, but the
-predominance must be conceded to these two. There is some sort of
-national feeling amongst the worst type of Russian speculator, but none
-amongst the Chinese. The Harbin Chinaman is perfectly denationalised,
-and ought, therefore, according to some standards of political
-reckonings, to be the most ideal citizen in the world; but the world who
-knows him hopes that for ever he may be exclusively confined to Harbin.
-I had a long conversation with General Ghondati, one of the most
-level-headed living statesmen of the old regime. All his hopes are
-centred on the success of Admiral Koltchak in his efforts to secure
-order to enable the National Assembly to consider the question of a
-Constitutional Monarchy on England's pattern to be established at
-Moscow. If this cannot be, he fears Russia's travail will last longer
-and may be fatal to her existence. He was not himself opposed to a
-Federal Republic, but was certain that without a head the undisciplined
-semi-oriental elements would never accept the abolition of absolutism as
-final. The Russian people have it in their bones to obey a leader; their
-warlike nature precludes the possibility of their continued loyalty to a
-junta, however able. A crown on top, with a parliament to control and
-direct, would be the happiest solution of Russia's present difficulties.
-He summed his theory up in these words: "A properly elected parliament
-to make the law and rule, but there must be a monarch to issue its
-orders."
-
-Though this is the expressed opinion of what the Bolshevik would term
-one of the "old regime," it is nevertheless the openly-expressed opinion
-of the sensible leaders of every class of Russian society except
-two--the Bolsheviks at one end, and the Absolutists at the other. More
-than once already these two extremes have come close together to
-frustrate the possibility of a compromise on constitutional lines. They
-openly declare that, unless power is given to either one or the other,
-they would prefer that the present anarchy should continue. It is not
-the first time in revolutionary history that the adherents of autocracy
-(Royalist and otherwise) have preferred the ruin of their country rather
-than lose their own personal power.
-
-Ghondati is a clear-headed patriot, and I am surprised that his counsel
-has not been sought for in this supreme moment of his country's history.
-His ideas relating to recognition by the Powers were rather remarkable.
-He did not think that any country could give help to Russia without
-either asking for conditions or being suspected of doing so. The only
-exception was England. The reason England is not suspected is that her
-Empire is so vast and varied in character that she has all the raw
-material for her trade and all the space she requires for her surplus
-population. Her help, unlike that of any other State so far, has been
-unselfish and unconditional. Ghondati quite saw that "this fact was
-producing a steady and permanent orientation of Russian opinion towards
-England, which, if cultivated by British statesmanship, would eventually
-give my country everything she required, while those whose help was
-always surrounded with conditions would have great difficulty to retain
-the advantages they secured only under the pressure of circumstances."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII
-
-AMERICAN POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-
-
-At Nikolsk my train was stopped as the No. 4 Post train from Vladivostok
-had been wrecked by Bolsheviks, a startling situation considering that
-eleven months previously the whole power of Bolshevism had been
-destroyed in these maritime provinces. The station commandant was an old
-friend, who had given me his own private official carriage at the time
-when our little yellow brother had decided to lower the prestige of his
-white Ally in Eastern eyes by making British officers travel in
-cattle-trucks. He came into my car and began to explain how the
-cross-purposes of the American and Japanese forces were producing a
-state of uncertainty and disorder as bad, if not worse, than existed
-under the Bolshevik regime. Our conversation was cut short by the
-receipt of a telegram from the station-master at Kraevesk. It was to the
-effect that he was using his own line from his house, because a few
-minutes previously a detachment of the Red Guard had entered the station
-and, in the presence of the American soldiers who were guarding the
-railway, had placed himself and his staff under arrest and taken
-possession of the station; that the Reds had sent a message to Shmakovka
-ordering all Russian railway officials and staff to leave their posts,
-as the Bolshevik army, with the sanction of the American forces, was
-about to take over the line. The Red Guard officer in proof of his order
-stated "that fifteen American soldiers are now standing in the room from
-which I am sending this message." Having issued these orders in the
-presence of the Americans, they had removed the telegraph and telephone
-apparatus, and the station-master wished to know what he was to do and
-whether any help could be sent him. Imagine my utter astonishment at
-this message, containing, as it undoubtedly did, evidence of
-co-operation and understanding between the Bolshevik forces and one of
-our Allies.
-
-In one of my numerous interviews with Admiral Koltchak at Omsk he had
-made some very serious statements regarding the American policy in the
-Far East, which he feared would result in reproducing the previous state
-of disorder. I assured him that the policy of the Allies was to resist
-disorder and support order, and that I could not believe America had
-come to Siberia to make his task more difficult, but to help him in
-every reasonable way. He agreed that such was the intention of the
-American people, but he feared that the American command was being used
-for quite other purposes. His officers had informed him that out of
-sixty liaison officers and translators with American Headquarters over
-fifty were Russian Jews or the relatives of Russian Jews; some had been
-exiled from Russia for political and other offences, and had returned as
-American citizens, capable of influencing American policy in a direction
-contrary to that desired by the American people. I assured him that
-this could not be, and that his people might themselves in this matter
-be under the influence of a near Eastern neighbour not friendly to
-American interference in Eastern affairs, and that under this influence
-they might greatly magnify the danger. My words seemed to ease the
-admiral's mind, but he regretfully replied that the reports were so
-voluminous and categorical in character that he thought I, as a
-representative of the people of England, as well as an officer of His
-Majesty's Army, ought to be made acquainted with the situation.
-
-This matter had almost disappeared from my mind, but the message from
-the station-master at Kraevesk revived it with the vividness of a sudden
-blow. I at once determined to make myself acquainted as far as possible
-with the policy of the American commanders, and with this object in view
-I interviewed many American officers and soldiers. I found that both
-officers and men were most anxious to render all the help possible to
-maintain Koltchak's authority and crush disorder in the Far East, and,
-as they put it, "justify their presence in Siberia." Many felt that at
-the time they were only helping the Bolsheviks to recover their lost
-hold upon the people by providing neutral territory for Bolshevik
-propaganda; that when they arrived in the country in August, 1918, the
-English, Czechs, and Japanese, with the aid of such Russian units as
-then existed, had reduced the maritime provinces to order, but that
-their own efforts had produced a state of affairs similar to, if not
-worse than, those which existed during the actual Bolshevik occupation.
-I learnt from these American troops that their officers and officials,
-from General Graves downwards, had been in actual correspondence with
-Red Guard officers, and that more than one understanding had been
-arrived at between them; that for a time the ordinary American soldiers
-thought the understanding between the two forces was so general and
-friendly in character that no further hostile acts were to be
-contemplated between them. It was true that this wrecking of trains and
-attacks on the line guarded by American soldiers made things look
-serious, but they felt sure that the confidence existing between the
-American and Red Guard Headquarters was so well established that these
-acts of brigandage could only be due to some misunderstanding. The
-Kraevesk affair appeared to be only a symptom of a much wider policy,
-and not the foolish act of a negligent subordinate officer.
-
-Following up my inquiries there fell into my hands a letter, dated May
-24, from the American officer (Captain ----) commanding the American
-forces at Svagena, addressed to the officer commanding the Red Guard
-operating in that district. The American officer addressed the Red Guard
-commandant as a recognised officer of equal military standing. The
-American officer complained that after a recent fraternisation of the
-two forces which had taken place in accordance with previous
-arrangements near the "wood mill," on the departure of the Red troops he
-received reports that the Red Guard officer had ordered the destruction
-of certain machinery at the mill, and had also torn up two sections of
-the line at points east and west of the station at Svagena. The American
-captain enumerated other accusations against the Red Guard, such as
-threats to bayonet certain orderly disposed people who would not join
-the Bolshevik army, and warned the Red Commissar that these acts were
-contrary to the _agreement_ entered into by the chiefs of the American
-and Red forces, and if such acts were repeated he would take steps to
-punish those who committed such breaches of _their joint understanding_.
-
-I think this letter from the American officer at Svagena is positive
-proof of some local or general understanding between the American
-authorities and the Red army operating in the maritime provinces, and
-further, that this understanding had existed for many months; that it
-was this understanding which prevented the American forces joining in
-the combined Allied expedition to relieve the besieged Russian garrison
-in the Suchan district; that under this American-Bolshevik agreement the
-small scattered Red Guard bands who were dispersed by the Allies at the
-battle of Dukoveskoie in August, have collected together and formed
-definite military units. In other words, that the American policy,
-unconsciously or otherwise, has produced a state of indecision amongst
-the Allies, and unrest and anarchy amongst the population of the
-Transbaikal and Ussurie Provinces, which may prove disastrous to the
-rapid establishment of order in Russia.
-
-There are other indications that the presence of the American forces in
-Siberia has been used by somebody for purposes not purely American. The
-business of the American command is to secure order in those districts
-which have been placed under its control by the Council of Allied
-Commanders. There is another self-evident and obvious duty, namely, to
-shape their conduct in such manner as to create friendly relations with
-such elements of Russian authority and order as are gradually appearing
-here and there, under the influence of the Supreme Governor, and also
-provide as little space and opportunity as possible for the collection
-and reorganisation of the elements of disorder. The policy of the
-American command, quite unintentionally perhaps, has been quite the
-reverse. Their policy has resulted in turning every Russian authority
-against them, or, where this has not happened, they have themselves
-turned against Russian authority. They have prepared plans and created
-opportunities for the reorganisation of the forces of disorder which, if
-it does not actually create a serious situation for themselves, will do
-so for those Allies who are trying to bring order out of chaos. The
-reduction of the whole country to order, to enable it to decide its own
-future form of Government, is as much an American as a British object.
-That some sinister underground influence has deflected American policy
-from this straight and honest course is quite obvious.
-
-Contrary to general Allied opinion, the American command declared a
-neutral zone in the Suchan district. Armed operations by Russian, i.e.
-Admiral Koltchak's or Red Guard forces, were prohibited within this
-zone. Lenin and Trotsky's officers jumped at this order and at once
-began to collect their scattered forces together. Within three weeks
-they raised their Bolshevik flag on their own headquarters, under the
-protection of the flag of the United States. From this neutral American
-zone the Bolsheviks organised their forces for attacking the Japanese on
-the Amur, for destroying British and other supply trains on the Ussurie
-Railway, and finally exchanged shots with the Russian sentries near
-Vladivostok itself, always bolting back to the American zone when
-attacked by the forces of the Supreme Governor.
-
-The other Allies and the Russians having got the measure of this neutral
-zone business, naturally took steps to protect their men and property,
-and for a time the operations of this very energetic Lenin officer were
-confined to robbing and destroying a few isolated villages in the
-maritime provinces; but the utter absurdity of American policy was at
-last brought home to the Americans themselves. The Red Guard commandant,
-chafing under the restrictions imposed upon him by the Russian and
-Japanese forces (in which the British also joined when Captain Edwards
-could get near with his good ship _Kent_), decided to attack the
-unsuspecting Americans themselves. The Red Guard were very clever in
-their operations. The American troops were guarding the
-Vladivostok-Suchan Railway; the neutral zone was situated at the extreme
-end of the line. If the Red Guard had attacked the end near the zone
-their tactics would have been discovered at once. They therefore usually
-marched out from the American zone, made a detour through villages and
-forest, and struck the railway at a point as far distant as possible.
-Destroying a bit of line--perhaps, if they had good luck, burning a
-bridge--they usually exchanged a few shots with the American troops, and
-if pressed, marched back to the zone under the protection of a section
-of the very forces they had been raiding. The American command naturally
-became more vigilant on the distant sections of the line, and this
-forced the Bolsheviks to operate nearer and nearer the protected zone;
-but in the meantime they managed to kill several Russian soldiers, wound
-a few Americans, and destroy five different sections of the railway.
-Then they operated too near the zone, and the American troops pressed
-them straight into their own zone, where, to add insult to injury, they
-claimed that in accordance with the American proclamation they could not
-be molested as military operations were prohibited within the zone!
-
-Instead of proceeding to root out this nest of pirates, someone
-suggested that a more comprehensive and binding arrangement was
-necessary between the American and Red Guard forces, to prevent such
-regrettable occurrences in future. It was common talk that a conference
-between the Red Guard commander and General Graves, the American G.O.C.,
-was actually arranged, but was dropped when the Supreme Governor's
-representative in the Far East declared to General Graves personally
-that his proposed conference with the enemies of the Russian Government
-would be considered as a hostile act. The breaking off of these
-negotiations caused great annoyance to the Soviet Government at Moscow,
-and they ordered their commissars in Ussurie to use the forces which had
-been organised under American protection to attack their protectors,
-which they at once proceeded to do. This doubtless altered the
-relationship of these two parties, though the chances are that the
-powerful influence which forced the American commanders into this
-ill-fated policy will be powerful enough to prevent an open American
-declaration against the Reds in the Far East.
-
-It is well at this stage to estimate the effect this American muddle has
-had, and will continue to exert, upon the effort of the Allies to secure
-some sort of order in the Russian Empire, and upon the position of the
-Americans themselves in their future relations with the Russian people.
-The American troops were spread over the whole province from Vladivostok
-to Nevsniudinsk, a point just east of the Sea of Baikal. They were
-almost entirely confined to the railway, but in this country the railway
-is the centre and heart of all things. American policy at Vladivostok
-applied to the whole of this area, which is really the Transbaikal
-provinces, or all Siberia east of Baikal. In the early days of
-September, 1918, when I passed with my battalion towards Omsk, this
-immense area had been reduced to order by the efforts of the Allies, at
-the head of which I place the gallant Czechs. The American forces
-arrived too late to take part in the military operations, but began to
-settle down to the work of administration with energy and ability. The
-French moved forward after myself, and the Italian unit followed later,
-leaving the American and Japanese, with such isolated local Russian
-forces as had called themselves into being, in absolute possession of
-Transbaikal Siberia. There was not a single band of Red Guards one
-thousand strong in the whole territory. After nine months of Allied
-occupation the Reds organised, largely under American protection, two
-divisions (so called) of from 5,000 to 7,000 men, and numerous
-subsidiary units of a few hundred, who murdered and robbed in every
-direction, and destroyed every semblance of order which the Supreme
-Governor and the Allies had with so much labour attempted to set up.
-Thus this huge province in a short time descended from comparative order
-to sporadic disorder, simply because America had no Russian policy of
-her own, and rejected that of her friends.
-
-It was a major mistake of England and France to leave America and Japan
-cheek by jowl without a moderating influence, to wreck the good work
-they had accomplished in the Far East. The rivalries of these two Powers
-in this part of the world were well known and should have been provided
-for. It was too much to expect that they would forget their concession
-and trade rivalries in a disinterested effort to help Russia. States are
-not usually philanthropic organisations, these two least of all. The
-work has therefore to be largely done over again, either by us or by the
-Supreme Governor, Admiral Koltchak. Or the Allies, finding the task too
-great, may retire and allow this huge province, probably the wealthiest
-part of the world, to recede back to the barbarism of the Bolshevik.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII
-
-JAPANESE POLICY AND ITS RESULTS
-
-
-The lack of Allied cohesion produced by the defection of American policy
-from that of the European Powers may change completely the status and
-future of American enterprise in Siberia. America has transformed a
-friendly population into at least a suspicious, if not a hostile, one.
-Japan, on the other hand, has steadily pursued her special interests and
-taken full advantage of every American mistake, until she is now looked
-upon as the more important of the two.
-
-The attitude of Japan to the Russian problem made a complete somersault
-in the course of the year August, 1918, to August, 1919. When Japan sent
-her 12th Division, under General Oie, to the Ussurie in 1918, she did so
-with a definite policy. Her ambitions were entirely territorial in
-character; they doubtless remain so. The line of her advance has,
-however, completely changed. In 1918 she had made up her mind that
-Germany was bound to win the war; that Russia was a conquered country;
-that any day she might be called upon to repudiate her English alliance
-and her Entente engagements, and assist Germany and her Bolshevik Allies
-in driving the Entente Powers from the eastern end of the Tsar's
-dominions. Provided Germany defeated the Allies on the Western front,
-as she confidently anticipated, this task was well within her power. So
-insignificant was the task assigned to her in this eventuality that she
-confidently expected the immediate surrender of such scattered Allied
-and American forces as would find themselves marooned in this back end
-of the world. Believing this to be the position, she acted accordingly,
-treating the Russians and the other Allied forces in the stupidly
-arrogant manner I have already described. With the _naivete_ of a young
-Eastern prodigy she not only made demands upon her Allies, but at the
-same time made definite proposals to such Russian authorities as
-retained a precarious control over the territory she had already
-assigned to herself. On landing her troops at Vladivostok she presented,
-through her proper diplomatic agents, to the commander of that province
-a set of proposals which would have placed her in control of the Russian
-maritime provinces. The Russian commander asked that these demands
-should be put in writing, and the Japanese agent, after some demur,
-agreed, on the understanding that the first demands should not be
-considered as final but only as an instalment of others to come. The
-first proposal was that Japan should advance the commander 150,000,000
-roubles (old value) and the commander should sign an agreement giving
-Japan possession of the foreshore and fishing rights up to Kamchatka, a
-perpetual lease of the Engilsky mines, and the whole of the iron (less
-that belonging to the Allies) to be found in Vladivostok.
-
-The Town Commander appears to have been quite honest about the
-business, for in correspondence he pointed out that he was not the
-Government of Russia, neither could he sign the property or rights of
-Russia away in the manner suggested. The Japanese reply was simple and
-to the point: "Take our money and sign the agreement, and we will take
-the risks about the validity." The old Directorate, with Avkzentieff,
-Bolderoff & Co. standing sponsors for the Russian Convention, were
-supposed to control Russian affairs at this time. Directly the
-commandant refused to agree to the Japanese demands they transferred
-their claims to the old Directorate. The Directorate sent Evanoff Renoff
-to "Vlady" to conduct the negotiations, and I suppose to collect the
-money. When I was at "Vlady," in June, 1919, huge stores of iron were
-being collected, and some of it had already been shipped to Japan.
-Avkzentieff was exiled and Bolderoff was living in comfort and safety in
-Japan. These were the things that were above and could be seen; what
-happened to the other part of the first instalment of Japanese proposals
-for "helping" Russia will doubtless be known later.
-
-At the end of August, 1918, it was decided that until some sort of
-central authority to act as the organ of Government was set up, it was
-futile to hope for the return of orderly government. For this purpose
-the British went forward to Omsk and asked the Japanese to do likewise.
-The Japanese would not move, first because they wished to consolidate
-their power in the provinces nearest Japan, and secondly secure as many
-concessions as possible before America arrived on the scene. When
-America did arrive she still tarried to watch American operations. The
-British moved off into the unknown with a 5,000-mile line of unguarded
-communications; the Japanese, true to type, opened negotiations with the
-Directorate for the absolute possession of the railway to the Urals, and
-also asked what concessions she could expect to receive, territorial and
-mineral, as compensation for the use of her army for the Directorate's
-protection. A convention had just been signed, or was on the point of
-signature, between the Japanese and the Directorate, placing the entire
-railway under Japanese hands, when the Directorate fell. The first act
-of the Supreme Governor, Admiral Koltchak, was to inform the Japanese
-that the change in the Government involved a change in policy with
-regard to the advance of Japanese troops and the occupation of the
-railway. The Japanese protested, but the admiral stood firm.
-
-This attitude of the Supreme Governor was a serious setback to Japanese
-policy, and they became alarmed for their position in the Far East
-should his authority extend in that direction; but it is not difficult
-as a rule to find tools for any kind of work in Russia. Ataman Semianoff
-had for some time been kept by the Japanese in reserve for such an
-occasion. His forces were ranged around Chita, and his influence and
-authority extended from the Manchurian border to Lake Baikal. On
-receiving intimation of the change in policy from Admiral Koltchak, the
-Japanese ordered Semianoff to repudiate the Supreme Governor's
-authority; they gave the same instructions to Kalmakoff, who occupied a
-similar position on the Ussurie Railway and so placed an effective
-barrier between themselves, their Eastern concessions, and the Supreme
-Governor. The Supreme Governor ordered his Staff to clear these two
-mutineers off the line, but the Japanese Staff informed the Supreme
-Governor that these two Russian patriots and their forces were under the
-protection of Japan, and if necessary they would move the Japanese Army
-forward to their succour.
-
-The successful resistance of Semenoff and Kalmakoff to the Omsk
-Government, backed up by the armed forces of one of the Allies, had a
-disastrous effect upon the situation throughout Siberia. If Semianoff
-and Kalmakoff could, with Allied help and encouragement, openly deride
-the Omsk Government's orders, then it was clear to the uninitiated that
-the Allies were hostile to the supreme Russian authority. If Semianoff
-and Kalmakoff can wage successful hired resistance to orderly government
-at the bidding of a foreign Power, why cannot we do so, to retain the
-land and property we have stolen and prevent the proper administration
-of justice for the crimes we have committed? It was intended as a
-deliberate attack upon authority and an incentive to the disorderly
-elements to continue the prevailing anarchy. A united, well organised
-Russia is not the kind of Russia Japan wishes to see established. If
-Japan is to succeed in her territorial ambitions in the Far East, Russia
-must be kept in a state of mental disorder and physical paralysis.
-Germany used the Russian love of conspiracy and intrigue to create
-disorder and destroy the Muscovite power; Japan intends, if possible,
-to continue that disorder for her own political reasons.
-
-Directly it became known that Semianoff and Kalmakoff had set the Omsk
-Government at defiance, numerous other would-be Semenoffs came on the
-scene until the very residence of the Supreme Governor and his
-Headquarters Staff scarcely escaped attack, and it became necessary to
-show the British Tommy on the side of order. This was the position up
-till the early days of December, 1918.
-
-Just about this time the fact that Germany was beaten began to take
-shape in the Japanese military mind, and the fact was hammered home by
-the terms of the Armistice. For some days the Japanese Mission at Omsk
-flatly refused to believe the cables; their national pride refused to
-admit that they had so far misunderstood the power of Britain and her
-Allies. It was a terrible awakening to the self-styled "Lords of the
-East" that all their schemes should be brought to nought, that British
-and American squadrons might be expected to cruise in the Sea of Japan,
-and perhaps hold the scales fair between her and her temporarily
-helpless neighbour. I do not suppose it will ever come to that, but such
-was her fear. From this time on, while the objects of Japan in Siberia
-were still the same, she pursued them by quite different methods.
-
-The first sign of change was that Japanese soldiers were allowed to
-salute British officers and were no longer allowed to use the butts of
-their rifles on inoffensive Russian citizens. Their military trains no
-longer conveyed contraband goods to their compatriots who had
-_acquired_ the Russian business houses in the main trading centres along
-the railway. The Staff no longer commandeered the best buildings in the
-towns for alleged military purposes and immediately sub-let them to
-private traders. Japan at once re-robed herself with the thin veil of
-Western morals and conduct which she had rapturously discarded in 1914.
-While Hun methods were in the ascendancy she adopted the worst of them
-as her own. She is in everything the imitator _par excellence_, and
-therefore apparently could not help herself.
-
-The British and French mildly protested against the attitude of Japan
-towards Semianoff and Kalmakoff, but it was continued until the anarchy
-created threatened to frustrate every Allied effort. Not until the Peace
-Conference had disclosed the situation did a change in policy take
-place. From this time on the conduct of Japan (both civil and military)
-became absolutely correct. President Wilson brought forward his famous,
-but impossible, proposal that the different Russian belligerents should
-agree to an armistice and hold a conference on the Turkish "Isle of
-Dogs." If patriotism is the maintenance of such rules of human conduct
-and national life as will justify one man in killing another, then no
-Russian patriot could meet in friendly conference those who had
-destroyed and murdered their own country and people. Russia during the
-previous two years had shown that there could be no compromise between
-anarchy and order, or their several adherents. This was, however, the
-policy of America, and as such received the blessing of every
-representative, Jew or Gentile, of the U.S.A. in Siberia. Japan saw a
-kink in the American armour and took full advantage of the chance to
-damage U.S.A. prestige. She rallied Russian patriotism to her side by
-advising that no notice be taken of this harebrained suggestion. Japan's
-advice received the secret blessing of both French and English who knew
-the situation, though in our case we had to admit that the British
-Premier had stood sponsor for this international monstrosity. This gave
-Japanese diplomacy its first clear hold upon Russian patriotism and
-enabled her to appear as a true friend of orderly government.
-
-American diplomacy in Russia had received its first great shock, but
-with careful handling it was still possible to recover the lost ground.
-With the utter failure of the "Isle of Dogs" policy, Russian rage
-quickly subsided and a normal condition soon returned. The Allies had
-received a salutary warning, and most of them took the hint, but America
-continued on her debatable course. Having failed diplomatically to
-effect a compromise, she tried to force her views by military means. The
-neutral zone system of her commanders was the natural outcome of
-President Wilson's proposal. The intention was excellent, that the
-results would be disastrous was never in doubt. It forced the American
-command to adopt a sort of local recognition of the Red Army within the
-zone, and enabled the Japanese to appear as the sole friend of Russian
-order. The Japanese were attacked by Red forces collected in these
-zones, with American soldiers standing as idle spectators of some of the
-most desperate affairs between Red and Allied troops. Japan was
-entitled to reap the kudos such a situation brought to her side, while
-America could not expect to escape the severest censure.
-
-Profiting by the blunders of her great antagonist, Japan managed in six
-months to recover all the ground she had lost while suffering under the
-illusion of a great Hun victory that was to give her the Lordship of the
-East. From a blustering bandit she has become a humble helper of her
-poor, sick, Russian neighbour. In which role she is most dangerous time
-will show. The world as a rule has little faith in sudden conversions.
-
-This, then, was the situation in the Far East in June, 1919. As I was
-leaving Vladivostok I heard that the Red forces that had been organised
-in the American neutral zones had at last boldly attacked their
-protectors. If this was correct, it may be the reason why Admiral
-Koltchak was able to report their defeat and rout over the Chinese
-border and we were back again at the point at which British and Czech
-co-operation had arrived a year previously.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV
-
-GENERAL CONCLUSIONS
-
-
-Before we decide our policy as to withdrawal or otherwise from Russia it
-is necessary to know whether we have contracted any obligations to the
-Russian people, and what is the nature of such obligations, if any. Are
-they moral, military, or political?
-
-Towards the end of 1914, when our army had been driven back behind the
-Marne and the future of Europe and our Empire was in the balance,
-frantic appeals were made by British statesmen, and even by still more
-august authority, asking Russia to rush to our aid and save us from
-destruction. This appeal was backed by British public and Labour
-opinion, and through our Press made a profound impression upon the
-Russian people. The Russian Government, regardless of their best
-military advice, forced their partially mobilised legions to make a
-rapid flying raid into East Prussia, which immediately reduced the
-pressure upon our own armies and made the victory of the Marne possible.
-Hurriedly mobilised, imperfectly equipped, not too brilliantly led,
-these legions, constituting the chivalry of Russia, became the prey of
-Prussia's perfect military machine. The Russian Government never dared
-to tell the Russian peasant the number of Russian souls who were
-mutilated by high explosives and smothered in the cold Masurian marshes
-in that sublime effort to save her friends. Russia lost as many men in
-saving Paris during that raid as did all the other Allies in the first
-year of the war.
-
-Russia continued to fight and mobilise until 1917, by which time she had
-collected a huge army of over twelve million men. The Hohenzollern
-dynasty and its military advisers came to the conclusion that it would
-soon be impossible to stem this human tide by ordinary military means,
-and having a complete understanding of Russian psychology through its
-dynastic and administrative agents, decided to undermine the _moral_ of
-the Russian people. German "Black Books" were not employed against
-British leaders exclusively. We need not wonder at the rapid spread
-among Russians of suspicion against their civil and military leaders
-when we remember that the same sort of propaganda admittedly influenced
-the administration of justice in England. The people of Russia were true
-to their friends, demoralisation and decomposition began at the head,
-rapidly filtering down to the lowest strata of society.
-
-If the Allied cause was deserted, it was the desertion of a ruling
-class, not of a people or its army. German treachery wormed its way in
-at the top, and so destroyed a great race it never could have conquered.
-
-Having disorganised the Russian military machine, Germany sent her
-agents to continue the disorder and prevent recovery. She secured the
-Brest-Litovsk Treaty, and made a levy of several hundred millions
-sterling upon her bailiffs, whom she put in possession of her
-neighbour's property. Lenin and Trotsky found anarchy the most effective
-weapon to further the interest of their masters and protect their
-Eastern flank. A peace which virtually extended German conquest to the
-hinterland of Tsing-Tchau was dangerous to every civilising influence in
-the Far East.
-
-The Bolshevik treaty was not less dangerous to Europe herself, since it
-brought a war-like population of one hundred and eighty millions within
-the sphere of German military influence.
-
-The British Expeditionary Force was ordered to Siberia in June, 1918, to
-assist the orderly elements of Russian society to reorganise themselves
-under a national Government and to resurrect and reconstruct the Russian
-front. Firstly, to enable Russia to resist German aggression; secondly,
-to weaken German military power on the Western front, where at that time
-she was again delivering hammer-blows at the gates of Paris. This
-expedition was approved by every party and patriot in Britain, and the
-only criticism offered at the time was that it should have been so long
-delayed. Soviet power under German and Austrian direction had released
-the German and Austrian prisoners of war, armed and organised them into
-formidable armies to perform the double task of maintaining their
-creatures in power at Moscow and extending their domination over a
-helpless friendly Allied Power.
-
-There was every reason for treating the Dictatorship of Lenin and
-Trotsky as a mere side-show of the German military party; they were, in
-fact, a branch of the military problem with which the Allies were bound
-to deal. Under Entente direction anti-Bolshevik Governments were
-established, and were promised the unstinted help of the Allies to
-recover their territory and expel the agents of the enemy who had so
-foully polluted their own home. It was on this understanding that
-Admiral Koltchak, by herculean efforts, hurled the German hirelings over
-the Urals, and awaited near Vatka the advance of the Allies from
-Archangel preparatory to a march on Petrograd. Alas! he waited for seven
-long months in vain; the Allies never came! After expending his last
-ounce of energy and getting so near to final victory, we failed him at
-the post. Why?
-
-The menace to our own armies in France had disappeared; there was, I
-suppose, no longer an urgent necessity to re-establish the Russian
-front, though the possibility of such re-establishment had kept huge
-German forces practically demobilised near the Russian and Ukrainian
-frontiers. Koltchak and his gallant comrade Denikin had served the
-Entente purpose. Lenin and Trotsky, by wholesale intimidation and
-murder, had aroused the enthusiasm of similarly disposed compatriots in
-Allied countries. These compatriots were becoming noisy in the
-constituencies. The establishment of order to enable the Russian people
-to establish a clean democratic Government, and arise from their
-nightmare of unbridled anarchy, while very desirable in itself, was not
-a good party cry in any of the Western democracies. I grant all these
-things; but what about honour? Has this no longer any place in the
-political curriculum of the Allied Powers?
-
-These are only some of the things it is necessary to remember before we
-finally decide to desert a temporarily sick friend. If I were the ruler
-of a state I should pray the gods to preserve me from half-hearted
-Allies and over-cautious friends. If I wished to help a fallen state or
-lend an honest hand in a great cause, whether it were to eradicate a
-hideous and fatal national malady or assert a principle of right and
-justice, first shield me from the palsy of Allied diplomacy! One
-clear-sighted, honest helper is worth a dozen powerful aiders whose main
-business is to put obstacles in each other's way.
-
-If we were discussing the question of Allied interference before the
-fact, I could give many reasons for remaining neutral; but we have to
-recognise that for their own purposes they have interfered, that their
-Military Missions and forces have been operating in the country for over
-a year, during which time they have made commitments and given pledges
-of a more or less binding character. That these commitments and pledges
-are not the irresponsible acts of subordinates on the spot, but have
-been made by Allied statesmen, both in and out of their several
-Parliaments; and in this respect our national leaders are no exception
-to the rule. Without filling my pages with quotations, readers will be
-able to find and tabulate such for themselves. So categorical are the
-nature of these that it is impossible to imagine them to have been made
-without fully understanding their import and significance to the
-orderly section of the Russian people who, on the faith of these
-pledges, gave us their trust.
-
-It cannot, therefore, be a discussion upon interference or
-non-interference; _that_ has long since been disposed of by our words
-and acts. It is now a question whether we shall withdraw from Russia
-because we have thought fit to change our attitude to the Russian
-problem. It is certain that our decision to-day upon this subject will
-decide our future relations with this great people. If you desert a
-friend in his hour of need, you cannot expect that he will be
-particularly anxious to help you when he has thrown off his ill-health
-and is in a position to give valuable help to those who gave succour in
-his distress.
-
-If our desertion turns this people from us, they will become the prey of
-our recent enemies, and if that happens we can prate about the Treaty of
-Paris as much as we like. The Teuton will have more than balanced the
-account.
-
-
-
-Index
-
-
-Absolutists, Russian
-Affinasiaff, General, headquarters of
-Allies, the,
- a Russian reaction against
- policy for resurrection of Russia
-All-Russian Government, the formation of
-America
- and Siberia
- and the Far East
- her "neutral zone" in the Suchan district
-American policy and its results
-Americans
- arrive at Vladivostok
- an agreement with Bolsheviks
-Anghara River
-Anglo-Russian infantry brigade, formation of
-Antonovka
- a critical position at
- Cossack position at
- Kalmakoff, surprised at
-Antonovsky, General, intrigues of
-Archangel
- an Anglo-American force at
- failure of a projected march on Petrograd from
-Argunoff exiled
-Armistice between Germany and Entente Powers
-Armoured trains, a duel between
-Avkzentieff and Chernoff
- exiled
- President of Council of Ministers
-
-Baikal
- a titanic struggle at
- arrival at
-Baikal Sea (_see_ Lake Baikal)
-Barabinsk
- a meeting at
- the market at
-Bath, Captain
-Beloff, General, intrigues of
-Berwkoff, death of
-Bezovsky, Colonel, and a Cossack parade
-Blizzard, gales and frost in Siberia
-Bogotol, a meeting at
-Bolderoff, General
- and Japanese demands
- confers with Koltchak at Petropalovsk
- in consultation with Czech National Council in Japan
-Bolsaar, Lieutenant
-Bolshevik
- losses at Perm
- method of military organisation,
-Bolsheviks
- an agreement with Americans
- atrocities of
- author's address to
- disguised as Russian soldiers
- recognised as legitimate belligerents
- successes of
- their conception of treachery
- train-wrecking by
- utter demoralisation of
-Boulton, Quartermaster-Captain
-Bowes, General
-Brest-Litovsk Treaty, the
-British Expeditionary Force ordered to Siberia
-British Military Mission placed under arrest
-Browne, Captain
-Browne, Major
- inspects guards of honour at Krasnoyarsk
-Buckley, Lieutenant
-Budburg, von, and an alleged Allied force
-
-Canadians
- arrive in Siberia
- insubordination among
-Chernoff, President of Social Revolutionary party
-Chilliyabinsk, a visit to
-Chinese Eastern Railway, American control of
-Chinese
- entertain British at Harbin
- friendship for the English
- frontier, State prisoners conveyed to
- robber bands of Mongolia
-Chita
- an incident at
- Bolshevik "kultur" at
- Japanese at
- Royalist conspiracies at
-Clark, Captain, and Dukoveskoie battle
-Coleman, Sergeant, of the Durham L.I.
-Cornish-Bowden, Second Lieutenant, and the political exiles
-Cossacks, horsemanship of
-Czech National Army, the, presentation of colours to
-Czechs
- a tribute to their gunnery
- and the question of a Dictatorship
- defection of
- defensive tactics of
- frustrate a Bolshevik scheme
- mutilated by Bolsheviks
-
-Denikin, General
- makes submission to Koltchak
-Detriks, General
- reports on military situation
- visits the front
-Directorate and Government, members of, arrested
-Directorate of Five, the
- dissolved
-Dukoveskoie
- a new line at
- battle of
-Dust-storms, Siberian
-Dutoff, General
- reports Bolshevik treachery
-
-Easter at Perm
-Eastman, Captain
-Education, the Church and
-Edwards, Captain
-Ekaterinburg
- an invitation from
- meetings of railwaymen at
-Eliot, Sir Charles, British High Commissioner
-Elmsley, Brigadier-General
-European Russia, a visit to
-
-Frank, Colonel R. Antonivitch, author's liaison officer
- an exciting incident at Krasnoyarsk
-Frank, Madame
- acts as correspondent and translator for labour missions
- commands a company in the trenches
- conveys a Bolshevik victim to hospital
-Frazer, David, _Times_ correspondent
-French, the, and General Knox's mission
- form a German Legion
- "prestige" of
- protect Serbian ruffians
- their influence in Omsk
-French-Tonquin Battalion, the
-Fugi, General, and his command
-
-Gaida, General
- and Pepelaieff
- arrests Czech soldiers
- author's introduction to
- captures Perm
- resigns his Czech commission.
- surrender of Red Guards to
-Galitzin, General Count
- and the Perm offensive
- personality of
-Ganin, General, a strange order from
- and his command
- decorates Allied representatives,
- releases enemy prisoners
- the Omsk Government and
-George V., King, letter to President Wilson
-German-Magyar-Chinese combination, the
-Germans, enterprise of
- sanguine of victory in world war
-"Germans of the East"
-Ghondati, General, his hopes and fears
-Glashoff, a seven months' wait at
-Golovaehoff, M., meets author
-Gordon, Regimental Sergt.-Major
-Graves, General, and the Bolsheviks
-
-Hachinsk, author at
-Hampshire Territorials arrive at Omsk
- move to Ekaterinburg, 222
-Harbin, author's reception at
- political and financial intrigues in
- question of travelling accommodation at
-Hazelar, a parade service at
-Hepoff, General, a story of
-Hinghan Range, the
-Hodgson, Mr., British consul
-Hong-Kong, "Die-Hards'" departure from
-"Hovart's Army"
-
-Imokentievskaya, a workmen's meeting at
-Inagaki, Colonel
-"Intelligenzia," the
- (_cf._ Kerensky)
-International World Workers, the
-Irkutsk, author opens his campaign at
- arrival at
- Bolshevik "kultur" in
- Japanese traders at
- much-needed rifles at
- welcome to Middlesex Regiment at
-
-Japan and the maritime provinces
- her attitude to Siberians
- intervention of
- policy in the Far East
-Japanese, a promise countermanded
- and "class" carriages for British officers
- and Semianoff
- and the English flag
- bugle band, a
- casualties at Dukoveskoie and Kraevesk
- changed attitude of, after the Armistice
- charge an armoured train
- propaganda in Omsk
- retire without notice
- their contempt for Russians
- their mistrust of Allies
-Johnson, Lieut.-Colonel, and his command
- introduced to Koltchak
-
-Kalmakoff, Ataman, Cossack commander
- a forced retirement
- dismisses his second in command
- Japanese orders to
-Kameragh, railway troubles at
-Kanaka, General, Japanese Chief of Staff
-Kansk, an address to workmen at
- revolt at
-Katanaev, Lieut.-Colonel, placed under arrest
-_Kent_
-Kerensky destroys old Russian army
-Kerensky and Korniloff
- Intelligenzia party of
- Russian opinion of
-Khama River, evidences of Terrorist atrocities in,
- moving ice on the
-King, Lieutenant T.E., of Middlesex Regiment
-Klukvinah, enemy defeat at
-Knox, General, a conference with
- a decoration for
- and the railway revolt
- at Taiga
- inoculated against typhus
- Japanese insult to
- object of his mission
- patriotic speech by
- removes to Ekaterinburg
- Siberian tour of
- tribute to
-Koltchak, Admiral, accepts supreme authority
- Allied felicitations to
- an unexpected conference with Bolderoff
- and an Allied appointment
- and the arrest of members of the Council
- and the Czech ceremony
- and the December revolt
- and the Omsk _coup d'etat_
- assurances on the labour problem
- author's farewell interviews with
- becomes Minister for War
- impartial justice of
- intrigues against
- on American policy in the Far East
- orders arrest of Czechs
- personality of
- receives reports of author's mission
- tenders his resignation
- tribute to
- visits Ural fronts
-Korniloff, General, Kerensky's order to
-Koulomsino, Bolsheviks at
-Kraevesk, battle of
- startling news from
- "the station without a town,"
- visited by author
-Krasilnikoff, Lieut-Colonel, placed under arrest
-Krasnoyarsk, an incident at a banquet at
- an interview with Gen. Rosanoff at
- arrival at
- author's addresses at
- Bolsheviks in
- Colonel Frank wounded by Serbs at
- derelict war material at
- international intrigues at
-Kunghure front, a visit to the
-Kushva, evidences of Bolshevik rule in
- mineral deposits of
- the Bolshevik Commissar of
- the Watkin Works and its heroes
-
-Lake Baikal
- an autumn sunrise on
-Lebediff, Colonel (afterwards General)
- a warning to
-Ledwards, Mr., British Vice-Consul at Nikolsk
-Lenin
-Lisvin front, a visit to the
-
-Machinery, German _v_. English
-Malley, Major, friendly relations with
- his command
-Manchuli, a much-talked-of incident at
- Bolshevik atrocities at
- Japanese Division at
-Manchuria, plains of
-Manchurian-Chinese Eastern Railway, the
-Manchurian front, conditions on the
-Marca, author's Cossack attendant
-Matkofsky, General, welcomes author at Omsk
-Middlesex Regiment (25th Battalion) and battle of Dukoveskoie
- leaves Hong-Kong for Siberia
- machine-gun section of
- welcomed in Irkutsk
-Mitchel
- bravery of
-Moffat, Petty Officer, his Naval party surrounded,
-Mongolia, plains of
- robber bands of
- Tartars of
- the Japanese and
-Mongolians ask Semianoff to become their Emperor
-Moorman, Lance-Corporal
-Morrisy, Lieut.-Colonel, of Canadian contingent
-Mosquitoes In Siberia,
-Munro, Lieutenant, brings comforts for soldiers
-Murray, Captain Wolfe, commands armoured trains from _Suffolk_
-Muto, General, and Japanese propaganda
-
-Nadegenska, steelworks of
-Nash, Consul, as host
-Navy, the, artillery assistance by
-Neilson, Lieut.-Col. J.F.
-Nesniodinsk, an address to workmen at
-Nevanisk, before and after Bolshevik rule
-Nicholas II., Tsar, abolishes vodka
- his prison
- murder of
-Nikolioff, Colonel, and surrendered Bolsheviks
-Nikolsk, a courteous station-master
- arrival at
- Bolshevik "kultur" at
- Japanese headquarters at
-Niloy-ugol, the barracks at
-Novo Nikoliosk, author at
- enemy prisoners released at
-
-Oie, General, an urgent message from
- headquarters of
- thanks British
-Olhanka, Czech and Cossack retirement from
-Omsk, a _coup d'etat_ in
- a dust-storm in
- arrival at
- blizzard, gales and frost in
- Canadians arrive at
- comforts for the troops
- disappearance of British influence in
- friendships formed at
- terrible days in
- the political situation in
- revisited
-Otani, General, orders to author
-
-Paris, a bombshell from, and the effect
-Paris Council, the,
- and the pressure on French front
-Pastokova, Madame, author's meeting with
-Pastrokoff, Mr.
- relates an incident of relief of Perm
-Payne, Commodore
- a paraphrased cable from War Office
- provides artillery assistance
-Peacock, Consul, and the imprisonment of an Australian
-Pepelaieff, General, conference with
- meets General Gaida
- plight of his army
- the Perm offensive
-Perm, a French Mission arrives at
- a meeting in railway works at
- a suggested advance on
- an incident of relief of
- Bolshevik atrocities in
- capture of
- high prices and rate of exchange at
- increased wages under Bolshevik rule
- the opposing forces at battle of
- the Orthodox Easter celebration at
-Petrograd, failure of a projected march on
-Petropalovsk, an eventful conference at
-Pichon, Major, and the Japanese commander
- author's tribute to
- consultation with author
- his command
- informs author of Armistice terms
- thanked by author
-Pickford, Brigadier, and the Canadian troops
-Plisshkoff, General, and his command
-Pomerensiv, Captain, a consultation with
- a present from
-Poole, General
-Pootenseiff, General Evan, his farewell to author
-Preston, Mr., British Consul at Ekaterinburg
- evidence as to Bolshevik outrages
-Prickly heat
-
-Renault, Monsieur, French representative at Omsk
-Renoff, General Evanoff
- a cipher message from
- and the Japanese demands
-Roberts, Captain
-Robertson, Colonel
-Rogovsky, exile of
-Rosanoff, General, Bolderoff's Chief of Staff
- in command at Krasnoyarsk
-Royalist and Bolshevist conspiracy, a
-Runovka, an entertaining duel at
- Cossack position at
- enemy success at
-Russia, a political crisis in
- a reaction against European Allies in
- aim of Allied "politicals" in
- an unholy partnership in
- German treachery in
- hard lot of workmen in
- labour problem in
- murder of the Tsar
- peasantry of
- railway troubles in
- the herald of Spring in
- the puzzle of Allied help to
-Russian Army, the, mutiny in
- "Bill of Rights," the
- democracy: the Soviet basis of
- Headquarters, British in possession of
- political exiles conveyed to Chinese frontier
-Russians, emotionalism of
- religious instincts of
- Royalist sympathies of officers
-
-Sand dunes of Mongolia
-Savinoff, trial of
-Semianoff, Colonel, agent of Japanese traders
- and the political exiles
- makes submission to Koltchak
- personality of
- repudiates Koltchak's authority
- revenue from railway carriages
-Serbian soldiers, an exciting adventure with
-Sheep, Mongolian
-Shmakovka, Allies at
- armoured trains dispatched from
- enemy centre at
-Siberia, a belated expedition to
- American policy and its results
- and the Allies
- arrival of Canadians in
- derelict corn in
- Government of
- Japanese policy and its results
- mosquitoes in
- reason for British intervention in
-Siberian Cossack Regiment (2nd), parade of
-Siberian Rifles, presentation of colours to
-Sly, Mr., British Consul at Harbin
-Social Revolutionary party, the
- a fateful proclamation by
- and the new army
-Soldiers' Councils established
-Soviets and Russian democracy
-Spascoe, author's headquarters at
- British quarters at
-Stephan, Captain (now Major)
- Czech commander
- his services to Allies
-Stephani, Captain
-Stephanik, General, the Legion of Honour for
-Suchan district, a neutral zone in
-_Suffolk_
-Sukin, M.
-Sungary, River
-Surovey, General
- releases Czech prisoners
-Svagena, an American-Bolshevik agreement at
- arrival at
- Czech retirement on
- Japanese at
-
-Taiga, a successful meeting at
-Taighill, Bolshevik destruction at
-Tartar herdsmen, Mongolian
-Terrorists (_see_ Bolsheviks)
-Teutonic penetration and Bolshevism
-Titoff, trial of
-Tomsk, the Siberian Districts Duma
-Trotsky
-Tumen, author addresses workmen at
-Typhus in European Russia
-
-Ufa Directorate, the
-United States (_see_ America)
-Ural front, question of supplies for
-Urals, the, mineral wealth of
-Uspenkie
-Ussurie front, critical conditions on
-Ussurie operations, completion of
-
-Vackneah Turansky Works, the
-Vatka
-Ventris, Major-General F.
-Verzbitsky, General
- and the battle of Perm
-Vladimir
-Vladivostok, Americans arrive at
- arrival of Canadians at
- author's arrival at
- Japanese arrival at
- Japanese demands to Town Commander of
- iron shipped to Japan
-Volagodsky, President of Siberian Council
-Volkov, Colonel, placed under arrest
-
-Ward, Colonel John, a Bolshevik
- surrender and an object-lesson
- a guard of soldier "monks"
- addresses surrendered Red Guards
- an interview with Major Pichon
- an urgent message from Japanese commander
- and December Royalist and Bolshevist conspiracy
- and the Kraevesk affair
- and the Omsk _coup d'etat_
- appeals to working men and women at Irkutsk
- arrives at Vladivostok
- as administrator
- at banquet in honour of All-Russian Government
- at Irkutsk
- attends Allied commanders' council
- attends an Orthodox Easter celebration
- created a C.B.
- entrains for Ussurie front
- exciting experiences at Krasnoyarsk
- experiences of the "hidden hand"
- farewell interviews with Koltchak
- homeward bound
- in European Russia
- inquires into railwaymen's grievances
- leaves Hong-Kong for Siberia
- made an Ataman
- official reports on Omsk situation
- officialdom--and a proposed attack
- on the labour problem in Russia
- ordered to Omsk
- receives the Croix de Guerre
- reports result of his mission
- requests removal of his headquarters
- revisits Omsk
- speech at Svagena
- straight talk with a Japanese officer
- the Manchuli incident and an explanation
- visits a Tartar herdsman's abode
- visits Ural fronts
- witnesses a duel between armoured trains
-Webb, Sergeant, death of
-Wilson, President, his impossible proposal
- King George's letter to
-Wolves, Mongolian
-Women's suffrage, question of
-
-Zema, a stop at, and the cause
- a successful meeting at
- houses searched and arms seized
-Zenzinoff and Chernoff
- exiled
-Zochinko, General
-
-
-
-***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WITH THE "DIE-HARDS" IN SIBERIA***
-
-
-******* This file should be named 10972.txt or 10972.zip *******
-
-
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
-https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/9/7/10972
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-https://gutenberg.org/license).
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
-page at https://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit https://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
-donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's
-eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
-
-Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
-VERSIONS based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
-new filenames and etext numbers.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
-https://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-EBooks posted prior to November 2003, with eBook numbers BELOW #10000,
-are filed in directories based on their release date. If you want to
-download any of these eBooks directly, rather than using the regular
-search system you may utilize the following addresses and just
-download by the etext year.
-
-http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext06
-
- (Or /etext 05, 04, 03, 02, 01, 00, 99,
- 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90)
-
-EBooks posted since November 2003, with etext numbers OVER #10000, are
-filed in a different way. The year of a release date is no longer part
-of the directory path. The path is based on the etext number (which is
-identical to the filename). The path to the file is made up of single
-digits corresponding to all but the last digit in the filename. For
-example an eBook of filename 10234 would be found at:
-
-https://www.gutenberg.org/1/0/2/3/10234
-
-or filename 24689 would be found at:
-https://www.gutenberg.org/2/4/6/8/24689
-
-An alternative method of locating eBooks:
-https://www.gutenberg.org/GUTINDEX.ALL
-
-*** END: FULL LICENSE ***
diff --git a/old/10972.zip b/old/10972.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index e337c59..0000000
--- a/old/10972.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ